Untitled - Joss Wulff, Erotic Romance Author
Transcription
Untitled - Joss Wulff, Erotic Romance Author
FOREVER MINE A D’rkenrealm Story Book One By Joss Wulff Smashwords Edition Copyright 2013 - Joss Wulff ISBN: 9781301179626 Smashwords Edition, License Notes This ebook is licensed for your personal enjoyment only. This ebook may not be re-sold or given away to other people. If you would like to share this book with another person, please purchase an additional copy for each recipient. If you’re reading this book and did not purchase it, or it was not purchased for your use only, then please return to Smashwords.com and purchase your own copy. Thank you for respecting the hard work of this author. Books written by Joss Wulff can be obtained either through the author’s official website: www.josswulff.com or through select online book retailers. SPECIAL THANKS To my soul-sister Ashley Hegel for all her support, encouragement, honesty and love she has selflessly given in the past ten years, and most especially with this series. You are one of my favorite peeps in the world! Keep keeping it real sister and never ever change! TABLE OF CONTENTS Glossary Prologue Chapter One Chapter Two Chapter Three Chapter Four Chapter Five Chapter Six Chapter Seven Chapter Eight Chapter Nine Chapter Ten Chapter Eleven Chapter Twelve Chapter Thirteen Chapter Fourteen Chapter Fifteen Chapter Sixteen Chapter Seventeen Chapter Eighteen Chapter Nineteen Chapter Twenty Chapter Twenty-One Chapter Twenty-Two Chapter Twenty-Three Chapter Twenty-Four Chapter Twenty-Five Chapter Twenty-Six Chapter Twenty-Seven Chapter Twenty-Eight Chapter Twenty-Nine Chapter Thirty Chapter Thirty-One Chapter Thirty-Two Chapter Thirty-Three Chapter Thirty-Four Chapter Thirty-Five Chapter Thirty-Six Epilogue Connect with Joss Wulff The D’rkenrealm Series, in order Book Two: I Breath For You Excerpt GLOSSARY The Idiom of D’rkenrealm Terminology Names of Historical Events Language Translations Beleza: Portuguese for beauty Berserker: nearly uncontrollable, trance-like fury Blendling: A child born to parents of different species (i.e. Vamp & Shikar, etc.) Blinking: the means to move from one place to another that some magical beings have Blocking: an ability that some vampires have that allow them to block another vampire’s Probing The Book of Nahajan: The prophecy that revealed the coming of the Chosen One. The Brethren War: 520BC – 1BC. The war between the Pure Blood Vampire Houses The Cleansing War: 2004 – Present day. The war to eradicate the Blendling race by beings who believe the mixing of species to be aberrant and sacrilege The Council: Consists of the heads of each species and governing the laws of D’rkenrealm The Darkness: the demon half of the Upyr Dorogoy: Russian meaning ‘dear’ Dragotsennaya: Russian meaning ‘precious’ Draíocht Dorcha: Irish Gaelic meaning 'dark magic'. An ancient book of dark magic spells from all divisions of magic. The Eastern European Territories: Asia, New Zealand and Australia Ek ann ther: Old Norse meaning I Love You First Generation Turned Vampire: Humans turned by an Upyr. These vamps are considered to be the most powerful of all turned vampires. Flath-threun: Scots-Gaelic meaning demigod Gorod – medieval Russian term for castle Ionuin – Irish Gaelic for beloved Kevdja drengr: Old Norse meaning, 'Greetings Warrior' Lechie: a demon that lives in the forests of Russia and Scandinavia. They are mortal enemies to the Leshy, their good elf counterparts. Leshy: a forest elf that lives in Russia and Scandinavia Lubimaya: Russian meaning ‘my love’, ‘sweetheart’ Lufaylia: (Lu-fay-lia) Upyrian love potion Lyubof: Russian meaning ‘love’ Malyshka: Russian meaning ‘baby’ Maya krasaveetsa: Russian meaning ‘my beauty’ The Middle East and African Territories: The Middle East Countries and Africa Milaya moya: Russian meaning ‘sweetie’, my sweet Mo dheartháir: Irish Gaelic meaning ‘my brother’ Moya dusha: Russian meaning ‘my soul’ Moya solnishka: Russian meaning ‘my little sunshine’ Necromancy: beings of magical origins The Northern American Territories: American, Mexico and Canada The Northern European Territories: Russia and Scandinavia Old Norse: ancient Scandinavian language typically spoken by those of Russian or Scandinavian decent. The Overlord: The ruling lord of D’rkenrealm, he only answers to the Council and Circinn the Consul. Probing: the ability to read other people’s minds. S’airsul: Pronounced ‘shar-sool’ ‘oo’ like in tool. Upyrian meaning ‘shared soul’ or ‘bonded mate’ the mate of an Upyr male. Shikar: Vampire slayer. Human child given the essence of a demon created sometime between 1AD-1066AD by the humans during the Vampire Human War Shining: What takes place when a child’s powers have matured and they become immortal. Transition occurs when a halo of blue light surrounds them for a brief moment and then disappears Sladkoe iskushenie: Russian meaning ‘sweet temptation’ The Soothsayers: The Black Arts of the Necromancy - Warlocks – typically all male The South American Territories: South America The Southern European Territories: Europe Sovereign: a master vampire selected by the Overlord and ruling a specified territory The Summit: A peace meeting that takes place every five years in Scotland at the castle of Circinn the Consul Svass: Old Norse for beloved The Three Thousand Year War: 4th millennium BC through the 6th Century (600 BC) of the 1st millennium BC. The war between the Vampires and the Lycanthrope Ti takaya krasivaya: Russian meaning ‘you are so beautiful’ Upyr: Pronounced ‘vrag’ - Pure Blood vampire, born vampires with the soul of a human and the soul of a demon Upyrian: An ancient form of Old Norse, it is the language of the Upyr. Most consider this a dead language and do not speak it, with the exception of first generation turned vamps that learned the language from their Upyr sire. The Vampire Houses: Upyr Clan ruling houses. Ruled by a Master Upyr and consisting of the Upyr and their sired children. The Vampire-Human War: 1AD – 1066AD. The war between Vampires and Humans The White Wiccas: White magic of the Necromancy – Witches - typically all females D’RKENREALM A dimension that lies on the outskirts of our own, it is a place where mortals and immortals coexist peacefully, though it had not always been so. For centuries wars for power and supremacy ravaged the Realm, first between Vampires and Lycanthropes then between the Vampire brethren and finally between the Vampires and the Humans. All sides fought valiantly for the survival of their species. The Humans even merged their young females with dark magic creating supernatural beings known as Shikars, a being equal to a Vampire’s speed and strength, her only job was to slay vampires. For years this battle raged and through it all the creators of the Realm the Gods and Goddess of two Pantheons, Celtic and Norse, looked down upon the carnage with sadness and anger. Weary of watching their children kill each other The Great Goddess Anaya of the Celtic Pantheon and Odin of the Norse punished their children by placing a fertility curse across the Realm. Mortals and immortals alike laughed at the curse, not believing their cherished deities would inflict such punishment on them but as the years passed their laughter ceased. Not one child was conceived and as the war continued and more died, it was clear that continuing would leave them all extinct. It was not long after that the Book of Nahajan was unearthed in the hallowed mountains of Goraith in the Highlands of Scotland and a prophecy came to light. It foretold the coming of a new age; the result of the mating between The Champion – a Master Vampire - and The Chosen – a Shikar. Their joining would create a new hybrid of beings called Blendlings who would change the shape of their society. Taking the prophecy to heart mortals and immortals of all kinds put their differences aside and worked together to rebuild their world, to ensure the survival of all races and to set forth the conditions in which the seeds of the prophecy would be able to grow. Since the prophecy foretold a Shikar to be the Chosen One it was believed a human would not have the necessary fortitude to mate with a Vampire. Therefore it was deemed forbidden for any human to have intimate relations with a Vampire. Instead Shikars, who were no longer trained to fight, were born with the specific duty of being a Master Vampire’s property. They gave them their blood to survive and they mated with them with the hope that one would be The Chosen. The years passed quickly but not one child was conceived until the day when a woman from another dimension arrived. Her name was Elizabeth Baker, she was a Shikar but she was not like the Shikars of this dimension. She came from a world where Shikars were trained to fight and kill vampires not mate with them, yet…mate with one she did - First Generation Master Vampire Magnus Mac Branain. What followed next was a miracle – the first pregnancy in the Realm in over a hundred years and most people treasured this miracle. Races started to mix with other races and more pregnancies came to be. The people were happy and filled with hope for a new and exciting future. Yet within the miracle of life and the joy of love discontentment feeds hatred and anger, jealously, and ultimately…war. Forever Mine PROLOGUE 2001 Castle Cinn The Highlands, Scotland “Come, Circinn has requested an audience with you.” Elizabeth ‘Ella’ Mac Branain, formerly known as Miss Elizabeth ‘Ella’ Baker or Ella the vampire slayer, didn’t say a word as her mate took her arm and started a brisk pace through the ballroom. Her heart was lodged in her throat, again. She was nervous and that irked her. She was not a nervous ninny but she was about to meet the most important person in D’rkenrealm and she really, really did not want to screw this up. When she first arrived here eight months ago, thanks to a narcissistic vamp named Procenius who thought sending a vampire slayer to a dimension where she couldn’t kill vamps would be hysterical, she wanted to screw everything up – actually, she really just wanted to kill everyone. She was a Shikar and killing vamps was what she was born to do but in this Realm, where vampires, humans, demons and any other supernatural being you could or could not imagine lived side by side in peace, she couldn’t. It was making her crazy. That coupled with her raging hormones meant she was on edge all the time. Practically being dragged to meet the most important man in the Realm and who just so happened to be the liaison to the Great Goddess Anaya was not helping. “I’m scared Magnus, what if I screw up? What if I say the wrong thing? Do the wrong thing? What if he doesn’t like me? Oh Gods I’m going to make a complete ass out of myself. Do I look alright? Is my hair a mess? It is isn’t it? You can tell me. I won’t cry I swear!” They reached the hallway that lead to Circinn the Consul’s private parlor, it was empty and the lamplights burned low. Magnus stopped walking and pulled Ella close to him. Wrapping his arms around her he gently lifted her downcast face up to his eyes which were soft and full of confidence and love. “Hush Ionuin, don’t worry. He’s going to love you how can he naught?” Ella snorted, “Because you said yourself, just yesterday as a matter of fact, that I am not the easiest person to love. Besides what if that wild mouth of mine cracks and spits out something totally stupid. God, I’d be so embarrassed.” Magnus smiled at her softly then kissed her forehead. “Elizabeth you’re just overly emotional right now because you’re pregnant and you’re tired. If you’d taken a nap earlier instead of wondering all over the damn mountain like I told you…” “Oh Gods, please don’t lecture me now!” She pitifully whined. 1 Forever Mine Magnus smiled, “Ioniun, you have nothing to worry about. Circinn is not a condemning man. He will accept you for who and what you are, just as I have. Just as everyone has.” “Yeah right, like that red-headed hussy that kept looking at my stomach like she wanted to stomp on it.” Magnus frowned at her words, but thinking about that woman tried up Ella’s tears and anger returned. “And why is that exactly? What the hell did I ever do to her?” “It is not always easy for people who have lived one way for hundreds of years to openly accept something different. I’m afraid Penny St. James is one of those people.” The brogue that filled Ella’s ears immediately calmed her nerves. Magnus turned them toward the now open door and the man standing grandly inside. He took a step closer and clasped Circinn’s hand. They spoke in Upyrian the language of the Upyr who were pure blood vampires, born not turned, and who were now practically extinct. Since Ella was still learning Irish Gaelic, which was the primary language of the Realm, they quickly reverted to English for her benefit. “Magnus it’s good to see you. You look amazingly well.” Circinn’s kind grey eyes turned to Ella, “and I can see why. She is quite stunning. If I were a young man I might just fight for her hand.” Ella blushed under Circinn’s warm appreciative smile. “How sweet.” Circinn’s eyes sparkled teasingly as Magnus growled. Circinn slapped him on the back. “Relax my friend I joke with you. It is very amusing to see the impassive Mac Branain show so much emotion.” Circinn skimmed down Ella’s body, briefly landing on the ever present mark on her neck and then resting on the slight swell of her belly just as he laid his hand gently on the mound. “The most blessed of miracles Elizabeth. I cannot adequately express how grateful I am that you have come to our world.” All evening people had been ogling her stomach like it was a pot of gold. If Ella counted the number of times hands had reached out and touched her bump she’d be rich. She couldn’t really blame them though her pregnancy was the first in over a hundred years so it was a pretty big deal for just about everyone, still, it was starting to annoy her. She was ready to snap the wrist of the next person that touched her. Circinn was that next person but for some reason it didn’t annoy her, in fact she felt nothing but love and comfort, warmth. “Now tell me, how are you finding our world?” Ella smiled. “Well it’s a helluva lot different than mine that’s for sure. Sometimes I feel like I’m living in the Eighteenth Century, with the way everyone dresses and talks and acts but then a cell phone will ring or a car will drive by and I’m reminded that I’m not.” Still smiling she shrugged, “I can’t complain though, I mean it hasn’t been too hard adjusting, some things are harder than others but I’m sure I’ll get a handle on it…at least I hope I do. Though I have to admit that sometimes it feels like I’ll never get use to it.” “I understand your uncertainty but I am confident that in time you will meld into our society as if you were born here. As you stated yourself, 2 Forever Mine D’rkenrealm is not that much different from your own Realm. The only thing that really separates the two is the knowledge Humans here have of our kind. I think you will find your transition not as hard as you might think. Besides, you have the White Wicca Matilija and of course your supportive mate all helping to make it easier. I trust you will count me as one of those people as well. “ Ella smiled, “I would be honored Consul.” “No lass, none of that, call me Cinn. We are speaking as friends there is no need for such formalities.” “Okay, Cinn.” Ella leaned in and whispered, “I like that by the way it has a very dashing yet naughty quality about it.” She winked. Cinn found Ella to be a breath of fresh air and chuckled at her comment while Magnus’ famous frown reappeared. “You’re mouth’s running wild El, tame it.” he grumbled. Ella didn’t take her mate’s comments to heart. Instead she gave him a little shove with her elbow. “Oh, lighten up.” Turning back to Circinn she said, “I swear since we’ve gotten here he’s been nothing but uptight and proper. Meanwhile at home he’s all growly bear and a wise ass.” While Magnus continued to frown Circinn laughed again, “My longtime friend has difficulty accepting the fact that he actually has a destiny and always did. I would suspect he will need time to adjust as much as you.” Magnus opened his mouth to rebuff Cinn but didn’t get one word out before he was rudely interrupted. “A destiny that is perhaps a disingenuous one, is it not Consul?” The change that came over her mate’s manner told Ella exactly who said that. She turned to face the vamp who opposed Magnus becoming Overlord – Count Arnost Moravec. There was a deep meaningful sigh from Circinn and a long and angry rumble from Magnus who took a step forward clearly intent on violence, but he was stopped by Circinn’s strong yet gentle grip that rested on his shoulder. “No person’s destiny is misleading Arnost it is only the foolhardy that deem it so.” Cinn said. Black malcontented eyes blazed back at Circinn but then just as quickly they settled and he smiled. Well if you could call that a smile. It was cruel and cold…void of anything but hatred and violence. Ella was struck with an almost excruciating spasm that was amplified by the baby’s sudden agitation that came in the form of furious and impressively strong kicks. She rubbed her stomach to calm the baby as those black eyes abhorrently raked down her frame then stopped on her belly. “Perhaps or perhaps it is the truly wise that recognize when some things are not meant to be and never were. Mayhap your visions have failed you Circinn. Perhaps you have fallen out of favor with the Goddess. It is quite conceivable Circinn the Consul, that for once in your overlong and gallingly astute life you are wrong.” Arnost mockingly replied. Ella’s eyes widen in surprise. After hearing how much Circinn was regaled it was shocking to hear the Count’s scathing retort and spoken right to the man’s face. 3 Forever Mine Magnus stepped up to the Count. His fists clenched at his side, his own voice biting with contempt and disbelieve. “You overstep your place Arnost. You dare speak so impertinently to the Consul.” Arnost maliciously smirked, completely unfazed by Magnus’ show of disrespect. “I dare many things boy, as you know. If you have forgotten that then perhaps you need a reminder.” Arnost’s eyes blackened and his fingers twitched in preparation of a strike. Magnus smiled in return, his eyes twinkling with glee, daring Arnost to do exactly what he threatened. “He hasn’t forgotten he’s just a stubborn Mick that has never changed and undoubtedly it never will.” Count Konstantin Kotova, First Generation Turned Vampire and the current Sovereign of Russia, spoke those scathing words as he stepped up to Arnost’s side and looked at Ella with a sneer on his lips and contempt in his eyes. Ella knew all about these two. Frankly they gave her the willies. They were both First Generation Turned Vamps, just like Magnus was, but they were much older and because of that they both believed that Arnost should be the next in line to be Overlord. Being pushed aside by the prophecy of the Book of Nahajan did not sit well with either of them. “Enough gentlemen, this is my home, it is a sanctuary for one and all. “ His voice suddenly shifted, almost echoing off the walls and filling the hallway with a deep don’t mess with me tone. “I will not tolerate violence. Do we understand each other?” Seconds ticked by and the air became somewhat more subdued. The men stepped back from each other, their frames though still rigid with hatred for one another relaxed slightly in the demanding and ominous tenor of the Consul. Then into the hostility came a harmonious vivacity that filled the hall. Ella looked beyond the two hostile men standing in front of her and was once more taken back by the untainted perfection of beauty. She frowned slightly, her hand rose on its own accord and patted her hair into place, every damn being in this realm was gorgeous, unearthly so. So much so that it made a simple woman like herself - you know someone from a normal dimension, like Earth! - feel ugly. “Ah Sasha, it has been too long. You are as stunning as ever.” Cinn said. The woman smiled and Ella felt her mouth drop to the floor. Talk about gorgeous. Holy hell-fire this woman would give Angelina Jolie a run for her money. “It is good to see you Circinn. As usual you are too kind to an old woman like me.” Sasha’s voice was articulate and smooth. It was a Russian accent not that different from her mate Konstantin’s just more refined and melodious to the ears. When she turned and looked at Ella, her eyes were the most astounding shade of blue Ella had ever seen. They practically glowed with unseen knowledge, as if the mind behind those eyes saw everything Ella did not. Smiling, Sasha boldly reached out and grasped Ella’s hands in her own. “It is a pleasure to meet you Lady Mac Branain.” 4 Forever Mine As Ella held Sasha’s hand she was filled with a keen sense of sisterhood, a kinship that her soul recognized, understood, and reached out to. “Please just call me Ella.” Sasha smiled and gripped her hand with a strength that surprised Ella coming from such a feminine and graceful form. “As you wish Ella and you will call me Sasha.” “Elizabeth, allow me to introduce Lady Aleksandra Volynski Kotova.” Magnus said. Sasha turned to Magnus, still an utterly bright smile gracing her face as her palm lifted and rested on his cheek. “My, my so formal Magnus, I remember the days when you affectionately called me Maman.” Ella looked over to see Magnus actually blushing in embarrassment. Then she gaged Konstantin and Arnost’s reaction to Sasha’s warm and friendly demeanor. The red and angry faces clearly showed that they were not feeling the love - at all. “That’s enough of that Sasha. Come we should retire, it has been a long journey.” Konstantin grabbed Sasha’s wrist, practically ripping her hand off of Magnus. The moment he did Ella could swear she saw a look of revulsion cross Sasha’s striking face but she did not jerk back as Ella expected nor did she refute what Konstantin said, she simply smiled and nodded her head. “Yes I am a bit tired. The journey from Moscow to Scotland does indeed seem longer these days.” “Then of course you must rest. The evening’s activities will be a joyous occasion and you must be at your best.” Circinn said. Arnost’s cold dead eyes pinned Magnus with loathing. “Yes, joyous indeed.” Sasha smiled and addressed Ella. “I look forward to speaking with you again Dragotsennaya. It is with much happiness and great adulation that I welcome you to our world.” Ella felt Sasha’s affection and openness. She smiled her thanks, knowing in her heart that she just gained a dear friend for life. Konstantin and Arnost nodded with tense faces. Each one took a hold of Sasha’s arms, guiding her down the hallway and around the corner. The moment they disappeared Circinn spoke. “I wish a private word with you Magnus, if you don’t mind Ella. I won’t keep him for long.” Magnus frowned; he didn’t like the idea of Ella being far away from him especially now that Arnost and Konstantin were in the castle. Ella on the other hand felt like she was going to throw up. “No that’s fine, I think I’ll just step outside and get some fresh air.” Concerned brown eyes searched her face. “Are you alright Ionuin, perhaps you should rest.” Ella smiled at her mate, her hand automatically rising to her belly where she rubbed it gently. “No I’m fine really. I just need a little air that’s all. Go on, I’ll meet you in the great hall when you’re done.” 5 Forever Mine He looked unsure so Ella quickly gave him a reassuring smile. She leaned up and cupped his cheek, leaning in she kissed him, a slow lingering kiss right on the lips. “Don’t worry about me. I might be pregnant but I can still kick ass when I need to.” Sighing, Magnus kissed her back. “Don’t kick anyone’s ass, I like that dress and would hate to see it stained with blood.” He winked and Ella chuckled, feeling a bit better now that Arnost and Konstantin were gone. “I won’t be long Ionuin.” He kissed her one last time then turned and walked into the parlor. Circinn gently laid his hands on Ella’s shoulders then turned her toward the opposite end of the hall. “Those doors will take you directly out to the garden. Take as much time as you need. You are perfectly safe in my home.” “Thank you Cinn.” With a slight nod and a smile Circinn went into the parlor and closed the doors. The moment he did Ella practically ran down the hall and out the double glass doors to the patio. She really was not feeling well. Her encounter with Arnost and Konstantin had turned her stomach upside down. The baby was kicking furiously, clearly distraught to have been in their presence. “You’re telling me kiddo those two freaked me out too. Maybe I can just hide out here for the rest of the night.” She wistfully said. “I am quite certain Cinn would not mind another beautiful rose to adorn his gardens.” Hearing the deep husky timber of yet another Russian accent coming from behind her, Ella stiffened. Slowly she turned around and was staring into a chest wearing a black leather vest. Her head tilted back, her eyes approvingly gazing over the mammoth that stood before her. He was big, real big. Unfortunately for him, she was not in mood for any more Russian’s so her response was a bit bitchy. “Are you here to bust my nuts too Big Boy?” Full lips quirked up in amusement as cerulean eyes glimmered with delight. He took a step back then raked those eyes slowly down her frame stopping at her bosom, which was a bit bigger since her pregnancy, then lowering to her belly and finally settling on the vee between her legs. “I was not aware you had a set as well milady.” He looked back into her eyes. His held a glint of devilish delight. “Is the Overlord aware of this? Strange, I always thought he was a breast man not a nut lover.” His light teasing comment was so unlike the other commentaries she had received thus far that it threw Ella for a loop. It also relaxed her and she couldn’t stop herself from laughing. She laughed so hard that she got a sudden ache in her back. Ella leaned back grabbing the railing for balance. “God, I wish Magnus was here to hear that. I’d love to see his reaction.” There was absolutely no resemblance to his father but he most definitely had the uncanny beauty of his mother, though his was a rugged manly hotness instead of feminine beauty. And big! Good God the man had to be at least six- 6 Forever Mine seven. Standing before her was a man that would make any woman wet in the panties. Ella shifted, suddenly uncomfortable with her thoughts but no less able to stop them from coming. He just radiated pure sexual stimulation. She blushed then cleared her throat. “You must be Nikolai.” Nikolai Kotova smiled that knowing smile of a man who knew the affect he had on women. His feet clicked together as he bowed gracefully, his arm coming out in a wide polished arc. “And you are too gorgeous to be anyone but Elizabeth Mac Branain.” “You can tell who I am by just my looks?” Ella teased. “Well if you aren’t then I must be slipping. I thought I already tasted all the beauties in the land.” Ella chuckled, “somehow I don’t doubt that. Please call me Ella” Ella held her hand out and Nikolai took it. He turned her hand palm side up then bestowed an open mouthed kiss as he winked at her through long inky lashes. “It is a pleasure to meet you Ella, Magnus is a lucky man. I must admit that I am quit tempted to try and seduce you away from him. Unfortunately for me I may be a scoundrel but I do have honor. You will keep me in mind though should he ever fail to keep you satisfied the way a woman of your beauty demands.” His voice was deep and smooth, and hitting every womanly part of Ella like an arrow hitting the bulls’ eye. Ella could only stand there speechless and…growing hot as Hades. She probably shouldn’t be standing there lusting for a man that was not her mate but she didn’t feel guilty about it, in fact she seriously doubted there was any woman on the face of the planet that could stand in Nikolai Kotova’s presence and not feel the need to be everything he wanted her to be. She had to get grip. This was after all her mate’s most trusted ally and friend, and the realty was that while Nikolai might be temptation walking there was no man or vamp who turned her on more than Magnus. Still, Ella’s smile was pure contented female as she purred back her answer. “You are a smoothie aren’t you?” “Too smooth for his own good.” The irritated comment was followed up by the arrival of her mate. Ella looked at Nikolai who was smiling from ear to ear. “You knew he was there, didn’t you?” Nikolai’s smile only grew as he winked at her again. “Of course he did. Koyla has always taken great pleasure in pushing my buttons.” Magnus’s voice was stern but the softness of his gaze clearly reflected the affection he had for the Russian vamp. They turned to each other and clasped their forearms in greeting, both of them smiling with a camaraderie that tugged at Ella’s heart in a strange almost sad way for some reason. “I always knew those beguiling powers of yours would be your down fall one day. And here you are, using them on my mate. Now I have to kill you.” Nikolai chuckled, “I would expect nothing less mo dheartháir.” 7 Forever Mine Magnus’ grin spread across his face with ease and affection. “It’s been too long Koyla. I was expecting you in Monrovia what happened.” “Misha and I were in Romania. There were some…things that required our utmost attention.” Nikolai smoothly answered. “Things ah? I’m sure those things had long legs and heaving bosoms.” Magnus responded with a deep chuckle. Nikolai flashed him a rakish grin. They switched to Upyrian, talking about what Ella had no idea, frankly she wasn’t paying the conversation any attention, she couldn’t stop staring at Nikolai Kotova. She had the strangest sensation. As she continued to study him she felt an almost paternal affection for him which was slowly filling her heart. The more she stared the more it grew. Silly really considering he was a helluva lot older then she was and that they’d just met, and for the obvious reason that this man most definitely did not need anyone looking out for him. He was steaming with selfconfidence and strength. She could tell just from their short interaction that he had a fun easy going nature, someone that lived life to the fullest. Yet she also sensed that underneath all that charismatic charm and grace that Nikolai Kotova could be a dangerous predator. She wasn’t afraid of him though nor did she feel like she had to be wary of him. She just had the oddest feeling, almost like she had to fight for him. She shook her head to clear her thoughts, then without warning she was hit with a wave of obscure images and emotions. The images were fuzzy but the emotions that pounded her were all too real. They came at her rapidly making her feel completely immobile as they flowed through her one after another. Emotions that were deep and ragged, intense feelings of pain and lifelessness, empty souls and deep yearnings, and a fiery intimate fervor that made her toes curl in her heals. They were all mixed together as one, and they were topped off by the sudden consciousness of stubborn bitterness, anger, lies and betrayal… hurtfulness, they all hit her like a freight train. She was rooted to the spot, seeing and feeling more than she ever should. She knew she was experiencing something that had yet to come, something that evolved around the two men talking to each other as close as too people could be. It wasn’t entirely clear but she knew these emotions were just the beginning, and that later when she went to sleep she would be bombarded with the entire show in 3D. She’d always had prophetic dreams so she wasn’t that shaken but these feelings were so candid that it was almost overwhelming. Magnus’ now deceased sire, Master Carvilius, had warned her that when she slipped through the portal that brought her to D’rkenrealm that her prophetic dreams would strengthen and become more precise. Getting just a little taste of that now made her feel uneasy and she wasn’t sure she wanted that or not. “Ionuin are you alright?” Magnus’ concerned voice broke Ella out of her thoughts. Her vision cleared and she saw two sets of eyes watching her intently. Was she? She honestly didn’t know. What she did know was that it seemed like her world had just shifted. 8 Forever Mine Suddenly feeling drained and tired, Ella longed to speak with the vampire she had looked upon as her guide these last few months. She had learned many things from Carvilius about this world, about her mate, and about her own self and destiny. Now that he was dead she felt a frisson of wariness, almost frightened from this new ability and unsure of whom she could turn to for counsel. But then she thought of the kind Scotsman she had just met and decided that she would take Circinn up on his offer of help. It would have to wait though. She didn’t want to tell her mate, he worried so much about her and the baby’s welfare, not to mention the political intrigue he now found himself in that she didn’t want to add to his burdens. Ella smiled at them. “You’re such a worry wart. Of course I’m alright. I’m just more tired than I thought I was.” Magnus grunted as he pulled her into his arms and kissed the top of her head. “You’re doing too much Ionuin, I know you’re strong but you must think of the baby.” He looked up at Nikolai, “we ran into Arnost and Konstantin.” Nikolai’s face hardened with hostility. “Those two would make Chernobog the black devil, blanch. It’s no wonder you’re not feeling well. You should rest. There is plenty of time to get acquainted later.” It was a strange comment for a son to make about his Father. Ella couldn’t stop staring into Nikolai’s eyes. She couldn’t stop the sensations that were once more flooding her and she couldn’t stop the compassion she felt for him from coming. If she knew what it was she would have voiced it because it felt ominous, it felt like it was something that was going to change everything for him. She felt it her duty to tell him something but she was so uncertain of exactly what she was seeing and feeling that she didn’t say anything. She didn’t have to. Nikolai looked into Ella’s green eyes and saw it all. His smile faltered only slightly as he cleared his throat feeling ill at ease with her empathy. “My friend Mikkel Haraldsson will be arriving shortly from Norway with his family. They have been looking forward to meeting you. I hope you can spare a few moments to greet them.” Looking into Nikolai’s kind face, Ella’s heart swelled with raw heartbreaking emotions, all she wanted to do was weep. She grasped his hand and held it in her own, tightly. “I would love to Nikolai, as well as spending more time with you, I would be honored.” “Come Ionuin I’ll take you to our room.” Magnus took her arm but Ella stopped him. “No, I can get there myself. Stay and finish your talk with Nikolai. I know you were anxious to speak with him.” She gave him no room to argue as she smiled at them both, nodded, then walked back into the house. Magnus watched Ella go both curiously and concerned. He sensed her heightened emotions and knew she was on the verge of a serious meltdown. 9 Forever Mine While he was deeply concerned he chocked it up to her raging hormones. He wasn’t going to worry about her sudden mood swings, if he did he’d put himself in the loony bin because the Gods knew that’s all he’d been doing lately. “She’s an amazing woman Magnus and perfect for you. She is just what our world needs.” Nikolai softly said as his eyes followed Ella into the house. “That’s what I need to talk to you about Koyla.” The tone of Magnus’ voice had Nikolai’s body tightening. He knew what was coming he had known it before he even arrived, and to be honest it was the reason why he didn’t go to Monrovia as planned. He wanted to avoid this particular conversation but he realized on a sigh that was not now nor ever was an option to him. “I’m listening.” “Arnost and Konstantin seem determined to undermine my rule. I don’t trust them. I know they’re up to something and I know it doesn’t bode well for anyone least of all me and mine. “ Magnus took a step closer, his voice lowering an octave as he continued. “Nikolai you came to the House of Carvilius as a scrawny little kid. I trained you. I taught you everything I knew and I watched as you soaked it all up like a greedy little sponge. The man that stands before me today is a force to be reckoned with. A powerful man, probably more then you are even willing to see. You have more honor than any man I know and I’m proud of you and I respect you greatly.” Magnus took a breath, the words that were to come were hard for him to say but he still needed to say it. “I hope you are not insulted when I ask you; when the shit hits the fan do you stand by my side? Can I count on you to be my second?” Nikolai was taken aback by the praise coming from a man who never once showed the slightest bit of sentiment unless of course it was his wraith. He knew Magnus was proud of him he just never expected to hear it. He suspected he had Ella to thank for that, and silently he did. While he knew where this conversation would lead to any concerns Nikolai had didn’t seem to matter anymore. Yes Magnus was asking him to betray his own blood, to fight in the battle that he knew just as Magnus did was upon them, but Nikolai would give his life for the man who had stood up to Konstantin when he was too young to do so himself. They were family in every sense of the word. There was no question. There was nothing to ponder or figure out. Nikolai would do anything Magnus asked even if that meant going against his father. He had no problem with that. In his mind it would not be disloyal because Konstantin never had his loyalty to begin with. Nikolai grasped Magnus’ shoulder believing unconditionally with his heart and soul the absolute genuineness of the words he spoke. “You always had my loyalty Magnus and you always will. No matter what happens I will stand by your side. I would never betray you my brother.” 10 Forever Mine CHAPTER ONE 2101 Furth im Wald, Germany It was a night meant for death. That was his first thought as he stared at the full moon and its unusual purple haze. As the wind blew and the rank smell of decaying flesh filtered through his nostrils, his second thought was that this night was no different than any other night he'd had in the past century. Even so, he couldn't seem to take his eyes off of it. It was just as breathtaking as any other he had seen in his long life but there was something different about it as well. There was a peculiar oddness to it that mesmerized him. Some would say it was a magic moon, a night when the Goddess Anaya left the Otherworld and roamed the Realm bestowing great and wondrous gifts to those who were worthy. If he didn't have two feet firmly planted on solid ground, he might believe that too, but to a man who had seen more destruction than any one man should, that so-called magical moon meant only one thing - death. General Nikolai Kotova turned away from the fanciful sight and exhaled a long, deep and disgusted breath as he looked down the dirt road that ran through the small village. Blood… carnage… death… It was all around him… this was his reality. Just another night of meaningless death to taint my soul On that dark thought, a strong gust of wind blew across the road sending the loose gravel flying in the air. It fiercely swirled but he paid it no mind. Instead, his attentive eyes took in the carnage that littered the tree-lined road, their normal bright cerulean color darkening with loathing as they gazed upon the butchery spread out all around him. He stopped walking and glowered at the evidence of the slaughter that turned his stomach yet still kept his eyes imprisoned. Bodies covered the ground. Lifeless eyes stared up into the sky. Mouths hung open. Arms and legs were still. They were all just… dead. He should look away, he didn't need to stare at it to have their deaths confirmed but for some perverse reason he couldn't. Instead, he watched as the life essences of the deceased trickled down the sloped road and pooled around his black shitkickers, staining the sides of the soles with the souls of the dead. He took another deep breath just as the wind continued to waft and he began his somber trek through the village once more. The rancid smell of decay again entered his flaring nostrils and he growled with irritation as his nose twitched irritably from the sharp stench. Gods, he was getting tired of that smell. When would it end? That was a constant question and he always had a quick and reasonable answer… never. 11 Forever Mine This war had been raging for too long. For a century, the same putrid smell had been coating his soul like a mantel of shame. He didn't have to be standing in a battlefield to smell it. It was always on him, always with him, like it was soaked into his skin. No matter how hard he washed, it was always there. A constant reminder of the monstrosities he had committed. It trenched his insides and blackened his soul as if it were the enemy's fist wrapped around his throat squeezing the life out of him. Well, what little life he had left inside of him at least. “Dead as the dead.” The murmured opinion was a simple testament of truth. If it weren't for the steady beat of his heart he would think himself a soulless vamp and not the man who had been born a vampire. Even still, though his heart pumped with life it wasn't that farfetched to believe. After fighting this war for so long he wasn't that much different than the soulless vamps that surrounded him. This war had changed him so much that he hardly even recognized himself anymore. A long time ago he had been just like everyone else. He had experienced love and desire, and he had been gifted with some joy and contentment in his life, maybe not as much as others had but he had still known it. Now the only things he knew were disgust and shame. All he had now was death and darkness, and there was no reprieve. There was nothing in his life that gave him any semblance of contentment anymore not even sex, and for a man who use to spend weeks indulging his sexual appetite with multiple lovers that confession was reprehensible. Oh he still had sex, lots of sex actually but he didn't really get any pleasure out of it. It was just another body function that he had to do, like take a piss. Fuck, he was tight. His entire body was strung out with a heaviness that weighed him down for far too long. Sadly for him, the discomfort was normal but out of habit he rolled his head in a futile attempt to loosen the thick muscles of his neck. It didn't help but he tried again, in vain. Next he lifted his shoulders up and then down several times but they remained tense as well. His arms were heavy and swung by his side with stiffness. The muscles in his thighs were taut, causing his legs to feel inflexible even though they carried him rapidly down the street. Even the muscles in his face that had at one time smiled with ease felt stiff, as if they were permanently set in a deep angry scowl. Goddess save him, he hated it. Hated what this war turned him into. He was a warrior, always had been, but this war had no honor in it. It was pointless and it was all one big fucking lie. Most people fought in this war because they thought they were fighting for a cause, that of keeping the vampire line pure. When the Book of Nahajan prophecy came to pass some revered it while others looked upon it as sin. They were told and they believed unconditionally the narcissistic principle that if you were not a vampire then you were nothing…expendable. Some believed that a mating between a vampire and a human or a Shikar, or even with a witch or a fey, was blasphemy. Of course, it was bullshit and sometimes Nikolai wondered how people could forget so easily. True, a hundred years might have passed but when 12 Forever Mine you're butchering a species of people, you’d think the real reason why would be remembered. He briefly wondered what that kind of ignorance felt like, was it indeed bliss? He didn’t know. Unfortunately for him, he was not one of those people, he remembered too well how this war began and it wasn't because of some crap about sacrilege either. This war began because of one vamp’s obsession with ruling the world and nothing else. Nikolai truly wished he could be like everyone else and just conveniently forget what took place on that cold night so many years ago when Arnost was denied what he deemed his rightful place as Overlord and began his long and bloody coup. Just like Magnus, Nikolai had not been surprised, he had been expecting it and he had been fully prepared to stand against Konstantin and Arnost, and he had, at first. But somehow and without even realizing it, everything turned on him so quickly that to this day it still made his head spin. It began in Scotland. During the assembly of the Council, which was comprised of the crowned heads of the diverse species in the Realm, Arnost had stood up and vehemently refuted the coronation of Magnus as Overlord. He accused Circinn the Consul of being biased and he demanded that the Council overrule the Goddess Anaya's emissary and back Arnost. The Council members had been stunned into silence then promptly appalled with Arnost’s’ assertion and his boldness, but mostly they had been acutely horrified by his arrogant insubordination toward Circinn, the right hand of the Goddess herself. Arnost was lucky he didn't lose his head that day, which was the law for his insolence toward Circinn and exactly what the Council would have done had it not been for the recommendation of a lesser punishment which came from Circinn himself. Not wanting to go against the emissary wishes, the Council banished Arnost, and his second Konstantin who sided with Arnost, back to Russia where they were to remain for two years in exile. Arnost wasn't stupid he obeyed the Council's decree but while in exile he began his measured and calculated plan to gain the seat of power by disseminating that procreation between vampires and any other species opposed the Goddess Anaya's scripture. He warned the populace of the Realm that the wraith of the Goddess would come down upon their heads if the heinous breeding was allowed to continue. It was a purely petty and cowardice maneuver but still it didn't take long for other small minded idiots like Arnost to agree with him. Within the span of two years Arnost and Konstantin had managed to gain a great many followers, and on the exact day of Magnus’ anointment two years later, they struck and the butchery began. Nikolai didn't like to think about that day too much. Those memories came with a wealth of heady emotions that just made him feel like shit. Too bad he could never get it out of his mind. Gods, he was nothing more but a coward and that was what sickened him the most. He never wanted to be a part of the irrational jealousies of a madman, yet he did not stand up and fight against them. Instead he fought their battles for 13 Forever Mine them and he did so now just as he did then, with self-disgust and inner hatred driving him on. It was this aversion that made him the most feared vampire general of all the opposed factions. Fighting a battle he did not believe in for the past century had succeeded in doing one thing…it turned him into the perfect killer mechanical and unemotional. Mayhap that was Konstantin's objective to begin with. To eliminate any compassion or love Nikolai had in him. To turn him into nothing but an unthinking and unfeeling killing machine and…he succeeded. Fuck! That just pissed him off. There was nothing he hated more than his father getting what he wanted. If he could Nikolai would just drop his sword walk right up to the enemy and impale himself on their blade. It was nothing less than what he deserved. Yet, even that option was not available to him. He had to protect his family from his own father and you couldn't do that when you were dead. “My lord?” “What?” Nikolai snarled at his best friend and second-in-command, Mikkel Haraldsson. When he was met with silence, he looked over his shoulder and into a pair of pale blue eyes stoically staring back. Frustrated with himself, Nikolai sighed. “Forgive me, Misha, I’m just…” “Say nothing of it, my friend.” Mikkel’s soft and quick reply warmed Nikolai’s cold heart. If it weren’t for Mikkel’s undying loyalty, Nikolia would most likely have staked himself by now. “What is it?” Nikolai asked. “The Count issued new orders. He wants us to head east.” Nikolai snarled. “Of course he does, but what does it matter?” He gazed out over the vast countryside. “East… west, north… south, what difference does it make? This town is no different than the next one, just another notch against our souls.” Tensing, Mikkel searched their surroundings but his pale blonde head did not move. He didn’t want to draw attention to himself and the anxiety he felt from his friend's frank and not so quiet remark. His voice was hushed as he drew abreast of Nikolai. “Need I remind you, Koyla, of the spy in our midst? You should not speak so openly.” Nikolai knew that, but in the moment he couldn't have cared less and he expressed that sentiment by way of a grunt and a derisive answer. “Asimov can kiss my ass.” Captain Asimov carried the esteemed title of Nikolai's third-in-command but in truth he was the Count’s man through and through. He was a spy and nothing more as he kept Arnost abreast of every little thing Nikolai did, including who he took into his bed. He was a man Nikolai very much wanted dead. Mikkel chuckled. “I don't think you would enjoy that, my friend. Even the whores don't like his attention.” Nikolai once again grunted his response then answered Mikkel after a long and tired sigh. “Pile the bodies and burn them. Then ready the men.” 14 Forever Mine Mikkel nodded then left to do his bidding while Nikolai continued to make his way down the dirt path, his stomach still churning with aversion at how many more Blendlings they took out this night. Like he told Mikkel, it was just more of the same thing. Their enemies were decent fighters but they were not skilled and they were all so young. Hell, Blendlings in general were a young race and The Cleansing War their first war. They were not seasoned warriors like the vamps they fought so valiantly, they were more like babes and there was no honor in killing babes. The sound of a fight still underway drifted to Nikolai’s ears. A dark frown settled across his brow. He thought the battle won and over, yet there was no mistaking the echoes of a small scuffle still in play. Wanting nothing more than to put an end to this night's wickedness and lay his weary body down for another restless slumber filled with nightmares of his monstrous deeds, Nikolai headed toward the sounds with brisk restless strides and wearing a scowl as intimidating as Bile himself. Turning a corner that led to a deserted part of the village, Nikolai spotted the skirmish right away. Ten of his best soldiers surrounded one lone warrior, and there was no doubt in Nikolai's mind that this was indeed a warrior, a warrior from the East; a Ninja. Covered from head to foot in skintight black spandex, the warrior moved with deadly silence, inflicting pain on Nikolai's strongest seasoned warriors, slowly playing with them one by one the way a cat would toy with a mouse. His movements were crisp and sharp and sang of skill and beauty. Nikolai’s heart began to pound with excitement as he felt a sudden spark of life to his otherwise deadened soul. Here was a true warrior, one that was capable, one that required his utmost attention and skill, a worthy opponent. Nikolai smiled with eagerness as he walked closer, his eyes soaking in the flawless maneuvers as the warrior jumped up, did a back flip, landed on his feet, then kicked out with his left leg and swung it around, knocking four of the soldiers off their feet with one clean sweep. It was a sweet move, all the more accurate by the supreme finesse of the warrior's movements. It was beautiful. It was enchanting. It made his dick hard. What? Nikolai came to a sudden halt; a grimace of slow awareness dawned on his face. Closer to his prey, he scrutinized the small warrior as he spun around and revealed a stake in his hand that had not been there before. It was drawn so quickly Nikolai had no idea just where from that liquid skin outfit - that detailed, one very curvy body - he pulled it from. Curvy body? Nikolai's grimace turned to a full-fledged scowl as he took another step closer. The warrior turned again, embedding that stake in the heart of one of Nikolai's men. The vamp looked shocked then in a blink of an eye, he was dust and the warrior moved on to his next victim. But Nikolai's eyes remained on the warrior and not his men who were blowing in the wind as the warrior felled them one by one. There was something different about this one and the more he 15 Forever Mine observed him and the closer he got, he could see what that difference was. So entranced with the warrior's fighting skills, he failed to see anything else, but now… he could see nothing else. The warrior turned to his left, giving Nikolai a clear and unobstructed view of a profile that showcased a most curvaceous contour. Ah, but he should have known, the warrior moved too gracefully and way too sensually to be a man. Nikolai's body stirred to life. His eyes greedily traced the tempting swell of breasts then moved down a flat abdomen and then on to a trim waist that sat atop a rather curvy set of hips for one so petite as she. His head tilted to the left as he continued to study her. No, petite was not the word. Though she probably stood about five feet seven, her body was too opulently shaped to be called petite. She was full figured in a very slimming way, a combination that appealed to him with demanding intensity. His mouth curved upward, his smile almost blinding from the inferno that started to sizzle his soul. It had been a long time since he'd felt such lust and that was exactly what was coursing through him now - hot, demanding, raw, animalistic lust. Right before his eyes was a warrior with enough skills to rival his own. The fact that the warrior was a woman boiled his blood to a fevered pitch. Nikolai stood near the invisible border that enclosed the fight, studying her technique with growing admiration as she continued to make his men look like amateurs. Her every movement was natural, not strained. They were not honed from years of practice either, they were simply who she was. He knew from personal experience that the flawless maneuvers playing out before him like a sensual dance was not something you had to think about, they just happened, and with perfect intent. Excitement coursed through him. He took a deep breath and, as if on cue, a gust of wind rolled in from the south and blew directly in the face. His eyes darkened to a deep stormy blue just before they closed from the raw aching shudder that moved through his entire being. Power - pure, untainted delicious power filled him. In all his years of living, he had never smelt anything as luscious and intoxicating as this. Keeping his eyes closed, he focused all his attention on that power. An easy thing to do considering the scent filled every pore on his body and stuck to his soul like glue. It made him feel strong. He yearned to fall deep inside the source and surround himself in its very essence. It made him feel… reborn. Something shifted inside of him. His heart thumped with life, every nerve ending in his body tingled with a newly born energy that seemed to come from the deepest parts of his soul. He could actually feel everything, and it wasn't the cold emptiness he normally felt, this was warmth and light. This was life, pumping with strength, rejuvenating all his senses and his soul. He took a deep, deep breath and it felt like it was his first, like he had just woken up from a long and tedious slumber. Nikolai’s eyes snapped open and instantly sought the source of this new being… it was her, it had to be. As he stood there unable to look away from the Blendling warrior, he felt a concentrated and deep-seated pull toward her as if she 16 Forever Mine were the essence of his being, one he unknowingly had been waiting for his entire life. A loud grunt drew Nikolai's attention and a broad smile lit his face - the little warrior stood facing one lone solider, Captain Asimov. He felt the anticipation in his veins and it made him drool. There was no way in hell Asimov could take her. She was too good and Asimov was an amateur at best. Nikolai took another step, wanting to be as close as possible so he could savor the look on the Captain's face when he realized death was only seconds away. As he did, he breathed in again, his nostrils flaring with the unmistakable aroma of… arousal. His lip curled up in amusement. The thrill of the fight was pumping into her body with a musky adrenaline he could swear to the Goddess above he could feel in his own veins. It was fragrantly succulent and it called out to him on the most primal of levels - possession. Nikolai’s smile turned wholly rapacious as he reached back and pulled out his broadsword. He was going to have her; there was no doubt in his mind. She would fight him, but in the end it would not matter. A woman as passionate as this would feel his desires and recognize them as her master. She would have no choice but to succumb just like he had no choice but to take. He didn't give a shit if she was the enemy or not, he was going to claim her and by the end of this night, she would taste his steel - in more ways than one. Abaigeal Mac Branain gracefully sank to the ground on one knee as she pulled her stake out of the last remaining solider. Dust flew around; the power and energy that coursed through her was as strong now as when the fight first started. This legion of vamps had been wicked tough. Stronger, older, more powerful than the poor young Blendlings they battled and quickly ran through. It angered her that she had arrived late, if not then maybe she could have saved more than the ten or so she saved now but as it was you couldn't always relay on the European transit system to be on time, and the Goddess knew her father wasn't about to give her the use of the private jet. That was reserved for actual warriors. A sneering snicker escaped her lips. She was a real warrior her father was just too pig headed to accept that. This was who she was, who she had always been, and she was damn good at it too. The fact that she had to do it in secret pissed her off and she hated the guilt she felt every time she looked into her father's eyes but she couldn’t not be who she was born to be. Why could her father not understand her need to fight? Why did he have to be so damn full of fatherly protection and biasness? She loved her father with everything inside of her but sometimes she just wanted to strangle him. There was nothing in this world that made her feel more alive and important - useful - then when she was fighting. She felt such a sense of purpose that she knew it was not wrong. It made her feel complete and whole but her father refused to see that. Hell, he refused to see anything beyond his own thoughts and desires, even hers. 17 Forever Mine That was made perfectly clear when he started throwing Richard Wexler in her face. She held back the involuntary shiver that always accompanied thoughts of Richard. She knew her father had plans for her and Richard, she’d known ever since he introduced them over a year ago. If that awkward introduction hadn’t been telling enough then the looks of pity from her brothers since then would have. Her father wanted her mated to Richard Wexler she just couldn’t understand why. Honestly, Abby didn’t want to be mated to anyone. She wanted to be free of the restraints her father put on her, getting mated wouldn’t free her it would only shackle her down more, nice and tight. Exactly what her father wanted. She knew time was running out. Especially now that she turned twenty five and Shined, something that should have, if she weren’t the Overlord’s daughter, guaranteed her independence and freedom. She had all her powers and she was now immortal. She was more capable of taking care of herself now than ever before but her father didn’t see it that way. She was going to go from one gilded cage to another the only difference would be in who her jailors were. Gods that was just freaking depressing! Was that what her life was going to be; the boring and completely superficial life of a Princess? She was not a Princess at least she was not her father’s epitome of what a Princess should be. If anyone was more suited to that position it would be her cousin Bryony, who was a girly-girl through and through, not Abby who was happier in jeans and a t-shirt than anything else. But her father wouldn’t hear that. He had this idea in his head that she was vulnerable and incapable of taking care of herself and because of that he made her life a living hell. She couldn’t do anything on her own. She was constantly followed by one brother or another. It really fumed her. The one person in the world who should have confidence in her, who should see her for who and what she was, didn’t. She didn’t even know if she trusted him anymore. How sad was that? In truth, her relationship with her father had always been like that. She should be use to it and to be honest she sort had been until she got older and saw the lives her friends lived, ones that were so different then her own. That’s when the resentment started to build and that’s when the first stones of the wall between her and her father were laid down. Thank the Gods for her mom. She didn’t see things the same way her dad did. She actually saw things quite differently. It was because of her that Abby was now an elite Ninja warrior. She had been training for a long time, ever since she can remember actually. Now she went out on missions to help fight the surge of evil that was Count Moravec’s army. She proudly fought side by side with her fellow Blendling race and she did it all behind her father’s back. He had no clue what her mother had done and no idea Abby was fighting in the war. Gods help them if he ever found out because he would be absolutely livid. The sudden sound of feet hitting the dirt with a loud thud garnered Abby’s attention. She knew without even looking that this newcomer would be big. It was in the sound of his boots landing on solid ground, the strident almost 18 Forever Mine booming thump of a big body coming to play. She smirked under her mask; the bigger the better - the harder they fall. Still crouched on the ground, Abby looked over her left shoulder to get a glimpse of her new playmate. The first thing she saw was a worn pair of black shitkickers standing not twenty feet away from her. Nothing unusual there except their size which looked pretty freaking big even from where she was. Her inquisitive gaze continued up a pair of sturdy and extremely well-muscled leather clad legs that stood parted. One hand rested on his left hip as the other leaned against a huge broadsword that looked as if it could cleave her in two with one stroke. As her eyes continued to eat up his imposingly tall frame, the wind blew and his black leather duster billowed out and around him, revealing an expansive muscled chest that was, to her disappointment, protected by a steel shield. As the wind howled, the dirt swirled about encircling but not touching him, just around him, as if he kept it at bay with just the force of his will. That same breeze, which now touched her spandex covered body with warmth, blew a mane of shoulder length ebony waves around a ruggedly handsome face that was watching her like a hawk. Abby swallowed but held her ground, staring back in awe. This guy was indeed big and in all the right places, and Goddess forgive her… he was smoking hot! Abby’s heart began to flutter wildly in her chest and it wasn't from the thrill of the fight. It was from the way his eyes seemed to smolder right into hers. With bold assuredness, as if he wanted her to know exactly what he was doing, those hypnotic orbs took a long and audacious journey down the entire length of her, stripping her bare and making her feel like his big hand just caressed every inch of her instead of casually resting on the hilt of his sword. It was pure stimulation. She felt naked, vulnerable; it was as if he was seeing deep inside her, looking beyond the body and into a soul that had been misplaced and lingering. It was so intimate, such pure stimulation, that her breath quickened, her nipples budded against her top, and between her legs she felt blistering heat followed by slick moisture. Abby's eyes grew large with revelation. In a span of twenty seconds, this stranger had succeeded in doing something no other man had been able to do before: arouse her and, he never even touched her. He hadn't even spoken to her. All it took was one look. For one second Abby was stunned… lust… she was actually feeling lust! For the first time in her life, she felt that elusive emotion known as desire. It was white-hot stimulus and it was burning her up. Thank the Goddess, she wasn't a freak! For so long, she thought there had to be something wrong with her because she never felt it before. Oh, she'd been attracted to men and she'd flirted shamelessly with them, but those flirtations never gave her anything but a sweet feeling of niceness and a disinterest to take it any further. But this, this was far from being just nice, this was unbridled and aggressive. This set her entire essence on fire and she had an inherent need to explore it further. Explore it further? Was she nuts? This was the enemy! 19 Forever Mine She was standing in the middle of a bloody battlefield and she was actually contemplating jumping his bones! She had to get a grip on herself. She had to control these pulsating sensations that were making her tingle all over with deliciousness. She wasn't here to get laid - though that sounded like the best plan yet - she was here to kill him. Standing up tall, straightening her spine, and pushing all that arousal down and out of her mind, Abby defiantly gazed back. Nikolai's smile stretched across his face; it was like he could read every thought she was having. She wanted him, she knew he wanted her, and yes… she was going to fight him. He almost laughed. Poor little warrior, she thought she was going to elude him and escape her own inner temptations but he would not let her. She was his; she just didn't know it yet. Abby saw the feral smile and read the smugness in his eyes. She snorted. Obviously he thought she was one of those women who would fall at his feet and beg him to take her. Well he had another thing coming. She was Abaigeal Mac Branain, warrior, daughter to the Overlord. Who the hell did he think he was? Abby squinted to get a better look at the chest shield she previously skimmed over. When she saw the insignia, she blanched. Suddenly she wasn't feeling that assured anymore. Everyone knew that crest of death. It was a skull with blood-red eyes and swirls of black paint all around its naked head. It had a sword that slithered its way through the skull’s mouth and out its nose like a snake, squeezing the very neck of its flesh-free home. The Russian words written below it simply said, “Death awaits you.” General Nikolai Kotova. Abby was surprised her mouth wasn't hanging on the floor. Never in her wildest dreams did she ever think she’d run into him, anywhere, let alone on a battlefield at midnight in Germany. A legend even before the war started, his prowess on the battlefield was unparalleled. He was someone everyone, including her own brothers, looked up to as an example of the perfectly honed warrior. When the war started, the legends only became grander. While he had always been known as one of the most coldhearted vamps around, they say he became even more ruthless, like a vamp from centuries ago when vampires were more feral than anything else. Yes, General Nikolai Kotova was definitely a legend. One men looked upon with respect and a healthy dose of fear, and someone women lusted after. No shocker there. He was without a doubt the most virile male Abby had ever come across. Still, admiration aside, she should probably be shitting her pants right about now, but for some reason she wasn't afraid of him. Instead of fear she felt energized. Her entire body was aflame with exhilaration to test her skills against his and the lust that was warming her to a most uncomfortable degree only fueled the fire. Abby licked her lips with anticipation even though she did feel a bit hesitant. He stood strong and proud, his big menacing body perfectly still, waiting for the moment when the battle would begin. Seeing him standing there, watching her intently with wicked blue eyes that burned for her, was 20 Forever Mine disconcerting but she shook it off. She was not an amateur, she had fought plenty of men who were as big as him including her brothers - she was confident she could take him. She really believed that and that should have prompted her to move forward and begin the battle, but she felt rooted to the spot, paralyzed, drowning in a deep blue sea of eyes that held her in their silent grasp. It felt like a lifetime until she could finally pull away from his gaze and when she did, she couldn't stop herself from looking over the rest of his visage. From the jagged scar that ran from his temple then down the left side of his cheek - which was sexy as hell to the full sensuous mouth quirked up in sardonic amusement at her perusal. “Do you need more time to ascertain my… abilities, milaya?” The voice that spoke in Chinese with a thick Russian accent was deep and heavy with amusement. It irked her but at least he thought she was from the East which was what she wanted her enemies to believe Her gratefulness was quickly squashed though when she recalled the last word he mockingly spoke. Milaya, which was Russian for sweetie and, for some damning reason, bothered the hell out of her. They did say the General was an arrogant son of a bitch. Clearly, that rumor was dead-on. She wondered if he was a sexist too. Holding his gaze, Abby watched as his eyes darkened with anticipation and his hand flexed on the hilt of his sword - no, definitely not, no sexist here. This one was chomping at the bit to fight her. There was also no mistaking the carnality in his eyes. Abby's breath hitched with mutual eagerness but just as quickly, her eyes flashed irritably. He was too bold and too confident at least if that cocky smirk was any indication as to what he was thinking. It made her want to knock him off his high horse. “Perhaps it is you, my lord that needs time to decide whether or not you should run.” Nikolai's smirk turned voracious as he took a step closer and began to circle her, his eyes raking down her form with devilish intent. “Your skills are impressive for one so small. These were some of my best men.” Abby nodded her head, accepting his compliment as her feet followed the path he had begun. “In fact, it seems I am indebted to you. You've done me a great service this night and I thank you.” He extended his arm in a flourish then gracefully bowed. Abby’s eyebrow rose. She had? “Thanks, I… think. You know, you surprise me. I didn't think a man such as you would be so quick to hand out compliments.” One dark eyebrow quirked up in question. “A man such as me? So you know who I am?” “You're a legend, General, I don't think there is anyone that hasn’t heard of you or your…” Her eyes raked down his body and landed on the bulge that was present in his crotch. She swallowed that damn annoying lust-lump down again 21 Forever Mine then quickly shifted her gaze to the huge broadsword he limply held. “… abilities.” The General laughed. It was a deep rich sound that vibrated through Abby, causing havoc to every nerve ending in her body. He took a step closer but continued to circle her as he lifted his sword and swung it around threateningly, skillfully, as if it weighed no more than a pencil. “Well, you'll have to let me know after I… take you, just how accurate those legends are.” The twofold insinuation was not lost on Abby; in fact, it increased her blood pressure. She smiled at him, still keeping pace with the circle he made. “Since you know who I am, don't you think it only fair that I know who you are?” He asked playfully yet his jaw was sternly set. He demanded an answer and expected to get one. Abby didn't hide the mirth she felt at that presumption. She laughed, wholeheartedly, and the sound of it almost brought Nikolai to his knees. “Funny! The legends never said you had a sense of humor, my lord.” Abby shook her head as if she were chiding at child. “General, you don't really think I would do that, do you? I mean, what's the point of wearing the get-up if I'm going tell everyone who I am?” His smile was not quite friendly anymore. In fact, he looked pissed off and the growl that left his lips was a good indication he did not appreciate her reproachful tone or sarcastic comment. Smile or not, the man was blindingly attractive. And when he growled again, the vibration ran straight from Abby’s ear down to her core – pounding with feverish life. Damn, how freaking sexy was that! Her tongue once more slid across her bottom lip as she savored the pulsating sensations then she shook her head. She wasn't thinking straight, his drop-dead gorgeousness was just sullying her brain. All she could do was think about how good he would taste when she should be contemplating all the ways to take that sinfully beautiful head off those ridiculously wide shoulders. Get it together, girl! Abby pouted. “Oh, poor baby not use to getting denied, huh?” He shook his head, his eyes flaming with anger and lust. Abby calmly smiled, wondering at the same time why she was provoking him. “Well, get used to it, because that's all you'll get from me. D - E - N - I - E - D… denied!” She threw her stake away, because with the steel chest plate it was useless, and instead, she reached behind her to pull out her own sword. It wasn't a broadsword like his it was a Katana, sleek and powerful, and effective. Her Aunt Sabrina made it for her on her tenth birthday and since then Abby had learned how to wield it well. Nikolai watched appreciatively as she gracefully weaved the gleaming weapon around with ease. The blade sliced through the air with confident elegant strokes of deadly lethalness. 22 Forever Mine Her confidence was just another log to the fire roaring inside him; that, and her abject refusal to tell him who she was. Not that it mattered, he would find out eventually. He was a man that always got what he wanted and he had no misgivings about getting it any way he could. Still, he found her stubbornness and her smartass attitude refreshing. Usually people tripped over their own two feet to please him but not her. This tiny woman was not afraid of him and that was invigorating. “If you know who I am, then you must know that I will find out one way or another. If you show me your face now, I'll promise to play nice.” He watched her eyes as they shrewdly observed his sword as he continued to wield it about. “You don't have to fear my sword, milaya, it's intimidating but you look like you can take it,” he added in a low, husky whisper. Abby's lips peeled back in a slow grin. Goddess help her, that voice was so damn appealing she had the sudden urge to run her tongue over his full suckable lips. Instead, she bit back the flirtatious quip because his arrogance was just too much. “I fear nothing, my lord, least of all your… sword.” She said it derisively yet her eyes glinted with mischief and she watched as his smile turned feral and just downright hungry. His head tilted to the side as he studied her, his dark blue gaze languidly sliding down her body. “Tell me, lyubof, where do you keep all these weapons? That outfit, while incredibly sexy on your tight little body, doesn't quite look like it can hide an arsenal.” After calling her ‘love’ in Russian, his voice deepened with every word that followed and those all seeing eyes of his turned even hotter. “Sorry, Romeo, it's a trade secret. I'll never tell,” she sweetly answered. She didn't think it possible for a smile to change so quickly and become even more lecherous than it already was, but there it was… a full blinding smile that made her knees tremble and her heart stop beating. “I guess I'll just have to find out for myself.” His hand tightened around the hilt of his broadsword, his grip fierce. Abby tensed, readying herself for the explosion she saw coming. “Cocky much?” There was a surge of irritation in his hot blue eyes, but then it quickly disappeared and was replaced with steely determination. “I hope you're ready for me, milaya, because once I begin… I won't stop.” There it was again, the sexually charged threat - or promise, she couldn't decide - but she had no time to ponder it as he suddenly came after her, charging her with his sword raised. Abby buckled down and ducked as The General’s sword swooshed right above her head. He pulled back and came at her again, so quickly she wasn't able to avoid it. The sharp tip of the huge weapon sliced down her thigh with such preciseness that it didn’t even touch her skin; it simply sliced her leggings open. Abby looked down at her leg and the six inch cut that exposed her skin, then she looked back up at The General. He stood still, his eyes intimately 23 Forever Mine caressing her exposed flesh before moving back to her face with a smirk filled with a wealth of male pride. “Sweet move,” she grudgingly admitted. He cocked his head to the side. “Are you sure you won't tell me your name? It might prove to be in your favor. After all, I would hate to leave you so exposed and vulnerable, especially at a time like this.” Abby’s eyes flashed dangerously. He was really starting to piss her off now. “It was luck. It won't happen again,” she angrily retorted. And with that said, she began her own assault, which was the beginning of a beautiful dance between two warriors as they parried thrusts back and forth. Nikolai didn't know who he was anymore. All he knew was that he was having the best damn time of his life. He could actually feel the blood as it furiously pumped through his veins and warmed his previously cold body. It was an incredible sexual high. One that started to become painful as his cock swelled and pressed against his pants. The longer they fought and the more his famished eyes drank in the sight of her tight body moving across the ground, the more determined he became. Abby felt the change in the General’s attack instantly; his movements and thrusts turned to brute force and she couldn't hold him back anymore. With each commanding thrust of his broadsword, he pushed her back until she had nowhere else to go. Her back slammed against the wall. His arm came up and knocked her sword out of her hand as he dropped his. Two big hands gripped her face as he pushed his raging desire against her belly. Abby inhaled sharply at the fierce contact then she stopped breathing. His eyes were wild, like a beautiful stormy winter night; relentless, dominating, completely unforgiving, and unwavering. He held her gaze for a few seconds more before he looked down at her mouth. Before she could react, before she could stop him, his fingers forced her mouth open and he kissed her, hard, thrusting his tongue deep inside with an expertise that sent her reeling. Abby moaned the second his tongue touched hers. She had no control over her body's response as her mouth opened wider for his assault, tasting him, stroking his tongue and lips as demandingly as he did hers. It was a kiss that plundered her soul and stole the breath from her body. She was burning with sensations she never felt before. Desires she never dreamed she would feel trampled over everything else she tried to protest against. She shouldn't be letting this happen! He was the son of her father's most hated enemy and yet she could only stand there, her hands gripping his solid forearms as she kissed him back as heatedly as he kissed her. “You taste so good!” Nikolai rasped with marvel. Her mouth was wet and hot, her tongue eagerly stroked his with exuberance and wildness. He had never tasted anything as addictive as this little warrior and he couldn't get enough of her. It occurred to him, ever fleeting but still a thought, that he could probably rip off her mask right about now but he found their current situation too erotic. The mysteriousness stimulated his senses and made him hunger for more. His mind went blank with anything else but how much he wanted her. 24 Forever Mine The General pulled back and Abby groaned from the loss of his mouth, which was divinity in itself. His kisses were drugging and incredibly addictive. She wanted more, so much more. Nikolai read the greedy hunger in his little warrior’s eyes. He felt her body soften toward his, burning him everywhere they touched. The hand cupping her face started a wicked path of destruction down the side of her clothed neck then to the front of her chest where he boldly grasped a breast that was aching and swollen in need. Fierce desire erupted from his dominating touch and Abby gasped, her eyes closed as her head fell back against the wall. Strong palms kneaded her throbbing flesh. Intent fingers stroked the taut nipple that pushed against her shirt. The sensations and desires Abby was feeling were all so new to her and she felt a sudden tremor of fear. For the first time in her life, she was scared of what she was feeling, of the strong powerful emotions that were completely consuming her every thought. She was totally out of her element. Yet the fear of the unknown only seemed to heighten her sensitivity to his demanding strokes, and her pleasure rose to dangerous heights as she begged him to release her from the unfamiliar and tempestuous agony he created. “Please…” Her breathy plea spoken in perfect English registered two things in Nikolai's mind. First, she was not from the East as he originally assumed and secondly, it sounded a hell of a lot like innocent bewilderment. He heard this, his mind understood it, yet his cynicism would not let him believe a woman who responded so sensually and so damn naturally to his advances was anything but innocent. But he was way beyond reason. He was lost in the rapturous feelings controlling him. He needed more and he was damn well going to take it no matter what. Impatient now for the touch of her flesh, Nikolai's hand quickly left the cushiony mound of her cloth covered breast and traveled down the side of her torso and then to her hip where he eagerly squeezed her then restlessly moved on to the waistband of her leggings. On a desperate growl of need, he grabbed the material and stripped it off her waist as his mouth sucked on the tender flesh of her neck that peeked out from under her mask. His hands skimmed back up to her waist and touched warm naked flesh. Groaning louder, his fingers splayed across her tight belly then dipped lower into a soft thatch of hair then finally over a hot and wet swollen pussy. She wore no panties? “Goddess, have mercy!” He said in Russian, completely in another world as his fingers continued to learn every silken part of her. Abby didn't even feel the cool breeze against her heated flesh, too intent on those fingers that touched her with an intimacy she had never experienced before. She moaned. Her fingers dug into his shoulders as her hips rotated against his index finger that glided over her engorged clit. “Your pussy's so slick, lyubof." 25 Forever Mine He growled in her ear, his blunt words and the coarseness of his voice telling her he was as lost as she to the passion that held them prisoner. Abby whimpered as his hand left her hot honey pot, moving lower on her thigh and pushing her leggings down her limbs where it pooled around her ankle. “Lift your leg.” Abby obeyed the gruff command without questions or thoughts and rested her leg against his waist. His hand pressed against her thigh then slid down her leg until he reached the legging and yanked it off her foot. With his hand back on her thigh, he pressed her leg more firmly against his side, but he didn't need to; her muscled limb restlessly rubbed against him. His hand slid around her ass and cupped one cheek. His fingers greedily squeezed her flesh then dipped into the crevice until his finger circled the creamy entry to her body. “Mm, milaya, you're so ready for me,” he mumbled against her neck then sucked the exposed skin back into the warm recesses of his mouth. Abby thought she was going to die as his finger dipped inside her body then pulled back out and up, circling the hard little bud hidden in their moist folds. “Oh Gods, that feels so good,” she moaned. Gods blood, she was tight! Nikolai's eyes crossed then closed at the feel of her slick heat. He stroked her wet sex ruthlessly. There was no finesse in his touches, they were all business, all consuming, it was all too good, but… it wasn't enough, it wasn't what he needed to feel. Abby writhed against him impatiently. She had no idea what she was doing; she only knew a hunger unlike anything she ever felt before, one she could not refuse. She didn't question her intense need - she submitted. Her body moved against him wantonly, anxiously seeking more of what she knew he could give her. Her leg pressed into his rib cage then rubbed the side of his torso up then down, her hips angling toward him in eagerness. Her body spoke to him in a thousand tongues of silent syllables and Nikolai obeyed her call. Reaching down, Nikolai quickly freed his swollen cock then, grasping her around the waist, he lifted her up. Her legs automatically wound around him in response and her hands gripped his shoulders for leverage as he held himself at her entrance. Nikolai looked deeply into eyes that were dark with lust and intently watching him. It was the only part of her body visible to him besides her mouth which was panting hot breath on his face. He pondered once more on whether or not to rip her mask off but the need to be inside of her, to feel her body gripping his cock, was too powerful to resist… and he couldn't. Testing the silky waters, Nikolai rubbed the head of his cock around her creamy opening and watched as her eyes grew heavier with need. Throaty groans escaped his mouth as her velvet folds wrapped hungrily around the head, sucking him into their rapture like warm wet lips. Ravenous desire that had eluded him for so long propelled him forward. Mercilessly his fingers dug into her hips and he pushed her down as he thrust up, fully sheathing himself in her heat, then… he froze. 26 Forever Mine Abby screamed in agony as she felt his enormous and not so gentle intrusion into her tight virgin body. Tears pooled in her eyes. Her fingers clasped his forearms, clawing into his coat and digging into his flesh. Her entire body was wracked in pain as she tensed and fought back the urge to scream again. Goddess, was it supposed to hurt this much? Nikolai was stunned. A virgin? Her scream of pain echoed in his ear, tearing at his newly awakened soul and ripping his heart in two. He had been so blinded by lust that he didn't even stop to consider the fact that he might be too big for her to take in all at once. He had been crazed, undaunted with the task he laid out for himself; taking her and making her his. Now shame filled him. He'd taken a virgin, ripped into her tight little body with no thought but to his own pleasure. Her eyes were tightly shut as tears gathered in their closed corners, her breath came out ragged and harsh, and he felt guilt… more guilt than he ever felt in his life. He truly was a monster. Nikolai’s hand rose to her silk covered head. Gently, he caressed her cheek. He softly whispered to her in what he assumed was her native tongue English. “Shh, milaya, relax… take deep breaths.” Relax? Was he nuts? Goddess, he was so big; he stretched her so wide and so deep that Abby felt like she was getting split in half. Her nails dug further into his arms as she started to struggle against his hold. Her jerky movements only caused the hard appendage inside her to move which created a sharp pain that left her crying out in discomfort. Nikolai's eyes shut and his teeth clenched together with the effort to control the need to fuck her mindlessly. She was so tight, her muscles painfully clenched around his girth, and when she moved she only drew his cock out and then back inside. It was beyond good, beyond exceptional, it was fucking bloody torture! But he knew he had to slow down. He had to control his desires and see to hers first. “Don’t move.” “Please… please stop… it hurts.” She begged him and it wasn't the kind of begging Nikolai liked to hear. His heart shattered into a thousand more pieces at the same time his mind and body rebelled against her words. Not fucking likely! Grabbing her face, Nikolai forced her to look at him, talking to her as he would one of his soldiers, instinctively knowing she would respond to it. “Look at me.” The sharp command got Abby's attention. Her eyes opened and sought his obediently. Goddess, she had beautiful eyes, big brown beautiful eyes with green flecks - which kind of looked familiar - that were wet with tears and staring at him in censure. “That's it, milaya, look at me. I know it hurts but the pain will pass. Just take deep breaths.” 27 Forever Mine Drawing in a deep breath, Abby held it then exhaled as he did the same. Seconds ticked by as they breathed together. Gradually, the pain started to ebb and instead of discomfort she felt… him. He wasn't moving, he just held her up, breathing with her, yet Abby could feel him violently throbbing inside her, pulsating with the need. That pulse began a new verve inside her, one that started warm and fuzzy, and then, after a few more seconds, turned hot and rampant. Her tears dried and her eyes turned dark with desire once more. Her hands that held a death grip on his arms now slowly began to rub them, up then down, with light innocent touches. Nikolai watched and felt it all with fascination. As he felt her move her hips in an exploratory manner, he groaned, his eyes closing with the immense pleasure her subtle movements gave him. Abby cupped his cheek then slowly she slid into his thick wavy locks. Threading her fingers through the silky strands, she grabbed a fistful and pulled hard, violently jerking his head back. Sharp pain radiated down Nikolai’s spine. His eyes snapped opened, his lip curled upward in a heated snarl as his fangs lengthened, their sharp points gleaming threateningly under the moonlight. He hissed in pain but then took a deep breath, submitting to her retribution and never losing eye contact - after all, all's fair in love and war. Their gazes locked, Nikolai’s were intent as Abby’s were wide in wonder. His eyes that had been a dark stormy blue were now a deep black, endless and soulless, yet at the same time they weren't. She felt as if she could look into them forever, and they weren’t soulless either. Soulless would imply they were cold and stark - barren. That wasn't what avidly watched her. These eyes were too alive with richness and warmth to be called that. They were pools of deep dark velvet, sumptuously embracing her into their bottomless pools. A fleeting smile crossed Abby’s lips as her eyes left his and wandered down to his full mouth where his fangs were elongated and sharp. They were beautiful too. She couldn't help but wonder what it would feel like to have them embedded in her neck, pulling and sucking, feeding off her essence. Of course, she couldn't allow that, but the thought was heady and made her moan as her body shivered from the potent image. He truly was magnificent and superbly unique. Besides the sable eyes that should have been yellow, his forehead did not extend out. In fact his face did not shift at all like - well, like pretty much every vampire she knew. His face remained human. Beautifully rugged just as before with the exception of some protruding veins that ran along his cheekbones and then disappeared into his hair. Why was that? Nikolai gave her a moment to take in the telling signs of his Darkness. He read the curiosity in her face, saw the questions growing in her beautiful eyes that had grown large with awe. He was use to that reaction from people but now was not the time for questions and answers; those would come later - no doubt about that. Now he needed to fuck her, needed to fulfill his taking of her. 28 Forever Mine He growled with impatience and the surly sound brought Abby's attention back to where they were. She tugged on his hair again, her fingers individually winding through the strands she held, painfully yet sensually toying with them. Nikolai's heart stopped, pain receded, and his cock swelled to agonizing degrees from the searing and ever so needy orbs that stared back at him. “Move.” It was a command, plain and simple, spoken in Russian so he could not misunderstand. Nikolai huskily chuckled, “insatiable wench”, then he gripped her waist drew out and then, showing absolutely no mercy whatsoever, plunged back inside. Abby's head fell back and her eyes closed in undeniable bliss. Divine, that's what it was…pure sensuous divinity. He felt so amazing that for one second she wondered if she was dreaming. But with every sure stroke of his cock effortlessly gliding in her sheath and strumming her inner walls with rapturous delight, she knew this was real. As he plunged his tongue back inside her mouth at the same time as he slammed his shaft back inside her body, she screamed, but this time in pure unadulterated pleasure. It was real. He was real. Her excitement grew and her need became almost painfully insufferable. “Oh, Goddess… more… don't stop… please… don't stop!” Abby held on as he stroked in and out of her, her words fueling his pace to a grueling speed. It was still a bit uncomfortable but the tenderness was accompanied with thick, raw, hot pleasure that stole the show. She felt every ripple of his hardness as he penetrated her at a pounding pace. She felt him pulsating with need. She felt his heat, his stamina, his power. His entire essence filled her as each rapid fire stroke of his cock sent her higher and higher. Their mingled pants filled Abby's ears as she slowly sensed his rapid heartbeat moving as one with hers. With each urgent thrust of his hips, she could feel his blood pumping through his veins, flowing side by side with hers. She felt… consumed… claimed, as thrust after thrust he seeped further and further into every nook and cranny of her being, expanding her soul to something akin to hallowedness. Nikolai felt his balls tighten but he held back his impending orgasm. He wanted her to come first but, Goddess help him, it was the hardest thing he ever did. The sweet aroma of sex wafted up through his nostrils as her body greedily soaked his cock, milking him for more… taking everything he had to give her with an artlessness that made his head explode with enthralling awe. He sensed her body tightening as it reached for release and knew she was on the verge of orgasmic bliss. His gaze immediately sought her neck. He could see her veins pumping with life, her blood throbbing to the surface with her impending orgasm. A violent tremor raced through him; he needed to taste her. Through the mind-blowing sensations filling her, Abby sensed his eyes smoldering on her neck. She knew what he wanted, what he craved; it was what every vamp wanted during sex but she could not permit it. There could be no record of this night's deed. A bite mark by those long and deadly fangs would lead to too many questions she couldn't answer. 29 Forever Mine Abby gripped his hair again, yanking hard, trying desperately to break him out of the bloodlust that held him prisoner, but he didn’t move. Instead she felt his hand leave her waist and reach up to the bottom of her mask. She panicked. “No!” She wrenched his hair again but his only response was his head leaning toward her neck. Abby didn't know what else to do to get him to stop, but her body seemed to know. On the next deep thrust of his cock, she squeezed her inner muscles and clenched herself around his width as hard as she could. It worked. Razor-sharp pain surged through Nikolai, an erotic stimulating pain but pain nonetheless. His eyes shot to hers as a string of Russian curses escaped his lips. “You bite me and I'll bite you.” Abby squeezed him again, emphasizing exactly what she meant by biting him back. Nikolai's eyes rolled back into his head. “Gods blood, woman. That's not a threat; you're killing me with the pleasure.” A throaty chuckle escaped her lips. “I'll kill you more if you like, but no biting.” The look in her eyes told him she was serious, deadly serious. Taking a deep breath of much needed control, Nikolai relented - not because he wanted too but because he had to move. Fighting back his natural instincts, his eyes changed back to their beautiful stormy dark blue. Abby watched in silent awe as his fangs retracted and those sexy protruding veins disappeared. She didn't know why she trusted him to keep those fangs to himself but she did and she didn't question it. Instead, she let her returning excitement control her actions. Groaning with pure rapture, Abby relaxed her muscles and released him. Leaning forward, she took his mouth with her own, hard and hungry; she tasted him with a voraciousness that Nikolai fervently matched. Urgent hands grabbed her waist and once more those powerful hips started their erotically violent rhythm. Renewing the sweltering fire that roared within her until… tensing with anticipation, her heart raced, the burning tingles that had stolen her breath away pulverized her nerve endings, shattering the very core of her existence. She shouted with awe-inspired amazement. Her body finally accepting its fate set her free, a freedom that had her shaking from the newfangled bliss exploding inside of her. Nikolai grunted with satisfaction, feeling her release. His moans were frenzied as her body convulsed and a river of creamy hot juices soaked his cock. He let himself go then, as her pleasure entrapped his own and spurned his semen out of his body and into hers. Wave after wave, Abby felt him come inside her, effervescent and hot. She laughed into the night, a sound full of pleasure, husky with feminine smugness. It filled Nikolai's ears, embedding itself in his brain and burning into his soul. On the last ripple of ecstasy, Nikolai pulled out and Abby unraveled her legs from around his waist and stood on her own. 30 Forever Mine They stared at each other as they silently adjusted their clothes. When they were done they just kept looking at one another, mutely. They were both stunned but for two completely different reasons. Abby was not only pleasantly numb but also completely baffled as to what she just let happen. How could she give herself to the enemy like that? When the hell did she become so easy? Their gazes remained locked. Goddess, he was gorgeous. Look at those beautiful deep blue eyes. They're so sensual, so mesmerizing, and they were… why was he looking at her like that? There was a gleam in those orbs… a proprietary gleam? No, that couldn't be, she was just being silly, letting his hotness distort her reality. Which meant it was definitely time to go before she did something stupid, like beg for more. Nikolai watched the play of emotions she innocently revealed. Holding her gaze he saw everything - easily. Later he would wonder how that was but now he was too busy taking it all in. She wanted him yet she was extremely confused with her own reactions. She had no idea what he was so she had no idea what anything meant but Nikolai knew. He didn't know how he knew, he just did. He was unique in more ways than his little warrior knew. His mother was a full-blooded Upyrian Princess and the last one of her kind. Her unique pure blood gave him traits no other in the Realm had. Characteristics that Nikolai never really paid any heed to, until now. And if he had, he sure as hell never would have thought that the rare and mysterious would happen to him, something believed to be extinct along with the rest of his Pure Blood brethren. Yet, there was no mistaking what just took place. There was no denying the life pumping inside him. They had fed their bodies and souls with each other's life force and by doing so they began something beautiful and bonding. Most assuredly not extinct, that bond's existence flowed between them now as a low hum vibrating in them and between them. With one intimate and thoroughly arousing act, he branded her as his mate. Their souls were shared and the Upyr half of him called her his S’airsul. Needing to see her face, Nikolai reached for the bottom of her mask. Grabbing the silky material, he started to draw it up over her chin, but her hand swiftly gripped his wrist with a strength that surprised him and stopped him. “No.” Her eyes were wide and wild as she vigorously shook her head back and forth. Nikolai frowned. “I want to see your face.” “No. It doesn't matter.” Now that her head was out of her ass, Abby reverted back to Chinese. She knew in the heat of the moment she slipped and spoke to him in English, a mistake that could be her undoing. Nikolai Kotova was not stupid; his intelligence was as legendary as his sword arm and Goddess forbid if he had any inclinations to seek her out because he would know where to start looking. She was probably just being paranoid. After all, it might have been a life-altering event for her, but she seriously doubted it was the same for him. 31 Forever Mine It meant everything, damn it! Nikolai's frown turned fierce as his temper flared with her words but then he took a deep breath to calm his anger. It was what he expected; she didn't understand what just happened. She had absolutely no clue what that hum, which he knew for sure she felt, meant. He would just explain it to her, that's all. Then he would take her somewhere and make love to her properly. He silently flinched with shame. God's blood, he had taken her hard - a virgin! He'd never bedded a virgin in his life. Yet here, in a dark street in the middle of nowhere fucking Germany, he did just that. The guilt was tremendous for that shameful act but it was quickly overridden by the zealous possessiveness spreading through him like wildfire. Everything else vanished under the persistent need to see her face. It didn't matter if she was a hag with gushing warts, he would still claim her. Ignoring her protests, Nikolai tried again but she had a sure grip on his wrist and held him back. He could have overpowered her but he had done that enough already so he tried another tactic. The General’s eyes softened to bright cerulean that raptly gazed back. Abby felt rooted to the spot, paralyzed by beautiful eyes of blue that artfully changed to velvet. “Tell me your name.” He softly spoke with a hypnotically stirring voice that seduced Abby’s submission. She tried to ignore it but at the same time she felt like she had no choice but to obey, and to her utter horror, she could feel her name just about to spill from her lips. She was saved by a sudden shout from up the road. “Nikolai?” The General cursed, his eyes slipped back to cerulean blue and he averted his gaze, making Abby feel as if he released her soul. Growling in frustration Nikolai turned his back on his little warrior, effectively shielding her from any curious eyes as he shouted out to Mikkel. “Here.” When he turned back to his woman…she was gone. Rage unlike any other filled him. He stared down the empty street, listening for any sound but he heard nothing but silence and the crackling of a fire burning. Abruptly he swung about, his coat violently swaying around him as he did. He stormed up the alley and toward Mikkel who awaited him. “Are you alright, Koyla, we heard shouts?'” Nikolai ignored the question. “Are the men ready?” Mikkel’s eyebrow lifted with speculation at his friend, who ignored his inquiry, asked his own terse question, and had the sweet smell of sex all over him. Needless to say, he was more than a bit curious but he kept his mouth shut. Whatever transpired down that alley was Nikolai's business and if he wanted to tell him then he would, otherwise… Mikkel quickly fell into step with Nikolai’s hurried gait. “Yes.” 32 Forever Mine Nikolai nodded then walked over to the Hummer that sat idling. Mikkel ran around to the driver's side door and jumped in. Nikolai threw himself up into the truck and slammed the door shut. “Let’s go.” The big Hummer lurched forward as Mikkel threw it into first gear. Nikolai stared out the window, his face sternly set as he watched the alley that just changed his life disappear in the mirror. Despite the fact that he had absolutely no idea of who she was, he felt amazingly good. His body was pumping with new life and his mind quickly assessing his situation and what he was going to have to pull off to get out of it, but get out of it he would. He had to claim his S’airsul and he would not do that standing on the wrong side of the fence. 33 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWO Three Months Later Rawnsley Manor London, England Lord Magnus Mac Branain Overlord of D’rkenrealm sat perfectly still in a perfectly comfortable chair before a sturdy desk that sat in a cozy comfy room. A glass of deep amber whiskey sat to his right and he was surrounded by his oldest and most loyal friends, as well as one younger vamp who wanted to be included in his inner circle. There he sat, staring down at the legal contract before him that they were waiting for him to sign, as one question incessantly popped up - was he really going to go through with this? If he did, he knew life for him would become a living hell. If he didn’t, he took the chance of leaving the future of one of the most important people in his life up to Fate, and Magnus knew from experience just how fickle Fate could be. The study was quiet and still. The other occupants sat patiently, waiting for him to sign his name on the dotted line. He was doing the right thing, he made the most logical decision he could have for the situation, and he was most definitely going to go through with it despite the fact that once he did his mate would make living unbearable still something was nagging him. His gut was telling him that by signing this, he would be setting something else into motion, as if this contract was a prelude to something. The damn thing was he couldn’t put a finger on what that something was. He just knew that once this contract was settled, it was going to lead to something important, and it was that intuition which had him hesitating. Uncaring of the other’s in the room, a now irritated Magnus snorted out loud in exasperation. This is absurd! Stop thinking this nonsensical shit and sign your damn name! He’d always prided himself on being a rational man. He trusted only in what he could see and touch with his bare hands and what his gut told him. Considering this contract was his brain child, signing it and sealing the deal should be a no brainer, yet here he was, delaying the inevitable; and all because of a nagging suspicion about some stupid forthcoming change. What really puzzled him was the realization that it wasn’t necessarily a bad feeling. On the contrary, he felt a strange sense of euphoria, which was really peculiar because he was not a big fan of change, especially when it concerned him or his family. Someone coughed and Magnus looked up at the other occupants of the room who were watching him intently and all for different reasons. To his left sat Sir Richard Wexler. As usual he was impeccably dressed like any respectable military man would be. He was sitting in his chair with his 34 Forever Mine back ramrod straight and his palms lying flat against his upper thighs. He appeared calm, in control and content with the event that was about to take place. Yet, with every second that ticked by without Magnus’ signature on the contract, he could feel Richard’s growing anxiety. He heard him nervously swallow as his left leg started to slowly move with impatience under the table. To Magnus’ right sat his pillar of intellect and lucidity, Lord Ruari O’Nuallain, Master Vampire and Sovereign of the Southern Americas, and one of his oldest and most trusted friends. As usual, Ruari sat pensively, his face a mask of serene stoicism. Not one thought of that intelligent mind reflected on the planes of his face or in the blues of his eyes. Magnus could assume his friend was wondering why he was taking so long to sign his name, but he couldn’t be sure. One could never be sure when it came to Ruari; even having knowing him for over a thousand years, the man was still a conundrum. Across from Magnus and sitting behind his oak desk was Slade Rawnsley, the Sovereign of the European Nations, Magnus’ other oldest and closest friend, and the Brit hosting this little life-altering event. Slade, in usual Slade fashion, sat quietly yet mockingly watched him with a glint in his eye and a wiseass smirk on his face. Magnus knew that look it was the same one he wore when he was betting on something. Knowing Slade, Magnus wouldn’t be surprised if he did indeed have money riding on this little event. He frowned at his friend and Slade quirked one blonde eyebrow in response – as if to say, “What the bloody hell are you waiting for, mate?” More than anyone, Ruari and Slade understood why Magnus wavered, and why they were even there to begin with. The four of them had gathered to sign a mating contract. A promise from Magnus that he would give his youngest child, his most precious commodity in the world, his one and only daughter, into the hands of Richard Wexler. Magnus had his mind set on this from the moment Abaigeal was five and those bastards Count Arnost Moravec and Count Konstantin Kotova tried to kidnap her at Summit. He made the decision to secure his daughter’s future and to keep her safe. He accomplished that by making sure one of her brothers always accompanied her. As she got older and the war intensified, he changed tactics. Needing his most sensible sons out fighting the Rebellion he decided to keep the volatile Shane and Nyle home in California to become Abaigeal’s protectors. Of course, neither one of them appreciated that very much. In fact, Magnus could still remember the yelling match that erupted afterwards, not to mention the cold shoulder he got from his two middle sons for a month. It was all worth it though. Any price he had to pay to keep his Princess safe he would, including enduring his mate’s wrath. Elizabeth, the love of his life, mother of his seven children, his beautiful, sensual sex goddess and his biggest pain in the ass since she arrived in D’rkenrealm a hundred years ago, had given him nothing but endless grief since she learned he planned on mating Abaigeal to Richard. Elizabeth thought the arrangement of his daughter’s marriage without her consent and to a man she barely knew was not only archaic and completely idiotic, but also heartless and 35 Forever Mine cold. She thought he was being a big stupid jerk – he knew this because she told him so on a daily basis – to plan a future for their daughter that Elizabeth believed was already predestined. Whatever the hell that meant. He was left wondering because, although she had told him time and time again that she had seen Abaigeal’s future, she never told him exactly what that future was. He might have come to accept that Elizabeth’s visions were plausible possibilities but he could not rely on them and he refused to base important decisions on them. Which basically brought him back to where he was now, mating his baby girl to a strong man he could depend upon. That time had come two weeks ago when Abaigeal turned twenty-five and, to the surprise of everyone, gained her immortality and all her powers when she Shined. That was an irregular occurrence in itself. He didn’t think he knew anyone who actually Shined on their birthday; it was a rare event and just another example of his daughter’s uniqueness, which her mother was kind enough to point out to him. He snorted. As if he didn’t know just how special his daughter was. Someone cleared their throat, bringing Magnus out of his thoughts. His head jerked toward the culprit… Richard. “Is there something amiss, my lord?” Staring at the man who would soon become his son-in-law, Magnus was able to admit that personality-wise, Richard was most likely not the best candidate for Abaigeal. Of course, he would never admit that to anyone, especially his mate, but he wasn’t blind to the fact that Richard was the complete and utter opposite of his daughter. Where Richard was a smart man, Magnus feared his daughter’s intelligence surpassed his. Richard was also a quiet and reserved man, a military man at heart; he was a strategic individual who lived by a certain set of rules and obeyed them. Abaigeal, on the other hand, was a rambunctious, fun, full of life person who more times than naught acted without thinking. Then there was the fact that Richard was a bit conservative when it came to his ideas about women. Not surprising since most men in D’rkenrealm were traditionalists. Abaigeal was definitely not a conformist. Like her mother, she was stubborn, opinionated, could spit and curse with the best of men, and though he hadn’t seen her fighting skills in some time, he could easily assume she would favor her mother in that regard as well. To sum it up, Richard was an oldfashioned, somewhat boring man and Abaigeal was a rough and tumble tomboy. Still, for all of Richard’s seemingly unattractive traits, he had the one thing Magnus required the most in a mate for his daughter: he was controllable and he feared Magnus’ displeasure. “No. Everything is fine.” Magnus picked up the pen. It was now or never. With a quick stroke of his hand, he signed his name and in so doing, signed his daughter’s future over to a man Magnus knew Abaigeal would probably hate him for. When Magnus was done he looked up at Slade whose stare was blank and a bit shell shocked that Magnus actually signed it. Then he took the paper, briefly 36 Forever Mine looked at it then passed it on to Richard who wasted no time in signing his name and sealing the deal. “I can’t thank you enough, my lord, for this opportunity to serve you. I will cherish Abaigeal and treat her with all the respect due the Princess of D’rkenrealm.” Richard’s enthusiasm was evident and Magnus knew he was sincere, so why then did he feel like the biggest piece of shit? Magnus stood up and braced his hands behind his back and faced Richard who also stood. “See that you do, Richard, because if you don’t, if I ever find out she is mistreated or unhappy, I’ll tear you into pieces and rip your insides out. Then I’ll hand you over to my sons, who would take extreme pleasure in killing you some more.” Slade softly chuckled and Ruari gave a discreet cough. Richard paled. “Of course, my lord, I would expect nothing less, but please have no concerns. I will always keep your daughter safe and she will be loved.” Yeah, but will she love you? God’s blood, Abaigeal wasn’t even here and he was already feeling guilty. Keeping his thoughts clean from his expression, Magnus regally nodded then addressed Ruari. “You’ll finish up here?” “Mati and I are leaving tonight. I’ll make sure Circinn and the Council Members receive it.” “My lord, if I may?” Richard quietly interrupted. “I was wondering about a date?” Eager, wasn’t he? “Abaigeal has not yet been told about this contract, Richard, and until I tell her I ask you to please refrain from speaking to her.” Richard dutifully nodded, which left Magnus’ next words coming out after a long and troubled sigh. “Then there is Abaigeal’s mother. I will need to discuss the formalities with her before settling on a date and I know she’ll have something to say on the matter.” Magnus mumbled that last bit under his breath but Slade heard it and laughed, earning a glower from Magnus and a soft smile from Ruari. “I’ll let you know when we’re at the Summit.” Magnus said to Richard. “Very good, thank you, my lord.” Magnus nodded. “If you’ll excuse me now.” “Of course, my lord, thank you, my lord.” Magnus dismissed Richard then nodded at Slade and Ruari and walked out of the room. Closing the door, he leaned against it for one second, his eyes closed. He felt like his entire world just shifted on its axis. He hoped he did the right thing. There was no changing it now. What’s done is done, he would have to live with the consequences and if Richard didn’t do what was expected of him, he would fucking tear him apart. 37 Forever Mine ********** Staraya, Russia Nikolai was beginning to think his little warrior could indeed hide forever. Though it had only been three months, to Nikolai it felt like forever. Certainly it felt as if a thousand lifetimes had passed since he'd touched her, scented her…felt her soul surround his. He had never been one to live by the date of a calendar or watch the hands of a clock as they ticked by. At one time he would have considered three months nothing, just a small fleck of dust blowing through the sand gusts of time. Now it felt decidedly different. Time, it seemed, was indeed of the essence, and his…was running out. The lamplights that hung on the walls still burned. Their flames were low from being lit all evening yet they still filled the room with warm amber light, flickering just slightly every so often. He could have turned on the light switch, hell it wasn't like his home didn't have electricity but Nikolai preferred the old ambiance, it eased his soul and reminded him of a time when the world did not move so fast, a time when technology wasn't so gallingly in your face ringing your ears off or blinding you with its too bright illumination. The fire hissed and crackled as a log fell over amongst the lit ashes and the flame burned brighter for one second before it dimmed once again. Another thing he really didn't need to have. He had heat, it cost him a fortune to install it in this ancient Russian Palace, but it was just another thing he preferred. The fire was warm and cozy, simple. Goddess above, he missed that - simplicity. Although, if he really stopped to think about it and were honest with himself instead of trying to mollify his wants, he could say that things for him were never entirely simple. More times than naught they were in fact quite complicated. Like now. He took a deep breath and concentrated on the motion of his lungs expanding and then contracting. It was soothing, giving him the pretense that he was in control, that he and his Darkness were perfectly balanced together in their shared space - just like they always had been. Unfortunately the situation was far from stable. Being in control had become something that was tenuous at best and it hadn't started slowly either. A feverish charge of want and desire began the first night after he took his little warrior's innocence. With every day that went by, every day she was not in his grasp, that desperate craving was building to an almost unbearable pain. He was continually beset with mounting restlessness and an acute aggression that strangely enough, baffled him. He was not unaccustomed to those frantic emotions, ever since he could remember he instinctively knew his Darkness held more power and destructive force than any other being. It was why he always kept a firm leash on his emotions, fearing that if he didn't, he could and would let loose a monster that was frighteningly proficient and eager enough to commit whatever heinous act it chose to. Yet, the depth, the absolute ravenous hunger for his unnamed lover, and the violent anger steadily smoldering under his skin was changing him. Edgier, much more potent and agitated, it was a constant itch scratching his insides and 38 Forever Mine making him feel undisciplined and reckless. He was questioning himself, wondering if perhaps all these years of being Konstantin's leashed pet had finally driven him over the edge. It seemed a hell of lot easier and less complicated to think that then to actually believe he'd found his S’airsul. He didn't want to consider that outlandish possibility. There were too many impediments, too many questions that needed answers, and way too many things he would seriously have to look at and - he grudgingly admitted - he didn't want to face any of it. So for three months he tried to play everything down by telling himself he had imagined meeting his S’airsul in a dark alleyway. It wasn't that hard to do, after all, why would he be granted such a gift? The Upyrian bond was nothing but myths and legends, an enigma that died out when the Upyr did. Then there was also the indisputable fact that he was not one hundred percent Pure. Those were two perfectly logical and verifiable truths he had been trying to maintain since that night, but he could no longer deny what was happening to him now. Sitting back in his worn leather chair, a deep unsettled scowl on his face, Nikolai reflected on the events that took place over the last two days. Besides the consistent and rapidly growing aggression the one major difference in his behavior was his need for sex. He always had a healthy appetite when it came to sex but it was never something he felt he needed to have to survive. But ever since their fiery encounter that was exactly what it felt like to him. His appetite had grown to become voracious, and apparently - if the last three months were any indication unquenchable. It was in effect quite painful. There was no other word for it. His body was strung out tight with the burning need for the flesh of a woman, and as he learned, one woman only. Over the last couple of months he had taken numerous women to his bed and while he had his release it just never felt right. Most times, while his body was in the throes of an orgasm, instead of contentment and bliss he felt emptiness and just more pain. Then when the clouds faded and he was aware of where he was and with whom, he felt red hot anger. Still, over the last three months he discovered that he was becoming an optimistic man and so he kept trying. Yet the more he tried, the more he realized that no matter who he took to his bed, the outcome would be the same. The proof was in the pudding, so they say, and the other night had been another lame attempt that only ended in disaster. He and Mikkel, along with a small band of soldiers, had been travelling back from the training facility that was two days south of his home when the night ran out on them. Having traveled the same route so many times before, they befriended a local human farmer and his family who were more than willing to put the vampires up in their modest yet quiet large farmhouse for the day. He and Mikkel had been in that house numerous times before and each and every time they spent their day with the farmer's young and lusty twin daughters, Natalia and Natasha. This particular day started out as it always did. The twins took him and Mikkel up to their room where they proceeded to strip them of their clothes. 39 Forever Mine Before long the four of them were a pile of naked bodies on the king size bed, essentially fucking like animals which is what pretty much happened every time. Except from the moment Nikolai touched Natalia his body had responded with a violent inner jerk, as if it were repulsed. He choose to ignore it, it was not the first time the Darkness had responded in such a way especially as of late, and instead he pressed on intent on ridding himself of the deep hunger he had. But, the more he tasted and touched her, the more hostile the Darkness became and before he knew what was happening, he was straddling Natalia on the floor, his hands were wrapped around her throat and he was squeezing the very life out of her. If it weren't for Mikkel Natalia would be dead. Nikolai didn't think he would ever forget the look on Mikkel’s face which was as shocked as Nikolai had felt. In the silent seconds that came next, as his black eyes gazed into Mikkel’s with confusion and anger, Nikolai acknowledged that he could no longer belittle the chaotic emotions that had begun three months ago. He could no longer hide from the truth that had been gnawing away at him since then. The days of being Arnost and Konstantin's lap dog were over. Staying here and fighting this battle for them was no longer an option. His behavior over the last months had altered, he had altered. Playing the role of the unaffected General, a role he had played flawlessly for one hundred years, was becoming impossible. The Darkness would not allow him to do be that farce of a man any more. It was restless and angry, intent on getting the one thing that it wanted…its mate. Nothing else mattered to it. The Darkness didn't care that the body it shared with the man was in a precarious position, his blind obedience in exchange for the well-being of his sister and mother. The Darkness had a powerful need for its S’airsul, one that would not be tossed aside or ignored. Nikolai was forced to admit that while the Darkness felt just as strongly toward Nikolai’s mother and sister, when it came to getting its mate they, regrettably, came in second. Precarious, ah! That was an understatement to say the least. Arnost and Konstantin knew they held him on a short leash, they've always know, and with the way the Darkness had been acting up that short leash was about to snap. He could not afford to have that happen here, while his loved ones were still in the clutches of those two. No, the time had come to do something because if he stayed here and denied the Darkness’ and his own desires, the shit would indeed hit the fan. Nikolai rubbed his face haphazardly. While he had no idea of the depth of what he was experiencing and the why of it, he knew that his little warrior was the key. He had to find her it was as simple as that. While he was confident he eventually would, setting out and locating her would be difficult. He sat up straighter in his chair. The legs scrapped against the old mahogany floor boards as he pulled it closer to the desk. Besides finding his mate, he still had the daunting challenge of locating his mother and his sister and that was something he knew he could not do on his own. That alone was the reason why he found himself locked away in his study, planning and preparing for a future that was completely unknown and, even to a man of his audacity, overwhelming. Nevertheless he knew he must take the 40 Forever Mine chance. The only pertinent question was how he was actually going to go about doing that. ********** Mac Branain Manor Monrovia, California Abby sat Indian style on the second floor of her father's office. Leaning back against the bookshelf, she took a deep breath. Milaya… Her eyes closed and her body shivered with longing. All day she had been tortured by the memory of that deep roughly spoken word in her ear, and every time her body instantly reacted. She would tremble. Her breasts would suddenly feel heavy and she could feel the growing dampness in her panties. She wanted General Nikolai Kotova - desperately. She hadn't stopped wanting him. From the moment she first saw him standing under the moon, to when she jumped up to the top of the building to escape him, to every single night and day since then and up until now - she wanted him. It was a wonder to her because she never thought sex could be so… enslaving. Before that night, she only ever felt a mild curiosity about sex and there had never been anyone she really wanted to explore that curiosity with. But she experienced something in Nikolai Kotova's arms she never dreamed possible. He had awakened the woman inside her and she was fully alive and unrelenting with her needs and desires, tormenting her night and day with no reprieve. She thought about him all the time - day, night, it didn't matter. There was a powerful need inside of her that called out for him and she wondered - all the time - if he ever thought of her. Fear settled in her belly. She didn't want to be a victim of passion and she certainly did not want to feel this… this pull to any man, let alone a vampire. She wasn't cynical about love and she didn't harbor any negative thoughts or feelings on it at all, it was more along the lines that she was deeply afraid of losing herself. There was nothing stronger or more important to a vampire then the connection they shared with their mates. It was a powerful dominating connection. She had seen how that power affected people, the extremes they go to and the sacrifices that were made just to please their mates. Most of the time, those sacrifices weren't made by the male - oh no, it was the female that was forever forced to relent in some way. Even Abby’s mom, who had incredible power and strength, and for all the times - which have been countless over the years - that she fought her mate on one thing or another, would eventually submit to his will. It was just the way it was with vamps. The male was the one in charge and the female was simply his subservient. If she were to be mated to a vamp, the same thing would happen to her, and that scared the crap out of her. 41 Forever Mine As far as Abby was concerned, there was no amount of love in the world that would make her want to give up her freedom. She had to fight for it now; getting mated would only mean one thing: going from one gilded cage to another. “Abby? There you are. I've been searching everywhere for you.” Abby turned toward the sound of her cousin Bryony's soft yet exasperated voice to see her brilliant red head sticking out of the secret doorway by the bookcase and her blues eyes staring at her in consternation. Abby stood up and headed for the door Bryony held open for her. “Hey, Bry, what's up?” “What's up? Are you daft? It's almost eight o'clock and you're not even dressed!” Abby chuckled at Bryony’s disapproving glare as her eyes raked Abby from her dirty boot-covered feet then up her leather pants and over her faded black t-shirt. She stopped her perusal on Abby's hair which was tied back in an unkempt ponytail. “Shit, it's going to take me forever to tame that mess. Come on, I've got a lot of a work to do.” Grabbing Abby's arm, Bryony pulled her through the doorway. The door closed behind them as they made their way down the secret passageway and toward the third floor where Abby's bedroom was. “I hate this passageway. Can’t you get Dobbs to clean it?” Bryony asked as she flicked dust off the sleeve of her green dress. “Dobbs has more important things to do then clean a secret passageway, Bry. Besides, it's just an escape route; it doesn't have to be clean.” “Ha, speak for yourself. Considering the amount of time we spend in here, this sucker should be sparkling.” Abby softly laughed. To the outside world Abby’s, not by blood, cousin Bryony was the epitome of a Master Vampire's daughter: calm, serene and respectful, and feminine. A complete ruse, the real Bryony was all fire and feistiness. Abby didn't know where she got it from - probably from hanging out with me and my brothers for too long - her father was stoic and quiet while her mom, who could be outgoing and a bit wild at times, at least when Abby's mom got to her, was normally shy and reserved. Reaching the third level of the mansion, Abby pushed the door open and stepped out into the hallway and right into Shane. “Oops, sorry, bro.” She took a step to the left to give her cousin room to come out. Bryony wasn't paying attention to where she was walking; she was too busy scowling at the dirt on her dress. “Bloody hell, Abby, I'm so dirty now I'm going to have to wash this before we go and there's no…” She stepped out of the door and looked right into Shane's laughing eyes. “I thought I heard a mouse squeaking behind the walls.” 42 Forever Mine Bryony stood with her fists clenched at her side as she looked up at the fourth oldest Mac Branain. Her bright sapphire eyes flashed angrily as the wind picked up outside. He never failed to rile her in one way or another. He teased her, he insulted her, and he cracked jokes at her expense. He was constantly ribbing and she hated it. She just wished she could say the same about the man himself. Seeing the mockery on his - definitely too handsome for his own good face, hurt her and pissed her off. Normally she had control over her emotions and her powers, two things that went hand in hand, but when it came to Shane Mac Branain, she had none. She knew the reason why, but knowing only made her angrier. Goddess, she wished she could just go through life ignorant like everyone else instead of being cursed with this 'gift' of hers. But she couldn't and knowing why didn't lessen the violate emotions slowly taking control and showing themselves as the windows began to rattle, and the wind outside began to howl like a hurricane, causing the house to slowly but surely shake. Shane watched with amusement as everything Bryony was feeling reflected on her face. Chuckling, he leaned down, tweaked her nose, and whispered, “Temper, temper, little witch.” Abby grabbed onto the banister of the stairs to keep from falling as the house began to violently rock back and forth. She scowled at Shane's back. He stood perfectly balanced, his tall lean body fluently moving with the house as it pitched from side to side. Completely unaffected by what was going on. She was just about to yell at him when Connor's thundering voice filtered up through house. “Shane! Leave Bryony alone!” Shane threw his tawny head back and laughed as his body continued to sway in sync with the house that was now creaking and groaning. “You're going to make her knock the house down! Stop, before I come up there and kick your ass!” Connor roared again. Shane's laughter quieted but his eyes still sparkled with glee and the smirk on his face was full of all the humor he was no longer vocalizing. His gaze never wavered from the fiery redhead; it only intensified with imposing purpose as the air in the corridor suddenly began to change. Against her will, Bryony held his gaze as a soft defiant whimper escaped her lips. She hated this. Hated how simple it was for him to control her. He seemed to have this influence over her magic, the ability to pull her powers in either direction, and he did… all the freaking time and she couldn’t fight it. Fighting to get a grip on her emotions, Bryony took several deep breaths then closed her eyes. She counted to ten - three times - then, as if on cue, she slowly felt the comforting arms of inner peace and serenity wrap around her, filling her with warmth and contentment. After a few moments, the wind slowly receded and the house finally stilled. When she opened her eyes he was still staring at her but the mockery was gone. There was something else in his gaze she couldn't decipher and she didn't even want to try. As usual, she had the strongest almost undeniable urge to wrap 43 Forever Mine herself around him and she resented it with a passion. It was a feeling that made her want to kill herself and him. Since she couldn't do either, she did her best to ignore the pulsating sensations his green eyes incited and snub him entirely. Quickly brushing past him and trying not to bolt down the hallway and run to safety, Bryony walked with her back ramrod straight and her head held high. Abby let go of the railing once her feet were steady on the floor. She gave her brother a scathing look then followed Bryony. Shane's firm voice followed her. “Dinner's in five, Iggy.” She lifted her hand dismissively as she continued down the hall, “Yeah, yeah.” “Oh, Bry, by the way, nice dress. The grunge look is killer on you.” Shane couldn't resist one more remark and he was rewarded with the middle finger of Bryony's right hand being thrust up in the air. She didn't bother to turn around so she missed the way his green eyes admiringly watched her backside as she walked down the hall. "I thought you had your powers under control?" Abby asked as she closed her bedroom door and watched Bryony stomp over to the closet and rifle through Abby's clothes, pulling out anything she thought would be suitable for the night's activities. "I do. It's just… Oh, I don't want to talk about it. Let's get you ready." Abby's eyebrow lifted in question at the brushoff then studied Bryony’s agitated movements. She was pulling one dress out after another, holding it back, taking a long look at it, mumbling to herself and then placing it back in the closet. She was upset. Of course, she would never say it and in all actuality she really didn't have too. The wind picked up outside, scraping the trees limbs against the glass, a sure sign Bry was not feeling so harmonious at the moment, but then in a blink of an eye, the wind stopped and a radiant smile appeared on Bryony's face as she held a deep blue dress out in front of her. It seemed finding the right outfit took care of whatever was bothering her. For Abby, staring into the deep royal blue material Bryony held out for her perusal only reminded her of tempestuous cerulean eyes and a rock hard body. Gods, she wished all her problems would disappear at the touch of a velvet dress. Abby plopped down on the bed, sighing dramatically. "Get ready for what? It's not like I'm going to get lucky tonight." "That is definitely not the point, Abby. The point is to just go out there and have a good time. Look, you never know when you'll meet the one person that won't back down in the face of your brothers." Abby snorted. "Yeah, right. Not here in Monrovia, that's for sure, or anywhere for that matter." Bryony turned and looked at her pointedly. "Well, there's always the Summit. He'll be there, you know." Abby stood up and walked to the dressing table where she sat down, trying to play down the excitement she felt at that prospect. "So?" 44 Forever Mine "So…" Bryony walked up behind her and pulled her hair out of the ponytail "It's your chance to finally talk to him." Abby watched as Bry pulled the brush through her long unruly locks. "And say what, Bry? He doesn't even know what I look like, remember? Besides, I can't just walk up to Nikolai Kotova at the Summit where everyone will be, including my father, and say 'Hey, Romeo, remember me? I'm the girl whose cherry you took three months ago.’” The hand holding the brush did not falter in its long strokes of Abby's hair as Bryony sighed. It was deep and all too telling to Abby who had heard that sound a million times before. "Bry, what do you know that you're not telling me?" Bryony steadily held Abby’s gaze, her blue orbs revealing no hidden secrets. "Paranoid much? Geez, Abby, it's nothing like that. I just know how much that night affected you and how much you still think about it. I want closure for you in one way or another, and I thought maybe you might get the chance to do that." They stared at each other for a few more seconds until Abby finally looked away. Closure? Ha! That was a laugh and definitely not something Abby saw coming her way any time soon. "I don't think that word exists in this little scenario. Besides, I seriously doubt the General even remembers what happened." Bryony knew Abby was dead wrong on that. A vampire taking a woman's virginity was like signing the deed to a house. He owned her. Bryony knew it and she knew that was how the General most likely saw it too. It was just Abby who was living in denial, or rather, trying to retain some sort of freedom. Abby suddenly sat up straighter, eyeballing her friend hard. "You do know something that you're not telling me." Bryony didn't meet her gaze and she didn't respond. She ignored her with a queer stillness that confirmed Abby was right. "Yeah, you know and of course you're not going to tell me, are you? Hold out." Bryony sighed. "I'm sorry, Abby, you know I want to but I can't." Abby looked at her now with crinkled orbs of annoyance. She never understood why Bryony could not talk about the things she just 'knew' were going to happen. It seemed stupid to Abby. If they could help things then what was the problem? "Because you can't change the future, you know that so there's no point in telling what I feel when nothing can be done about it. Besides, the feelings I get aren't always right when they’re about you. Well, actually, they're not really accurate about anyone. The only time I know for sure is when they're…" Abby looked up to see her friend's mouth snap shut and her face crinkled in irritation. “When they're what?” she asked. “Nothing. Never mind. Circinn said that as I get older, that ability will become stronger and truer. I don't know if that's really something to look forward to but it is what it is.” 45 Forever Mine With a resigned look, Bryony took a step back with a smile on her face "Wa-lah! In record time and not half bad if I do say so myself. Whatever would you do without me?" Abby twisted her head to the left then to the right, she scowled. "Bloody hell, Bry, I look like I just got out of bed." "It's the tousled sexy look, which by the way looks stunning on you. There is no doubt in my mind that tonight someone will brave the beasts to get a hold of you." Abby seriously doubted that, but she did like the look. "So, are you counting away the minutes ‘til you see David?" Abby asked switching the subject as she got up and walked over the bed. Bryony sat down on the chair Abby vacated, thinking of the lead singer in the band they were going to see tonight, David Simmons. "Yeah, David is really… great." Abby looked over her shoulder with an eyebrow raised in question. Was that boredom she detected? "Really great? Really great like a new pair of silk panties or really great like 'I can't wait to smack my lips against his'?" Bryony laughed. "Well, there is no denying he can kiss." Standing Bryony caressed the sides of her torso then slowly moved up to her breasts where she cupped them and pushed them up, mockingly fondling them. "And he does have a way with his hands," she said, wiggling her eyebrows. Abby’s laughter mixed with Bryony’s as she took her leathers off, pulled off her t-shirt, then stepped into her dress. Bryony walked up behind Abby and started buttoning the delicate buttons in the back. "But I don't know he's just… great. There's nothing more than that, no fireworks, no burning need to taste more of him. Nothing like what you felt for…" Abby spun around and slapped her hand over Bryony's mouth. "Don't say it, okay? It's in the past. Over. Done. Finito." Her hand dropped and she walked over to the full length mirror, admiring the dress Bryony chose and desperately trying to ignore the rugged face the blue velvet reminded her of. "In time I'm sure I'll forget it, just like I'm sure he has," she said as she slipped into her heels. "Come on, let's get down to dinner before one of my jailors comes looking for us." Bryony followed Abby out the door and down the stairs. When they stood on the last step they were immediately bombarded with the unruly sound of what could only be described as happy contented males. The raucous was deafening and echoing throughout the entire first floor of the manor. They smirked at each other then started down the hall and toward the dining room. Standing in the threshold, they quietly observed Abby’s brothers as they sat around the long table. Her oldest brother, Connor, sat at the head of the table. His soft green eyes were alit with humor and his smile was broad across his handsome face as he watched his brothers' antics. To Connor’s right sat Liam, the second oldest, who was currently arm wrestling Keegan, who sat across from him. Their two big burly hands were 46 Forever Mine tightly clenched together in a standstill at the center of the table. Abby had seen this a million times before. Those two were so evenly matched in strength that it was a rare if either one of them ever actually won. Keegan suddenly let loose with a deep shout as he flipped his hair out of his eyes. His typically friendly face was taut and sweaty as his hand turned red and the muscles in his massive arms flexed and strained as he fought to push his older brother over the edge. “He thinks you're soft, Kee… a pussy, you going to take that shit from him? You know he thinks he's better than you, better than all of us. Come on… put him in his place!” The taunting words drew Abby's gaze to brother number five, Nyle, who was leaning into Keegan’s ear and spurning him on. Of course Nyle was the instigator of this hand wrestling match since Shane wasn’t in the room to do it. Watching her brothers, Abby’s heart grew heavy with love. They were all arrogant louts, at times extremely loud, and every single one of them were excessively overbearing but they were also the loyal, devoted and loving. Abby loved each and every one of them, mayhap in different ways and for different reasons, but love them all she did and she loved it when they were all together like this. Of course, this wasn’t all of them. Besides her Mom and Dad not being present there were a few other people missing too. Connor’s wife Lucy and their three boys, Hendrix, Strummer and Jagger were spending Jagger’s sixth birthday in England with Slade and his mate Devyn, who were actually Lucy’s adoptive parents. Oriane, Keegan’s pregnant mate of three months elected to stay home. She was human and didn’t have a great history with supernatural beings, vamps in particular. So much so that Abby was amazed Keegan even got her to like him let alone fall in love with him. The only other person missing was the third oldest, Tiernan. Abby frowned, it figured that the one brother she wanted to talk wasn’t here. “Good thing your mom isn't here or they would all have stakes sticking out of their stomachs,” Bryony commented with a giggle and Abby smiled, nodding her head in agreement. That was so true. Though their mom was not a stickler for going by the rules, for some reason family dinner time was the one occasion she expected her family to be on their best behavior, which certainly did not include arm wrestling. “Boys will be boys, no matter their age,” Abby added. An arm was suddenly thrown around each girl's shoulders, jolting them up against a lean hard body. “And thank the Goddess for that!” Shane said, his eyes sparkling with merriment at the events unfolding before them. “Don't you just love dinnertime?” “I love that everyone's home for once, together. It's nice. It's not so… lonely around here now,” Abby quietly stated. Shane looked down at his sister in mock hurt. “What do you mean lonely? You've got me.” 47 Forever Mine Abby looked up at him, her hand coming up and tapping him on the chest. “Shane, I love you, but we spend way too much time together.” Shane laughed, pulling her closer as he leaned down and kissed the top of her head. “Oh, come on, I know I'm your favorite brother…you wuv me.” Then he turned and looked at Bryony, his eyes direct, the smirk on his face pure male ego. “The both of you.” Bryony rolled her eyes at his narcissistic grin then stepped away and out of his hold. “I think I lost my appetite.” Shane's laughter continued as he watched Bry walk to the table and pull out the chair next to Nyle's. “Tiernan's not home yet?” Abby asked quietly. Abby’s morose tone drew Shane's unwavering gaze to her. “He was delayed in New York but he should be back before dawn. Why?” Abby shrugged. “No reason. I just… miss him, that's all.” His hand squeezed her shoulder lightly and when he spoke, his concerned voice was but a whisper. “Are you alright, Abby, you've been a bit withdrawn lately.” She couldn't meet his eyes. Shane was the one brother she could never lie to. “Me? I'm fine, just… tired.” Shane noticed the way she completely avoided his gaze and instantly knew she was lying. His eyes didn't waver from the top of her dark blonde head as he silently contemplated her. He loved his lil' sis to death, just like he knew the rest of his brothers did. He also knew that that love was suffocating her. She was such a free and independent spirit, so open and loving and passionate about so many things, unfortunately all those things she was forbidden to do. Shane didn’t agree with their father's direct orders that Abby not be involved in the war. Naturally, their father feared for her safety, that's why he made them to begin with. Shane couldn't hold that against him too much, she was his only daughter, and she held a special place in all their hearts, but mostly their dad’s. So he could understand his father's obsessive need to protect her and he could even agree with it, to a point. The problem was their father loved her so much that he wanted to protect her from…well, pretty much everything. He was so blinded by fear and concern he never once stopped to really get to know his daughter, so he had no idea just what Abby was truly capable of. Shane wished his father would get his head out of his ass. Sighing deeply, he leaned down and kissed Abby’s temple. “You know I'm here if you need to talk to someone, right?” Abby met Shane’s concerned gaze. She smiled then caressed his cheek. “I know. Don't worry, I'm okay, really.” Just then the kitchen door opened and Dobbs walked in, pushing a serving tray that was loaded to the hilt with food and four pitchers of blood. The moment he saw what was going on in the stately room, he looked absolutely horrified. Dobbs’ mouth dropped open then he began to stutter most unhappily. “My… my… lords, this is most… most inappropriate! Why, if milady was here she would… be… most… most upset.” 48 Forever Mine The butler’s harsh tone went right to Keegan's tender heart. Knowing how right Dobbs was, he blushed then gave up and let Liam win. Their joined hands landed on the table with a thud. Liam smugly smirked. “Pussy.” “See! I told you!” Nyle scornfully exclaimed shaking his head in disappointment with his younger brother, but then the feigned ridicule faded and he slapped Keegan on the back as he stood up straight. “Next time, Kee, we'll get him next time.” Keegan nodded as they both looked at each other, smiling. Shane gave Abby one last kiss then walked over to sit down next to Liam as Connor laughingly answered the butler. “That's putting it mildly, Dobbs, we'd all be on the floor bleeding like stuck pigs.” “Yeah, after she slapped you upside the back of your head. After all, you're the oldest… you should know better!” Nyle said waving his finger at Connor, imitating something their mother had said way too often, and causing the mirth they were feeling to explode into fits of loud laughter which only horrified the ostentatious butler even more. “Master Nyle, you should not say such insolent things.” Nyle smiled at their kind, yet way too stuffy for his tastes, butler. “Lighten up, Dobbs, she would be the first one to laugh, you know that.” “Yeah, after she belted you one,” Shane added, smiling at a grinning Nyle. Ignoring the soft chuckles around the table, Dobbs proceeded to serve dinner. The room was relatively quiet as everyone dove in and began to eat, occasionally asking each other questions of what they've been up to in their personal lives. After about an hour and everyone was done, Dobbs started to clean the table up. “We should go, Abby, or we're going to be late,” Bryony said from across the table. Abby nodded and started to rise when Connor's authoritative yet gentle voice spoke. “Where are you going tonight, Iggy?” All inquiring eyes swung to her, expectantly waiting for her answer like the good little jailors they were. Abby ignored them all and looked directly at Connor. “We're going to The Pit. Nefarious is playing tonight.” Connor nodded and smiled. “Cool, sounds like fun. I like them, they're pretty good.” Shane's made a long and derisive snort, “They suck. David sings like he's got his balls stuck in a vice grip.” He contemptuously said. Nyle chuckled into his goblet, nodding his head in agreement and sneaking a peek at Bryony who was standing at the other end of the table, her eyes slits of anger and starring directly at Shane. Abby walked behind Shane and slapped him upside the head. “Like you can sing any better. Come on, Bry.” 49 Forever Mine Bryony pulled her gaze away from Shane's and followed Abby toward the door. “Have fun, girls, but be careful,” Connor said. Abby smiled. “Will do, bro.” Troubled, Connor waited till Abby left the room. “Shane?” Irritated, Shane glared at him. “What?” “Give her a couple of hours of space, okay? She's been real quiet lately, I'm worried about her.” Shane nodded as he took a drink. Liam snorted. “Lately? Connor, she's been like that ever since she came back from Slade's three months ago.” He looked down the table at Shane. “Did something happen that we don't know about?” Shane shrugged. “She says she's just tired.” Liam accepted his answer then turned to Connor. “Maybe she's getting nervous. The Summit is only a week away and it's the first time dad’s letting her go since she was five.” “Iggy doesn't get nervous. She has nerves of steel, you know that,” Keegan replied. “If you ask me, it's the prospect of seeing Waxy Wexler,” Nyle pointed out. They all nodded, groaning with displeasure as they did. Nyle continued, “You know dad’s planning on throwing her at him. I don't like it.” He shook his head, his voice getting angrier as he spoke. “There's something off about Richard but I can't quite put my finger on it. One thing I do know is that there’s no way he's going to be able to handle her. She's not even a quarter of his age, yet she's still too much woman for him.” He looked at Connor as he continued to voice his concerns. “Bro, I'm telling you, this entire mating contract doesn't sit well with me.” Shane's angry voice spoke up, clearly showing his discontentment on his sister's behalf. “Yeah, well, it fucking pisses me off. She doesn't even like Richard and, frankly, I don't blame her. Can you see him in this family? We'd torture him to death.” Liam snorted. “We’d never get the chance. Mom would beat us to it.” “Well, there's one good thing about Waxy joining the family, at least Keegan would get a break,” Nyle teasingly said. Keegan sadly shook his head. “I would rather suffer a lifetime of jokes then have Iggy mated to someone who doesn’t suit her. She needs love in her life and she won't get that with Richard.” Connor smiled at Keegan, always the romantic his little brother. “I could try talking to dad again.” he offered. “Yeah right, if mom hasn't succeeded then nobody will. I don't understand why he's so hell bent on this anyway,” Shane said. “You know why, he thinks she'll be safe with Richard, that he can protect her.” Connor said that without thinking who he was talking to. He grimaced as his brothers took offense and responded at the same time, loudly too. “What are we, a bunch of fucking pussies?” Nyle yelled. 50 Forever Mine “Fuck that! No one can protect her better than we can!” Liam shouted. “No one can care for her more than we do!” Keegan added. “Shit, she doesn't even need fucking protection. She can take care of herself!” Shane exclaimed. “Guys… guys… guys!” Connor shouted, finally getting all their attention. “I know and I agree with everything you said but it's not our decision to make, its dad’s.” “No. It's Iggy's,” Shane argued back. Connor sighed. “Look, the fact is this. Abby has been a mark for the Rebellion since she was born, now that’s she come into her powers that threat is multiplied and you know that Shane. While I don't approve of the match either, it is a logical and reasonable plan. Richard is a strong warrior with close ties to Slade. Dad trusts that he won't turn her over to Moravec the second they're mated and so do I.” “Something else she has a right to know,” Shane muttered under his breath. “She'll never have children if she's mated to Richard, Connor. She doesn't love him.” Keegan's deep quietly spoken comment drew Connor's eyes to him and they softened immediately. That was the problem Connor had with the match too. Being mated for over twenty years and the father of three children, Connor knew the bliss of everlasting love and the joy of children, and he wanted all his siblings to know it too. “I know, Kee, but maybe that's not a problem for her. You heard Iggy say a thousand times she doesn't even want to get mated, let alone have children.” “That's only because she hasn't met her mate yet. When she does, she'll feel differently,” Keegan confidently replied. “Yeah and why hasn't she? Because we keep her cloistered like a fucking nun that’s why!” Shane sourly added. Liam turned dark agitated eyes on his brother. “It's for her own good, Shane, you're just too close to her to see that.” Shane stood up, his fists slamming down on the marble table as he faced Liam angrily. “You're right, I am close to her and I know what she's feeling and you know what that is, brother? Pain and sadness that her own flesh and blood refuses to see her for what she really is! I hope you and dad are prepared to handle the outcome of shielding her from the world because one day, it's going to blow up in your faces and when it does, you'll have no one to blame but yourselves!” Shane stormed out of the room. “Goddess, he's fucking stubborn!” Liam angrily growled. “He's not being stubborn, Liam, he just sees more than you,” Nyle quietly added in Shane’s defense, his own eyes growing dark with anger. Liam glared. “I'm not blind, Nyle. I know how hard things are for her. I can see in her eyes how unhappy she is. I don't like it either but you know what, I'd rather have my sister alive and miserable than dead.” 51 Forever Mine Nyle snorted, “It's the same thing, isn't it? Either way she would be nothing but a cold body.” Liam quietly stared at Nyle then sat back in his chair, not saying another word because deep down inside he knew Nyle was right. “Look, guys, we're all worried about her and we all have different opinions on how dad chooses to handle the situation, but that's the key word here… dad. It's his decision to make and it's up to us to stand by it, regardless of how we feel on the matter.” Connor ended the conversation with his diplomatic answer though he wasn't feeling very diplomatic in the least, his own opinion on the subject wavering closer to Shane and Keegan's than Liam's and their father's. As his brothers got up and left, Shane’s words reverberated in Connor’s head and he wondered if his father was indeed prepared for the backlash signing that mating contract was going to cause because there would be repercussions, not only from Abby but also from their mom. 52 Forever Mine CHAPTER THREE Magnus woke in a cold sweat. His heart that shouldn't feel as if life pumped inside of it thumped against his chest with a heaviness that weighed him down more than he would ever admit to anyone. His mate slept beside him, unaware of the turmoil that filled him, the turmoil that had been plaguing him for the past three months. He sat up and swung his feet over the side and onto the floor. Gripping the edge of the bed, his looked up to the ceiling and waited for the memories to fade but instead of dimming back into the shadows of his mind, they lingered. After another ten minutes and they still remained clear in his mind he grumbled with disgust and stood. Heavy strides carried him to the window where he gazed out at another rainy English day. He had no idea why after a hundred years it decided to rear its ugly head, but it had and it didn't show any sign of stopping. He hadn't told anyone about them though he was certain Elizabeth knew, their bond was too strong for her not to. Elizabeth, Goddess, he loved her so much that even after all these years, after all the mischief and trouble she caused, the amount of love he felt for her hurt. It was hard to remember the man he had been before meeting her. Empty, that was the only way he could describe it, and he never wanted to feel that way again. Still, regardless of how complete she made his life he could not deny that Elizabeth's arrival also came with the greatest betrayal he ever felt. It was a moment that was as clear to him now as the rain drops that fell on the window before him. Nikolai had stood in front of him, sword in hand and poised to strike as he told Magnus with scathing heat that he would no longer fight by his side. The black eyes that glared at him had been filled with anger and regret, yet the hardness of his eyes were fully resigned to the path he had chosen, a path that had broken Magnus' heart and enraged him. He had taken Nikolai under his wing, befriended him, made him his brother, and the great Russian Ox had repaid him with treachery. Magnus never really knew why but he could guess that Konstantin and Arnost used Sasha against him. He couldn’t fault Nikolai for that. He could even admit that he would have done the same thing, still, that didn’t lessen the fact that his friend’s duplicity stung, deeply. He could have forgiven Nikolai if he had just come to him and explained everything from the beginning. But he hadn't and the fact that he didn't, the fact that he had not trusted Magnus enough to know he would have done anything in his power to help him, hurt more than anything else. He ran his hand haphazardly through his hair. He loathed brooding over ancient history but since he signed the mating contract, that’s all he’d been doing. 53 Forever Mine He was stressed out. He was tired of arguing with Elizabeth about Richard and he was tired of the melancholy looks he was getting from his daughter. He was trying to do the right thing yet they continued to fight him. It was almost the situation with Nikolai all over again. They did not trust him enough to know he would do what was best for everyone, and that angered him. Ella lay quietly on her side, watching her mate as he stood in front of the window. Her body hummed as her eyes traced every ripped muscle and shadowed crevice. He might be over thirteen hundred years old but he had a body of a twenty-five year old that made Ella weep with the wanting of it. She stretched and her naked skin created enticing sounds against the silk sheets. “Baby, come back to bed, it's only been a few hours since you slept.” Magnus turned to look at her and his pulse raced. She never failed to do that, she was as beautiful and desirable now as she was a hundred years ago. He looked back at the window, feeling too troubled and restless to sleep. “I can't sleep.” Ella sighed. “The nightmare again?” As Magnus suspected, she knew about the nightmares. He was surprised but thankful that she hadn't asked him about them yet and annoyed that she finally did. For one brief second he wondered why she chose now to bust his nuts and not the day after they began. He wasn't deluding himself, busting his nuts was exactly what she was going to do. Pester him until he cracked and spilled his guts - talked about his feelings. He almost shuddered with the thought. No matter how many years went by and no matter how much he had gotten used to the idea of talking about his feelings, he still felt uncomfortable doing it but regardless of his feelings on the matter, Elizabeth believed wholeheartedly about sharing things together, which of course included his feelings. This particular subject was no different than anything else she felt he needed to talk about. She was persistent and when she got started on something, she didn't stop. He did love that about her, and even though he usually conceded to her sharing wishes this was one thing he did not want to share. This was his demon. It might have begun with her coming to D'rkenrealm, but that didn't mean she had any business getting involved in it. Besides, she wouldn't understand anyway. To Elizabeth, a man's pride and honor were most times in overkill. She would roll her eyes, tell him he was being a baby and to get over it. Reluctantly Magnus could admit that in all likelihood she was probably right, but that didn't mean he was ready to do it. “Are you going to plague me now with questions I am not ready to give answers to?” “No, baby, I'm just worried about you. You have a lot on your mind and I want to help.” “I'm fine, go back to sleep.” He dismissed her and Ella glowered at his back. “You know, if you don't start talking about it, you'll never get over it.” Probably not the best thing to say Ella thought, but damn it, she was tired of all 54 Forever Mine this pussy-footing around. She knew what was bothering him and she knew why it was bothering him, he was just too damn pigheaded to admit it. Magnus swung around and fixed her with a hard glare. “I don't want to talk about this, Elizabeth, okay, so change the subject… now.” Ella rolled her eyes. Whether he faced it now or later didn't really matter to her, but face it he would and sooner then he thought. “Fine, I'm sorry, we'll talk about something else.” She rolled out of bed and pulled her robe on. “You know, these nightmares are probably just occurring because underneath everything you've said, you're feeling the opposite.” “What are you talking about?” Magnus asked that question but what he was really saying was, 'You better not be talking about what I think you're talking about.' How Elizabeth would respond was his unknown factor. Either she would read his unspoken thoughts, which she could do considering their bond, or as she liked to do quite often - to keep him on his toes, as she says - was to play the obtuse card. It was her obnoxious single-minded way of getting him to talk about something he already told her he didn't want to talk about. “I'm talking about how deep down inside you know forcing Abby to be with Richard is a mistake.” Yep, he knew it. Magnus turned away, intent on not discussing it further. Ella’s anger got pricked. “Damn it, Magnus, we're going to discuss this whether you want to or not. This is our daughter, 'our' being the fundamental word here, lover. I have as much a right as you when it comes to something that deals with our children.” Exasperated with her tenacity, Magnus spun around. “Elizabeth, we've been over this a hundred - no, a thousand times. Abaigeal needs a protector. Richard is that person.” Walking over to stand in front of him, Ella rested her hands on his chest as she looked up into his vexed face. She softened her voice and played on the love she knew he had for his daughter. “Why are you rushing this? Why can you not just let things take their natural course? How do you know her true mate isn't out there somewhere, looking for her? How do you know there isn't a better man then Richard to love and protect your daughter? Someone you could truly respect.” She was all soft and loving, beseeching his fatherly feelings but he wouldn't give into it. He had to remain strong and keep his stance; he had to make her understand. “I don't, but it's irrelevant. Right now she needs someone to protect her.” Ella’s hands dropped to her sides and her own voice rivaled the chilliness of his. “She can take care of herself and if you ever really looked at her and saw her for what she is, you would know that.” Magnus threw his hands up in the air and walked away from her. His heart ached for what she was saying but he knew he was doing the right thing. Of course his Elizabeth would never relent and he knew that. So he was fully prepared for the guilt trip she was going to hit him with next. 55 Forever Mine “She doesn't love him. How could you give your only daughter to someone who will not make her happy?” Magnus walked back to Ella and cupped her face in his hands, his eyes softened with love as he stared into her eyes. “Ionuin, I understand your concern for Abaigeal but you must trust me in this matter. Richard is the right mate for her,” he softly said. “How can you say that when you know she doesn't love him?” “Because right now, whether she loves him or not isn't important.” he flatly stated. Then he cringed. That was the most moronic shit he ever said. Ella gasped and stepped away from him before she slapped him. Her face showed the outrage she felt and inside their bond was violently vibrating with livid disbelief. “What? How can you say that? I can't believe that you - out of all the people in the world, the father of seven children conceived out of love! - can say that love is not important!” Magnus put up his hand. “Hold up, I'm not saying love isn't important, of course it is. But in this particular case, her safety must come first.” “Magnus, she is not a weakling. She is strong, intelligent and perfectly capable of taking care of herself!” Magnus' face was a mask of anger. His patience was at an end and he really did not like what she was implying. “Gods blood, woman! I know Abaigeal is all of those things but these are trying times. There's a price on her head! Whether she is capable or not is a non-issue, she needs the protection of a mate.” Ella turned away from him and started to restlessly tap her finger on her chin. It was the same old argument that a woman, no matter how strong she was, was still defenseless without a mate to protect her. It was bullshit of course, but it was what Magnus believed - hell, it was what everyone in this dimension believed. Ella sighed with frustration. Sometimes she really missed her own dimension - at least there, women's liberation was in full swing. Magnus walked up behind her and laid his hands on her shoulders, squeezing lightly as he leaned down and kissed her on the neck. “I know that's hard for you to accept Ella but it's the way it is and you know that. I'm only thinking of her welfare.” “No, you're thinking of your welfare, not hers.” His hands dropped from her shoulders and he frowned. “What does that mean?” Ella turned and faced him, her eyes full of accusations. “It means you are being an arrogant snob! There are only two reasons you want her mated to Richard. The first is because he’s a blubbering weakling who you can control and the other is because you think he's some sort of vampire royalty.” Magnus’ eyes bulged with incredulity and his face turned red. “You think I'm deciding my daughter's fate on bloodlines?” He roared indignantly. “That is the stupidest thing I have ever heard in my life! When have I ever done anything or said anything that would make you think that?” 56 Forever Mine “Oh please, don't play all innocent with me. I heard you talking to Slade. I heard you tell him that Richard was the perfect choice because he was the great, great, yadda-yadda-yadda grandson of Nigel Templeton! Do you deny it?” “No. I did say that, so what?” “So what? So who cares who his grandsire was? If lineage is so important to you, then why not choose Nikolai? The Goddess knows his bloodlines are a helluva lot more dignified then Waxy Wexler's!” All animation left Magnus’ face with that comment. It was stone. Cold, hard stone. “Why would you say such a thing?” Magnus’ voice chilled Ella to the bone and she took a step back. Maybe she went too far with that. She had many reasons for saying that but clearly now was not the time to broach the subject. So instead, she played dumb. “What?” Magnus eyes turned to slits as he studied her hard. He knew her all too well. She was brewing some sort of mischief in that beautiful head. “Why would you mention Nikolai when we're discussing Abaigeal?” Ella rolled her eyes. “Goddess above, don't get your panties in a bunch. I was only using him as an example that's all.” His instincts said she was lying, but she held his gaze without flinching. He sighed, running a hand through his hair. He was just brooding about the Ox and she knew that, that's why she mentioned him. It was probably just another twisted way of hers to get him to talk about it. “It's a stupid example and so is this whole conversation!” Magnus angrily turned away and gave her his back. Then he dropped a bomb on Ella so powerful, she was completely blindsided. “I'm through talking about this, Elizabeth, it’s done.” His voice lowered to that of a whisper. “I signed the contract with Richard.” Ella could only stare at him as shock waves rippled through her and pain lanced her heart with one sharp jab. She expected this to happen at some point, but not this soon. “What? You signed the contract? How could you do that?” Magnus couldn’t turn around. He was barely holding it together as it was, the pain Elizabeth felt sliced through their bond like the deepest betrayal. Her voice was hitching, she was on the verge of tears and he had caused it. Her ravaged feelings coursed through him, pelting him with wave upon wave of distraught pain and scalding blinding fury. Ella grabbed his arm and violently turned around. “You went behind my back!” She screamed. “You deliberately waited until I wasn’t here to have your stupid little secret meeting! You son of a bitch!” She slapped him, and it wasn’t soft either; it rattled Magnus’ head so hard, he was going to have one pounding migraine. He saw her fist curling, preparing to sock him with a mean right hook. He grabbed her wrists and pulled her against him as her eyes became glassy pools of rage and misery. “How could you betray me like this?” Magnus’ scowl was frightening hearing that. “You’re being dramatic Elle, I did not betray you. I would never betray you!” he heatedly replied. 57 Forever Mine Ella shook her head. “Yes, you did. This is a betrayal of my trust. This is a disloyalty to our commitment to each other and to our bond.” Stunned by her words, feeling the truth of them inside his soul, Magnus released her wrists and stood back a step. His face reflected the agony her words caused. Ella sensed his misery. She felt for him, she truly did, but she could not, would not, relent in this. “Magnus, please listen to me. I beg of you. Think of your daughter. Think of the warm and wonderful woman she is, how she is so alive with laughter and love. Now think of her with Richard. Imagine her mated to a rigid man who has no idea how to even smile. Do you think that will not change her? Do you think she will continue to be the open loving woman you know today? No, baby, she won’t. She’ll become cold, she’ll hate him, and most importantly, she’ll grow to hate you.” Magnus flinched as the realty of Elizabeth’s words hit him with their taciturn truth. That was a possibility but deep down inside Magnus knew he was doing the right thing. The pain he felt was to be expected he just had to wait it out. He had to believe that eventually Abaigeal and Elizabeth would both come to understand why he did it. He could not believe anything else. Ella watched Magnus closely waiting for a reaction. Unfortunately, he closed the bond and his face was frozen. She had no idea what he was thinking. “Baby, are you truly willing to commit your only daughter to a mating where she will never have children and never experience love?” Ella asked. Magnus’ heart stumbled with but he pushed it down. He must remain steadfast. He was confident with his decision; he just had to make her see it. “Richard is a good man. In time, she will grow to love him,” he quietly said. Ella turned away. She didn't know what else to say and, frankly, she was tired of trying to make him see reason. She felt like he just squeezed the very life out of her heart. Ever since she had come to D'rkenrealm, she had been fighting to stand by his side. She understood her place when it came to political decisions, she always had and she did not resent him for that because it was just the world in which they lived in. But their children were an entirely different matter and she was sick and tired of being pushed aside like her thoughts didn't matter. She was angry, angrier than she had ever been, and she was exceedingly hurt by his unwillingness to comprise. Turning back around to face him, Ella opened the bond and let him feel the full extent of her raging emotions. “Magnus, I cannot stand idly by and watch as you commit my daughter to a cold and loveless future. I beg you, please, do not do something you will regret.” “Meaning?” Magnus waited for the words he knew would come next. “Meaning I can't live with a man that would condemn his only daughter.” Magnus sighed. “Elle, you threaten me with that once a week. It's sort of lost its shock effect.” 58 Forever Mine He had the gall to smirk and Ella’s face turned red. Her feelings were nothing but one big fucking joke to him. Her hands turned to hard fists at her side. Her entire being wanted to lash out at him in anger. Behind that anger was a deep sadness that he really did not care one bit how she felt on the matter. It was like she didn't even exist. “Really, you think? Well then how about this for shock effect: I'm going to Scotland. You have one week until the Summit. If you destroy that contract within that time then you won't have to worry about me annoying you with my insignificant concerns regarding our children because I'll be leaving you, and this time you won't be able to find me.” She grabbed her bag and headed toward the outer room. It was the weekly threat but at least once a year, she followed through with it. She always came back because, well, he would find her. But something inside told Magnus she was dead serious. Magnus’ eyes hardened. She was out of her mind if she thought she could leave him. He would never let her go. He would track her down anywhere and when he got her back in his grasp, she would pay for making him suffer. “Elizabeth, think long and hard on what you're saying.” Ella stopped at the door. “I have, baby, I suggest you do the same,” she softly said over her shoulder. Magnus watched her walk out of the room knowing the line had finally been drawn. He wasn't too concerned. Oh, he knew she was serious, but she was also highly upset. She just needed to cool down for a couple of days. He would let her go to Scotland without him but when he got there, she better be ready to apologize. Walking into the outer room, Ella quickly headed to the closet, grabbed her clothes and shoved them in her bag. She didn't bother changing; the quicker she got out of this room the better. Opening the door, she went to the empty chamber next door to get dressed. When she was done, she stormed out of the room, slamming the door as she went. Why did he always act like the biggest jerk when it came to their daughter? He never listened to his mate. Oh no, Goddess forbid he should stop for just one second and listen to me, Ella thought angrily as her feet pounded down the stairs. It was times like this she wondered how the hell she had survived living with such an unmovable man for over a hundred years and not staked him dead a thousand times over. But she knew the answer to that; it was because no matter how much the man made her crazy, she loved him more than life itself. She loved him as much now as she did when she first came here, perhaps even more. He was still the same man he’d always been but at times he seemed distant and lost, like something was missing. Ella knew what that something was she’d known even before it took place. 59 Forever Mine Her visions had been foggy back then but as the years went by they became more concrete and tangible, something she could rely on and trust. It was her visions, or rather one vision in particular, that made her desperate for another child. After going through six pregnancies and all but one of them being hard and long on her, Magnus said he’d had enough and didn’t want her to go through it anymore. She had been okay with that until she had the one vision that changed everything. She had seen Abby smiling up at her mate, her eyes filled with a deep soul binding love that was astonishing even to Ella who was blessed with such a love herself. Then she glimpsed the faint grey outline of children running and playing in the background and their sweet happy giggles filling her ears. It was a beautiful image and if Ella had ever once thought she was doing the wrong thing that image restored her faith. She would do everything she had to do to make sure Abby got that future, even if that meant enduring the wrath of her mate. She was totally serious about leaving him if he didn't rip up that contract with Richard. It would be the hardest things she ever did, but she would do it because sometimes the only way to get through a thick skull of an alpha male was to take away the one thing he thought he didn't need. For now she would let him fester in guilt. She had things to do. No doubt Magnus had thrown her a curve ball with his announcement but it didn’t matter, it only meant she had to move up her plans. If those plans necessitated sending the lamb to the lion’s den, then so be it. This was about destiny. This was about securing the future of not only her family but of the world, and it all rested on one thing – love. ********** If Abby never heard the word ‘love’ ever again, she’d be happy. Her evening at The Pit sucked. Her brothers, who were single-minded in their duty of protecting her, all based on love of course, and never giving her a moment of peace, sucked. Her life sucked and she was miserable. Of course, her brothers and her every day little life things were nothing new but she now had the added annoyance of being nervous. For love of the Gods, she didn’t get nervous! Yet with every day that went by and the Summit grew nearer, the more unsure she got. Her brow crinkled as an image of Richard came to mind. The thought of being with him the rest of her life was dismal. Hell, dismal wasn’t even the word, it was way too non-descriptive. The idea made her want to shoot herself in the head. Okay, so maybe that’s a bit dramatic but it fully explained how she was feeling. She was starting to feel more trapped than she ever had and the idea of running away and hiding was sounding downright splendid to her. Find a nice little quite place to be alone and do what she wanted to do without the fear of her 60 Forever Mine family coming to intrude on her personal space. Goddess, that sounded lovely too bad it was farfetched. She’d never make it out the front door. Everything just seemed so much more difficult these days and she blamed it on her sexcapade adventure with the General. The sensations he invoked in her, the need that even now pulsed in her blood, made it impossible to stand idly by while her father planned her life for her. Being with the General had showed her a world she never imagined could exist. A world filled with passion and unbelievable pleasure. A world she would never get mated to Richard. Goddess, she just wished that for once in her life someone would listen to her. She was an intelligent person, and while she might not yet know what she wanted, she was a hundred percent sure on what she didn’t want, and that was Richard. “It’s too early in the morning for such depressing thoughts.” The hands on her shoulders that gently squeezed had Abby jumping out of her skin. “Gods blood, Tiernan, you scared the crap out of me!” she admonished her older brother who had come from out of nowhere. “I know you get off on sneaking up on people like that, but you’re giving the rest of us heart attacks.” The soft chuckle of amusement was followed by a quick kiss to the back of her head. “I missed you too, Imp. So, what are you doing up?” Abby turned and leaned against the window. She crossed her arms over her chest as she scrutinized Tiernan strolling over to the other side of the room and sitting down. She hadn’t seen him in a while but he looked the same. His long, exceedingly thick black hair was as shiny and perfect as ever as it lay tamely down his shoulders and against his perfect Armani dark blue suit. His six-foot-six lean muscled frame sat in the oversize sofa with a haughty elegance of ownership. He wasn’t looking at her, he was picking at some misbegotten piece of lint that had the gall to place itself on his pants. Picking it up, he looked at it quietly, those piercing all seeing gray eyes, scowled in arrogant irritation right before he flicked it away then finally looked at her with a smile that made grown women giggle like school girls. Of course she wasn’t one of those women but she also wasn’t immune to it either. The third oldest Mac Branain just had that something about him that was mysteriously sexy and intriguing. There really was only word to sum him up: perfect, from the roots of his perfect hair down to the perfect toes that were on his perfect feet. She frowned. Goddess, he made her want to vomit. That feeling only intensified when the gleam in his eyes turned a bit too perceptive for her peace of mind. Abby shifted on her feet as Tiernan continued to stare at her quietly, like he was reading every single thought in her head and seeing all the things she had been hiding from everyone, including herself, in the past three months. Her frown turned darker, another annoying habit of her brother’s, his acute intelligence and uncanny ability to know every single thing that was going on. “What?” She irately asked. 61 Forever Mine Her discomfort grew as seconds ticked by without a word from Tiernan, just his all-seeing orbs swimming in the deepest parts of her soul. But then a smirk appeared on his lips and his gaze turned less obtrusive. He shrugged, “I guess it’s been longer than I thought since the last time I saw you.” His tone was casual but his gaze sharpened. “You're different.” Abby gazed back through lowered lids. “What do you mean, different?” Tiernan elegantly shrugged a shoulder. “Turning twenty-five seems to have suited you. You appear to be well… satisfied.” His eyes twinkled with shrewd arrogance. Abby didn’t know how she kept hers from bulging out of her head. Tiernan chuckled then patted the seat next to him. “Come, Imp, sit beside me. Let’s… talk.” The moment Abby sat down Tiernan laid an arm on her shoulders and tugged her against his side. He breathed in deeply, squeezing her. Abby felt like a mouse in a maze as he naturally picked up on the one thing she had been successfully hiding from everyone. “Pill or potion?” She instinctively tensed but then relaxed. This was Tiernan, he wouldn't freak out about her lack of virginity - it was the reason she had been waiting for him. “You know, you freak me out with that mind reading thing.” Abby said with a snort. Hearing her disgruntlement Tiernan smiled. “And yet you were waiting for me to come home so I could do just that. So which is it?” Abby gave him a sideways glare because as usual, he was right. “Potion.” “Was it your choice?” Tiernan’s voice was strained and the hand on her shoulder tightened as he waited to hear her answer. Not wanting him to get the wrong idea, Abby quickly answered. “Oh God, yes, very much so.” Satisfied with her answer, Tiernan smiled. He always knew she would find someone who would tempt her to break out of her invisible cage. She was too much like their mother in that regard. If there had been someone Abby wanted, she would have found a way to have him. The fact she held onto her virginity as long as she did, even with their father’s ridiculous actions, told Tiernan there was much more to this story. He wondered who it was, but there was no point asking because she wouldn't tell him. Besides, secrets never stayed secrets for long. “Do you love him?” he quietly asked. “No, at least I don't think so. I mean, I've never been in love so I don't really know how I should feel.” Her brow crinkled with irritation. “I don't think I want to be in love. It seems too… suffocating.” She sighed; it was troubled and irate. “What I do know is that I think about him, all the bloody time. It's very annoying.” She sounded very much put out by that. Tiernan softly chuckled. Abby glared sideways at him. “Yeah, funny for you, but for me it sucks.” She threw her hands up in the air. “Everything sucks! My entire life is just one big cesspool of suckiness and no one cares!” 62 Forever Mine Tiernan reared back and looked at his sister slumping in her seat and pouting like a three-year-old. It was quite unattractive. “You know that’s not true, everyone cares about you. Your problem is they care too much.” “Exactly!” Abby exclaimed with dramatic flair. Tiernan smirked and continued. “Your other problem is that you let yourself be drawn into the bullshit. So, in reality, if your life sucks, you have no one to blame but yourself.” Huh? Abby turned frigid eyes on her brother. “So, you’re saying this is my fault?” Wearing a smile of brotherly affection and patience Tiernan said, “No, Imp, what I’m saying is that you let dad manipulate you by falling in line with everything he wants. If you stood up to him and held your ground, your life wouldn’t be as sucky as you claim it to be.” Abby quietly stared at Tiernan for one more second then slumped back in her seat. Her eyes watered and her voice was whisper soft. “You’re right. I’m such a pussy.” Tiernan grinned but Abby didn’t notice; she was too busy wallowing in self-pity. “I can’t even tell him how much I despise Richard.” If there was one person in the world that still meant anything to Tiernan, it was his baby sister, so her sadness made him want to strangle their father. He knew how it felt to have someone else pulling your strings, it wasn’t pleasant still Abby’s situation was not as bad as she thought it was. Tiernan tenderly smiled and hugged her. “Don’t worry Imp you’ll figure it out.” Finished giving his brotherly advice, which Abby considered wasn’t really any sort of advice at all. “That’s it? That’s all the wise Tiernan wisdom you’re going to give me?” He pondered her question for one second before staring her dead in the eye and flatly answering, “yes.” Abby snorted, she should have known. Tiernan was great to talk to because she could tell him anything and he would never condemn her for it, which was great. The bad thing was that he breathed obscurity and mystery. She rarely ever got an answer that was direct and to the point. They were typically sketchy and convoluted, and sometimes confused her even more. Still, the funny thing was, that she always walked away from these talks feeling a tad bit better. Tiernan stood up and headed toward the hall. He stopped in the threshold to gaze back at his sister who was staring into space. She was going to fight her destiny with everything she had in her. It was inevitable. He grinned with anticipation. It was going to make for some interesting entertainment. “Oh, Abby?” Abby turned and looked at him like a lost little puppy. “Yeah?” “Don’t forget your gloves.” The look of total bewilderment on her Abby’s face had Tiernan chuckling as he walked out. 63 Forever Mine What the hell had that meant? Abby didn’t know and frankly she was too tired to figure it out. Reaching her room she closed the door, ripped off her dress, put on a tank top, then fell into bed with a lifeless thud as one blaring thought occurred to her. Tiernan was right; it was her own fault. If she didn’t accept everything her father did then maybe things wouldn’t be so bad. She snorted. Like it really mattered what she said or did. Her father would still do whatever he wanted. If her mom couldn’t get him to change his mind, no one could. Closing her eyes, she took a breath and let the silence of the room wash over her in therapeutic waves. Milaya… Her eyes snapped open then she slammed her fists down on the bed. Damn it, she had to stop thinking of him. She had more important things to brood on than strong arms with hands that seemed to know exactly where and how to touch her. She should be thinking of what she was going to do about Richard as opposed to a hot mouth that had kissed her as if she were his lifeline. Goddess, she was doing it again! A wave of self-reproach flowed through her which drew a snort of disgust from her lips. She couldn't even stop herself from thinking about how much she thought about him, that was how pathetic she was. It was pointless to fight it. She should know that by now, because she realized rather quickly that it didn't matter how hard she tried to. No matter what she was doing, at some point in the minuscule moments of her life, she would remember midnight blue eyes that turned to pools of ebony wonderment. She would recall with absolute clarity the way it felt to be in his arms and the feeling of him throbbing inside her with life. Gods, the memories made her tingle all over. Unfortunately, it also made her feel like a fraud. She indulged in the heady memories but at the same time she denied them. She didn't want to feel this powerfully wicked need for a vampire. Emotions that concentrated made her feel vulnerable. It left her with no defenses and she did not want to be in that position. As a result, she was constantly at odds - desires versus fears - it was an inner battle that was driving her crazy. The fact her nightly dreams were all about the pleasure and never the fear made her worry. She was sure there had to be some sort of stupid Freudian explanation for that one. She had to admit though, that being able to think about him without fear wasn't such a bad thing - at all. She closed her eyes as memories took control and slumber overcame her weary mind. It wasn’t long before he was there, holding her - touching her with a hunger that thrilled her to her core. She felt him inside her. He moved with hard plunging strokes, stretching her, completing her. He was feeding her body with endless pleasure that was so amazing. There were no other emotions involved 64 Forever Mine except those of lust and heat. She was relishing all the earth-shattering sensations that were cumulating, ready to explode and fill her with numbing ecstasy. Yes! Yes! Yes, Niko… “Abby…” The hand on her shoulder abruptly awoke her, shattering every last remnant of the dream and dissolving the orgasmic bliss she was so close to reaching. No! Don’t let it end! “Abby, wake up.” Goddess above, could she not even sleep in peace! “Go away, Shane,” Abby groggily mumbled into her pillow but that blasted hand that she was ready to chop off was annoyingly persistent and proceeded to rattle her head as the gentle prodding turned to rapid shaking. “Abby, get up, we have to go.” Get up! She felt like she just went to bed. Lifting her face off her nice squishy pillow, Abby looked up through blurry sleepy eyes and into a face of someone who looked refreshed and rejuvenated. She frowned. “You got to bed later than me, how the hell do you look as fresh as a daisy?” Shane shrugged. “Because I need less sleep than you.” Abby glowered then dropped her head back into the pillow. It just wasn’t fair. Both she and Shane were one hundred percent Shikar so they should have the same metabolism but for some reason they didn’t. Shane could go for days without sleeping and still be functional. If she missed two days of sleep, she was a zombie, and her dear loving brother took great pleasure in rubbing that in her face. What an… “A-hole.” She received a sturdy smack on her ass for that comment. “Ow!” “Nice way to talk in the morning. Now, come on. Get your lazy ass up and out of bed, we've got a plane to catch.” Abby was instantly awake. It was amazing how quickly the body could move and how clear the mind got when there was incentive, not to mention how fast pain registers to the brain. Standing up, Abby frowned as she rubbed her burning derrière and asked, “What's going on?” Shane walked over to the window. His shoulders were stiff as he stood with his hands behind his back. He appeared to be in deep thought. “I don't know.” He softly answered. Opening up a drawer, Abby pulled out a pair of worn blue jeans and a black t-shirt. “Okay, then where are we going?” To hell and back, Shane thought. Abby was excited. A mission was exactly what she needed to get her head on straight and out of the lust-filled clouds. She needed to think about something more grounded in reality instead of obsessing over a man she had no business even thinking about, let alone having wet dreams of. “So, where we headed?” she happily asked. 65 Forever Mine “Russia.” In the process of pulling her probably way too tight jeans on, Abby stopped in mid-hop and lost her footing. She fell forward; her hands landed against the dressing table, rattling it hard and knocking over the perfume bottles that sat atop it. Shane's green eyes scrutinized Abby questioningly “Are you feeling alright? You weren't drinking last night, were you?” Abby frowned. “What? I don't drink, you know that. Okay well, except for the occasional drink every now then, but I am not a boozer.” Shane studied her for one more second, shrugged that perfectly toned shoulder, then turned back around toward the window. Abby was grateful he turned away because she was certain she had to be as white as a ghost. Standing up, she glowered at her jeans as she finally pulled them up and over her ass. Sucking in her stomach, she yanked the zipper up then pulled her tshirt on over her tank top. “Why am I being sent to Russia?” The instant the word rolled out of her mouth the very prominent image of one delicious Russian General filled her head. So much for controlling her treacherous thoughts, Abby inwardly cursed as she walked into the closet and grabbed her backpack. “You're going to Moscow. There's a man there by the name of Boris Klinkoff. You're to do reconnaissance and nothing more.” Shane firmly said. As Abby skirted around the room packing her bag and trying to build some sort of mental block against the onslaught of memories bombarding her, Shane turned around and pierced her with a hard forest green stare. “Did you hear me, Abby?” Abby stopped what she was doing and met Shane’s gaze, “yeah, recon, got it,” then started to move around the room again. Shane's glare hardened as his uneasiness intensified. This had to be the absolute worst idea ever. If he knew what was going on then he might have understood, but he was left in the dark. He wasn’t told anything except to send Abby to Russia under the pretense that she and Bry would be spending a few days in Rio - which was where Shane was supposed to wait for her - before the Summit. That was the part he didn’t like. He went with Abby on every mission. He was never far away from her should she need him. This time, he would be thousands of miles away. She would truly be on her own, for the first time, and that left stark fear running through him that he didn’t like. Damn, he guessed he was more like Liam then he ever knew. From out of the corner of his eye, Shane watched as Abby bustled about the getting her gear together, he scowled. He knew his sister too well. She was an exceptional fighter who could handle anything that came her way but she had one Achilles' heel: she was too compassionate. While that was a good trait her empathetic nature could be her downfall. She had a tendency to disobey orders and rush into things without thinking them through. Russia, the home of the men who would like nothing more 66 Forever Mine than to get their claws in her, was not the place for her to to gung-ho with other agendas, no matter how well-placed they were. Taking two steps toward her, Shane lowered his voice so he wouldn't wake the rest of the house, yet it was just as firm as if he'd shouted out loud. “Abby, are you listening to me, nothing else! Don't get any ideas in that act-first, think-last head of yours. You don't talk to anyone. You don't look at anyone else but Klinkoff. And for the love of the Goddess above do not get any lame-brain ideas of rescuing anyone of any kind. Do you understand me? You have one week to learn whatever you can about Klinkoff and get back to Rio.” Shane sounded so harsh, almost as if he were angry, that it rippled through Abby and she felt a frisson of fear for some stupid reason but she pushed it away. He was being more strict than usual but she was being sent into Russia, and from the sound of it, he wasn't going with her which explained why he was so stressed. She lowered her gaze to the floor. Russia, Gods blood, she didn't want to go to Russia! What if, for some freak reason, she saw him? What the hell would she do? And why the hell was her heart pumping with excitement? Why did she feel as if that particular scenario was something she wanted…very…very much? Shane walked up to Abby and took her chin in his grip, forcing her head up so she couldn't look away. “If I see one speck of blood on your sword when you return, I'm going to kick your ass, you got that?” Regardless of his concern, Abby didn't appreciate his comments. Her eyes crossed and she yanked her chin out of his hold. “Yes, Shane, I got it. What the hell crawled up your ass today anyway?" He looked taken aback with her sharp response. His hand dropped to his side, his face softened and he spoke to her in the tone she was accustomed to hearing, soft and affectionate. “I'm sorry, Iggy, I just worry about you.” Abby smiled as she placed her hands on his shoulders and lifted herself up to place a tender kiss on his cheek. Though her heart was pounding in her chest, she managed to sound in control and confident when she spoke. “Don't worry, bro. I'll be fine.” 67 Forever Mine CHAPTER FOUR Moscow Russia Don’t worry, bro, I’ll be fine? That had been the most blasé thing Abby ever said because she definitely had not felt indifferent with the idea of jumping on a plane and going to Russia. Now, here she was, crouched low in the bushes across the street from Boris Klinkoff's Moscow townhouse. She wasn't feeling any more laid back then she had been yesterday and, her hands were freezing. Why? Because she forgot her damn gloves! She cursed Tiernan. How did he know she would be going to Russia? And why the hell didn’t he just come right out and say it? At least then she could have prepared herself but no, he had to be Mr. Mysterious. Breathing out slow and methodically, Abby tried to clear her mind and concentrate on the task at hand. It was late and the street was quiet as snow gently drifted down, adding to the snow that already blanketed the city. It was truly beautiful and she savored the peace and serenity that came with it. A light breeze blew and cold air danced across her face. Her body responded with a slight shiver even though the cool air did not touch her naked skin. She was wearing another one of her insulated cat suits. She had ten of them, each one made just for her. She never particularly cared for this one, her personal preference ran more toward the dark-colored suits than the light ones, but that changed the moment she noted the absence of memories when she put this one on. Too bad she couldn't wear it on all her missions, but unless she was somewhere where it was snowing, it was a beacon. She stared at the house across the street, wondering again why she was here. How was she to know what to look for if she didn't have any firsthand information to begin with? And she didn't even have much time to do it in! What could she possibly learn hiding out in a bush? If today was any indication, the answer to that was not much… at all. This had to be the strangest mission she’d ever been sent on, but regardless of how screwed up she thought it was, it was still a mission, which meant she had a job to do: reconnaissance and back to Rio. Goddess, she wished she was there now. While she loved the snow and didn't mind the cold, the idea of laying out in nothing but her itsy bitsy bikini and enjoying the sun's rays - not to mention all the fun she and Bry have ogling the half-naked hotties - sounded damn skippy to her. But she wasn't enjoying those tempting things, nope she was here…in Russia of all the freaking places in the world…watching a man she had no idea why she was watching to begin with. 68 Forever Mine Yep, it was definitely a strange one. It was a good thing her prey was such a full of beans guy to watch. Boris Klinkoff was an interesting old kook. He was round in the belly. He had short blonde hair that stuck to his head like he had way too much hair gel on either that or the man seriously needed to take a shower. He had a round, kind face with big blue eyes and he was always smiling like he hadn't a care in the world. Over the past hours of shadowing Boris as he went along with his daily routine of shopping and meeting and greeting his neighbors, Abby kind of liked him. She had been tempted many times to go up to him and talk to him, but she stopped herself because that would be a definite no-no. This wasn't her first reconnaissance mission so she was use to the endless hours of doing nothing but watching and listening, but that didn't mean she liked them. Actually, she hated them and considered it to be a waste of her talents. The only good thing about it was that it got her out of the house and away from her brothers. Then again, being in Russia was not exactly the place to be to keep her head out of the gutter. That became apparent when she found herself keeping one eye on Boris and the other eye scouring the streets for any sign of a mammoth with black hair and striking blue eyes. What the hell would she do even if she did see him? Stand there like an idiot with drool coming out of her mouth, that's what. Either that or she'd completely forget everything and jump his bones right there in the street and probably get her head taken off for it since he had no clue who she was. She sighed into the otherwise quiet night, completely disgusted because that fact really pickled her pride. It kind of pissed her off that he didn't know who she was. Of course, it was not his fault, she had been very adamant about not revealing herself, and she was glad she had been, but sometimes, when she really thought about it, it pushed her feminine sensibilities right over the edge. It didn't matter that her face had been hidden, a part of her felt that he should know exactly who she was and was certain that if their paths crossed right now he would without any doubt know she was the woman he took that night in Germany. Goddess, she had no business thinking any of these dangerous thoughts yet, once again, she couldn't stop. Maybe she was being too hard on herself. There was nothing wrong with thinking and dreaming of things right? Did it really matter? A part of her said yes. That allowing herself to dwell on such thoughts was bad because the desire she felt for Nikolai Kotova was too potent and too needy to remain as lust. What she felt for him had all the potential of growing into something else, and that was where the danger came in. Because she really didn't think she'd be able to handle something so…binding, if - and that was a really super-duper big if - it ever actually happened. Because, let's face it, that's exactly what that would be. When a male vamp claimed you - he claimed you. No, ifs, ands or buts about it - that shit was binding! She wasn't naïve, nor was she trying to delude herself like Bry thought, she knew exactly what it meant to a vamp if they took a virgin: ownership. It was stupid if you asked her, the alpha male ideology of being the 'only one,' which she totally did not get. What was the big deal if a woman had other lovers? She would think a man would prefer an experienced lover who was bold and 69 Forever Mine adventuresome instead of someone timid and meek. And let's not forget the utter hypocrisy of the whole thing to begin with because you know the males weren't virgins. She was pretty damn sure the General had to be the biggest freaking alpha male on the planet, he had that whole - and yes she can admit it, sexy - aura of superiority and confidence of one but then there was always the slight chance he didn't have those ideals. He was a solider after all, a battle hardened warlord who thought of battle tactics and death blows. He wasn't a man controlled by emotions and he definitely did not seem the type who held high regard to something as insignificant as love. Still, it was better to be safe than sorry because really, you never knew. She also couldn't forget the whole enemy issue either. She couldn't even begin to wonder how that would pan out with her father or her brothers. Well, thank the Goddess she didn't have to because he didn't know who she was. No, the only thing she seriously had to deal with was her own passions and desires; she had to get a grip on it, and soon. The Summit was only a few days away and like Bry said, he would be there. When and if she saw him, she had to feel and act as if they had never met. A car horn blew, drawing Abby back to where she was and what she was supposed to be doing. “Reconnaissance, Abby, you're not supposed to be brooding. You've done enough of that for the past three months,” she outwardly grumbled but turned her attention once more to the townhouse across the street. She had yet to see anything strange. No one but Klinkoff entered the house all evening. Why then did she suddenly see a shadow moving behind the curtain on the second floor? Nikolai wasn't feeling the relief he thought he would feel after finally coming to a resolution to his dilemma. Though it had only been a day since he made the decision and sent Boris the note, he hadn’t been able to contain his impatience, so he decided to pay his uncle a visit. Peeking out the window, he saw a black Mercedes sitting across the street - Arnost’s watch dogs. They were always there; watching Boris at all times to make sure Nikolai didn’t indulge in any impermissible meetings with his uncle – like this one. Turning away from the window, Nikolai started to pace. Unfortunately for Arnost and his lackeys, Nikolai knew where every one of them was so it was simple enough to find a way into the house where no one would see him. It was made even simpler when Boris had been kind enough to show him the secret passage. “Goddess save me, Nikolai, will you please sit down, your endless pacing is making me dizzy.” Boris’ gruff yet whiney voice disrupted Nikolai's thoughts. Nikolai stopped and glared at his uncle. His mouth opened but no words came out. Instead he shook his head, his black mane rustling about his angry face 70 Forever Mine in an almost fitful motion before once more resuming his pace on Boris' old and expensive Oriental rug. Boris sighed, watching Nikolai through eyes that felt as if they were going to pop out of his head. “Nikolai, we've been over this a thousand times already.” “Then we will go over it a thousand times more,” Nikolai answered, keeping the pace of his long strides on the rug. “Whatever for, the missive has been sent. There is nothing we can do now but wait.” Nikolai growled. “There is much to do, Boris. Have you forgotten what it is we are about? Do you seriously understand the enormity of what I'm about to do? The people that could get hurt? Do you?” Boris frowned. “Nikolai, I do not appreciate your comments. Of course I understand. I am not blind nor am I stupid.” He heaved another deep sigh and Nikolai turned away in irritation as Boris continued to talk. “We have gone over everything, over and over again. The plan is in motion. There is nothing more for us to do but play our parts, which, considering we've been doing for a hundred years, shouldn't be a problem.” Certainly Boris was right, but Nikolai could not help but feel uneasy with the whole thing. He had set himself upon a road that led to freedom and life, a road littered with potholes he really, really wanted to avoid at all costs. “Can you trust her?” Nikolai asked, switching back to the subject at hand. Boris snorted. “Trust that woman? The only thing I would trust from her is a good blow job.” Nikolai stopped short and swung sable eyes on Boris who already had his hand up in the air, stalling whatever it was Nikolai was about to say. “But in this case, yes. If there is one thing I can say for certain about that woman is that she is a lover, not a fighter. She detests this war as much as you and I. Believe me, she would much rather spread her legs for Arnost's men than chance breaking a nail killing them. She will see to it that the missive is delivered and she assured me she will speak on your behave.” “I still can't believe she agreed to do it at all. The last time I saw her, I rejected her advances; she was not too thrilled with me.” Nikolai rubbed his chin at the memory of a firm, solid left hook. Boris chuckled. “Yes, she told me about that, very funny indeed.” Boris' plump stomach jumbled with mirth as Nikolai pierced him with a biting look. “She is not used to being denied; it was the shock that is all.” Boris said. “Have no fear, Koyla, she holds no grudges. The woman does not lack for lovers I can assure you of that. “ Nikolai snorted then once more resumed his treading on the fine rug. “And what of my other request?” Boris' smile disappeared. “Yes, well, let me say this: it was the first time I have ever seen her at a loss for words. Well, at least for about two seconds.” That was a noteworthy statement because she was one of the sharpest females Nikolai ever met and she was never, ever at a loss for words. 71 Forever Mine Intrigued, Nikolai stopped and spun around, giving Boris his complete attention. “And?” “And she said she did not know who it was you were referring to but she did find the request interesting. As do I. Will you not tell me why you asked it?” Nikolai ignored Boris’ question and asked his own. “Did she say anything more?” Boris heaved yet another loud and heavy sigh, which was starting to grate on Nikolai's nerves. Shifting in his seat, Boris leisurely sipped his vodka; all the while Nikolai waited with growing impatience. “She asked why you wanted to know. When I told her I was not privy to that information, she said, with a conniving smile on her beautiful face I might add, that she had many warriors, but was not privy to the information I sought.” Boris chuckled. “I tell you, that woman is as evasive as they come.” Seeing the dark frown on Nikolai's face, Boris continued, “I told you she would require more information, Koyla. She is not the give everything-get nothing back type of woman.” Nikolai cursed under his breath. He knew that, damn it, but that was the only card he had to play in hopes of finding his little warrior. Regrettably, the answer he got did not give him the winning hand he sought. “I ask you again, Koyla, will you not tell me your interest in this one warrior?” “It does not concern you, Boris, just leave it at that.” And it didn't. It concerned only Nikolai and his little warrior. He had not even mentioned anything to Mikkel even though he knew his best friend was curious and had been since Germany. No, this was Nikolai's burden, his secret – no, scratch that - it was their secret. If there was one thing he learned from his little warrior it was that she lived in secrecy. She wore the mask of a Ninja, a highly secret society that was extremely particular about whom they trained. In fact, Nikolai was pretty sure there were only fifty of them currently in circulation around the world. Typically, they were of Eastern descent but he had heard of gifted Westerners being allowed entry into the society. Remembering the perfectly pronounced English his little warrior spoke told him there was definite legitimacy to that rumor. Clearly, the Sovereign of the Asian Territories’ response to Boris' query into a petite woman warrior sent to Germany three months ago was anything but honest. Sabrina knew she just wasn't willing to share the information. Nikolai would bet that even if he had told her why, she would still play dumb. He was left with the same question he'd been asking himself since then: who the hell was this warrior to elicit such secrecy? “Did you probe her?” he asked. Boris' eyes bulged. “Probe her? Nikolai, this is Sabrina we're talking about. The woman is the child of Carvilius; do you seriously think I, with my meager skills, could probe her?” He snorted. “I should say not. Besides, even if I could, she would block me with little effort.” “She's lying.” 72 Forever Mine Boris chortled. “I'm sure she is. She is many things and deceitful is definitely one of them. Perhaps if you were to give me more information, she would be more helpful,” he prodded. “No. There is no other information but that of which I gave you.” Nikolai turned away once more gazing out the window watching the snow fall, and… at the second black Mercedes that just pulled up. “It doesn't matter, I'll find out on my own.” Nikolai spun away from the window then marched toward the door. “It seems the dimwits have finally caught on, Dalibor is here.” Boris got up, walked toward the window and peeled the curtain back. Sure enough, there was that skanky little shit Dalibor. He sighed; he really hated garbage in his home. “I have to go.” Nikolai said. “Konstantin called me before I arrived. He and Arnost have insinuated themselves at the palace and have 'requested,'” Nikolai sneered, “my audience.” Boris spun around. “Do you think he suspects?” Nikolai shook his head. “No, I don't think so. The only other person that knows of our plans is Mikkel and he's about as readable as a book to a blind man. They probably just want to send me out again before the Summit, you know, get one last good slaughter in before the peace meeting.” Nikolai mockingly smirked as he watched Boris relax back in his chair. Though not his uncle by blood but by close association to his mother, Boris was someone Nikolai could always count on. He was Nikolai’s one and only link to his mother and sister. Why Boris was allowed to visit them and not Nikolai made Boris one big conundrum. He had a hold over Arnost and Konstantin that Nikolai could never figure out and most likely never would. Boris kept secrets tightly locked up, whether they were his or someone else’s, it didn’t matter. Unless he wanted you to know, chances are you would never learn of it. The suspicion that there was more to Boris' story screamed at Nikolai now just like it always did. He desperately wanted to know because, deep down, he felt that the answer to that question was just the beginning of a long line of answers to deeper questions. Boris might be the King of Taciturn, but Nikolai was the master of rooting out information. Nikolai pierced his uncle with an unbreakable gaze. “You know, one of these days, Boris, you are going to tell me the truth.” Boris took a drink of his vodka and raised his foot, resting it on his knee. He began to swirl the glass around as he studied the clear liquid, knowing exactly what Nikolai was not saying. “One day, Koyla…” His eyes lifted and met Nikolai's. “I won't have to.” Nikolai's eyebrow rose hearing the vague answer, but he didn't persist. Instead, he smirked and inclined his head. “So be it.” Boris returned his nod with one of his own. “Godspeed, Koyla.” After a brisk nod, Nikola left the same way he got in. Making his way from the back of the townhouse, he jumped from roof to roof until he reached his 73 Forever Mine own townhouse five blocks away. He made his way down to the garage and got in his Maserati. Turning the key, the smooth sports car roared to life. Nikolai checked his watch. It had been thirty minutes since Konstantin called, demanding he return to the palace. Too bad for him Nikolai was disinclined to give the man any kind of obedience. He always had been, so why start now? Like he told Boris, they probably wanted to send him out for one last mission before the Summit. Since Nikolai wasn't in any rush to add more notches against his soul, he decided they could wait. He had other responsibilities to take care of before he could leave Russia. He wasn't just their General; he also had a Palace to run and people who depended upon him, not to mention the new stallion he was looking to purchase from Kirill. He had to take care of all those things before he left for Scotland. As he pulled the car out of the garage and onto the snow packed street, it crossed his mind that perhaps he should call Konstantin and tell him when he would get back to the palace, but as he eased the car into third gear and the engine purred, filling him with a sense of freedom and joy, he nixed that idea. Fuck them, let them wait. He wasn't their fucking puppet. He would get back when he got back. And if there wasn't enough time for him to go out and do their dirty deeds, well then, too bad. As Nikolai drove west away from the townhouse, Abby, who was now observing four degenerate-looking men walk into Boris’ townhouse, completely disobeyed her orders to just observe and quickly flew across the street and jumped up the tree in front of the house. Climbing with uncanny speed and skill, she effortlessly worked her way through the branches until she reached the small balcony on the second floor. Swinging herself up, she landed quietly on the stone terrace then grabbed the knob to the door. Opening it she stepped inside the carpeted hallway then closed the door behind her with a silent click. “I want to know what he was doing here, Boris.” “Well, Dalibor, my greasy friend, perhaps if you told me of whom you were inquiring about, I could help you.” Boris’ lackadaisical answer had Dalibor swearing under his breath. Just once, just one damn time, he’d like to give the cheery fat fuck what he deserved death. Dalibor inclined his head to his comrades, who immediately rushed Boris. “Dalibor, what are you up to?” Boris tiredly asked. To Abby’s ears, Boris sounded bored and untroubled with his house guest, which made hearing the sound of flesh hitting flesh and then chairs scraping across the floor out of place. Flattening herself against the wall, Abby made her way down the hallway and toward the room at the end. Standing in the shadow, she peeked in through the open door. 74 Forever Mine Boris sat in a chair wearing what looked like a pair of striped pajamas. His bare feet were tied to the legs of the chair and his arms were tied behind him. He had one black eye and blood dripping from his mouth. Standing in front of him was one vamp, fangs bared, snarling crossly as he drew his fist back and landed another devastating blow to Boris’ nose, which started to bleed as badly as his mouth. Heedless of the strength of that strike, Boris smiled at the vamp who punched him and then just as casually replied, “Really, Dalibor, these childish antics will not get you anything you seek because there is nothing here for you.” Abby's eyes followed the sound of leather gloves impatiently snapping against a naked hand to see another man, this one dressed to the nines in a dark brown suit and black tie. He had greasy black hair tied back at the nape of his neck and a horribly long and jagged scar running down the entire length of the right side of his face. It skipped over his eye and when he tilted his head up to the ceiling, pondering Boris’ words, she could see that the scar ran down the length of his neck then disappeared under his shirt. The blemish made the harsh lines of the man's face even crueler than it already was. It was also the marking of one notorious man. Dalibor Hanak, Count Moravec's enforcer and executioner. Boris must have been a very, very bad boy in order to get a visit from Hanak. “You’re lying. My men saw him enter not twenty minutes ago.” Dalibor said. Boris laughed. “Well then, there’s the problem. Your men are as brain dead as you. Perhaps it was a ghost, ah?” The big vamp once more punched a smiling Boris in the face. Then he pulled out a knife and pressed it against Boris' thigh. Slowly he drew it across the top. Blood gushed out of the gaping wound and ran down Boris’ leg, pooling on the Persian carpet at his feet. A grimace of pain flashed on his face, but he didn't utter a sound. Abby watched it all with rising fury. Whether or not someone deserved it, inflicting harm to a person when they could not protect themselves was nothing but a coward's act. The fact that she had grown to like Boris in the short time she'd been watching him only increased her fury on his behalf. Vladimir moved the knife to Boris' other leg and dragged it against his flesh. This cut was deeper and Boris could no longer hold back a scream of agony. Nor could Abby take watching the bloody scene anymore. Without any thought to Shane's instructions, Abby stepped forward, but in her anxiousness to reach Boris her elbow brushed against a vase sitting on a nearby table. It crashed to the floor. Silence ensued. “Vladimir, go check it out.” Dalibor said. Stilling holding the knife Vladimir turned and headed straight for Abby. The second he walked into the threshold of the doorway, she jumped and kicked out with both feet. 75 Forever Mine Vladimir went flying backwards and landed on Boris. Under the weight of two big men, the chair's back cracked and they both tumbled back into the two vamps standing behind the chair. Within seconds, Vladimir and his cohorts shot to their feet and focused their attention on the newcomer. It was exactly what Boris was hoping for. He slipped his hands in front of him then began working on the ropes. Dalibor slowly rose from his chair and faced the doorway as Vladimir took vigilance beside him. “Hey there, ugly, did I miss the party?” Abby bantered. Dalibor's face, which Abby expected to remain aloof and cold - as was his reputation - suddenly turned brilliant. “My, my… what do we have here - a spy, here in Moscow?” His eyes never left Abby as he chided Boris. “Boris, Boris, Boris, either you are becoming way too bold or just plain stupid.” Abby's eyes crossed. “I don’t think you should be calling anyone stupid, Stupid. My friend’s telling you the truth. So, why don’t you just take your goons and leave… before someone gets hurt.” Dalibor’s eyes turned cold as his smile faded. “Your voice, it sounds familiar.” He smiled, “Ah, of course! We meet again, Cherie. I must tell you, I never thought you would be this rash to come back to Russia, at least by yourself. After all, things didn’t go so good for you last time you were here.” Abby remained silent. She had no idea what the hell he was talking about but it was obvious he thought she was her mother. Too bad that thought didn’t last. She watched as Dalibor’s gaze raked down her form then back up to her mask-covered face. She saw the exact moment when he realized she wasn’t who he thought she was and she knew this was going to turn very, very bad. “No, you cannot be her; you are a bit too tall except you sound like her. That can only mean one thing.” Stepping closer, he gave her a greasy smile and bowed. “Allow me to introduce myself…” “I know who you are, you sick fuck. Now, untie my round friend there. You do it fast enough and I might just let you live.” Dalibor laughed as the vamps slowly moved toward Abby. No one was paying attention to Boris, who just got the ropes off and was now standing and slowly backtracking to the rear door of the room. “I know I'm a funny chick, but that… that wasn't meant to be funny,” Abby coldly said. Dalibor stopped laughing and looked back with a serene and truly apologetic face. “Of course, I apologize, Miss Mac Branain, where are my manners.” The stark silence in the room was numbing. Even Boris, who had managed to open the door and get halfway out, stopped in his tracks to gaze at the only daughter of the Overlord. Abby's eyes made brief contact with Boris' before she quickly looked back at Dalibor. “What… what did you say?” Mockery was replaced with cold determination as Dalibor took a step forward. “I said, Miss Mac Branain, as in Miss Abaigeal Mac Branain. Seventh 76 Forever Mine child and only daughter of the Overlord, Magnus Mac Branain, and his mate Elizabeth.” Abby quickly scanned back to Boris. They made eye contact once more then, with a small smirk on his lips and a slight inclination of gratitude, Boris quickly and quietly left the room, completely undetected by Dalibor or the vamps. “I don’t need to be a vampire to smell all that disgusting goodness in you, Cherie, it surrounds you like a sickening halo. Besides, your voice is just like that bitch mother of yours,” Dalibor’s face cinched in disdain. Abby's eyes darkened furiously. If there was one thing in the world that pushed her buttons, it was insulting her mother. With her emotions running ragged, she wasn't aware of anything but the creep in front of her, especially not the vamp that was sneaking up behind her. “Fuck you, Scarface, I'll show you how good I am! Come on!” The last thing she saw was Dalibor's ugly ass smile right before a big fist pounded the top of her head and knocked her out. Dalibor walked over to the still body on the floor. He got down on his haunches and raised her head off the floor. Turning to where Boris was supposed to be sitting, he cursed when he saw the chair empty and the tangled rope on the floor, but the small warm body laying still next to him reminded him of who fell right into his hands. He turned his attention to Vladimir. “Boris escaped.” Vladimir turned on a growl and headed out to follow him but Dalibor stopped him. “Forget it. He's not important anymore.” Looking down, he addressed Vladimir again. “Are you curious, Vladimir? At what she looks like? Not many know. I myself am one of the lucky ones, though by photograph only, never in person. Let us see what the mysterious Abaigeal Mac Branain looks like.” With that said, Dalibor pulled Abby’s mask off and a wave of dark blonde hair spilled out and onto the floor. “Mm, photographs do not lie; she is a beauty, is she not?” Dalibor ran his hand through her long wavy locks, his face a mask of marvel. “The technology of today is just amazing. Who would have thought such thin material would conceal this abundance of beautiful thick hair…so very feminine and glorious.” Dalibor stood then motioned to Vladimir who reached down and lifted Abby up then threw her over his shoulder. “Come, let us go. I have a most precious gift to impart on my master.” Dalibor had a large smile on his face as he walked out of the townhouse and into the snowy night with his four lackeys behind him and his gift to Arnost. Luck was truly on his side this night. He might have let Boris slip through but with the Mac Branain girl in his grasp he was certain the Count would be appeased and finally give him the praise he deserved. 77 Forever Mine CHAPTER FIVE Staraya, Russia The heavy oak doors were thrown wide open, causing the wrought iron hinges to creak under the heavy-handed battering of the vamp that opened it. The men standing guard quickly stepped back to avoid being slammed in the face by the hard wooden doors. Nikolai stormed through, slapping his gloves in agitation against his thigh as he briskly crossed the foyer. The guards did not speak to the large, obviously annoyed General nor did they glance his way. They swallowed nervously, hoping it was not something they did that drew the ire of their quick-tempered lord. Avoiding his gaze, they breathed out with relief as he quietly stormed his way through the great hall and down the softly lit hallway toward the study. He walked with long, agitated strides. Being summoned to your own home like a servant would do that to a man. He had taken care of everything he needed to before he left Moscow. Since he had necrotempered glass, he safely drove back to the palace, taking his sweet ass time, because as usual, when it came to obeying Konstantin's demands, all he felt was tedious boredom. He drew closer to the study at the end of the corridor. The door was slightly ajar and there was a soft glow of amber flickering in the hallway from the fireplace within. The sound of whispering reached his ears. It was the murmur of conspiracy and hearing it had him rolling his eyes and praying to the Goddess for strength. Realizing they were most likely in there concocting some new stupid plan to get what they wanted and that they brought him back here to seek it out enraged him. Nikolai reached for the knob but before he even touched it, Konstantin's angry voice rang out. “It's about time you got here. I summoned you two hours ago.” Pushing open the door, Nikolai withheld the growl of resentment he felt at being treated like a dog - in his own house! - and walked in as if it were any other day. “There was a small scuffle I had to deal with.” Konstantin eyed his son as he walked in and over to the credenza where he poured a shot of vodka then quickly drank it. “I didn't hear any news of a scuffle,” he suspiciously said. Nikolai looked at him vacantly. “That's because it was nothing of importance, hence the word… small.” “Don't be disrespectful to me, you ungrateful whelp!” Konstantin's eyes were black with rage and he would have continued his tirade, but was stopped when Arnost's gnarly hand rested on his shoulder. “Calm yourself, my friend. We have more important matters to discuss.” Arnost turned vacant eyes to Nikolai. “Sit, Nikolai, we have an important mission for you.” 78 Forever Mine Nikolai held his father's heated glare for one more second before he turned away. He poured another shot then casually walked over and sat down in the chair across from them. “What is it this time, Arnost, another band of inexperienced Blendlings entering your domain that you want me to wipe out?” Konstantin's face reddened with hatred from his son's open display of condescension, but the squeeze on his shoulder told him to remain still. Arnost Moravec glowered with frustration as he took in Nikolai's bored expression. The younger vamp was good when it came to keeping his emotions and his thoughts to himself. Anyone that didn't know him would think Nikolai was indeed completely blasé about what he did, but Arnost was not one of those stupid people. He was fully aware of Nikolai's hatred toward himself and Konstantin. He also knew the strings they kept him on were being pulled tight and almost at the breaking point, and much to Arnost's chagrin, he still had absolutely no idea what Konstantin's son was thinking or planning - if anything. Since the moment Nikolai could walk, Arnost had tried to read him but he never could and it was maddening. No matter how hard he focused all his energies on Nikolai, he could never detect what the younger vamp was thinking or feeling. It was as if there was a mental wall in his head that kept Arnost at bay and he was no amateur. Being a first generation turned vamp, Arnost had the ability to probe people for a lifetime; he'd just never been in Nikolai's head, which was disconcerting. But what really perturbed him the most was that he didn't even think Nikolai knew he was blocking him, but he was. A mental block that strong could not be erected by itself. Arnost’s thoughts drew blacker; the boy was dangerous, even more dangerous than their enemy. Nikolai had no idea of the unimaginable power available to him and if Arnost and Konstantin had any say in it, he would never know - no one would. They had spent too many years hiding the truth, taking every precaution they could to keep Nikolai under their very watchful eyes, and it hadn't been easy. The amounts of dark magic Arnost had called upon to keep his secrets dead and buried were abundant, and he had paid the price both physically and - he could admit - a bit mentally, but he did not regret the sacrifices he made. The purpose of those sacrifices was bigger than anything as miniscule as good looks or a sound mind. Besides, he wasn't completely crazy, at least not yet, and thanks to Raphael, Arnost no longer had to delve into the magic and risk losing even more of himself. After all, that was what Soothsayers were for and Raphael Santiago, the head of the Soothsayer House, was the oldest and most powerful of them all. Besides the alliance struck with Konstantin so many centuries ago, the one he had with Raphael was the second smartest decision he ever made. Now, if he could only use some of that magic to get into Nikolai's head then Arnost would be most pleased. But so far, every attempt had been unsuccessful, which was disturbing to Arnost and Raphael. The Soothsayer didn’t know why his magic seemed to bounce right off of Nikolai. The only explanation he could offer was that there was someone with powerful white magic protecting him. A perplexing thought considering Raphael did not know of any White Wiccas alive strong enough to overpower his magic. 79 Forever Mine Konstantin, who could at times be a very superstitious man, believed they were being punished by the Goddess Anaya for their dirty deed so many centuries ago. Arnost's comrade was one hundred percent sure that one day that deed was going to come back and seek retribution. It was why his friend was so fearful of his son. He, like Arnost, understood the potentially dangerous power Nikolai could have if the cards ever fell into place. To ensure that could never happen, they constrained Nikolai as much as they possibly could. And the best way to control a primal creature like Nikolai was through the ones he loved. They had been effectively doing that for over a hundred years, but Arnost was not blind. He may not be able to probe Nikolai, but that didn't stop his gut instincts from telling him something was not right. While Nikolai was his usual cold indifferent self, in the past three months there had been moments Arnost could almost glimpse his typical impassive demeanor getting ruffled, very quickly. Then there were the stories brought back to Arnost from his spies that told of a General who was much more impassioned and alive, someone with little patience, and who was having a hard time controlling his rapid fire anger. It had been described to Arnost as if Nikolai was emotionally charged - a powder keg ready to go off at the drop of a dime - and that was a depiction you just did not associate with the General. It was those stories that ignited a most disquieting thought in Arnost's mind, that perhaps he and Konstantin had not covered all their bases and the very thing they had tried so hard to prevent had actually taken place. It was a nerve-wracking assumption and Arnost did not like to assume anything; he wanted answers. So he sent Dalibor to the one person in the world who held Nikolai's confidence and trust. If Nikolai had any ideas of leaving Arnost's army and saving his family, Boris would be the man he would go to. Of course, it was all rather trivial in the grand scheme of things. If Arnost's plan was brought to fruition then whatever Nikolai had planned was inconsequential. Sending Nikolai out to retrieve Arnost’s end result was really just a nice twist of fate as far as he was concerned. Not only would he succeed in hurting Magnus, but Arnost would make sure Magnus knew who was responsible, and when that was revealed, there would be no way Magnus would forgive Nikolai of that sin. If by some small chance he did, then Arnost would just have to kill Nikolai because he would never allow Magnus to have that kind of power at his disposal. “No, my boy, this is something much more important. Grander, if you will.” The holier than thou tone of Arnost’s voice had Nikolai's eyebrow inquisitively raised. “Grander? You make it sound like a mission from the Goddess herself.” “No, not quite, although I'm sure I would have her blessings.” Arnost replied as looked over at Konstantin who nodded his head in agreement. Nikolai inwardly snorted with doubt. Arnost's black gaze sharply swung back to Nikolai. Choosing to ignore his non-verbal disdain, he continued. “I want you to gather a small group of men and 80 Forever Mine go to Rio with Dalibor. You'll have to travel quickly, so choose whoever you want, I don't really care. Just be sure you get there by tomorrow.” Nikolai’s expression was suspicious. “Rio? That's Ruari's sovereignty.” Arnost nodded but said nothing as he held Nikolai's gaze. Nikolai lifted one leg and rested it on his other as he casually leaned back in the chair and sipped his vodka. He looked bored out of his mind, but inside he was filled with a curiosity that was tinged with a bit of mirth. Did they think him stupid? Softly chortling, he said, “Let me get this straight. You want me to go into the enemy's lair tomorrow?” He smirked at him. “Really, Arnost, if you want to kill me, why not just stake me now. Then at least you'd have the pleasure of watching me die.” Konstantin sat forward on his chair. “If you don't show some respect, that's exactly what I'll do!” Nikolai did snort this time, openly, and it was full of all the disdain he felt for his father. “Like you could,” he arrogantly shot back at him, swirling his glass around, casually staring at his father and watching his face turn even redder. His grin broadened. Well, this visit wasn't turning out so bad after all. “You two really need to come to terms with each other because I am getting tired of being the moderator.” Arnost said. Then he sighed and looked at Konstantin. “Now, my friend, be still and inform your son of his mission.” Seething with anger Konstantin took a breath and addressed Nikolai. “Tomorrow night there will be a package arriving at the airport in Rio. You are to go there and intercept it then bring it here henceforth.” “A package? What am I, Federal Express? Send one of your lackeys. I have better things to do then secure your mail.” Konstantin growled. “This package requires the utmost attention and it cannot be left in the hands of minions.” Nikolai's gaze hardened as he stared back at the two. What the hell were they up to? “What's in the package?” Arnost smiled, showing his rotten teeth. “You misunderstand Nikolai, the package is not a what, it is a who, a very important who, that will bring us victory in this war and our race.” Nikolai took another sip of vodka, inwardly rolling his eyes at the old man's scheme. It wasn't the first time he'd heard those word nor was it the first time he’d been sent on a kidnapping mission. They never worked. You'd think by now the warped asshole sitting across from him would know that. “Who is it?” he coolly asked. “Abaigeal Mac Branain.” Konstantin's quiet voice broke through Nikolai's indifference. Nikolai’s eyes hardened as he swiftly stood with raging anger etched on his face. “You want me to kidnap the Overlord's only daughter? Have you lost your fucking minds? Do you know what Magnus will do if you take his only daughter? You'll bring death down on all of us! Have you forgotten what happened last time you tried to take something that belonged to Magnus? We barely survived the massacre he set upon us!” 81 Forever Mine Arnost’s eyes crinkled with his own hatred. He didn’t like to be reminded of his failed attempt at claiming the Overlord's mate. Of course, Nikolai was right. Magnus had come down on them, hard, and almost succeeded in wiping them out completely. It had been a major blow to their cause, one that had set them back years. But what was that saying… that was then and this was now. “It's true that did not work out for the best, but the outcome this time will be very different. By the time he discovers she is missing, it will be too late.” Nikolai turned away from them, running a hand chaotically through his hair. He crossed over to the window, growling with displeasure. This was so wrong, on so many levels. Last time had been wrong as well, but at least Ella was a warrior and capable of handling herself even though she was pregnant at the time. But this, this was just stupidity! It was no secret how protected the only daughter of the Overlord was nor how innocent she was. She was a girl who had spent her entire life cosseted away from the harsh realities of the war. Nikolai had never seen her before. Hell-bent on protecting her, Magnus never permitted her to attend the Summit after Arnost and Konstantin tried to kidnap her when she was five, the only place he could have glimpsed her. But rumors were already floating around that this Summit would be different because supposedly Ella had finally succeeded in getting her mate to allow their daughter to attend. Nikolai didn't need to see her to know two things. One, she was a child. And two, with parents like Magnus and Ella, logic would say she would be an attractive girl and most likely quite powerful in her own respect. After all, the power that radiated off of Ella was incredible… strong and enticing, it was something he had never sensed from another Shikar before, except… Memories of another intoxicating power suddenly surged through Nikolai, one that set his soul aflame and titillated his senses and body in all the right places, haunting him every single minute since the day he first breathed it in. There was no forgetting such perfection. The bond with his little warrior was always there and, if he dug deep inside, he would feel the low hum in the pit of his being that reminded him that she was his. All he wanted was to roll around in it, soak it into every pore of his body, and languish in its pulsing energy of life, but he could not allow himself that toxic pleasure, at least not when he was in the company of others and especially not when he was with these two. They would use it against him and he refused to let those twisted fucks abuse something that was so pure and so… his. It was dangerous to even ponder such things now. He couldn't afford to be in la-la-land. He had to be sharp when in the den of the devil. Clearing his mind, he went back to his original thoughts. Regardless of what the daughter was, she was an innocent like his sister, and like his sister, these two old bastards would use her for their own means. The thought of what Arnost had planned for Magnus’ daughter made Nikolai's skin crawl with revulsion. But what could he do? The Darkness whispered a cunning answer and Nikolai had to keep his head from nodding in agreement. 82 Forever Mine Regardless of the plans he set into motion, Nikolai knew Magnus would not be entirely receptive to his request for sanctuary. Most likely Magnus would look at it with distrust and wariness. Arnost didn’t know it but he just gave Nikolai an answer to one of the things that had been bothering him. He would kidnap Abaigeal Mac Branain, but instead of bringing her to Russia, he would deposit her into the loving arms of her father in Scotland. What better way to prove to the Overlord his intentions of switching sides were true? Nikolai spun around, his face firmly set in resolution. “Very well, Arnost, where is Dalibor?” The name rolled off Nikolai's lips with candid aggression. Dalibor was nothing but a sleazy murdering bastard who sat at Arnost's feet waiting to fulfill his next vile command. He wasn't a warrior; he wasn't even a ranked solider. He was nothing but a thug who used to work for the Russian Mob. “Ah, Nikolai… I see you're looking forward to working together again.” Dalibor walked in wearing a smirk of maliciousness on his face. “Unfortunately, my friend, it will not be necessary.” “What are you doing here, Dalibor? I wasn't expecting you back so soon,” Arnost said. Dalibor’s smile turned even shiftier. Nikolai knew he was not going to like what happened next. Partly because of the sleazebag smile plastered on Dalibor's face, clearly emphasizing the man's complete lack of honor and immorality, but mostly it was Nikolai’s 'the shit's going to hit the fan' sensors that were going off like fireworks. Ever since Nikolai could remember he’d known when things were going to go sour. It actually saved his life on more than one occasion because it gave him time to make plans and readjust his strategy. He’d learned over the years to never doubt it and he didn’t now. There was just one small problem: it felt like time was not going to be his friend this time around. “The mission is complete, my lord, and I have returned with good news or rather… a gift, from me to you.” Dalibor bowed before Arnost and Konstantin, that snaky smile still plastered on his face that Nikolai just wanted to wipe right off. Arnost's eyes darkened with annoyance. “What are you blabbering about?” There was a sudden crash from the great hall. Followed by another and then yet another. Dalibor’s smile quickly disappeared. His face turned ugly with anger as he swiftly turned on his heels and headed out the door and back to the great hall. Goddess, what now? Nikolai quickly followed Dalibor as Konstantin and Arnost slowly brought up the rear. Nikolai had only taken five steps down the corridor when he was beset by the scent of his most carnal cravings. His feet carried him forward. His mind rebelled and rejoiced as the most luscious essence he ever scented swam into his soul. There was no mistaking that scent. No question in his mind. And, as he reached the threshold of the great hall, his body was so tight he felt like he was 83 Forever Mine going to snap as he gazed upon the woman who had haunted him these last months. All the repressed lust that had been smoldering inside of Nikolai with no outlet to express itself quickly became unrestrained - powerfully, instantaneously - it was so hard and so fast, his knees almost buckled underneath him. He couldn't believe it. Was she real or was she just another illusion created by his deep desires? He took another deep breath and that sweet pungent scent battered him once more. Goddess! It was her! His little warrior was finally before him. Euphoria filled him. With a predatory hunger he never felt before, Nikolai drank in the sight of her, feeling his heart constrict with such yearning and overpowering need that it almost had him falling to his knees before her in thanks. How many nights had he dreamed of this moment? How many times had he prayed to the Goddess Anaya to help him discover who she was? So many times he thought he would go mad. But that insanity would not overtake him now. His famished eyes roved down every inch of her body, tracing every splendid curve that was lusciously before him. She wore the same sinfully sexy outfit, except this one was white, and just like last time, his first picture of her was that of a warrior as she fought off five guards with natural speed and power. When she turned, performing a flawless round house kick to the head of one guard, he finally glimpsed that which had been denied to him. Nikolai’s breath hitched with raw excitement as he gazed upon a striking face with high cheekbones and full luscious lips. A face that was set in a fierce glower of survival as she fought the guards with determination and confidence, which to Nikolai's hungry eyes only made her more spectacular then she already was. As she jumped up then twisted and rotated her body to strike and kick at anyone that came within distance, a mane of long dark blonde hair fluttered about her as gracefully and fluently as she moved. Shuddering uncontrollably, Nikolai’s body violently responded to the source of its everlasting arousal. His hunger for her was fierce and fixated. The Darkness' commands to take what was his were almost inescapable. It was so concentrated he could barely control its primal need to be released. Yet, somewhere in between his dark hunger and wet dreams that were assailing him with their potential to become factual, reality seeped in and he heard the indrawn breaths of the men standing around him. He smelt their stirring arousals in the heavy aromatic weight of the air that encircled them. Nikolai's eyes turned black as ink and the veins on his cheeks protruded as possessive rage consumed him. It clawed at his soul, commanding him to reach out and rip their heads off, to shield his mate from the lustful stares of other males. Mercilessly, primeval bloodlust devoured him but he did not act. While the fierce emotions coursed through him, screaming for obedience, Nikolai had enough sense in his head to realize just where he was and who those men were. That's when the lust turned to fury and the rage that had moments before been born of jealously now turned into a full blown ferocious wrath when he realized just how fucked up this situation actually was. 84 Forever Mine While he wanted nothing more than to act out his most basic instincts - kill them and fuck her - he could not. In fact, the most stupid thing he could possibly do right now was show any emotion at all. They would sense it, and while she was definitely in danger just being here, if they were to discover she was his, that danger would multiply a thousand times. There had never been a more pressing moment in Nikolai’s life that required him to be the aloof and heartless - and more importantly controlled General then now. He just hoped he could. Nikolai closed his eyes for one second to bring his emotions back to a more manageable level. He took two deep breaths and felt a smidgen of tension ease. It wasn't much, but it was enough to contain the Darkness. He felt his veins returning to normal and when he opened his eyes, he knew they were once more a dark stormy blue. Abby was so intent on fighting off the vamps she didn't bother turning around to see who the newcomers in the room were. If they wanted to join the fight then so be it, she was ready for them. She had woken up with an aching head, shame at being duped, and whole lot of pissed off energy just dying to come out. She found herself slung over the shoulder of some goon and in a strange hall that resembled something out of an old monster movie. Then she heard the sound of Dalibor's slimy voice as he told the goon to wait for him, then the click of his boots against a stone floor as he disappeared down a corridor. Feeling the hold on her waist slacken, she had taken her chance. Twisting around, she grabbed his neck and squeezed him against her torso as she lifted her legs then swung them down hard into his chest. He stumbled back, his arms automatically released her and she fell to the ground on both feet. That’s when the rumble started. They seemed to come out of nowhere, attacking her from all angles and with any weapon they could find. She fought them off and was doing a swinging job of it too until the air in the room suddenly changed. The atmosphere that had been thin and cool turned thick with a sizzling sensation that went right through her. The hair on her arms rose and that little hum that begun three months ago - lying low, but tormenting her just the same blasted to life with renewed energy that had her body bursting with carnal need. She realized the moment she felt it that all those 'what ifs' she’d been asking herself were about to be answered. Shock then fear, longing and lust all fused together and almost succeeded in completely unsettling her, but she dug deep and found the strength to ignore them and hold on to her anger. She was fighting for her freedom and possibly her life. She might have been stupid and gotten herself caught, but there was no way that scenario was going to play out again. She would fight to the death if she had to. “Great Goddess above, she is magnificent,” Arnost whispered reverently. For once, Nikolai agreed with him. Nikolai was so entranced that he almost missed the guard silently approaching her from the rear, with ratchet raised and ready to fall on her head. “Stodva!” 85 Forever Mine The General’s deep authoritative voice bellowed the Old Norse word throughout the hall and everyone obeyed, including Abby. She froze. Though his roar was far removed from the hot shouts of pleasure she heard him speak before, she still knew that voice. Her body felt that voice way before it even spoke. This was the reason the hum came to life so suddenly. He was the reason it now pulsed with excited anticipation; like tiny shocks of electricity running up and down her spine and hitting all the right places. For so long she had wondered what it would be like to see him again well, now she knew… scary as shit at the same time as it made her want to lay down and spread her legs for him. Goddess, what the hell was wrong with her? She was so drawn to his voice that if she heard one more word from his mouth, she felt like she would lose any kind of self-control she had. That was how bad she wanted him. That was how bad her body needed his. She had tried to deny it. Tried to belittle what she felt from that one night of joining, but in a blink of an eye she realized it was futile. It was as if there was this invisible rope wrapped around her neck, with his hand holding the end, and though that was her mind’s greatest fear, her body and her soul didn't care… they ached for it. Abby felt her body begin to turn toward him, reaching out for what he could give, but she stopped herself. This was not the time for uncontrolled lust and emotions. She was in the lair of the enemy. She had to be a hard, cold, unfeeling bitch, not a horny hussy. Somehow she managed to stay exactly where she was, which was facing the door with her back to them. Even though she had taken Bry's emotions cloaking potion that she took before any mission, she was still afraid they would see the desire in her eyes. It was too alive and too close to the surface to be hidden. In fact, to her vexation, it was refusing to be. The entire situation was extremely disturbing. But that wasn't the worst part. What was really stressing her out was that every single instinct she had was telling her he knew exactly who she was. “Dalibor, is this who I think it is?” Arnost asked. Dalibor turned toward him, smiling. “Yes, my lord. My gift to you.” Arnost took a step closer, his black eyes watching Abby like a hawk did its prey. Nikolai stood perfectly still, fighting to keep his instincts at bay, trying to remain as cold as possible, all the while itching with eagerness for her to turn around and face him. Abby was breathing rapidly; the strain of the fight and the effort it took to contain her emotions was becoming physically taxing. She heard the scuffle of feet against stone. Her stomach cramped as evil approached her. Taking a deep breath, she summoned all her will power and forced herself to turn around and face her captor and, her desire. The second she did, she looked up and over the twisted head of who she could only assume was the Count, and right into a pair of midnight blue eyes. Abby stopped breathing. 86 Forever Mine There he stood, once more encasing those brawny legs in a pair of leather pants that beckoned her hands to stroke them. He wore a long sleeved black thermal shirt and a black leather vest that held no secrets of the existence of the rock hard chest they covered. He was formidable, imposing, carnally rugged and completely male. He stood strong as a warrior and as erotically appealing as a God. Abby swallowed. Goddess, he was as wickedly gorgeous now as he was three months ago, and as she expected, he was staring right into her soul. Her heart fluttered in her chest but she begged it too remain calm. As she stared back, she waited to feel that magnetic gaze possessively roam over her, but…they didn't. The eyes that looked back were not heated with warmth and lust nor were they eager and playful. Oh, they were heated alright, heated with lividness, and they were as frigid as the snow outside. A crack started in her heart then it slowly spread open as her soul was ripped to shreds. She knew that night meant nothing to him, but there had still been a part of her that longed for a deep connection with another - a part she had not even known existed until him - and that naïve part believed the opposite. Now she stood there feeling a bleak emptiness that had never been there before. It was the harsh truth that whatever small measure of hope her inner woman had been holding on to was futile; for she could not deny what was staring back at her was open discontent. Fury filled her; she betrayed herself and she grasped that furious emotion with everything inside of her. She had been foolish to believe anything else but the truth, and the truth was that he was her enemy. She had idiotically given her body - given her most valued gift - to someone who clearly had no respect for that or for her. Was she being a hypocrite? Probably, but in that moment she didn't care. She felt so used and so deceived that nothing else mattered. By the Gods! He was looking at her like she was a freaking leper! Like he wanted to kill her! Her spine stiffened and the lust that had been brewing to a boiling point froze, and she felt…dead. When their gazes first met, Nikolai saw her brown orbs slightly darken with desire and exhilaration. He felt the inner hum sparking with electricity and he could almost smell her body's sweet plea for his touch. He ached to reach out to her, touch her heated skin, sink into her soul with ruthless abandonment, but he didn't do any of those things. Instead, he gazed back with the bitter resentment he felt at once more being in a position he had no control over. They were in the middle of a keg ready to explode, of course she didn't know that, and he couldn't explain it to her. The only thing he could do was forget about the way she made him feel. Forget she was the reason why that keg had been ignited to begin with. Inwardly, he snorted. That was easier said than done when her soul was openly weeping for his. Since he couldn't verbalize his concerns, his only recourse was to make her believe she had no effect on him whatsoever. When he saw her eyes widen ever so slightly then saw her flinch, he knew he succeeded. 87 Forever Mine Now she stared at him with hatred and resentment. It was the same look she gave him when he ripped into her virgin body and, just like then, her heavy gaze made him feel guilty. “I must say, my dear, you are quite a pleasant surprise. I was coming for you yet it seems you have come to me instead,” Arnost said. Nikolai's entire body went rigid. This was Abaigeal Mac Branain? His little lusty warrior was the innocent daughter of the Overlord? Goddess! Could this get any worse? Abby averted her gaze from the Generals and looked into dead pits of oblivion. So this was Count Arnost Moravec. She took a step back as she let her eyes do the talking for her. Hatred and disgust, contempt and disdain, everything she was feeling in that moment from her own foolishness at being caught to the gut wrenching truth that just slapped her hard across the face, screamed at Arnost as she gave him her most scathing look. Arnost reached out with his gnarly hand to touch her. Abby took a step back, reached behind her and pulled out her katana that had not been visible a second before. The elegant weapon gleamed under the soft light of the torches as she held it out in front her with both hands and pressed the point against Arnost's chest. “Keep your distance!” Abby sneered. Arnost smiled his delight. He nodded his head in appreciation of her boldness then turned to address those standing behind him. “The Eastern faction has such marvels to behold. See, Nikolai, I told you we should have conquered them first. Invisible weapons are indeed quite an attribute to possess.” Turning back to Abby, he chided her. “Put that away, child. I don't want to hurt you.” “No, but I want to hurt you.” The girl was as cheeky as her mother. Arnost was amused. Konstantin, however, was not. Konstantin’s face turned red with anger. “Put that down, you stupid twit! Do you know who stands in front of you! Do you know where you are?” Abby's eyes flew to Konstantin’s, her mouth curled up in a snarl. “I know where I am. I know who this evil asshole is and I know who you are. You call me a stupid twit again old man and you'll find your head not attached to your shoulders anymore!” Konstantin's face turned a bright scarlet. Desperate to draw Arnost and Konstantin’s attention off of Abaigeal, Nikolai roared with fury, “Dalibor, explain!” “I don't have to explain anything to you, Nikolai!” Dalibor sneered as he took a step closer. Nikolai moved forward too, letting all his rage out with full force. This was an anger he could display and he took advantage of it, hoping it would ease some of his more potent fury. “You will if you want to keep living.” Though he was no match for Nikolai, Dalibor let loose a challenging snarl and the Darkness responded with a profound rumble of acceptance. 88 Forever Mine Wearing an anticipatory grin, Nikolai’s deep sable eyes bored into Dalibor's with deliberate provocation. He needed to hit something and Dalibor was the perfect outlet. Abby, meanwhile, didn't know what to make of the hostile confrontation beginning to take root. Waves of nasty aggression were coming off the General and slamming inside her. She shook her head, clearing it of the unwanted and distracting intrusions as she continued to hold her ground. Thankfully, Arnost didn't seem to notice her plight and if he did, he didn't respond to it. Instead, he turned to address the two males in attack mode, sighing with exasperation. “Dalibor, if you enjoy breathing, I suggest you answer him.” Dalibor grumbled with indignation. Once more, his lord took the side of the General over his most obedient servant. It made no sense to him. He was loyal and respected Arnost - Nikolai did not, yet he was treated with more esteem than Dalibor was. Anger vibrated through him. One day he would see Nikolai Kotova laid low and Goddess willing, it will be by his hand. For now, Dalibor pulled his gaze away from Nikolai - who was still breathing down his neck, and smirking like an arrogant son of a bitch - and looked at Arnost as he reluctantly gave his answer. “I was completing your instructions, my lord, when she came in and attacked.” He turned and looked pointedly at Nikolai. “My guess is she was spying.” Spying? That's just fucking great! This was the proverbial shit hitting the fan that I sensed before. Keeping his concerned thoughts to the back of his mind Nikolai kept his voice calm and detached. One black eyebrow sardonically rose. “You think?” Turning, he looked at Abaigeal, deliberately admiring her suited form. When he felt every other male in the room follow his perusal, he turned back to Dalibor. “Tell me, Einstein, what was your first clue, the ‘fuck me’ Ninja suit or the sharp shiny sword?” Abby gasped in outrage then promptly followed that with a string of blistering curses. “Fuck you, asshole! Who the fuck do you think you are? Motherfucker! Prick bastard! Son of a…” Nikolai stormed over to Abaigeal who was now cursing at him in Gaelic. Grabbing her by the shoulders, he hauled her up until they were to eye. Shocked to the core to be so close to the source of her torment, Abby instantly stopped. She could do nothing but stare into those deep sable eyes as they focused entirely on her. “That will be quite enough from you and that cesspool you call a mouth, my lady. I don’t care who you are! When you are in my presence, you will speak only when you are spoken to and when you do, it will be as a lady should, with respect and politeness!” Abby’s face turned beet red. “Respect? Politeness?” She harshly laughed. “I’ve been kidnapped and you expect me to what…obey you? I’m not your fucking slave! You’ll get nothing from me but hatred and contempt!” She spit on him. The room grew silent. 89 Forever Mine Nikolai growled with such frightening menace that the war-hardened soldiers standing near stepped back in fear. He shifted his hold on her. He grabbed her around the neck, lifting her up with ease until her feet dangled in the air. Abby’s hands flew to his, her eyes wide with astonishment as he held her up with one hand and wiped the spit off his face with the other. When he was done he leaned in closer, menacingly. “You will do everything I tell you to do because a spy, which is exactly what you are, does not get privileges, nor do they get to decide what their fate is. A spy gets throw in the dungeon which is exactly where you are going.” He pushed Abby back and into the waiting arms of a guard that stood behind her. “Get her out of my sight!” As Abby was dragged from the room, her eyes never once left Nikolai’s harsh face. He held her gaze, showing her and everyone else in the room just how cold and uncaring he was. They saw it and they believed it to be true. How surprised they would be to know he was in the midst of a precarious turmoil that had the potential to become enormously violent if the Darkness had anything to say about it. “Well done, Nikolai,” Arnost said, sniggering as he walked up behind him. “It seems you have not lost your touch with the ladies after all.” Nikolai turned around to address Arnost but it was not the man who glared back, it was the Darkness, openly glowering with hatred seeping out of its core. Sensing the threat standing before him, Arnost shifted to his demon and snarled back. To those nervously watching, the Count appeared unflustered, but in reality, there was true fear in his heart. There it was, the Darkness he and Konstantin had been barely controlling since the moment Nikolai was born. Arnost could admit just how unnerving it was to look into its black fathomless eyes and see nothing by endless suffering and death. How could he not? It was a walking monster that lived and breathed for destruction and torment. It was the demon that demons feared. It was the bane of his existence, the fiend he thought he laid to rest so many centuries ago. Standing there, staring into the face of his lifelong adversary, Arnost knew if it had the chance, it would tear him limb from limb and dance in his blood. The man that shared the body with the demon might be ignorant of what happened but the Darkness wasn’t. It knew what Arnost and Konstantin had done. The Darkness always knew. It was born with the knowledge and it would stop at nothing to enact its revenge. Its only problem was that it was not in any position to do so, and Arnost prayed to the Goddess above it would never be. In its current stage, it was governable, but if the unthinkable should ever take place, there would be nothing to stop it. They stood like that for a few tense moments before Nikolai finally got a grip and pushed the Darkness back. With the danger gone, Arnost also shifted back and he waited silently to see what Nikolai would do next. Nikolai waited for the out-of-body feeling that always accompanied the transition to pass. As he did, he became deeply concerned. That particular 90 Forever Mine sensation had never been as strong as it was now. The Darkness was close to the surface and the hum that pulsated inside him was the cause. Concern turned to paranoia, and he wondered if everyone in the room saw right through his charade. Silence stretched out. Nikolai sensed the frightening stares of the soldiers and the piercing gazes of both Arnost and Konstantin. He cleared his throat. “I don’t want her in my house.” Arnost coolly nodded. “Nor do I, I want her in mine. She shall be moved soon enough.” Nikolai grunted back. “I assume it’s safe to say your previous order has been rescinded?” “Indeed.” “Good. Then you’ll excuse me.” “Of course.” Arnost moved out of the way. Nikolai strode from the room with his usual bored gait when inside he was anything but. He was desperate to get away from Arnost and up to his room where he could try to get a grip on the Darkness. It wanted Arnost’s blood and Nikolai was surprised he had been able to keep it back. Goddess above, did he really just send his S’airsul to the dungeon? He sighed deeply. He would not feel guilty about that, he had no choice. Besides, it was what would have been expected anyway so he was just acting the part, doing what he had to do to keep those that he loved alive. For the time being, Abaigeal would be safe. Arnost would not hurt her, at least not yet. Nikolai, on the other hand, felt as if he was on the cusp of a very unfriendly and unwanted appearance from the Darkness. He had to regroup and fast. He had to calm down and settle the Darkness to a more manageable degree. Once he accomplished that, he should be clear headed enough to rethink his plans, which meant he had to call Mikkel. Arnost shrewdly watched Nikolai leave the room. Usually the Darkness did not come so close to the surface as it did right now. Konstantin stepped up and whispered the answer in his ear. “As far as I know, it’s been a week since he’s had a woman.” Arnost nodded. That was indeed a plausible explanation. The Darkness needed sex to survive and it needed it often. When that need was not appeased, it became quite unruly. “My lord, you are pleased with my gift?” Dalibor had a goofy smile on his face, clearly pleased with himself. Arnost looked at him coldly. “What did Boris have to say? Did he confirm a visit from our esteemed General?” “No, my lord, he acted as if he didn’t know what I was talking about.” Arnost sighed. “As expected from the one known as ‘The Keeper.’” He turned and headed toward the stairs, Konstantin quietly beside him. “It does not matter once Raphael gets here, he will talk.” Dalibor's picked nervously at his pants as he quietly said, “Um, but, my lord, he is not here.” 91 Forever Mine Arnost stopped and pierced Dalibor with black empty eyes. “You were instructed to bring him here, Dalibor. You ignored my orders?” Dalibor's face blanched as he began to stutter. “No…no, my lord, I did as you told me. It's just that…well…when…when she showed up…well, in the chaos…Boris he, um...” “Spit it out already!” Konstantin roared. “Escaped, milord. He…escaped.” Before Dalibor knew what was happening, Arnost was before him and his usually decrepit and weak looking fist was firm and hard, landing on his cheek and sending him clear across the room and into the stone wall. Dalibor shook his head and backed up against the wall in outright fear when he saw the hard blackened eyes of his lord gleaming at him. “You fool! Are you that addle brained you cannot even obey one simple command?” Arnost leaned in, the stench of his rotting breath hitting Dalibor right in the face. ”By the Goddess, Dalibor, you disappoint me.” “I'm…I'm sorry, milord, truly I am. Please, I beg your forgiveness. I didn’t think…I thought with the girl in our possession, it no longer mattered.” “You are not here to think, Dalibor. The only purpose you serve is to obey my orders. I would kill you but there is still much for you to do.” Arnost silently studied Dalibor. “Fifty lashes should teach you not to disobey my orders again. Next time I will not be so forgiving. Take him to the dungeon.” Arnost headed up the stairs with Konstantin behind him as the guards took a stone silent yet very thankful Dalibor to the dungeons. "What of Boris, Arnost?" Konstantin asked as they climbed the stairs side by side. “Yes, Boris, my cagey old friend, he is as elusive as a ghost and as talkative as a mime. But, believe it or not, Kostya, in this case, Dalibor is correct. With the girl in our possession, it is only a matter of time before I become Overlord. When I do, Boris will become a moot point.” He glanced over at his companion. “You’ll have to get a hold of Raphael; there is no point in him coming here now. Tell him to await us at my mountain home.” Konstantin nodded his head as they reached the landing and headed toward their rooms. “And now that the Mac Branain chit is here, shall we go forth with our plan and bring both my wife and daughter to the Summit?” Arnost sinisterly smiled. “Ah, yes, the joyful reunion. How very…amusing. It just tickles me pink to see it and know I am the reason for their tears of joy.” Konstantin harrumphed as Arnost continued, “Yes, why not. I could use a little entertainment and I think our dear General could use a bit of sunshine in his life, don’t you? ” Konstantin snarled, “The only thing I’d like to see that boy get is my sword in his gut.” Arnost chuckled. “Yes, well I’m sure that will be an inevitable event. Of course, it all depends how he reacts to our plan. The little show he put on just now with the chit was very convincing, but still, with all that has come to my ears as of late, it would be wise to keep an eye on him.” 92 Forever Mine “Agreed.” “For now, I’ll see what I can get out of the girl before I have Dalibor take her to my mountain home. If she proves to be as stubborn as both her parents, which I think it safe to say she will, then I will leave her in the very capable hands of Raphael while at the Summit.” Arnost’s black eyes gleamed with anticipation. “As for Nikolai, his ultimate test will be when I am anointed Overlord.” “He’ll be as belligerent as he is now, Arnost, that won’t change,” Konstantin grumbled. “Perhaps, either that or he will finally come to realize that I am the true Overlord and bow down to me. “ Konstantin seriously doubted that. His son had been defiant since the moment his mother squeezed him out of her crotch. There was nothing that would ever calm that inner beast. “Either way,” Arnost said, “We’ve dealt with Nikolai’s obedience issues quite handedly in the past, so I don’t see it being a concern.” “Yes, who would have thought women could actually be useful for more than fucking.” Arnost chuckled at his friend’s snide remark. “Indeed. I think it would be prudent to keep him close to us. After all, we wouldn’t want to lose such a powerful alley, nor do we want to hand him over to someone else’s control. If the rumors prove true and our dear General has become, shall we say, discontent with his position in our ranks, then there can only be one outcome. “ Konstantin nodded his head. The excitement he felt for that particular scenario reflected in the grin on his face and the sparkle in his eyes. “Naturally,” Arnost continued coldly. “If it does, you’ll have to take his head.” The loathing Arnost felt for Nikolai dripped from his lips. “Though it’s been over a thousand years, I’m sure you remember, Kostya, a beheading is the only way to kill them.” 93 Forever Mine CHAPTER SIX It took the booming sound of a heavy metal door slamming shut to bring Abby out of her stupor. She struggled against the hands that held her arms and her legs. Arching and bending her back, she tried to break free from their clutches but it was useless. As they neared the bottom of the steps, blackness overtook her vision. She stilled as she waited for her eyes to adjust to the abrupt change. And what a change it was. The stench of mold and death seeped through her nostrils as moans of agony slowly filtered up the stairs. The closer they got to the bottom, the louder and more gut-wrenching those moans became. When they finally reached the bottom the discontented sounds from her soon-to-be cell mates was deafening. But not all sounds were those of horror. She heard the scampering of little padded feet crossing the guards’ as they carried her down the long corridor. The foul creature’s tiny squeaks echoed against the barren stone walls like squeals of happiness at the new snack they would soon have to munch on. If that wasn’t enough to turn a girl mad, in the distance there was the sound of a whoosh followed by the sharp sound of leather slapping stingily into flesh, followed by the agonizing screams of the receiver, and then, most chilling of all, was the sound of the punisher’s cackle of glee that answered it. Abby swallowed with a deep sense of dread beginning to fill her. She tried to concentrate on something else besides the nerve-wracking sounds like those of the guards’ footsteps as they trotted down the corridor of death. It didn’t help. The noise their heavy boots made were slushy thuds, telling her the ground was nothing more than mud, and in all likelihood, mixed with the blood of the poor wretched creatures that inhabited this dank place. Anxiety began to take control of her body, subduing it into an ironically fretful submission, but her head continued to twist about, to the left and then to the right, taking note of exactly where she was and seeking any means of escape. Not that she thought she would find one. This was a dungeon; it was built to keep people in, not let them out. But she really didn’t need to think about that right now. Pushing those unwanted thoughts far, far away, Abby focused once more on where they were and where they were going. Along the way, she took note of the cells they passed and the various creatures that occupied them. From the darkened shadows, they stepped into the light to see what was going on. Their faces were dirty, and eyes that held no sign of life or hope looked upon her with sympathetic gloom. Her own eyes began to tear at the injustice and cruelty of their situations and the utter despair she felt in their souls as the guards walked on, uncaring of the welfare of their prisoners. 94 Forever Mine Abby tried to harden her heart and not let the despondency she felt affect. She always had a tender heart when it came to people’s suffering, no matter whom or what they were. Shane often told her it was her one weakness and if she wasn’t careful, it could be her downfall one day. Inwardly, she snorted. How right he was. It was her penchant for empathizing that led her to where she was now, and even though she herself was now a prisoner, she still felt the need to help the others, but there was nothing she could do for these poor souls. She had to focus on getting out and not saving everyone else. That sentiment became much easier to do when they rounded a corner and headed down a small incline and into another corridor. Torches lined the walls, leading the way down the dark passage. This one was worse than the other, deeper into the pits of hell. There were no windows. The torches gave off the only light and as they passed them, the breeze made the flames dance eerily around, illuminating things best left in the dark corners of the walls and ceilings. The air was stale and the retching stench was tinged with the smell of burning flesh. Abby didn’t think it could get much worse until she looked into the cells. Vampires, and lots of them, stared back with voracious eyes and lips drawn back in hungry snarls, many of them missing fangs. They lined the bars of the cells, their claw-like hands reached out toward her in starvation. She shuddered then hissed as their sharp jagged claws breached her suit and scraped her skin. Embedding those claws in her flesh, they raked her legs and torso as the guards continued to walk, leaving a trail of her blood behind them. She watched, sick to her stomach, as the vamps drew back their hands and sucked on their fingers like starving animals. Their moans of fulfillment echoed in the empty corridor as their pasty yellow eyes rolled back into their heads and their already hollow cheeks sunk in further as they sucked every remnant of her blood they could. “So tasty, a tasty little morsel…more, need…more…” Their words and their actions turned Abby’s face white. The guards chortled at her look of horror and made no attempt to stop several other voracious vamps who continued to reach out for her. Soon the voices faded into the distance. Abby breathed out with relief as they passed cells that appeared to be empty. Suddenly, from out of the darkness of one cell, something ran at the bars, slamming its malnourished body against the iron at full force. Abby flinched, her eyes flying to the half-crazed face of a human or a Blendling, she didn’t know, as he looked at her with pity and madness. When he opened his mouth, he started a low crazed laugh that turned into squeals of hearty amusement at her plight. Abby turned away and closed her eyes to the lunacy surrounding her. How long had they been here? For how many hours had they been tortured? How long have they gone with no food or water? 95 Forever Mine The stench of unwashed body odor and rotting mouths was thick and heavy in the mold-infested air and it wouldn’t take long for any person, supernatural or not, to lose it down here. She had never been more petrified then she was in that moment. Her heart pounded fiercely against her chest. Her eyes were huge saucers of ominous fear that was clamping around her soul. What would become of her? Would her own cries of pain be echoing in her ears as the others were now? Would she be left here to rot and die just like the poor soul whose skeleton was leaning against the wall they just passed? She didn’t know what to do. She had never seen such ill treatment of others. She had never heard the sickening sounds of the whip grinding into bare skin nor had she ever heard such shrill desolated cries come from a man, or demon for that matter, both of whom would most likely rather die than show such weakness. And she had never, ever felt fear as she did in that moment. They reached a cell and the guards holding her feet dropped her. Her legs wobbled as her feet slapped into the wet muddy floor. The guard wrenched her arms behind her back sharply. Pain sliced up her arm and her face crinkled with discomfort as the other guard unlocked the cell and opened the door. Seeing nothing but blackness before her, Abby shook her head crazily. The guards tried to push her in. She dug her feet into the mud but only succeeded in slipping forward and helping them with their deed. Before she knew it, before she could stop them from shoving her in, she was violently tossed inside. The momentum sent her flying to the ground. Her hands braced her fall and her nose came within an inch of the grimy cell floor. Lifting her head, she watched as a rat scurried past her. She quickly jumped to her feet then turned and ran toward the door that was rapidly swinging shut. Just as the iron lock swung closed, her hands gripped the small bars of the window in the door. Her face white, her pulse running with frantic anxiety, she looked out at the guards who were laughing as they turned and left her in there to rot. Through the slim bars, she watched them walk away as far as she could. They were out of sight but she heard them screaming at the other prisoners, heckling them, laughing at them with cold dismissal. When their voices finally faded and she could just make out the sound of the upper door slamming shut, the dungeon took on a new facade as the mad prisoners who had just moments before shouted brave words of death to their jailors now wept, their muffled cries echoing out of their cells. Abby turned away from the door, her arms wrapped around her waist as she looked around hoping to the Goddess above that she was alone in her murky cell. Seeing she was however did not bring the comfort she so desperately needed. Instead, unadulterated terror took over like a sickness and infected her mind that was frantically trying to maintain some sort of sanity. She was alone… utterly alone. There was no overbearing brother rushing to save her. There was no loud bellowing father coming to pull her out. She could not feel the safe and loving arms of her mother comforting her. She was… alone. 96 Forever Mine Trapped in the pits of this living hell. A woman no more, a warrior forgotten…nothing but a whipping post to a demon who hated her and her family. Strength and bravado? What the hell was that? For the first time in her life, Abaigeal Mac Branain screamed. Three floors above, Nikolai was fitfully pacing in his chambers. As the hum inside him shuddered and shook with fear, guilt hit him like a two by four. Goddess, how could he have done it? He knew those dungeons, they were his! They were literally the pits of hell. Everything that was vile and evil dwelled down there and he tossed the most blessed of creatures down there as if she were nothing more than a scrap of meat for their hungry mouths. What the hell was he going to do? She couldn’t stay here, he had to find a way to get her out of Russia and away from Arnost’s and Konstantin’s clutches. But how? Think, damn it! Nikolai snarled angrily then stopped pacing as he stood in front of the window. The sun was perched high in the sky and the long day of confinement stretched out before him. The few occupants of the house would be in a deep sleep right about now. The guards standing vigil would be few. He wondered what daytime meant to her. He knew she was Shikar but with a father like Magnus, did she also carry vamp traits like her brothers? Did the sun harm her or did she welcome the darkness that she was in? Did she need blood or food to survive? These were the questions that plagued him and he knew he would not be able to think of anything else until he assured himself she was okay. Nikolai headed out of his room then quickly down the stairs to the kitchen. He would bring her food and water, and blood. He would make sure she was alright. Mayhap he would even get a chance to try and explain things to her. Then he would be able to think. Abby was pacing in her cell. Now that she had her small mental breakdown, she was feeling a little better, saner. She was remembering the route the guards took down the corridor. Remembering everything she saw and blocking out the memory of the sounds she heard. Her escape routes were, as far as she could recollect, dismal. She stopped as the sounds of the other prisoners suddenly became hushed. Their fear was flagrant in the air which suddenly changed, becoming thick and heavy. The hum pulsated with energy. Her eyes hardened. She walked over to the door and peeked out the window. She didn’t see him yet, but she heard his booted feet slapping against the wet corridor floor. Pressing against the wall by the door, she waited. 97 Forever Mine The door was unlocked then opened. The light from the torch in the hall spilled in and gave Abby a glimpse of what her cell really looked like. She didn’t look long though, too intent on the hulking body that stepped through the doorway, bending down low so his head didn’t hit the arch. The second the General stood up straight, Abby kicked up and out with her right leg. She aimed for his head, but instead there was the sound of a tray hitting the floor and tin bowls slapping against mud. A hand wrapped around her ankle, halting her movements. Their gazes locked, one hot with rage, the other hot with hunger as they stood frozen in the silent seconds that ticked by. Though the cell lacked proper lighting, Nikolai’s night vision allowed him to see perfectly and what he saw in front of him took his breath away. He took his time roving over her facial features and soaking them in. She resembled her mother with the minor exception that Abaigeal’s face was a bit broader, her body fuller and curvier – exceptions that made her appearance much more desirable to Nikolai. Desirable…his body twitched with delight…Goddess, she was like an inferno to his hand…so hot to touch and so fantastic that for one second, he thought he was in one of his dreams, but then there was a loud cackle down the passageway reminding him he was wide awake. His eyes blistered with veracity…he was awake and she was here. For so long he needed her and here she was, here he was - touching her. It wasn’t enough, he needed more, he needed…to taste her. A deprived throaty moan left Nikolai’s lips. His fingers began to flex on her ankle with all the pent up sexual frustration he’d been feeling. Logic told him moments before to be cold and unaffected; his lust told him to take her. Abby’s heart pumped with wild need as her body responded to the General’s touch and his sexy moan. Those mesmerizing orbs were dark and heavy with yearning, staring at her with passionate intent and a strange tenderness she hadn’t expected to see. She dreamed about this moment, imagined every possible scenario, yet she had never dreamed this. She never thought the need to have him again would be so strong, but it was and it overrode everything else. The only thing that existed were his dark blue eyes scalding her with their intensity and the feel of his hand on her covered ankle that felt like a hot branding iron on her naked flesh. Her eyes trailed over his ruggedly handsome face, down his broad muscled shoulders and arms, across the wide expanse of his chest, and down his muscular legs, her hunger increasing with every glorious inch she roamed. Goddess, did the man wear anything else besides black leather? Well, he shouldn’t because he looked so lip smacking good that she just wanted to eat him up. The moment stretched out, the air became thick and heavy with a desire that had been too long denied. Abby opened her mouth to speak. Nikolai’s dark eyes snapped down to her full lips and ardently watched as the tip of her tongue slowly swiped across her bottom lip then slipped back inside the warm recesses of her mouth. 98 Forever Mine He groaned with longing. Abby unconsciously whimpered in response. Locked in a haze of want and desire, hearing nothing but the sound of his blood rushing through his veins, Nikolai saw her lips part again. He gazed at her mouth, scrutinizing her lips as they moved. She was talking, but for the life of him he had no idea what she was saying but then the husky timber of her voice broke through his lust. “Are you going to let me go?” Her voice was deep and husky, and it sent a wickedly delicious shiver coursing through Nikolai’s body. Then his brain registered her words. Never! A playful smirk flitted across his face, but he did not answer. Not that it mattered; Abby probably wouldn’t have heard him anyway. That smile was earth-shattering to her senses. Hot pulsating vibes started in her core. Her nipples tingled and she felt them filling with blood, hardening, preparing to be feasted on by that sensual mouth. Her pulse quickened, her breath came out in short raspy pants, and everything she felt… Nikolai felt as if they were his own. Nikolai inhaled deeply and her succulent arousal filled his nostrils. He growled with pure excitement as her nipples become erect and pushed against her tight suit. His mouth watered. He wanted to taste them, he wanted to suck on them hard and feel them tighten against the roof of his mouth. He was denied that pleasure last time and felt so deprived that he’d be happy just to gaze on them in their bare brilliance. While Nikolai’s heart frantically pumped in his chest, that smirk - hot, promising and so damn prideful and arrogant - remained on his face and reminded Abby just where they were and what he had done. Antagonism filled her orbs as she gazed back with annoyance. Goddess, she was weak! One look…one blasted touch and she was ready to forget everything and jump his bones. What was wrong with her? Was he that much of a temptation that she could so easily overlook his harsh treatment of her upstairs? As she looked him over one more time, she snorted to herself. Yes… he was a carnal enticement she was too pathetic to ignore. Taking a much needed breath, Abby asked the same question only this time it was louder, the weave of sexual tension pushed aside for the irritation she felt at his boldness and her own weakness. “Are you going to let me go?” The question came out more like a hopeful denial instead of the angry demand her brain wanted to issue. She lowered with self-disgust. The rogue just stood there, holding her ankle with that panty-creamer smirk on his face. “That depends, are you going to run away from me again, milaya?” The sound of his voice - hot and honeyed - washed over Abby’s sensitive body like a sizzling steamy caress. She wanted to arch into it and offer herself to him on a platter, instead she told herself to ignore it – ignore him. She rolled her eyes at his question “Where am I going? I’m in a dungeon.” 99 Forever Mine Not quite ready to relent, Nikolai kept his hold on her ankle as he took a step closer. As he moved, his hand slid down her calf pushing her leg higher, his fingers flexed into her muscles…squeezing. “I don’t know. You seem to have a knack for escaping.” With one last step, he was inches away with her leg resting on his shoulder. Black eyes filled with sinful wickedness; they stared deeply into hers. Being the consummate male, Nikolai took advantage of the highly accessible position and let his hand leisurely caress her thigh, moving closer and closer to the place that had his mouth parched for a taste. “And I don’t want to lose you again.” His deep timbered voice, rough with desire and candid with sexual promises and urgent need, struck a chord in that womanly center of Abby’s being that longed for such romantic pledges, but she refused to give in to the desire. Instead, as she gazed into his lust-filled eyes and remembered their coldness and hatred from before. She gave him a reproachful glare and there was a mocking chill in her voice when she spoke. “Oh, right, because then the dog would have to be punished by the master, and really, who wants that.” That took care of the tormenting sexy smirk and the branding iron on her leg. Quick and affronted fury reflected on his face. His hold tightened around her calf for one second more before he swung her leg off his shoulder with lividness. “Are you implying that I am nothing but Arnost’s lackey?” Nikolai took a step toward her, pushing his chest up against her straining breasts with the humiliated anger her words caused. Did she think him a minion? Abby was certain that drool had to be pooling in the corners of her mouth. Even in his affronted state, he was incredibly sexy and magnificently male, even more so. In fact, she was quite proud of herself for not jumping up, wrapping her legs around his hulking chest and kissing him to death. “Oh no, your actions upstairs clearly states that you are a vampire of action.” Contempt dripped from her voice. Nikolai snarled angrily. “Would you have preferred it if I stood on a chair and shouted to everyone in the room that I fucked you three months ago?” She could play this two ways, Abby thought as she held his gaze. She could admit to it and just get everything out into the open, or she could play dumb. She innocently stared back. “You’re very crude and I don’t know what you’re talking about.” “I’m crude? That’s funny coming from the vulgar mouth that cursed me in two languages.” Abby glowered at him. “You insulted me.” Nikolai yielded with a playful nod of his head. “Fair enough.” But then his voice hardened and those midnight eyes took on a whole other look as they turned black. “Now, let’s get back to basics.” In the next second, Abby found her hands clasped firmly in his and her back slammed up against the wall. He moved so fast she was left speechless as she looked into his incensed eyes. 100 Forever Mine “Don’t play dumb with me, Abaigeal Mac Branain. For three months, I was tortured with memories of you, driven almost insane by dreams of a faceless woman who gave me ultimate pleasure. I cursed you for that, you know. I was so certain that if you had let me see your face then the memories would not have been so painful.” His eyes leisurely roamed over her features, softly and tenderly, open and almost lovingly. “But I forgive you. Being Magnus’ daughter, I can understand why you would not permit me to see your face.” Abby rolled her eyes. “Oh gee, thanks. That’s so great of you.” Nikolai’s eyes hardened and his voice became steel. “What I don’t understand is why a man who has spent the last twenty-five years hiding his cherished daughter away from the world would allow her to openly fight. It doesn’t make any sense. Explain.” “It doesn’t have to make sense, General, because it’s none of your business. Now let me go.” “No, see now there you’re wrong. You were caught at Boris’ spying…” “I was doing no such thing!” Abby stubbornly replied. “… and ended up here where I have to deal with you and that, milaya moya, entails asking questions just like these. It’s up to you what the outcome will be. If you give me the answers I seek, we can be on better ground. If not, then…” His sweet? Abby snorted. His endearments were really starting to piss her off, especially after what he did. “Then what? You’ll throw me in the dungeon? No wait, you already did that.” She glared back accusingly. Nikolai’s teeth clenched together in aggravation, Goddess above, she was a wise ass. “You left me no choice. Besides, it’s what Arnost and Konstantin would have wanted.” “And the Goddess forbid those two don’t get what they want.” Abby leaned in and whispered mockingly, “And you say you’re not their lap dog.” The hands that gripped her wrists tightened to an almost painful degree. His eyes were pitch black and his veins bulged with pissed off energy. Abby knew she should be deathly afraid - any sane person would be - yet for the life of her, she couldn’t muster one single slither of fear. Instead, all she felt was giddy excitement and a naughty twinkle to push more of his buttons. “You were caught spying, Abaigeal. Be thankful Dalibor didn’t kill you on the spot. Being in a cell is much more agreeable, don’t you think?” Abby harrumphed. “So you say.” The thought of her dead left a chill in Nikolai’s soul. “I do say,” he growled. “Now, regardless of the passion and intimacy we shared, keeping up pretenses is vital in order to keep both of us alive.” The derisive comment that was about to leave Abby’s lips stopped and she looked back at him curiously. “What do you mean, pretenses?” Nikolai leaned in, his hot breath rasped across her mouth and any thoughts of being standoffish disappeared. “There are things going on here, milaya, that you are not aware of, and until I can explain it to you, this is the only explanation I can give. Now, if it’s a vampire of action you…need...” His hand slid up her arm then to her face where he grasped her chin. His lips grazed her cheek in a light 101 Forever Mine airy kiss that wreaked havoc on Abby’s senses. “… then I am more than able to give it to you.” His fingers tightened then his mouth was on hers. His tongue plunged inside and stroked her mouth with stimulating proficiency. There was no need for his brutal grip, Abby’s mouth opened on its own. Her tongue joyfully dueled with his as they finally tasted each other again, savored the perfection they found in one another three months ago, a flawlessness that had eluded them both for far too long. Greedily, they took everything they could from the other. Neither shy, neither relenting in their selfish search for more. They nipped, licked and sucked, equally plundering each other with zeal. Abby broke free from his hold and wound her hands into his silky thick locks. Grabbing his head, she pushed his mouth further into hers. Needing him so badly and not caring in the slightest that it was not so long ago that that marauding mouth had sent her to this dismal pit to begin with. But then he pulled back and his mouth grazed over her cheek and then to her ear where his tongue plunged inside then retreated, making her blood boil with hot need. She whimpered. “Moya dusha, I’ve missed you so much. Needed you for so long, it’s been unbearable.” He hoarsely divulged that juicy bit of information and Abby responded by gripping his head harder. She scratched her previous thoughts because she definitely liked the endearments, especially that one, ‘my soul,’ because she felt him in her soul and she wanted him to be as affected as she was. Her leg slid up his sturdy thigh, her hips brazenly pushed against the throbbing erection that shuddered against her. “Yes…” The mewling word fell from her lips without thought. Her need so great, her desire to have that pulsating member buried deep inside her was so heady, so unquenchable, that she felt she would die if she didn’t have him. She moved against him with impatient innocence, bucking against his engorged cock with a violent restlessness that was rough and jagged. Grabbing her hips, Nikolai held her still as he drove his cock against her then moved up, then down, nestling against her heat. It was the most excruciatingly taunting sensation he ever experienced or so he thought. Abby’s hands gripped his shoulders in response to his strokes. She started to ride his hardness with sure smooth strokes of her own, building the fire inside of them to immeasurable degrees. Giving her the control she wanted, Nikolai moved his hands up her rib cage toward her breasts. Roughly, he squeezed then massaged them as she continued to ride him with ever growing skill. His mind went blank. “Maya krasaveetsa…yes, just like that…feel my need for you. Feel how hard you get me. I ache to be inside you. To feel your heat and your body’s sweet cream drenching me…just like before…just like before, milaya.” Abby’s eyes rolled back into her head. He really had to stop with these Russian endearments because they were driving her crazy. He called her his beauty, it was sweet and endearing, and it was only the beginning to his otherwise 102 Forever Mine carnal and explicit words spoken brokenly yet full of imposing authority that got Abby even wetter. Without any inhibition, she grabbed his head, “Kiss me,” she demanded but she didn’t wait for his response. She kissed him hard as her body continued to move against his with powerful needful strokes. She was wild in his arms and her shameless abandonment drove Nikolai crazy. With not one coherent thought in his head except that of the vixen driving him mad, he reverted to his natural tongue and muttered in Russian exactly what he was feeling. “You taste so good. So fucking good. I’ve dreamed of this, dreamed of you, just like this. Wrapped around me, your body opening to mine, taking me inside…I need you, moya dusha, I need your heat to warm me…” A brilliant smile graced Abby’s face as those succulent lips sucked a path down her neck. Goddess, she loved it when he spoke Russian, loved the way it rolled off his tongue like a silken caress on her heated flesh. And the words he spoke, fervent with his desperate need, amplified her stimulation. Her hands clawed at his head, her mouth mauled his harder and deeper, her hips moved faster and faster against him as she desperately tried to reach that pinnacle of blinding perfection. Her greedy demanding hands drove Nikolai to the brink as he imposed his own brutal grip in her hair, his fingers filtering through it. He groaned unabashedly at how sensual it felt. His need became irrepressible, his hand tightened and he yanked her head back with dominance. Sable eyes seared smoky chocolate orbs. His voice was harsh, forceful and damningly erotic. “I need to fuck you…now.” His words turned Abby’s body up to a frightening degree. His true self stared back at her with vigorous intent, she felt the tension in his body because it was the same as hers, his need as great as hers. All she could think about was how much she wanted this…how much she wanted him right there, right now. His hand moved to the belt of his pants and she heard…the tiny squeak of her roommates as they happily munched on her food. Abby’s eyes snapped to attention. What the hell am I doing? What the hell was he doing? Did he think he was going to fuck her here - in a dungeon? And was she really going to let him? Well…that did have immeasurable amounts of merit but…hell no! She had more self-respect than that. Didn’t she? The hazy fog of lust cleared and somewhere – Goddess only knows from where – Abby found the strength to push him off of her. She was putty in his hands; hot pliable flesh eagerly seeking his own, so Nikolai was not expecting her sudden refusal. The push against his chest took him unaware and he fell back, almost stumbling over his own feet. The loss of her body was a brutal shock. Nikolai felt bewildered and lost, incredibly frustrated, and he had a primal rage that was bordering on dangerous. She was his! She could not deny him his rights! 103 Forever Mine Nikolai snarled and took a step toward her, determined to draw her back against him but the look on her face, the stiffness of her body and the irate words that soon filled his ears, told him she was a bit peeved. “Are you out of your mind? Do you really think after the way you treated me that I’m just going to spread my legs for you? In a freaking dungeon, where I’m a prisoner!” Abby’s tirade ended on a shrill piercing shriek of outrage that went straight to Nikolai’s sensitive ears. Nikolai winced than shook his head, trying to clear his mind from the lust that was unforgivably hammering him and the ominous fury at her refusal that backed it up. He felt completely out of touch with himself, but then two words slowly started to sink inside his lust crazed mind – dungeon and prisoner. What the hell was he doing? Was he really going to take her again against another wall, mindlessly, and in a dungeon? He considered the woman before him. Dark blonde hair, which was a sexy mess from his eager hands, fell down her shoulders and over her chest in glorious disarray. Her delicious chocolate eyes sparked with tempestuous fire as her beautiful breasts heaved with righteous anger. Fuck yes, he was! She was luscious and she was his. How could he be expected to control his hunger for her? As Nikolai stood there like a horny simpleton, ogling her and questioning his own sanity, Abby approached him like an avenging angel - a beautiful avenging angel. Her striking face was a mask of rage, her finger jabbed into his chest and her voice was full of resentment. “You have some nerve! I’m not some whore for you to toy with! You think just because I let you in before that I’ll do it again? Ha! Fat chance, Romeo! I saw the way you were looking at me upstairs. Oh yeah, those were looks of pining alright! You really let me know just how much you’ve missed me with all the hateful glares you threw my way!” Nikolai frowned. His sex-induced mind was not fully capable of wrapping around everything she was saying but he knew one thing…she was saying way too much and it wasn’t raunchy shouts of pleasure. Quickly grabbing Abby’s hands, Nikolai thrust them behind her back and yanked her right back into his arms. “Goddess, you have a mouth of a viper, woman! Shut up!” Abby’s eyes bulged then she gasped. “Shut up? Don’t tell me to shut up, you overbearing ingrain…” She didn’t get to finish. Nikola swooped down and shut her up on his own…with his mouth. Abby enjoyed it for one second before she began to struggle against him. When he wouldn’t release her, she bit him. Nikolai pulled back, suckling his bottom lip into his mouth as the Darkness showed itself with eyes as black as night boring down into hers. “If you want to deter my lust, milaya, I suggest you don’t do that again, because that will only get you the opposite.” Incredulous brown eyes gazed back as she shook her head. “Gods, you’re insufferable!” She spun away, giving him her back because she could not look 104 Forever Mine into those velvet orbs any longer. The moment she did, she just wanted to give him everything, and…bite him again. Nikolai sheepishly smiled at her stiff back. His eyes traveled down her spine and landed on the beautiful ass she was so kindly showing him. His excitement would not leave him, but he sighed with regretful acceptance because, well…she was right, this was not the time or the place to let his lust loose. No, when that time came, he would take her properly, in a bed, and he would not be rushed. He took a moment to compose himself. Taking deep breaths, he tore his eyes off her ass he just wanted to grab and bite, and closed them instead. When he opened them back up, they were once more blue, the lust more controllable as the stench of the moldy dungeon slipped into his nose and wiped out the sweet smell of her heat. With space in between them, Abby was also able to stifle everything else but her anger and fear. With her bitterness at full force and when she finally found the courage in her heart, she turned around and looked at him scathingly. “What do you want?” “Well, I had thought to bring you food and drink, but I guess you are not hungry.” ”You think?” she sneered. Nikolai’s eyes darkened from her snarky comment then he took a breath. Obviously she was pissed, and she had every right to be, so he took a second to stamp down his own anger before he addressed her again. “Abaigeal…” The second he said her name he felt…whole. It rolled off his lips so easily, so naturally, that he found he just wanted to say it again and again. “That’s Miss Mac Branain to you, vampire,” she snapped back. Nikolai held her gaze with a steely stare. Okay, she wasn’t that perceptive to him right now, he could understand that; still, he did not appreciate the tone of her voice nor her denial of his use of her first name - that really ticked him off. He started again, his voice still low and calm, yet grating as he tried to hold back his growing irritation. “Abaigeal…” She stepped up to him, eyes blazing. “You don’t have the right to call me that. Only people I know and trust can call me by my given name!” “You know me,” Nikolai gritted out, challenging her to deny it, and…she did. Abby looked back unflinchingly. “No, General. I really don’t.” For some reason, it was extremely important to Abby to act as cold and indifferent as he had. She chose to ignore the fact that just moments before she had been rubbing up against him like an insatiable wanton. She was determined to not give into the yearning she felt just from being in the same room with him. She would not allow her emotions to rule her. But he would not accept her indifference. Nikolai growled irritably. His hands snapped out reached for her, pulling her back into his arms. “Need I remind you just how well you do know me?” Abby’s eyes widened as she looked up into his handsome face and the deep blue eyes that were pissed off and, she gulped, full of righteous resolve. 105 Forever Mine “You can’t hide from me, milaya. You can’t deny me that which I have already known and touched…tasted with abandonment. “ “I don’t need to deny something you obviously aren’t interested in.” “Not interested in? You are the only thing I have been interested in for the past three months! I know you are confused. I know you don’t understand what’s going on and I’ll tell you, when I am able to, but when we are alone. Do not insult yourself by denying our night of passion, especially after your hot little body was just riding my cock seeking more. Don’t be a hypocrite. At least be honest with yourself.” Abby’s eyes flared. “Hypocrite! That’s priceless coming from you, don’t you think? The king of hypocrisy.” Nikolai’s teeth ground together. Goddess, was she always this stubborn? “I told you there is…” “Much I don’t know…yeah, yeah, yeah,” she mocked him and he growled angrily. “So tell me…spill the beans, General. I’ve got nowhere to go.” He stood rigid, his mouth tight and unyielding, wordless. Abby snorted. “Yeah, that’s what I thought. You know, don’t come down here and treat me like I’m some lost love of yours. As if that night meant anything more to you then what it was, which was nothing!” Nikolai’s face turned red with rage. Nothing! Nothing! How the fuck can she stand there and say that night meant nothing when he could clearly smell his scent…wait a minute. Nikolai took a deep whiff, then another…when he didn’t smell what he expected to, the Darkness emerged. Snarling angrily, he reached out and grabbed Abby, hauling her up against him as he nestled his face in the crook of her neck. Abby struggled against him, frantic to get away from the potent effect his nearness created, but he held her tightly, refusing to let her go. Nikolai swallowed down the unrelenting fervor and instead closed his eyes to concentrate on her, on everything about her. He took another deep whiff and what he smelt was…innocence? Mercilessly, his hands clasped her arms, once more taking a deep and prolonged breathe, trying to comprehend what he was not smelling. Had it all been a dream? Was the time he spent hotly encased in her tight sheath just one big wet dream? No way! That night happened. He had held her before. He had taken her virginity. He had felt her body convulsing hungrily around his shaft as she came. Yet…what he smelt now was not his scent. It was not the fragrance of a taken woman. He smelt innocence. Purity. A virgin. He sensed absolutely nothing from her at all! What the fuck was going on? “What is this?” When Abby didn’t answer quickly enough, resentful anger consumed Nikolai. He roughly shook her as piercing sable eyes bore down into hers. The moment he did, all his senses opened to her and the anger slowly started to recede. The Darkness reached out to her mind and deep inside her soul. Her eyes were steady on his - powerless to look away - and that’s when he finally smelt it. 106 Forever Mine Him. His scent was on her skin; it was faint but still lingering and right below that was her complete lack of innocence. Grunting with satisfaction, the Darkness moved further, focusing more on her. The deeper it went the more Nikolai began to sense her inner turmoil. Fear with her situation, sadness for all the creatures in the dungeon, shame at being caught, and concern as to how she would escape. They were all alive inside her – inside him – but the most potent emotion was the cutting betrayal she felt from him. It was deep and bitter, heartrending, and it was as real and potent as her selfdisgust for still wanting him so badly. Her pain sliced into Nikolai’s soul, but the desire she was trying so hard to ignore was a match to his own. He shivered uncontrollably from the fiery heat. The slight sweet scent of her arousal once more assailed him and stoked the flames of his desire. Everything he felt in her and from her was so divine that he needed more. He needed to bath in her essence. It was like a drug his body had to have. He was lost in dark desires and absolute need, and he let his eyes close - just for one second - as he fed that need and savored everything he felt from her; glorying in the way it breathed and hummed with life inside him, gifting him with a sense of completion and absolute ecstasy. With the General’s invasive stare no longer on her, Abby deeply exhaled and averted her gaze to the floor. Her body shook from the complex emotions rolling through her. Those sable eyes sought everything she was even though she did not want to give it. The part of her that needed to hold on to some sort of independence had tried to resist, but it was useless. The moment his velvet eyes fixated on her she felt herself open to him, felt her soul welcome him with open arms and embrace him as if it was where he always belonged. Nikolai purred contently. “There…there I am, milaya moya…my scent…my brand on your body…Goddess, it smells so right,” he mumbled in Russian. Abby’s eyes widened with incredulous disbelief. How could that be? Since that fateful night, she had been taking a daily potion that hid the scent of her non-innocent state. And just the day before she took the potion to conceal her thoughts and feelings; she knew it worked because he didn’t sense anything a moment ago, his anger had clearly expressed that. But the instant his demon emerged, the second those beautiful sable eyes penetrated hers, he saw her for exactly who and what she was. Frightened and feeling as if her world just spun off its axis, Abby frantically struggled in his grasp. She needed space in between them. She needed to stop the inexplicable emotions she couldn’t get a handle on and didn’t want. Nikolai released his hold on her arms, giving her space to take two steps back. She was breathing hard and her eyes stared back at him wildly. “How do you do that?” he asked. She didn’t answer him; she felt vulnerable and that openness scared her. She backed away from him. Her eyes showing him how exposed she felt, but he was too wrapped up in his confusion to relent. 107 Forever Mine Nikolai stepped closer and grasped her upper arms again, drawing her against his hard body once more. “Answer me!” Abby gasped the second their bodies touched. Electric currents of perplexed anger swirled inside of her, mixing with her own ravaged feelings. Her stubbornness wanted to refuse him but she found herself unable to deny the need to give him everything and anything he wanted. “It’s a potion,” she raggedly answered. “What kind of potion?” His hold slackened and Abby wiggled her way out and took a step back, rubbing her arms. “I don’t know what’s in it. My cousin makes it for me. It blocks my emotions from others.” He did not look happy with her answer and when he spoke again his voice was lower, darker. “And?” Abby took another step back. He was looking pretty damn scary, but with more distance between them, she felt her independence return. She knew what he wanted to know but as her mind once more became her own, her voice became stronger as the need to appease him dulled, and she answered him with ignorance. “And what? That’s it, General.” Growling furiously, Nikolai’s long legs took one extended stride, closing the gap between them. Abby’s eyes went wild again, her head madly shook as she voiced a silent ‘no’ just as his hands reached out and grabbed her once more. His fingers burrowed deep into her arms. His voice shook with the turbulent emotions he could not fight. “Stop calling me, General! My name is Nikolai, as you damn well know it! When we are alone, you will use it!” His eyes, though still a deep sable, softened slightly as he held her gaze and spoke his inner thoughts. “I scented nothing before but for some reason, when the Darkness emerges and I look into your eyes, I see everything, Abaigeal – everything. You cannot lie to me. You cannot hide what you’re thinking or feeling. Your attempts to do so, to keep me in the dark, do nothing but anger me.” He leaned in further, his lips hovering just above hers. “You know what I want to know, so tell me…how do you hide the fact that you are mine?” By the end of his speech, his voice had ridden dangerously loud and grumbling with the absolute fury he felt at her disloyalty, which to Nikolai was exactly what it was. Abby had a completely different opinion on the matter. Her eyes flashed with an irate fire of their own and she answered him indignantly, completely ignoring his command. “I am not yours, General, I belong to no one!” Goddess, Nikolai had never felt anything akin to what he felt at hearing that. It wasn’t anger and it wasn’t rage, even fury seemed way too tame a word to describe how he felt from her denial. He knew he could not shake her into submission, though that was exactly what he wanted to do, so instead he played dirty. Drawing her further into his embrace, Nikolai’s sable eyes morphed once again to endless pools of black velvet. 108 Forever Mine Knowing his intent and frightened by her unexplained and almost eager compliance, Abby tried to break free but it was useless; his hands only tightened on her arms. Instead of getting the space she craved, she found her body swaying toward him as those all-seeing orbs penetrated hers with a deep-seated intimacy that was bursting with unfed lust. She felt the full force of his solid body pressed against hers. His fingers, though still holding her tightly, began a slow tantalizing rake up and down her arms. Beautiful black eyes promised soul-binding passion. When he opened his mouth to speak, his voice was deep and seductive, bringing her memories to life, bringing her own desires way too close to the surface for her peace of mind. “Oh, but you do, milaya. You let me into your hot little body. You took me inside you and you rode my cock as if you were always meant to, and when the time came for me to give you my seed, you took it…greedily. That is my claim on you.” His words both excited her and terrified her. Abby shook her head no, desperately trying to deny his blunt ownership. Nikolai tenderly smiled with understanding. “Yes. Has denying it for the past months made the absence of my body easier to bear?” he softly asked. The arrogance Abby heard in his voice fortified her strength and she snapped at him, telling him exactly what her fear told her. “I haven’t been telling myself anything but the truth.” “The truth?” His low and sinisterly sexy chuckle had her shivering in his embrace. “No. The truth is that three months ago my cock was nestled snuggly inside your hot welcoming cunt. The truth is that you took me inside of you, no, you demanded that I fuck you with mindless abandonment. The truth is, Abaigeal, that you took everything I gave you with a passion and wantonness that blew my mind and tormented me endlessly for the past fucking months!” He grasped her arms harder as he drew her even closer against him, his gaze now self-incriminating and without mercy. “And the most damning truth of all is that I was stupid enough to let your delicious erotic display of pain influence my primal responsibility to seal our completely mutual mating with my kiss! That is the truth, Miss Abaigeal Mac Branain, and as I stand here before you now, smelling the enticing aroma of your body’s vivacious lust for mine, I know it is the truth for you. I will not stand here and allow you to deny it or deny my rights to you!” Abby’s mouth was on the floor. In fact, if she swirled her tongue around she was sure she’d taste the disgusting grub that lived there. She was literally at a loss for words. First off, right after hearing the word cock, her body did indeed flame with need, and with every harsh and vulgar word he spoke, it only burned hotter. She was stunned because, while she wanted to believe he had been branded that night just like her, she never really thought that he had been. To hear it spoken from his lips with such vigor made her heart flutter with happiness, but that was quickly followed up with her next emotion. The one that ran right through the happy little lust that was jumping for joy and shut it down - anger. ‘Rights.’ 109 Forever Mine He used that word like it meant something - like he owned her - and that she took great offense to. “You want honesty and truth. Fine, I admit we shared one night in which I lost my virginity, but you know what? So what! It’s not a big deal! And in case you’ve forgotten, General…” She stressed the word and Nikolai’s teeth grinded together in annoyance. “We are enemies, and you are holding me prisoner. So you can take all this alpha male vampire shit that you’re spouting out like the law, and blow it up your ass because it means nothing to me! I am my own person! I don’t belong to anyone, especially to a cold heartless bastard like you!” Wiggling free again, Abby jumped back and Nikolai let her. Mostly because her outburst made him so livid he didn’t trust himself to touch her anymore. She also shocked him with her down and out pluckiness, and truth be told – which was a bit embarrassing because it really wasn’t the moment for such things – turned him on immensely. Her sharp tongue held no prisoners as she stood up to him and told him off, completely fearless even though he sensed the confusion and fear his words had sparked. He had seen men - no, dozens of men and at the same freaking time! - cower when faced with his wrath, but not her. Not his lusty warrior with her tiny little body that he could squash like a fly. Now she stood back from him, her arms crossed against her chest, which rapidly rose then fell as her left leg tapped irately. Gods blood, it was sexy as hell. And her eyes, well, those basically told him to piss off. While her speech definitely required a much more thorough and sensually visceral response, she did remind him of one thing: he didn’t have the time. She was right. He was playing the part of the cold heartless General and until he could get her and the rest of his family safely out of Russia, he had to continue to play that part. So she thought he was a crude bastard and most likely considered his domineering words to be a bit overbearing, to put it nicely, and, he would let her for now because it suited his needs. This meeting solidified one thing for Nikolai, resisting the temptation to take what was his was going to be very, very hard, especially when he could feel her ardent needs that matched his own. Her anger would make it easier to resist. But when this was over, Goddess above give him strength, because he was going to tell her and show her just how wrong she was. Feeling confident now that she was out of his reach, Abby continued. “Unless you’ve come here to free me or kill me, get out! I want nothing to do with you – ever!” Though his anger was great, Nikolai calmed down enough for the Darkness to retreat. He took a step closer. Abby held her ground as he leaned down until they were brown eyes to blue. When he spoke it was with confidence of a future he expected but Abby had yet to understand. “You’re right, Lady Mac Branain. You are my enemy and I am nothing but the bastard General that has butchered fools like you for centuries. Forgive my short oversight; I was blinded by your promiscuous nature.” 110 Forever Mine Abby gasped sharply at the insult but Nikolai continued as he straightened and headed toward the door. “You’ll get no mercy from me, my lady, nor do you have to worry about me claiming you. After all, why would any man want to be saddled to a sharp tongue shrew?” Nikolai shut the door on her scream of outrage and the tin bowl she chucked at his head but slammed into the door instead. “Bastard! I hate you!” Her screams followed Nikolai as he made his way through the dungeon and up the steps. It tugged on his heart, but he would not let it fully affect him; he had a lot to do. Now that their initial meeting was over and her ruse out in the open and his determination to finally having her was clear and set in his mind, he could concentrate on the matters at hand. Which were getting her back home. 111 Forever Mine CHAPTER SEVEN Night time came all too quickly for Nikolai. After leaving the dungeon, he went back to his room and once more began to pace. He had gotten maybe an hour of sleep in, if he was lucky, before restlessness overtook him and he started his trek again. His bare feet treaded softly against the fine strands as his leather-clad legs lightly grazed each other as he walked. The supple sound gave him an odd sense of calm, even though he was far from calm. There were so many things he still did not know, things he could only learn from Abaigeal now that Boris was MIA. If the day’s earlier confrontation was any indication, she would not be open to his questions. It didn’t matter though, he would get his answers; he always did. And if he had to bully her until she was quaking with fear - if that was even possible - then so be it. The quicker he got answers then the quicker he could make arrangements to get them out of Russia so they can begin their confrontation all over again. A carnal smile lit his face and a naughty gleam of anticipation entered his blue orbs as he slowly rubbed his naked chest back and forth; he was truly looking forward to that. Having her back in his arms, being able to touch her again, to taste her, had been a divine gift from the Goddess above. Of course, it came at the most inopportune time but he wasn’t a fool; he would embrace it as much as he could. Suck her warmth into his cold body whenever the opportunity presented itself and hopefully without being detected. She would fight him, of that he was certain, but he didn’t care and truth be told, he was looking forward to it. She was spectacular in her anger and he couldn’t wait for her to display that feistiness again. Goddess but she had tons of courage and he found that to be another enticing trait in a woman. She was a unique woman and her uniqueness once more struck him as something so tangible that it was hard to resist. Her life force and essence called to him like a soothing balm to his blackened soul, and he found that even though he knew what he had to do, all he really wanted to do was beg her forgiveness. His insensitivity toward her pained him greatly. He longed to feel her arms wrapped around him and her husky voice telling him he was not a cold hearted bastard. He needed to feel her energy and heat so badly that he almost went back down to the dungeon five times in the course of the long day just to get a glimpse of it again. The temptation was hard to resist, but somehow he did, which completely surprised him. If his behavior down there was any indication, his need for her was almost uncontrollable. In fact, he would even go so far as to say that it was bordering on obsessive. It had taken all his strength and selfcontrol to stay away, and he really had no idea how he succeeded. It wasn’t that he lacked discipline, because he didn’t. Self-control always came easy to him. He never questioned his decisions and he never, ever regretted 112 Forever Mine not giving in. That was how his life had always been; calculated and measured, with unbending control. Chaotic control was what he experienced downstairs in the great room and in the dungeon, and that troubled him. He had felt himself slipping away and morphing into something entirely different, something lethal and dominate, a new-fangled life force that was magnified with an exaggerated amount of pure, concentrated power. Even now he felt stronger than he had ever felt in his life. Everything was amplified, his senses and emotions - lust, anger, protectiveness everything, and on a much more primal level. And it all started the moment the word ‘nothing’ had come out of her luscious mouth. He growled irritably. Enraged, that was what he had felt, pure red hot rage that went from his toes all the way to his head, hitting every single part of him with lightning speed. It had awoken the Darkness with a vengeance and the only thing he wanted to do was prove her wrong and reaffirm what he already knew…that she was his. The need to learn that and pretty much all her other secrets was enormous. It governed his actions and his thoughts, and he set out to seek that which he hungered for and just like that – by a snap of a finger – he learned everything he wanted to know. A troubling frown creased his forehead. Why, after so many years, had that particular gift emerged? Had the power to probe always been inside him? And what about blocking? Had he been blocking Arnost’s probes all these years without even knowing it? Scowling even darker now, Nikolai made another pass across the room, he didn’t have any answers to his questions but he knew one thing for absolute certainty…Abaigeal was the key. These changes all started after meeting her and being in her presence only seemed to make them that much more vivid. He felt so out of sorts. Never in his life had he been plagued with so many unanswered questions and he did not like the feeling. He liked order. He liked things to be just where they were supposed to be. That wasn’t the case now. Now, he felt himself adrift in a sea of never-ending confusion. Like potions, what kind of potions could deter a vamp’s natural ability to sense another’s emotions? That was powerful mojo and he wondered just who the hell her cousin was. Raphael, Arnost’s own Soothsayer, was the most powerful Soothsayer alive, but not even he had come up with something like that. If he could, he damn well would have because it was indeed a helpful element to have on the battlefield. There was something weird with this entire scenario; a major piece of the puzzle was missing. Knowing she was Magnus’ daughter, he could understand why she hid her identity. He could also appreciate the use of powerful magic as an aid when fighting. What he could not grasp was why Magnus’ protected treasure was out there to begin with at all. He also couldn’t help but wonder how someone as beautiful and tempting as Abaigeal had remained a virgin. Were the men in California blind or were they all just cowards and too afraid to face the wrath of the Overlord? Nikolai smirked. That, he could easily believe. Magnus had a blisteringly vicious temper, especially when it came to protecting those he loved. Taking that into consideration and still seeing Abaigeal here was a contradiction that baffled 113 Forever Mine him. None of it made sense. Why was she fighting in the war and what the hell were they thinking sending her into Russia? He could only assume she was here because of his missive. He growled angrily. Damn it, he should have expected this. If he had then he would have been better prepared. Of course, he never would have predicted the woman of his dreams would be the person they would send. He snorted. He couldn’t have prepared for that. Nothing could have prepared him to deal with the emotional shock he felt at seeing her again, or the tug of war that was playing out with the Darkness now. The only thing he could do was prepare. Arnost and Konstantin would be leaving tonight for the Summit. He had to assume that at some point Dalibor would be taking Abaigeal to Arnost’s mountain home. That meant he had a very small window of opportunity to get answers from her. He also had to devise a plan to help her escape. Nikolai wasn’t entirely sure what Arnost’s plan was, but he could guess. Arnost only ever wanted one thing – Magnus’ head on a platter and to be anointed Overlord. With Abaigeal in his possession, that plan could become fruitful. If Nikolai was right, it was absolutely imperative that Abaigeal be in Scotland before the Summit. ********** As Nikolia paced upstairs, Abby was doing much of the same in the tight confines of her cell. She had no idea how much time had passed since the General left; all she knew was that she was seriously in a lot of trouble. Besides what Arnost had planned for her, which she really did not even want to contemplate, there was the fact that sooner than later her father was going to find out, and when that happened, a whole lot of people were going to be in big, big trouble, all because of her inability to do what she was told. Remembering Shane’s words before leaving California had a harsh laugh spilling from her lips. She would take an ass kicking from her brother; if only she could get out of here in one piece to receive it. Her feet stopped in mid-stride. Someone was coming, but she had no time to wonder who; so lost in her thoughts, she wasn’t aware of the quietness until she heard the creak of a key in the lock and the cell door was opening. Abby stood back. Her arms were at her side, her fists clenching as she watched Vladimir, her cell keeper, walk in with Arnost right behind him. “Hello, my dear, I hope you are finding your room satisfactory.” He snickered Abby smiled back at him. “Oh, I’m absolutely loving it. I really could not have asked for a better cell. Except…” She titled her head to the side and looked at him innocently. “I don’t suppose you have a magazine of some sort, you know, to pass the time with.” “You are just like your mother: sarcastic, smart-mouthed and beautiful.” Arnost glanced at Vladimir, a smile of wicked delight crossing his features as he 114 Forever Mine did. “I believe I have something you seek, my dear.” He nodded and Vladimir approached Abby. “You know, something to pass the time with.” Abby’s fists rose but she had no time to land a punch before Vladimir wrapped her in a bear hug and threw her against the wall. She struggled against his unyielding grip as he raised her arms then, one by one, shackled them to the wall. She kicked out with her feet but Vladimir easily grabbed her legs and restrained them in manacles. When he was done, he stepped back to admire his work. “There is nothing more distasteful than a beautiful woman with a mouth that runs rampant.” Arnost coldly said. “I feel it is my duty to instruct you on the proper behavior of a lady. After all, you are in my care. Never let it be said that Count Moravec does not treat his guests with their best interests in mind.” “How thoughtful of you,” Abby sneered then struggled against the binds that held her shackled to the wall. Unable to move except for an inch away from the stones, the position Abby found herself in abruptly registered and the panic she conquered before slowly started to build again. Holding Arnost’s gaze Abby felt a small nudge in her head as his eyes turned darker and the scowl on his face angrier. Abby smugly smiled. “Are you feeling alright, Count? You look a little… off.” Arnost was indeed off; for some reason he was unable to probe her. As he delved further, he sensed that, beyond a disgustingly high amount of compassion and goodness, she had no mental power to probe or block. When he entered her head, all he saw was fog. Thick black fog that he could not find his way through. There was only one answer. He mockingly applauded her. “I see I am not the only one who has powerful friends. Tell me, my dear, what exactly is its purpose?” “Isn’t it obvious? To keep assholes like you out of my head.” Arnost’s smiled was downright chilling. “Indeed, a most ingenious spell, one I can see would be helpful. Of course, for someone of my stature, you must know that there is no spell or potion that could keep me out for long.” Abby snorted. “I don’t see you in there now, so maybe you’re not as great as you think you are.” Vladimir growled angrily then viscously slapped Abby across the face. “Please, excuse Vladimir, my friend does not take kindly to insults against me,” Arnost replied. Abby’s head violently turned to the side. Her cheek burned and she could feel it turning red. She looked directly into the culprit’s eyes. “What comes around, goes around, Vlad…just you remember that.” Her voice was chilly, dogmatic and purposeful. Essentially, it did what she intended it to do; it disturbed the big brute who swallowed, took a step back, then nervously looked toward Arnost. “And he won’t be able to save you,” she whispered. 115 Forever Mine Arnost chuckled. She was so entertaining; he was truly going to enjoy his time with her. The look in her eyes was feral yet calm; dignity and strength shown back like a bright light. She hadn’t even batted an eye when Vladimir struck her, which Arnost was very pleased with. There was nothing he loved more than a toy with stamina. “My dear, your resilience is quite stimulating. I hope you prove to be as strong-willed as your mother. That woman has an uncanny endurance for pain. Why, I suspect that is the one and only pleasure your father gets from her.” Abby’s eyes flared with incensed anger. She spat and hit her target then watched with satisfaction as Arnost lifted one frail finger and wiped it off his cheek, then nodded at Vladimir. Abby turned toward the vamp just in time to see his big burly fist come right at her cheek. He connected and the force of the blow rattled her brains. “My, my, such manners, I wonder if the decorous Magnus knows how unruly his precious daughter is. Somehow, I doubt it. Fathers…” Contempt dripped with every syllable of the word as it left Arnost’s lips, “They are so blinded by their revolting and rather misplaced I might add, affections for their young that they fail to see what is truly in their hearts.” Abby shook her head, trying to clear the fog that one mighty blow strangely created. Vladimir appeared to be just your normal every day vamp albeit a six foot two, three hundred pound vamp, but still just a vamp. She had taken blows like that before, that punch should not have affected her so much. Arnost stepped closer, evilly smiling with pleasure as he read the confusion in her eyes and saw her inquisitive gaze on Vladimir. “You’re not the only one with magical friends, my dear. I find mine to be quite useful when it comes to enhancing one’s natural abilities.” Abby’s gaze remained on Vladimir who was completely absorbed with the tiny particles of dust floating in the air and not paying attention to her or his master. Idiot. “I guess that doesn’t extend to brains, huh?” Arnost chortled. “Unfortunately no, but then again Vladimir did not have much to improve upon to begin with.” Abby snorted. “Now, let’s get down to business shall we, my dear? I am looking for answers, Abaigeal, and if you are as stubborn as both your parents are, which I have no doubt you are, than you will be treated to more of Vladimir’s enhanced abilities.” Outwardly Abby had it all together, inside she was shaking. She’d always been prepared to accept whatever Fate threw her way, it was something you had to do when you were a warrior, but she couldn’t stop the feeling of unease that filled her. She did have a high tolerance for pain; but that one punch from the magically enhanced Vladimir made her question her own staying power. But no matter how much that nervousness tugged at her soul, she would not show it. She would, however, try to stall it. “What do you want from me? Do you plan on ransoming me? Are you finding your pockets slightly empty these days Count?” she flippantly asked. 116 Forever Mine Arnost chuckled. “Hardly, my dear. No, I seek no monetary gain from your capture.” “Then what do you want?” Arnost’s eyes flared with indignation. “I want my due. I want what should have been mine to begin with. I want to take my place as the rightful Overlord, and by this time next week, I will.” Abby sniggered. “Fat chance, that.” “Oh, it’s not as difficult as you would think, my dear, and I have you to thank for that.” Goddess, he sounded so confident and assured that foreboding seeped in. Abby swallowed down the rising panic tightening in her chest and kept her voice calm and steady as a rock. “Me? What do I have to do with it?” “You are Magnus’ most beloved and cherished daughter, his only daughter I might add. How do you think he’s going to react when he discovers you are missing and naturally assumes that I have you?” Abby didn’t answer because she knew exactly what her father’s reaction would be. Goddess, what had she done? Arnost smiled at her. “Yes, my dear, his rage will be great and he will come for me regardless of the fact that we will be at the Summit.” “No, he wouldn’t do that,” she stiffly said, even though she knew that was exactly what her father would do. “Of course he will. Your father, though an intelligent man, would not be able to control his demon’s need for revenge, his desire to see me dead. Well, either him or one of your hot-headed brothers. Either way, I still get what I want.” Arnost gifted her with a sneaky, lowdown smile of anticipated joy. The man might as well be rubbing his hands together in mad glee. “I don’t understand.” “Well, that is to be expected. After all, you are just a woman. “ That bigoted remark had Abby’s blood boiling. Arnost chuckled, seeing the insulted look on her face. “Let me enlighten you, my dear. I assume you have been properly educated as to the purpose of the Summit and all that it entails?” “Yes,” she gritted out. Arnost studied her for a few seconds then he smiled as if she were a stupid child. “No, my dear, I don’t think have. Do you know what the Eternus Pactum is?” Abby shook her head. “It is a covenant that the Overlord and all acting Sovereigns signed at the first Summit. It is a peace bond that any and all parties must adhere to while the Summit is taking place,” Arnost patiently explained. “You’re taking about the no violence rule,” Abby interjected. She did know of that, everyone did, she just never knew the stupid thing had a name. She guessed she had her loving father to thank for keeping her ignorant on that little bit of information. 117 Forever Mine “Are you aware of what happens should that pact be broken?” Arnost quietly asked. Every muscle in Abby’s body was strung tight. Of course she did….everyone did! Arnost felt her anxiety and a spiteful smile crossed his mouth. “Your father’s rage will be thunderous; he will not be able to stop himself from accusing me in front of the Council. I, of course, will claim my innocence, which will only enrage him further. Knowing how passionate Magnus is about protecting his own, it should be his undoing. He will come after me and when he attempts his revenge in the presence of Circinn and the Council members, they will have no choice but to abide by the rules of the Summit.” There was a long drawn out second of silence as Arnost let that soak in. Seeing her face pale, he grinned with cruel delight. “He will be killed, my dear, and I will be standing there as innocent as a babe watching with glee.” “But the Council is behind my father as ruling Overlord and has been for over a hundred years. They will not kill him,” she quietly said, feeling sick to her stomach with the thought of being responsible for her father’s death and this sick maniac getting control, so much so that she refused to believe it. “No, they would not kill him!” “They will have no choice. They must abide by the rules they themselves laid out. There can be no bloodshed at the Summit, all parties agreed to this accord a century ago. It is the way,” Arnost pointed out. “It is a blood pact, girl. It’s not about what they wish; it’s about doing what must be done. So, you see, there will be no ransom and you will not be going anywhere…well, except to my mountain home, that is.” The veracity of his explanation was Abby’s breaking point because no matter how much she wanted to believe the Council would not kill her father, she knew they would. In that moment, all she saw was her father’s blood – on her hands. Horror was written all over her face and Arnost grinned maliciously. “Now, my dear, you understand the importance of the position you are in. Might I suggest that you comply with my wishes? Considering how much time we shall be spending together in the future, I can make that time pleasant or extremely discomforting. The choice is yours. Here is how it’s going to work.” Arnost stepped back, putting about three feet of distance between them. Vladimir took Arnost’s place, cracking his knuckles and rubbing his beefy mitts in readiness. “I’m going to ask you a question and you are going to answer it, or you will enjoy more play time with Vladimir. Question number one: what were you doing at Boris Klinkoff’s?” Abby gazed back at Arnost quizzically. “If you’re so confident that you have me right where you want me then what does that have to do with anything?” Vladimir’s hand shot out and struck her right in the lip. “I’m asking the questions, not you, my dear.” Arnost said. “However, I can be an agreeable man when it suits me. Boris and I have our differences, many 118 Forever Mine in fact. We share a mutual acquaintance who, as of late, seems less enthusiastic of the position he holds in my army. A position I feel he wants out of.” Abby’s lip quirked up in amusement. “You mean not even your soldiers like or respect you? That is quite shocking. I’m rather stunned, my…” Vladimir’s fist cut her off and split open her bottom lip. Arnost’s fury flared. “You will learn, Abaigeal, that I do not take sassy remarks from stupid young women who think they can rattle me. Now, I want to know what you were doing at Boris’. Who sent you?” Of course, Abby had no idea why she was sent to watch Boris. Why Arnost wanted to know was indeed a curious thing, as was his reaction, which was rage, and, she sensed, a touch fearful. For the Count to be this concerned over one of his men jumping ship must mean that man held a high station within the ranks. All of sudden, the reason why she was sent to Russia started to make sense. The only question that remained was just who this man was that his defection would inspire such fear and uncertainty in the otherwise unflappable Count. Well, she’ll figure that one out later. “Fuck you.” She spat in Old Norse. Arnost’s expression turned to frigid amusement. “I knew you wouldn’t disappoint, my dear.” He nodded at Vladimir Before Abby could react, Vlad unshackled her and flipped her around. Her face slammed up against the moldy stone wall and then he grabbed her arms and legs and manacled them to the wall once again. Out of the corner of her eye, Abby watched the giant lean down and pick up a leather whip that was lying at his feet. His stubby fingers reached into the neck of her suit then, in one downward pull, ripped it all the way down to the top of her ass. “I think ten to start with, Vladimir,” Arnost callously instructed and Vladimir obeyed. The first wallop of the leather ripped into Abby’s back with sharp precision. Stunned. Abby jumped and clenched her teeth in an effort to keep from shouting. She would not show weakness. That was what the vile pig wanted and she would not give it to him. Like rapid fire strikes, Vladimir lifted the whip and landed four consecutive lashes, each one in a different spot and each one with a different impact. She could barely breathe. Her back was on fire, her arms and legs were already aching from her muscles tightening in anticipation, and she prayed to the Goddess above that she would be able to withstand more. “What were you doing at Boris’?” With lips that were slowly beginning to dry and tears budding in her eyes, Abby answered him, “Fuck you!” “Ten more, Vladimir.” Abby’s body constricted as once more the whip fell against her flesh. As Vladimir’s switch landed with practiced strokes and the pain began to throb incessantly, she struggled to keep her cries at bay then the strangest thing happened. 119 Forever Mine From out of nowhere and through the aching fog circulating in her mind, midnight eyes unexpectedly broke through. Black as night and endlessly comforting, they touched her intimately, creating a calm and tender balm to her consciousness at the same time as they flared with incensed rage. Abby didn’t know why she thought of the General and she didn’t care because the solace that image gave her was paramount and she let it wash over her. She would question it later, rail at her weakness much, much later, but for now she would hold on to that visage with her entire being, and she would let the warm intoxicating memories of being in his arms enfold her. As Abby opened her heart, mind, and soul to the intense pleasure those recollections invoked, she knew everything would be alright. He would help her, all she had to do was hold on. ********** Downstairs in the palace, a small door in the corridor between the foyer and the study slipped open and Mikkel stepped out. Quietly closing the door, he made his way down the hall and toward the stairs. It was his usual method of entering the palace. When Nikolai bought the old estate, he gave Mikkel free reign over the guesthouse, which was behind the palace and down the mountain. The small guesthouse suited his needs and the connecting tunnel to the palace, along with the small dirt bike to get to and from, was perfect, especially when he could not wait for the sun to set. He was anxious to speak to Koyla. The rumors he had been hearing since arriving at the palace early that morning were hard to believe, and like his friend, he did not like surprises. With the way Nikolai had been acting lately, which was surprising in itself, additional surprises were unwelcome. Reaching Nikolai’s door, Mikkel rapped once then opened it and peeked in. “Honey, I’m home. Are you decent?” He said with a smirk on his face and a ton of questions in his light blue eyes as he strode inside the room. Nikolai studied his friend with slight irritation. If there was one thing he could always count on, it was Mikkel’s easy-going and droll demeanor. The Goddess knew it had brought Nikolai out of some serious funks over the long and tiring years. He respected his friend and most times he appreciated those qualities but not today. “I am not in the mood for your amusement, Misha.” Feeling the frigid atmosphere of the room, Mikkel contemplated Nikolai’s short reply and the aura of the man himself, which was tight with hostile tension. Mikkel peeled his gloves off then tossed them on the bed. “Yes, the frost slowly building under my nose expresses exactly how you are feeling today Koyla so I will refrain from asking.” Nikolai grunted, his dark gaze following Mikkel as he stepped over to the window and gazed out with idleness. He appeared almost bored but Nikolai knew his friend well and he sensed the unrest that lay coiled under the well-honed diversion. 120 Forever Mine “So, I understand we have acquired a new guest.” Mikkel pivoted and speared Nikolai with his inquisitive eyes. Nikolai frowned. New traveled fast around here; too damn fast. “Where did you hear that?” “Are you kidding?” Mikkel chortled. “The guards, the soldiers, the servants…they are all talking about it; it’s the biggest news since you installed satellite. Tongues are a wagging, my friend, and the drool is building puddles at their feet. “ Nikolai’s only reply was another loud and insufferable snort. “And you know what the juiciest bit of gossip is?” Mikkel asked. “That Dalibor is getting a well-deserved and long overdue flogging?” Mikkel’s eyebrow went up, a smile lighting his face. “Is he really? That is definitely juicy and you’ll have to fill me in as to how that came about, because you know I love all the gory details.” Nikolai smirked then settled his big body down into the chair before the fireplace. Mikkel’s humor faded and he became serious for the first time since he stepped into the room. “While that is juicy, it is not what has everyone…antsy.” Nikolai knew what he was going to say, he was expecting it. News this big would circulate very quickly amongst his people, most of whom were loyal to him. There were, however, a select few that could not be trusted. Spies installed in his home at the command of Arnost and Konstantin. It was downright disrespectful if you asked him. “It’s the celebrity status of our guest,” Mikkel continued as he settled his big six-foot-six frame in the chair across from Nikolai. Sitting forward, he rested his elbows on his knees as his hands anxiously grasped each other. “They say it is Abaigeal Mac Branain, is it true?” Nikolai nodded. “Dalibor brought her here. She was caught spying at Boris’, who is MIA, I might add.” “MIA? Do you think he’s dead?” “Doubtful. The man has a knack of disappearing very quickly.” Nikolai’s gaze settled once more on the flames of the fire. “I’m confident he’s alive and well, somewhere." His piercing gaze swung to Mikkel's. "I need you to find him for me, Misha. Tonight, after Arnost and Konstantin leave.” "Of course. I'll search his local haunts. He can't be far. Knowing Boris, he's probably right under our noses. So, has Arnost approached you?” Mikkel asked softly. “No, and I don’t think he will. He has a new agenda now, one that takes precedence over the old one.” Mikkel sat back, glowering. “I don’t need to hear what that is. I can only imagine what our sadistic Count has in store for her.” Nikolai’s face reflected intense fury as his anxiety effectively thickened the air to a suffocating degree. Mikkel studied him with great earnest just as he had been doing for the past three months - ever since that night in Germany. Something happened to Nikolai that night, something that gave him a new purpose. He never asked what happened because he knew if Nikolai wasn’t ready 121 Forever Mine to share, he wouldn’t. But it wasn’t long after that when Nikolai came to him and told him of his plans, which once more made Mikkel curious. Nikolai had reluctantly played Arnost and his father’s game to keep his family safe. What could have possibly taken place that night to change that? Mikkel knew it had to be something extraordinary, something life-altering, because there was no way in hell anything less would make Nikolai decide to revolt and put the people he had been trying to protect in danger. Sitting with him now, Mikkel sensed that Nikolai’s aura was different just like that night in Germany. He appeared to be extremely confused, concerned and deeply troubled about something. However, the biggest tell was that intoxicating scent of power and woman that circled him like an invisible cloud, and came with a fierce and violent possessiveness. Mikkel’s concern grew with the awareness that Nikolai seemed to be at a loss himself as to what was going on with him, and that had too many possibilities of becoming something altogether too dangerous. “Koyla, what’s going on with you?” Mikkel quietly asked, but the concern in his voice was booming. Nikolai’s scowl darkened and he showed his confusion by haphazardly swiping his hand through his dark locks. “I don’t know, Misha, I feel…different. I can’t explain it. All I know is that when I change, I…” He looked at him. “I can do things I’ve never been able to do. I don’t know if it’s with everyone, but with her…with her it just happens, naturally. I have no control over it. It’s like I want to know something so badly and I just do it.” He looked away, his eyes peering wildly into the fire as if the amber flames held all the answers he sought. “It’s her, it has to be her, ever since...it’s been building up slowly but now, now it just feels like the Darkness is growing stronger. I feel stronger…more powerful, and it just feels right. Like it’s always been inside of me but sleeping, until…” “Her.” Mikkel finished his sentence and Nikolai’s gaze swung back to him. “You know her.” Mikkel quietly said. It wasn’t a question, it was a statement. “And here I thought I was doing a damn good job of hiding it.” Nikolai frowned then cursed under his breath. “It was that night in Germany, wasn’t it? You met her that night?” “I did, and you know what happened that night.” Nikolai said smirking. Mikkel smiled sheepishly. “It was hard not to, Koyla, smelling the scent of sex on a battlefield is very…provocative. Shit, my dick was so hard I barely kept my hand off of it.” Nikolai softly chuckled. “To be honest, I’ve been waiting for you to ambush me with questions since then. I know what I smelt like that night.” He looked away and stared into the fireplace once again, seeking peace and finding none. “It’s haunted me ever since.” Mikkel’s expression became thoughtful and sympathetic. “I hate to tell you this, my friend, but it sounds to me like you’ve met your mate, but I think you’ve already figured that out.” Nikolai snorted unhappily. Yes, he had. 122 Forever Mine “That’s a beautiful thing, Nikolai, not all vampires are as lucky. Some go there entire lives never finding their mates.” Nikolai sighed. “I know and believe me, I am happy that I have, but right now I cannot allow myself to bask in the joy of such a miracle. There are too many things that need to be set right first. I’m plagued by the timing of it, being torn between loyalties once more. I tell you, my friend, I would rather have a life of boredom then have to deal with anymore tug of wars upon my soul. Now, to top it off, there is this new…life inside of me that I don’t have any answers to.” “I think you’re overlooking something,” Mikkel softly said. “What’s that?” “What you’re feeling, these changes, they’re normal for an Upyr. That’s what happens when a Pure finds his S’airsul; he develops, becoming more of his true self. At least, that’s what the myth is.” Mikkel hit it right on the head and of course he was correct; it was a myth because there were no more pure blooded vampires left anymore to confirm it. Except for the late Carvilius, they had all been wiped out in the first war with the humans. Only Nikolai’s mother remained, and even if he knew where she was, she was in no condition to explain anything to him anymore. “I thought about that as well but I’m not a full Pure. I have Konstantin’s vile blood running through my veins and although he wishes he were, he is not of pure blood.” “True, but we already know that you are more like your mother than Konstantin. The fact that you don’t change like a turned vampire is proof in the pudding. The Darkness, the aspect that makes a Pure Blood different than a turned vamp, is inside you, it always has been.” Mikkel sat back. “I think it explains much as to what you’re feeling. The Darkness sees in Lady Mac Branain its S’airsul. It hungers for her, which makes it harder for you to control it.” Mikkel’s words sparked a memory in Nikolai, a memory he had long ago forgotten of a woman who had been beautiful and caring, sane. It was the memory of the last rational conversation Nikolai had with his mother. “I do remember my mother saying something to me when I was young. She said I was special and that one day, when I least expect it, I would find out. She also said that my father and Arnost would not like it. I remember she had a smile on her face when she said that.” “Perhaps that is why they keep you tied to them,” Mikkel interjected. “Mayhap they know what it is and they are afraid of it, so they keep you ignorant and hold Katya and Sasha over your head to keep you on their short leash. You know, it’s really not that much different than what we’ve always wondered. We’ve always known that there had to be something more to it.” The more Mikkel talked and the more Nikolai thought about it, the more it made sense. But he could not just assume anything; he needed direct and honest answers. As he continued to sit there and think, he realized that perhaps these questions he could get answers to. Though his mother was lost in her own unhinged world, there was one man that could help…Circinn. He was the only one Nikolai could think of who 123 Forever Mine would have the answers he sought, and if Cinn didn’t, then the great library at his castle would – two things he would only find in Scotland. “You might be right, but I’ll get no answers now. Cinn should have some or the great library. Either way, they will have to wait to get answered until then. For now, I can’t even contemplate it any further. I can’t think about her or what she means to me, it’s too dangerous. If they were to discover…” Nikolai shook his head, his eyes glowing with fury. “I’m afraid of what I would do, Misha, what the Darkness would do. Just the thought scares me; the violence I feel inside is strong, and its ease to control is unnerving.” All frightening feelings, Mikkel thought. He, of course, had some thoughts of his own, but he kept them quiet for now. Nikolai already had too much on his plate. Besides, if things continued to play out as Mikkel suspected they would, then his thoughts could possibly be revealed as truth. Mikkel decided to switch topics. “What the hell do you think Magnus was thinking sending her here?” Nikolai shook his head. “I’ve been trying to figure that one out myself. It doesn’t make any sense. Why would a man who has been protecting his daughter send her into the den of the wolves?” “It’s not like him,” Mikkel answered. No, it wasn’t, and that was something Nikolai had to find out from Abaigeal. Nikolai stood up and pulled a shirt out. Then he sat back down and pulled on his boots. As he did, Mikkel watched him thoughtfully. Their conversation going over in his mind as he rethought everything that was discussed and, he just realized, not discussed. “Nikolai,” he softly entreated him. “How is it that Konstantin and Arnost do not already know, about Abaigeal and you?” Putting his foot down on the floor, Nikolai stood up, grabbed his leather vest and headed toward the door. “She takes potions, one to hide her emotions and feelings from probing vampires, and the other to hide her lack of innocence.” Mikkel’s eyes widened. “Really, how clever. And how does she hide your mark? Does she have a potion for that as well?” Nikolai turned and blasted Mikkel with an irritated scowl. Well, that answered that. “You didn’t bite her.” “No. I let her persuade me not to.” Nikolai growled his displeasure and opened the door, stepping out into the hallway. Mikkel almost laughed at the expression on his friend’s face but he didn’t think Nikolai would appreciate that. Mikkel followed Nikolai out into the hallway. “Well, for now, you’re better off.” = Mikkel slapped him on the shoulder. “Besides, I’m sure when all is settled you will remedy that without delay.” Mikkel’s wicked grin spurned Nikolai’s just as sinful smirk. Just the thought of tasting her blood made his shaft stiffen with anticipation. Quietly they walked the rest of the way down the stairs and toward the great hall. They just reached the archway when Alexi came barreling out of the kitchen door, his pace quickening when he saw Nikolai. “Milord…” 124 Forever Mine Alexi cleared his throat. He was nervous, which told Nikolai he was not going to like what he was about to hear. “Milord, I was just on my way to see you. I was waylaid by the Count’s orders to ready Lord Kotova for their trip to Scotland. His lordship was barely conscious so it took longer than anticipated.” Nikolai snorted with disgust. That wasn’t anything new, when Konstantin wasn’t cavorting with Arnost or raping young women, he was blitzed out on morphine. He always hoped that one day Konstantin would give himself the last injection and spare every one of his miserable existence. Of course, he wasn’t that lucky. “Count Moravec has been down in the dungeon for the past hour, milord, and he has yet to come up.” Alexi said, waiting to see how long it would take for that to register, which was all of about one second. Nikolai swore then bolted toward the door that led to the dungeon with Mikkel right behind him. The Darkness showed itself the moment Alexi said dungeon, and the rage and fear that consumed Nikolai only increased with every step he took. Reaching the door, he would have ripped it off its hinges, but he was stopped by Mikkel’s vice grip hold on his shoulder. Snarling, he turned and blasted his friend with feral pitch black eyes. Mikkel was taken aback by the violence leveled on him. His hand tightened on the hard muscles of Nikolai’s shoulder and his demon reacted to the danger that was before him. His features shifted and he growled back just as menacingly. He pulled Nikolai closer, feverishly whispering to him around a mouthful of fangs. “Take heed, Nikolai, we are not in the privacy of your chambers. The devil is down there. You must calm yourself!” With growing persistence, Mikkel relayed his warning with an unrelenting hold on Nikolai’s shoulder. Seconds felt like long drawn out minutes to Mikkel until he finally felt some of the tension under his hand evaporate. Nikolai’s eyes, though still black seemed…saner, and the veins on his cheeks were not pulsing angrily. “Take a breath, my friend.” Nikolai stared into Mikkel’s sedative blue eyes, desperately trying to gain some sort of balance. Mikkel was right, he had to settle down and right quick before anyone came into the hall. He closed his eyes and remembered that Abaigeal was strong. She could take whatever Arnost dished out. Plus, Arnost would not kill her. Oh, he would do his best to break her, but Nikolai was confident she would survive. She was Shikar. Shit, she was the daughter of the Queen of Shikars. Her body would heal whatever punishment Arnost would dish out. At least, that’s what he kept telling the Darkness who was fighting Nikolai for control. “Nikolai, he will not kill her, you know that as well as I.” Mikkel’s quietly spoken words reinforced Nikolai’s own thoughts. It helped - somewhat. 125 Forever Mine Nikolai opened his eyes then shook his head to clear the bloodlust. Reaching up, he pulled Mikkel’s hand off his shoulder. He straightened then gave his body a quick shake. “Okay. I’m alright, Misha.” Mikkel watched closely as Nikolai prepared himself for whatever horrors he would find in the dungeons. The internal struggle was clear to Mikkel but to someone less astute, Nikolai appeared as he always did. Still, he took a second to try and probe him because he knew Arnost would. What Mikkel met was a brick wall; one that was immediately built the second Mikkel entered his mind. Then he felt something he never felt before; it was akin to a large clawed hand on his chest then violently pushing him out. Shocked, Mikkel gasped, earnestly searching his friend’s face in an attempt to decipher just what the hell happened. “Nikolai?” Nikolai evilly grinned. “See? In control.” Ignoring Mikkel’s deeply concerned expression Nikolai turned around and opened the door. Quickly his feet carried him down the stairs with Mikkel closely behind, who was still puzzled by what happened. They reached the bottom of the stairs and started down the long corridor. Along the way, the aroma in the air changed and the prisoners they passed were unusually crazed. Normally, whenever Nikolai showed his face down here - which wasn’t often - they huddled in the darkness, their fear smelt like thick acrid smoke and they completely avoided him. Now, as he and Mikkel passed, they were clawing at the bars, hissing and snapping out. Instead of fear, Nikolai smelt frenzied hunger. Their eyes were rolling back into their heads and they were screaming for… “Give us a taste of the yummy morsel, sire, please…I beg of you...give us a taste!” Nikolai inhaled deeply and smelt the intoxicating fragrance of immeasurable power, a smell he could not misinterpret…Abaigeal was bleeding. Her precious essence was flowing out of her body and not into his mouth. Quick and violent anger engulfed Nikolai at this transgression. The repulsive creatures asking him for a taste almost made that violence erupt. The Darkness growled and hissed back at them in deadly warning and they scattered like frightened little rats. Nikolai’s pace quickened as he held back the incensed rumble that was on the verge of roaring out loud. As they rounded the last bend, the scent became stronger. His feet pounded on the muddy floor as he walked as fast as he could without looking too anxious. Seeing the end of the corridor, his pace only quickened. There was the glow of soft light streaming out of the open door of the last cell. Two shadows crossed through the beam then Arnost and Vladimir appeared and headed down the corridor, straight for Nikolai and Mikkel. Nikolai hardened himself, slipping into the cold demeanor of the General as he continued to stride down the hall until he met Arnost in the middle. Tension was thick in the air as the two stood face to face and studied each other. The Count’s face was sternly set and his body language was a mix of anger, reluctant admiration and…lust. 126 Forever Mine Nikolai knew that look, had seen it a million times before so there was really no need to glance at Vladimir, who stood next to Arnost still holding the bloody whip in his hand, to confirm his thoughts, but he did then quickly wished he hadn’t. Goddess, give me strength! Arnost keenly observed Nikolia’s every little nuance and detail. He was angry, nothing new there. His body was tight with tension, again nothing new. The Darkness was out, but that didn’t necessarily mean anything either. Half the time Nikolai walked around like that because he was just pissed off - all the time. No, there was nothing out of the ordinary with Nikolai’s appearance at all. He was the same as he always was – unemotional and cold. Arnost was disappointed. He was hoping to see or sense something that would tell him why Nikolai unexpectedly met with Boris, but he didn’t, and as usual, he could not probe him to search further. “Nikolai, I’m afraid you’re a little late. I would have waited for you but I’m pressed for time. She is a stubborn wench, twenty lashes of Vladimir’s whip and she did not utter one sound. No words to sooth my mind and no screams to stir my senses, a shame.” A small ‘tsk’ escaped his lips before he continued, “Your father and I are leaving for Scotland. Dalibor will be ready to escort her to my mountain chalet by…” He looked to Vladimir for confirmation. “Tomorrow?” Vladimir nodded and Arnost turned back to a stone-faced Nikolai. “Until then she will remain in her cell.” He studied Nikolai’s blank face for one more second then turned and glared at Mikkel, his gaze becoming even colder if that was possible. “Mikkel, how nice of you to join us,” Arnost murmured. “Perhaps next time you receive my missive, you shall arrive in a timelier manner.” Mikkel bowed his head and clicked his heels together in acknowledgment. “As you wish, my lord.” Mikkel’s superficial response was not lost on Arnost who snorted with disgust then looked back at Nikolai. He seemed to be contemplating something and his show of uncertainty piqued Nikolai’s interest. Nikolai stood still, held Arnost’s gaze with a completely bored one of his own and - Goddess save him - patiently waited. Suffering through an internal fretful state, those few fleeting seconds felt like an hour to Nikolai, but he was rewarded for his fortitude, gifted with something he never thought he would be. “Your father and I are very pleased with your loyalty, Nikolai. With the bodacious Lady Mac Branain in my control, we have decided to grant you a boon.” Arnost halted and examined Nikolai’s face for any sign of emotion. Seeing none, he continued. “Both your mother and your sister will be attending the Summit this year. I trust knowing that I hold your old friend’s daughter will dispel you from abusing this rare kindness with any thoughts you might have of…shall we say, leaving our beneficial relationship.” Mikkel almost blanched in shock. Arnost was indeed feeling extremely assured in the cards he held because Mikkel had never once heard him mention Nikolai’s discontentment out loud, not to mention reveal any thoughts he might have of Nikolai’s perfidious intentions. 127 Forever Mine Mikkel turned to gage Nikolai’s reaction which was…naught. There was not one speck of emotion on his face. He appeared so dispassionate that one would think he hadn’t even heard what Arnost said. Mikkel was in awe of the control his friend was displaying. It was brilliant to witness, and so very, very fraudulent. Arnost stood quietly waiting for some sort of response, so Nikolai gave it to him. He nodded. That was it, nothing else and nothing more. It was the exact reaction Arnost had wanted. He knew Nikolai. Through the long years of the war, he had witnessed the transformation the younger vamp made from a free, fun-loving and compassionate man to the war-hardened General that stood before him. He was cold-hearted, unmerciful and unemotional. It was exactly how Arnost wanted him and it was exactly how he was determined to keep him. Satisfied, Arnost grunted then walked between Nikolai and Mikkel and down the hall with Vladimir following like his faithful puppy dog. The moment they disappeared, Nikolai ran the short distance to the open doorway. Nikolai stopped in the threshold, his hands clutching the doorframe, his fingers digging into the wood with pure fury at what lay before him. A blinding frenzy held him motionless. Rampant bloodlust filled every pore of his being as sable eyes chillingly took in the image of his S’airsul shackled, her forehead leaning against the damp moldy wall and her naked and flayed back bleeding right before his eyes. The sound of her soft moan snapped Nikolai out of his stupor. With ferocious growls of hatred and extreme distress, Nikolai rushed to Abby’s side. Gently, he lifted her face to look at him. “Abaigeal?” Abby slowly opened her eyes for the rough voice that breathed haggardly against her cheek. She peered at his face, a face set in grim darkness…a darkness that promised death. “Come to finish the job, General?” Nikolai glowered as his shaking hand gently cupped her cheek. “Lubimaya, are you alright?” Abby dismissively snorted. “Never been…better.” Her cheeky answer should have made him feel better but it didn’t. With his sable eyes searching her glossy bloodshot orbs, Nikolai felt what she felt pain…stinging, burning pain - and it fed his fury. Abby squinted up into black pools that were filled with primal bloodlust. Her heart constricted with longing from the beauty of that ravaged face; even in his anger, he was a temptation she could not resist. Her back contracted and pain radiated down her spine, making her unable to hold his intense gaze any longer. She closed her eyes and instead of battling her desire for him, she let herself just feel him. The hand on her cheek felt like a balm to the stinging pulses that danced across her flesh. His touch was light and reverent, but to Abby it was strong with comfort and fierce tender concern. A contradiction to the rage she felt all around him and the very unhappy sounds coming out of his mouth. Why, if she didn’t know any better, she would think he was actually pissed off on her behalf. 128 Forever Mine “Nikolai, we need to get her upstairs.” Hearing the unfamiliar voice, Abby looked to her right and took a peek at the man who spoke before she turned back to Nikolai, her eyes closing, her voice sounding more gruff and hollow as she talked. “What’s the matter? Can’t finish the job yourself?” “Nikolai…” Mikkel entreated again as he worked on unlocking the manacles on her ankles. As Mikkel opened the last manacle on Abby’s ankle, Nikolai unlocked the manacles holding her right arm. When he was done, her hand dropped and swung to her side like dead weight. Her body swayed to the left and Nikolai quickly stepped into her side so she rested against him as he reached up and disengaged the manacle on her left arm. With both hands released, blood slowly started to pump back into Abby’s arms and hands, creating a pins and needles sensation that had her moaning. “Oh, Goddess, please…don’t move me,” she whimpered as the tears she had been holding back now freely flowed down her cheeks. “I’m sorry, milaya, but I need to get you upstairs so I can take care of you.” When her feet touched the ground, Abby would have fallen straight over but Nikolai carefully grasped her upper arms. She cried out, the motion sending a searing pain throughout her body. Abby clutched Nikolai’s vest. “No, please…don’t touch me…don’t move me…just lay me on the floor, I’ll be fine…really.” Nikolai steeled himself against her gut wrenching plea as he held her up. “Koyla, you’re going to have to put her over your shoulder, it will cause the least amount of pain.” Nikolai nodded his agreement and gazed down at Abby. Her head was lobbing back and forth, her eyes were closed and there was a grimace of discomfort on her beautiful face, yet she still managed to quip a sardonic comment. “Your…backup’s a…real…comedian. I hope he can…lash a whip better then he can…crack a joke. Least amount… ha!” Mikkel gave Abby the oddest look but Nikolai smirked. “I guess Arnost didn’t whip that smartass attitude out of you.” Abby snorted. “Please, it takes more than a couple of lashes to…” She fainted. Thank the Goddess. Carefully, Nikolai picked Abby up and laid her across his shoulder. She moaned slightly but remained unconscious. Carrying her, he quickly made his way through the tunnels, up the stairs, and out the door into the great hall. Mikkel was right behind him. Alexi suddenly appeared; his growing concern for the young miss evident by the crinkles on his face. He followed them, falling into step besides Nikolai. “Is she alright, my lord, what do you need me to do?” “Nikolai, she needs the healer, let me send for her,” Mikkel said. 129 Forever Mine Nikolai shook his head as he climbed the stairs – carefully, so not to rouse her – two at a time. “No. I’ll take care of her myself. Alexi, get me hot towels and find some kind of antiseptic.” “Yes, milord.” Alexi ran off to do his bidding. “Nikolai, she needs a healer and you are not one.” Mikkel persisted Nikolai angrily shook his head again. “No. I will see to her needs.” “But, Koyla…” Nikolai stopped and turned to face his friend, his eyes were open unguarded and vulnerable. Mikkel knew if he probed him now, he would see everything. “Misha, please, I need to do this.” In that second, Mikkel realized he didn’t need to probe him to know what was going on his friend’s head; guilt, pain, sadness, anger, vengeance…volatile emotions that were brewing in the very depths of his black orbs. Mikkel sighed. “Alright. What do you need of me?” “Go to Konstantin’s room. The black box on his desk is where he keeps his morphine, bring some to me.” Nikolai turned and walked down the hall toward his bedroom as Mikkel ran in the opposite direction toward Konstantin’s rooms. Reaching his room, Nikolai murmured the unlocking spell then kicked the door open and walked over to the bed. Gently, he moved Abaigeal off his shoulder until her feet swayed just above the ground. Turning her to the side, he put his left arm across her breasts and his right on top of her thighs. With his hand no longer holding her up, she started to fall forward and when her dead weight rested again on his left arm, he held her up in the front as his right arm raised her legs. Her body now rested against his arms as she faced the floor and her long thick hair fell forward like a halo. Gently holding her, he carefully laid her on the bed. Nikolai sat down beside her still form, his shaking hand hovering over the long wicked lash marks that marred her back. Her suit had been ripped in half and its bloody tatters hung to the side. The scent of her blood filled his nostrils. It was intoxicating…powerful…arousing. Arousing? He growled with disgust at his body’s inappropriate reaction. It was drawn out and needful, full of repulsion and regret. Hearing it, Abby’s eyes cracked open. She tried to lift her head from the pillow but the twinge that small exertion created had her hissing in discomfort. “Don’t move.” A big hand on the back of her head, kept her right where she was - flat against the soft inviting pillow. “Yeah, no problem there.” Abby said. That silence stretched out and into Abby’s nerves like a string being tautly held. His emotions were thriving inside her, wreaking more havoc to her already sensitive nerves. He just sat there, staring at her back, his beautiful velvet eyes deeply troubled, his body slightly shaking with…rage? She wasn’t certain but she’d swear on her life that was the explosive emotion he was giving off and that she so easily felt. 130 Forever Mine “I heal fast,” she quickly said then wondered why she felt the need to comfort him. Wasn’t she the one that was just whipped? A low grunt was the only response he gave her as feet skidded to a halt in the doorway. “Milord, the antiseptic and some warm towels.” “Thank you, Alexi.” Nikolai grabbed the towels and antiseptic from Alexi then put them on the table by the side of his bed. “Koyla, I wasn’t sure how much you wanted so I brought the whole box.” Mikkel walked inside the bedroom and handed the box to Nikolai. “Milord, if you wish, I can take care of this for you,” Alexi asked. Nikolai shook his head. “No. This is my task to do.” “Koyla, perhaps it is better for you to leave it to Alexi,” Mikkel pressed. Nikolai’s angry glare swung to both of them. “No, I will do this myself.” Abby rolled her eyes at the conversation being spoken around her as if she weren’t even there. “Goddess above, I don’t need a freaking nurse! Just leave me be…a good night’s rest, that’s all I need.” Nikolai swung a fierce glare in her direction. “Gods blood, woman, shut up. I’m trying to help you!” Nikolai’s roar startled both Mikkel and Alexi with the force of his tone. Abby, on the other hand, got mad. “You know, you telling me to shut up is becoming a habit of yours that I really don’t appreciate.” “Yeah, well suck it up because I have the feeling it won’t be the last time.” Abby snorted. “Tough guy, huh? Just wait until I’m better, I am so going to kick your ass,” she mumbled into the pillow. Turning toward a smiling Mikkel and a shocked Alexi, Nikolai herded them out the door. He needed to strip her naked before he cleaned the wounds and there was no way in hell he was doing that in front of an audience. Of course, they thought otherwise and when they started to protest, Nikolai shook his head at them. He pushed Alexi out then drew up close to Mikkel and switched to Upyrian. "Misha, I need you to find Boris." Mikkel nodded. "Of course, Koyla. I'll be back before sunrise." Nikolai nodded his thanks then slammed the door shut. “I see your happy attitude extends to your friends as well, huh?” Walking over to the bed, Nikolai sat down and opened the box. Abby turned to peer at him through lowered lids. “What is that? What are you doing?” Pulling out a small bottle and a syringe, Nikolai stuck the needle in the bottle’s top. “It’s morphine.” The moment Abby saw the needle, she started to get up. “No…uh-uh, no way, I don’t do needles. Look, I’m fine, okay, I don’t need anything.” “Stay down, damn it. You do need this for the pain,” he said as he ripped her sleeve off from her right arm. “Pain? What pain, there is no pain…really...” Frantically, Abby tried to get away from him and the offending needle. “Don’t be such a baby, it’s just a needle.” 131 Forever Mine If he thought to sooth her, that wasn’t the way. Abby got angrier and more fearful, and her struggles began in earnest as she desperately tried to stop him. “Please don’t!” Nikolai sat on her legs, held her head down with one hand by the back of her head as he stuck her with the needle in her right arm. She winced but then settled down. “See, that wasn’t so bad,” he said softly, stroking her cheek. Abby cursed him and shook her head, effectively throwing his hand off of her face. “Overbearing lummox.” She wished there was more conviction in her voice but as it was, the drug started to rapidly course through her blood stream. Her head became foggy as her body became numb. She felt spacey and she giggled. “Mm, this stuff ain’t so bad, af’all.” Abby’s words became slurred, her eyes grew heavier and then she passed out. Nikolai leaned down and tenderly kissed her on the forehead. “Rest, milaya, I’ll take care of you, I’ll always take care of you.” 132 Forever Mine CHAPTER EIGHT Things were definitely getting interesting around here. Mikkel exuberantly laughed as he raced the dirt bike back through the tunnel toward the guesthouse. Goddess, he felt energized, invigorated and so damn impatient to see what would happen next that he could barely contain his excitement. Of course, he was still worried about Nikolai, but Mikkel knew that when it came to his demon, Nikolai was blinded by falsehoods and misinformation, or rather, the lack of information. His friend thought the Darkness’ sudden unruliness was problematic and forbidding; Mikkel thought differently. It wasn’t a big mystery nor was it something to be worried about. It was a change that had long been due. From the moment this war began and Arnost and Konstantin tethered the leash around Nikolai, Mikkel knew there was no way in hell it would last. Actually, he was amazed it had for as long as it did. The Darkness that shared the body with Nikolai was the most powerful demon to ever exist and you cannot enslave a creature of that magnitude forever. At some point it would break free, all it needed was an incentive, and that incentive came in the form of Abaigeal Mac Branain. He still couldn’t believe she was there. After the initial shock faded he had become wildly curious as to what the daughter of Magnus would be like. From what he just witnessed, he wasn’t disappointed. Gods blood, she was one audacious woman. Mikkel had been enraptured by her the moment he saw her. At first, her sarcasm threw him off and he didn’t know what to make of her. After all, the girl had been taken prisoner and whipped; she should have been balling her eyes out. Instead, she was rattling off comments and acting as if nothing had happened, even though she had clearly been in pain. As he observed her take-no-bullshit exchange with Nikolai, he began to feel admiration for her. The icing on the cake had been Nikolai’s response to her. Possessive, animated, alive with a plethora of raging emotions, all things that had been dormant for so long that Mikkel had wondered if they would ever appear again. Nikolai, his strong arrogant warrior friend, was on the cusp of losing his mind, and yet Mikkel was pretty certain he was well aware of how good she would be for him. So why he seemed so lost with what was happening baffled Mikkel because as far as he was concerned, there was no mystery to it whatsoever. The Upyr called it Efnaru. In the modern world, it was a legendary myth known as the Compleo. Regardless of what you called it, it meant one thing: fulfilling or completing; essentially the man and the demon becoming one unit. 133 Forever Mine The only way it could achieve that was by finding its S’airsul and drinking her essence. Now that Nikolai’s demon had found her, she was all it wanted, she was all it thought about, and until it could complete the change by taking her life essence into its own, it would not be satisfied until it did. It was a cut and dry situation, at least as far as Mikkel was concerned; not so much for Nikolai. Nikolai always thought sharing a space with such a powerful demon was a hindrance, a curse almost. Something he had to keep locked away for fear that it would hurt someone. He was having such a difficult time accepting what was happening to him now because he’d never been able to grasp the most important detail: the Darkness was the man and the man was the Darkness. In fact, they were so intricately weaved together that the man could not possibly exist without the Darkness or vice versa, yet Nikolai his most intelligent friend, had never once been able to comprehend that. Well, Mikkel thought, he couldn’t blame him. Sasha had never been allowed to teach her son the way of the Upyr. Konstantin had made it very clear that he did not want that part of Nikolai nurtured. Mikkel often wondered how a father could deprive his only son of his heritage and not explain the changes that could take place if the pieces of the puzzle ever came together. He didn’t wonder anymore. There was no doubt in his mind that there was a big skeleton in Nikolai’s closet that he wasn’t even aware of. Since Nikolai already had so much on his plate, it was up to Mikkel to look into it for him. After all, that was what friends did. The first step was to find Boris. Mikkel was certain he was the key to the mystery. He had known Boris as long as he had known Nikolai yet the only sure thing Mikkel knew about him was that Boris had known Sasha since she was a young girl. When Sasha mated Konstantin, Boris came with her, a condition Konstantin hadn’t like. Those two did not get along, at all, and Boris’ relationship with Arnost was just as acrid. No surprise there, as far as Mikkel thought. Those three had known each for a long, long time and when people knew each other for that long, there was bound to be an ugly secret-riddled history, it was inevitable. He had no idea what that history was, but he was beginning to understand that at least one of those secrets revolved around Nikolai. Finally reaching the end of the tunnel, Mikkel cut the ignition to the bike, got off then leaned the bike against the cold stone wall. Whispering an Upyrian spell, the door opened and he quickly walked inside then headed up the stairs to the kitchen. The minute he reached it, he knew he was not alone. A shadow stood in front of the bookcase, leisurely looking over the vast selection of books. Mikkel reached for the knife nestled in his back. He gripped the handle pulled it out then silently stepped into the living room. Creeping up behind the trespasser, he wrapped his arm around a burly neck and yanked the stranger back against his chest, laying his blade against the man’s throat. “Bold, but stupid, my friend.” The shadow chuckled then, in a familiar merry voice, spoke in Old Norse. “Kevdja drengr.” 134 Forever Mine The tension left Mikkel’s body. He released the man and re-sheathed his weapon. Standing back, he turned the light on. “Greetings to you too, Boris, though with the way you’ve packed on the pounds, I would call you an old goat instead of warrior.” Being the good natured man he was Boris took no offense at Mikkel’s comments. He laughed. “Yes, I have become a bit thick in the middle, eh, but don’t let this girth fool you, my Viking friend.” He patted his stomach and Mikkel laughed right along with him. “I can still have it out with the best of them.” “I have no doubts.” Mikkel said as he watched Boris make a beeline for Mikkel’s favorite chair and settled himself in. “I knew you would be close by. Good thing, you saved me the trouble of having to find you.” Boris continued to chuckle and Mikkel couldn’t stop smiling. Boris had one of those infectious laughs, open and robust, just like the man himself. Mikkel walked over to bar. He pulled out to two glasses and a bottle of vodka. Sitting down in the chair opposite Boris, he dropped all three items on the table then poured both of them a drink. “What happened, Boris?” They held their glasses up high. “Nostrovia,” they said right before drinking the fiery liquid. Licking his lips, Boris held his glass out for another. “Dalibor paid me a visit, the vapid little human.” Smiling at the slighted comment, Mikkel remained silent and refilled Boris’ glass and his own. “I don’t know how Arnost can stomach the man. Such a waste of oxygen. Nostrovia.” If there was one thing Boris loved most in this world, it was his vodka, and if he had a story to tell - which he always did - vodka was a must have. So, expecting to most likely finish this bottle before Boris left, or at the rate they were going, before the story ended, Mikkel settled back and resumed the position. He nodded, “Nostrovia,” drank his shot then immediately refilled both their glasses again. “It was the usual idiocy that one can only expect from him.” Boris snorted. “Thinks he can torture me for answers, ha!” He shook his finger at Mikkel. “That right there, Viking, tells you just how insipid that man is.” Sitting back, he studied his clean manicured nails. “Really, I was insulted.” Typical Boris. Mikkel sniggered. After another quick refill and another lively “Nostrovia.,” Mikkel said, “Agreed, but Dalibor’s visit is not what I was asking about.” “No, but still, one must always reflect on the ways of the stupid.” Keen, miss-nothing eyes locked onto Mikkel’s. “You want to know about my other visitor, the one who is, as we speak, in the palace and exasperating Koyla.” “To say the least. What the hell was she doing there, Boris? Did Magnus send her?” “I should say not.” “How can you be so sure?” 135 Forever Mine “Because the missive was not sent to the Overlord. He has no idea what Nikolia is planning and right now, that is for the best.” Mikkel was confused. “But I thought…” “You thought wrong. Well, actually, no you didn’t. You see, Nikolai is under the impression the missive made its way to Magnus but it didn’t. We discussed it and decided to leave Magnus out of the loop for the time being.” Mikkel frowned. “First off, who the hell is ‘we?’, and secondly, you know Magnus as well I do Boris, he does not like to be kept out of the loop. He’s going to be pissed off when he discovers things are progressing without his knowledge.” They both drank another shot then Mikkel sat forward. “Boris, only Magnus can give Nikolai what he seeks. He is the key.” Boris shook his head. “No, my large Berserker friend, he is not. Magnus is too preoccupied at the moment to listen clearly. He is not yet ready to accept a change of this magnitude.” “Well, if not Magnus, who then received the missive?” Boris chuckled. “Those are particulars you do not yet need to know. What I can tell you is that someone received the message and responded accordingly.” Mikkel’s face turned red with anger. “Boris, you are playing a very dangerous game. Magnus needs to know what Nikolai’s plans are, he needs to prepare.” Boris scoffed. “No, he does not. In time he will learn everything; right now, he needs to stay out of this. Things need to play out on their own – the natural course – it is the way. There can be no intrusions and our egotistical Overlord can be one big pain in the ass intrusion.” Mikkel didn’t say anything. He just studied Boris as Boris studied him. A knowing grin appeared on Boris’ face. “You can’t probe me, Mikkel, though it is admirable of you to try. Besides, you don’t need to. I can see in your face you have already begun to put the pieces together. The question is, has Nikolai?” Mikkel sat back and ran a hand through his hair. “I don’t know anything, Boris, I have only loose thoughts but I am probably thinking a lot clearer then Nikolai at the moment, who, by the way, is discombobulated to say the least. I need you to fill in the blanks.” “I cannot do that. Things must progress on their own; it is the way it is done.” Mikkel frowned. “You keep saying that and yet I have no idea what the hell you’re talking about. And I can’t help but think that it is not a good thing for Koyla.” Boris chortled. “You worry too much, Viking. There is much you don’t know.” He gazed out the window, his voice becoming softer, far away, as if he was in another time. “Things that are long forgotten need time to reveal themselves.” When he turned back to Mikkel, his gaze was steady and sure. “Fear not, Nikolai is a strong man, he just needs to let it happen.” “If let it happen means what I think it does then that’s going to be a problem.” Mikkel sighed and sat back, resting his chin in the palm of his hand. “He is fighting it?” 136 Forever Mine The edge to Boris’ voice had Mikkel’s curiosity peaking once again. “Of course he’s fighting it, Boris. Koyla is a control freak who, if you don’t remember, was beaten into denying the Darkness by his father. He’s confused, and the fear of losing control and letting the Darkness out has him ready to slit his throat.” Boris suddenly stood up and began to pace. His shoulders were tense and his stride was urgent as he spoke rapidly. “You must tell him not to fight it, Misha. It will only be worse if he does. Do whatever you must to get him to understand, even if that means tying him down and beating it into him.” Mikkel snorted. “I enjoy my nuts right where they are, thank you very much.” “This is no joking matter, Mikkel! The more he fights, the more aggressive the Darkness will become.” “Nikolai thinks he’s cursed, Boris. He thinks it’s his enemy.” “No, you must get him to see reason because no matter how hard Nikolai tries to deny it, it won’t let him, and the longer he tries, the more hostile it will become.” Mikkel was stunned by the deadly serious expression on Boris’ face, it was not a look you often saw on him. “Men have gone insane, Misha. Those who try to deny the Darkness’ needs are driven mad by the very creature that gives them life.” Boris’ voice softened when he saw the hard protective glare in Mikkel’s eyes. “You are angry on Nikolai’s behalf, but do not blame the Darkness; it is only doing what Nikolai needs, though he does not yet know it. Koyla has not truly been living, Misha. He has the blood of the Pure flowing through his veins. Do you understand what that means?” Mikkel nodded. “I’ve heard the myths. As a boy, Olaf told me countless tales about Halvard, about the Pure.” “Yes, well, hearing a story told late at night around a campfire is very different from seeing the real thing. It is a thing of beauty, Misha. Trust me when I say you have not seen anything until you have seen an Efnaru Upyr in its demon form. Astounding, really, the purest demon and the purest power all combined together in the body of a man. When they are one, they are a sight to behold; fierce, fast, strong and highly intelligent with magical capabilities as powerful, if not more so, than Raphael’s. To see a creature like that in battle…” Boris took a breath then sighed. “Remarkable.” “I remember a story Olaf once told me. He said it was about the greatest Upyrian King to ever walk the Realm. He revered the man, said he was a God. Olaf said he witnessed this man in its true demon form cleave the head of the last king of the Lycanthropes with one claw. He said he had never seen anything like it.” “Maksim Tereschenko,” Boris said. “If ever there was a man who walked the Realm as a God, it would have been him. A warrior unlike any other, and the man was just as extraordinary, even before he attained Efnaru.” “You knew him?” Mikkel’s questioning gaze never left Boris’ face. 137 Forever Mine Boris looked at Mikkel with an unswerving gaze, but he did not directly answer his question. “Do you know that out of the last three Upyr Master’s Maksim was the only one to ever meet his S’airsul and achieve Efnaru?” Mikkel shook his head. “That really pissed off Carvilius and Halvard, I can tell you that.” Boris chuckled then drank another shot. “But that was the way with the Tereschenko line. Many believed they were the line that started us all. They had the highest breeding success of any other line. A gift from the Gods, that’s what people said.” Mikkel remained quiet as he filled their glasses again. When he first heard the story of Maksim from Olaf, he thought his uncle had embellished it something Olaf had a habit of doing - but to hear Boris speak of the man with such worship, he no longer questioned the tale to be false. The truth was there to see in Boris’ eyes and in the sound of his voice. There was affection there, true loyal affection that told Mikkel there was more to this story than Boris was saying. Sitting back in his chair, Mikkel wondered if Boris would give him more details, but seeing the smirk playing on his face and the mischievous twinkle in his eye, Mikkel knew that details would not come today. Boris drank another shot and then, like Mikkel, sat back in his chair, completely relaxed. “I regress, forgive me. I’ve always been a sucker for a good tale.” Mikkel chuckled. “As is Olaf. You’ve always reminded me of him; did I ever tell you that?” Boris laughed. “No, but Olaf is a good man and I am honored you think so.” He held up his glass. “Nostrovia.” Mikkel smiled. “Nostrovia.” “Now…” Boris put his glass back on the table. “You must talk to Koyla, you must get him to understand.” “Understand what, Boris? You haven’t exactly told me anything substantial that will put him at ease. There are other things going on besides these…changes. There is also Sasha and Katya he is worrying about.” Boris shook his head. “No. They are not his concern, not anymore. Arnost and Konstantin have gone, correct?” “Yes, they left earlier today.” Boris snickered. “Two of the most powerful demons in the Realm afraid to fly,” he shook his head, “pussies.” Mikkel chuckled. “That is your ammo Misha. Remind Koyla his sister and mother will be on their way to Scotland. Arnost and Konstantin may feel confident with their positions, but they are in fact very blind at the moment. You just have to make sure they stay that way, which means taking care of that sniveling snake Dalibor, then Koyla can concentrate on what is important – completing the Efnaru.” “How can you be so certain that is Nikolai’s fate, Boris?” Boris quietly studied Mikkel for a moment. He liked Mikkel, always had. He saw the friendship between the Viking and Nikolai grow to one of brotherhood and Boris had always been grateful for that. He knew without 138 Forever Mine Mikkel’s friendship, Nikolai would not have sustained these long hard years. Boris also knew he could trust Mikkel with anything, but not this. Boris stood and walked over to the window, staring up the mountain toward the palace, and gave Mikkel his back and the answer that he would not be getting anything else out of him today. Mikkel sighed. “Okay, fine, don’t tell me. Do you have any other messages for me to relay?” Boris’ voice was soft when he spoke. “Tell my nephew that peace and serenity await him.” ********** Goddess, she was beautiful. Out cold from the morphine Nikolai gave her, Abby’s blonde curls were spread out across his pillow. Her back lay bare before for his eyes as her Shikar blood healed the wounds slowly one by one. Vladimir was a master with the whip and every stroke that touched her skin had been made with precision, not too deep, just enough to inflict pain. Nikolai’s eyes darkened. Not that that would save Vladimir’s sorry ass, no, that vamp would feel the weight of Nikolai’s fist as it rammed through his chest cavity and pulled out his dead heart. It was a fitting punishment for having dared to abuse the S’airsul of the Darkness. He felt an inner growl of anticipation; the Darkness liked that. He was astounded by how calm he felt. In the past, feeling that sensation, hearing another’s thoughts in his mind, would have annoyed him. He would have fought it. But somewhere in between telling Mikkel of how confused and unsure he felt to the moment he sensed Mikkel probing him, something had shifted. He was no longer unsure or afraid. He no longer felt that tug of war with the Darkness. In that small space of time, as he stood in the great hall desperately trying to regain control, he realized he didn’t have to. More importantly, he knew he wasn’t supposed to. Something snapped and destroyed the wall he had built between him and the Darkness. Now that that wall was dust, he felt free and weightless. He felt like a new man, a new man with a purpose. Velvet eyes caressed the supple body that slightly shifted on the satin sheets. The urge to take her, to sink inside her welcoming heat was almost unbearable. Still, he resisted. He knew she was exhausted, she had to be, and he wanted her well rested because when she woke they were going to talk. His priorities had changed. With Arnost and Konstantin on their way to Scotland, Nikolai needn’t fear for his mother or sister. Once at the Summit, Circinn as well as Boris would watch over them, he was confident about that. As far as Arnost and Konstantin thought, Dalibor would be taking Abaigeal to Arnost’s home just as he instructed. Nikolai snorted. That was not happening. The only place Dalibor would be going is straight to the Underworld. Abaigeal, on the other hand, wasn’t going anywhere, at least not yet. 139 Forever Mine Standing up, Nikolai walked over to the window and looked out. He figured he had about two days until he absolutely had to get her out of Russia, and he was going to use those two days to help her see the light. Her resistance made him curious. Naturally, there were the most obvious explanations, like the fact they were technically enemies and presumably she grew up hearing tales of the horrific acts he committed. He smiled then softly chuckled. Abaigeal was not a woman who scared easily nor would she be put off by tales of blood and gore. She most likely would take offense to the actual deeds themselves, but he couldn’t help that, even he was offended and guilt ridden with all he had done. But he sensed in her a forgiving soul and somehow he knew she would understand and not hold that against him. Then there was the fact that he was a lot older then she was – a lot older. Nikolai scowled. That wasn’t something he could change. He never encountered that situation before but Abaigeal might be adverse to the idea of being shackled to a vamp that was only a few centuries younger than her father. He didn’t think she knew of his history with Magnus, but knowing it could also explain why she would fight their attraction. Those things were reasonable arguments, but Nikolai didn’t think any of them were the true cause of her fear. When the Darkness entered her soul, Nikolai tasted the terror his intrusion had caused; it was genuine and it ran deep, she hadn’t liked it one bit. He could sympathize but he wasn’t above using it as a means to get what he and the Darkness wanted. His eyes gleamed with heated determination. Before Abaigeal Mac Branain left Russia, she would come to understand that she belonged to them. He would have to seduce her, plain and simple. He would have to hit her with every sensual weapon he had in his arsenal, then, when she was pliant in his arms, begging him to fulfill her pleasure, she would be willing to do or say anything. Tricky and underhanded? Most likely, but he didn’t care. The room was quiet. Too quiet. It was that stillness that made the pain in Abby’s head throb even more. Gingerly, her fingers began to massage her temple as she slowly opened her eyes. The moment she did bright beams of sunlight slammed into her sensitive orbs. She quickly closed them again, moaning as the throbbing pain in her head turned to insistent sharp pulses. “Gods blood! What’s with all the happy sunshine? I thought this was a vampire’s house.” One eyelid rose and Abby looked t the dark shape of man looming in front of the window. She snorted. “Is this your idea of more torture, death by sunlight? Because you know it won’t kill me, but it sure as hell is doing number on my poor head.” Nikolai lowered the blinds. “Better?” Abby grunted. “Oh yeah, loads.” 140 Forever Mine Fully opening her eyes Abby studied him. He stood with his arms crossed across his powerful chest, and he was – as usual – frowning darkly at her. “I don’t know why you’re frowning at me. You’re the one that brought me here. It wasn’t my choice.” “Nor was it mine,” he quietly answered. “Yeah, right.” Abby turned away, once more closing her eyes and massaging her temples, only to snap them open again when he spoke next. “Don’t misunderstand me, Abaigeal, I had every intention of bringing you here, just not under these circumstances.” “Oh, I wasn’t sufficiently tied and trussed up enough for your tastes, General? Sorry to disappoint you, but you’ll have to take your complaints to your man Dalibor.” The air in the room crackled with displeasure; Abby snuck a peek at him. His frown was downright scary, but she held his gaze, swallowing slowly as she did. Good God, even furious he was so gorgeous. He took a step closer to the bed. His eyes were midnight blue, which told Abby he wasn’t completely pissed…yet. “Let’s get something straight, madam. Dalibor is not my man so refrain from the insults if you don’t mind. Secondly, the manner in which I would have brought you here was as my mate, not a prisoner.” Damn, the man was so sure of himself, so confident that he would have had his way no matter what she had to say about it, that it made Abby laugh. It should have annoyed her and it did, but her head was hurting too much to yell at him. “Back to that, are you? I don’t know what makes you think I would have come along so willingly.” Taking another step closer Nikolai leaned down, placing one hand on either side of her body, his nose practically touched hers. His eyes drilled into hers with a disgusting self-assurance that made Abby frown. “Because, Abaigeal, though you don’t want to admit it, you crave me as much as I crave you. You are only doing yourself a disservice by not admitting it. And sooner or later, I will find out why.” Abby’s eyes shifted from those dark orbs to his plump lips as he spoke every word. She could smell his clean masculine scent. Her heart thumped against her chest. The memory of what he tasted like made her taste buds tingle and left her nipples pebbling against the satin sheets. Huh? Finally realizing she was buck naked and that someone had stripped her bare, Abby gasped and pulled the sheet tighter against her breasts, starring accusing daggers at Nikolai. Nikolai smirked as he stood straight, shrugging one shoulder glibly. “Your clothes were destroyed. I removed them.” He was amazed at how indifferent that came out considering how difficult it had been to keep his hands from exploring the lush curves he revealed. Abby’s face reddened with outrage and she shouted, completely forgetting her aching head, “Who the hell do you think you are? You had no right!” 141 Forever Mine Nikolai just shrugged again, completely unfazed by her anger and dismissing it all together. “I have every right to see to the comfort of my mate and that is what I did.” Abby gazed back with one eyebrow quirked up. That was an interesting comment to make considering the reason she was naked to begin with. She shook her head. “You know, you are the most confusing man I have ever met. You say one thing, yet your actions are the complete opposite.” She sat forward. “Newsflash, Romeo, if you’re trying to convince me of some great bond between us then letting me get whipped by your boss isn’t really the way to go about it.” The air in the room changed once again, sizzling with hostility. Nikolai regarded her with dark penetrating orbs that were slowly getting darker. “And while we’re on that subject,” Abby continued without thought. She knew his hostility was growing but she didn’t care. She fucked up by not following orders which put her family and her entire race in danger, and unless she escaped, her future wasn’t looking too bright either. She figured she had nothing left to lose at this point and the more she thought about it, the angrier and guiltier she felt. And what better outlet to relieve all that anger then on the man who was standing in front of her? He was working for the bastard that planned everything. He was also the man who, even now in her pissed off state and his obvious growing agitation, sparked a desire in her so strong she had to literally grip the bed sheets to keep from ripping them off her body and begging him to touch her. And that insight really pissed her off. What the hell was wrong with her? How could she feel anything but disgust for the man that wanted to destroy her father? And what the hell was wrong with him to be spewing all this mate shit anyway? Was he missing something upstairs? “I think we need to get a couple of things straight.” Abby shifted on the bed and gave him her best reproachful stare she could muster. “You are under the misconception that you have rights when it comes to me, and you don’t. It is because of you and your sick family that I’m even here to begin with. Then let’s not forget the ultimate slap in the face, the fact that you and your cohorts plan on killing my entire family and taking over the world. So don’t think anything you might think is happening between us will ever result in something because I’ll either be dead in a week or I’ll be one of those poor creatures slowly dying in the dungeon.” Abby leaned against the headboard and imitated his stance by crossing her arms over her bosom. She stared back at him haughtily, unafraid of what would happen next. Not caring if he took a fist to her face to shut her up or took another whip to her. She just didn’t care. A deep sigh left Nikolai’s lips as he sat down on the side of the bed. He leaned slightly to his left and placed his hand on the opposite side of her right hip. His hip touched hers and Abby’s breath hitched from the warm contact. Those beautiful cerulean eyes watched her closely as a small smile played across his lips. 142 Forever Mine “You’re right, we do need to get a couple of things straight. Firstly, unless your memory fails you, lubimaya, it was not I that had you whipped.” His voiced lowered as his hand reached up and touched her cheek. The contact felt like a bolt of electricity, causing Abby to jump in surprise. Nikolai smiled tenderly then fully cupped her cheek, his eyes darkening with intensity. “If I had known what Arnost was planning, I would have stopped it. You have no idea of the anguish I felt at seeing you like that, how hard it was to not kill the one responsible.” His eyes searched her face as he continued with his tender strokes to her cheek. “I would have done anything to take your pain away.” Abby was starting to get very nervous. He was being sweet, really freaking sweet, and honest. She could see it in his gaze, feel it in the touch of his hand on her face that he was truly sincere. Even the vibration inside was pleasantly rumbling with every stroke against her skin. Abby swallowed. This was becoming a bit too dangerous for her tastes. If he continued with his caring and affectionate assault, she would be putty in his arms, and she could not let that happen. She had to do something and holding onto her anger and inciting his seemed like the best solution. “So you chose morphine?” Nikolai gazed back innocently. “It worked, did it not? Abby scowled. “Uh, yeah, because I passed out!” Nikolai shrugged. “Your body needed to rest in order for your Shikar healing to occur. It seemed the most logical plan.” Abby shook her head in disbelief. “You know, I don’t know why I’m surprised. I should have seen it coming. Typical high-handed male deed, I would expect nothing less from you - especially you.” Nikolai’s hand suddenly covered her mouth and Abby’s eyes bulged incredulously. “Abaigeal, let’s not get off track.” His voice was soft, his manner serene. “There is a lot to discuss and not much time to do it in. I apologize for giving you the morphine. I will never do so again. You have my word.” Nikolai released Abby’s mouth which now hung open in shock. “Do you accept my apology?” Abby could do nothing but stare back at him dumbly. Goddess above, what angle was he playing at? He was tricking her, he had to be. It was all a sham to get her to tell him whatever it was she knew. Okay, well, she could play along with that. Abby artfully smiled. “Sure, why not. Let’s start fresh, shall we?” She was lying, but he would let it rest for now. In time she would come to understand that he was sincere. “Good. Now, as to your second point…” Before Abby knew what was happening Nikolai grabbed her by the waist, sheet still intact, and rolled her to the other side of the bed. Hovering over her, he pressed her legs apart and positioned himself in between her thighs “What is happening between us has nothing to do with Arnost, Konstantin or your father. What’s happening between us is just that…between us. I cannot deny the powerful need I have for you that flows through my veins and I’m not 143 Forever Mine even going to try.” Midnight eyes that were slowly turning black and endless fervently speared her, becoming more spellbinding as his voice turned even more commanding. “It is happening, it is real, and you need to come to grips with that. Because when all is said and done, you will be mine.” Abby couldn’t help but chuckle. “You are so damn egotistical, if I didn’t already live with seven of the most arrogant people in the world, I just might be one of those gullible women bowing at your feet after that suave little con. But you know what? I’m not.” Her eyes hardened. “So can the crap and tell me what you really want, General. Were you sent here to find out what I was doing at Boris’?” Her complete dismissal of everything he said had Nikolai dumbfounded. Was she that hunkered down in denial that she thought his passion for her false? Her face that was set in a hard bearing said no, but it was her eyes, those expressive tell-him-everything brown orbs, that flickered with uncertainty and downright fear that screamed…yes! He was gazing into the orbs of resistance, a resistance he would break through and conquer…later. Now however, he actually was quite curious as to why she was sent to Boris’. “No one sent me, Abaigeal, but since you brought it up…” Abby smirked and nodded. “I knew it.” “What were you doing there?” Abby studied him quietly for a moment before she spoke. “If you are so sure that I’m a spy, why would a spy reveal her secrets?” Nikolai grinned roguishly and his eyes were twinkling with amusement. “Because you like me.” “Like you, ha! I loathe you.” Abby chuckled and the husky sound shot right to Nikolai’s dick. He was enthralled by her sexy chocolate eyes that were growing heavier with inner heat and friskily holding his own, driving his desire to a fevered pitch and his cock achingly stiff. The pure raw sex that dripped off of Nikolai staggered Abby. His sinful mouth curved up into a smirk of sexual intent that rocked her senses and fired her pulse with shocks of turbulent lust. Slowly, his hips rocked against her, shallow yet strong rolling movements that touched her core like little fingers of pleasure. She gasped. Her eyes darkened with need as a soft two-timing mewl escaped her parted lips. Nikolai grinned with confidence. “Your words say one thing, but your body tells me something else, milaya.” Abby’s heart raced, her core pulsed and throbbed with urgent demands to be touched…tasted…taken. Nikolai wasted no time in letting her think about what was happening. Instead, he fell into his need to give her what her body so gloriously asked for…what he ached for. Leaning down into the crook of her neck, he inhaled deeply, sucking in the scent of light and life. His body shook against hers as her clean beautiful essence washed into his soul, soothing its loneliness. “Goddess, woman, you take my self-control away.” 144 Forever Mine Abby was thinking pretty much the same thing but she kept her mouth shut. Nikolai looked into her upturned face that peered back with desire and confusion, guilt and uncertainty. It was the last two that had him stopping. His hips stopped their decadent motion only to lie still in the crook of her legs. Leaning up on his elbows Nikolai earnestly looked at her. “Tell me, Abaigeal, why did your father send you here? I do not ask because of Arnost or my father, it is my own curiosity that seeks answers. I ask you a boon, from one warrior to another.” With his body thankfully still, sanity returned and Abby snorted with disdain. “Why would I grant any boons to my enemy?” Nikolai sighed again. She was so damn stubborn. “Is it not honorable to treat fellow warriors with respect, regardless of whether or not they are enemies?” “It is and I have great respect for you, General, yet I fail to see how respect has anything to do with me telling you what I was doing in Moscow.” Nikolai conceded. “Very well. Then think of it as a favor, from you to me.” Abby boldly laughed. “Why would I do you any favors?” Nikolai frowned. His face became harsher. He hated making threats but she was leaving him no choice. “Abaigeal, you know I can get the information from you.” Her laughter stilled and her mouth clamped shut. “I know that is something you do not want me to do, so don’t make me. Tell me the answers I seek and I will leave your private thoughts to yourself.” Her eyes slanted as she glared at him. “Typical male, of course you play that card. Goddess, you are such an insufferable lummox!” “Abaigeal, you may rant and rave at me later, in every language you know and for as long you want, I don’t care, but now I need answers and if you don’t give them to me, I’ll be forced to…” Abby didn’t need to hear the threat twice. She didn’t want him in her head besides what harm would it do, it wasn’t like she knew anything. “Fine. I’ll tell you, but first get off me.” Her hands came up and pushed against a solid wall of immovable muscle. Nikolai smirked. “I think not, milaya. For some reason, I think I’ll get the truth out of you this way.” His smirk vanished as his voice hardened. “Now talk.” “Are you always this inflexible?” When he just pinned her with that obsidian gaze that was slowly becoming more stringent, she hurried to tell him. “Alright already, geez, you’re like an insufferable child. My father doesn’t know I’m here, okay? Are you happy now?” Nikolai’s eyebrow quirked up in confusion. “Explain.” Abby sighed. Goddess above, she really didn’t want to tell him, but what choice did she have. If she didn’t, he would just sashay his way into her head and find out more than she was willing to tell. Like how much she really enjoyed having his weight on her or how much she really, really wanted those so very flexible hips to keep on rolling. 145 Forever Mine “My father did not send me to Russia. He thinks I’m in Brazil vacationing with my cousin.” Nikolai studied her for one second and immediately knew she was holding something back. “There’s more… spill it.” “There is nothing else to tell.” “Abaigeal… Talk!” Abby rolled her eyes. “Fine, you brute, but so help me God, if you say a word of this to anybody, I will hunt you down and cut out your tongue,” she vehemently said. “You have my word as a warrior,” Nikolai solemnly swore. After a few silent seconds of Abby pondering the depth of his sincerity, she finally gave in and spilt the beans. “My father did not send me to Russia on any secret mission because he doesn’t know I go out on secret missions.” Stunned, Nikolai leaned back and saw truth reflecting in her eyes and frowned. If Magnus didn’t send her, then that meant his missive never reached Magnus. And if Magnus didn’t get it, who the hell did? Nikolai’s frown became a fierce dark glower. Goddess save him from interfering old men and, while she was at it, she could save said interfering old man from Nikolai because he was going to strangle Boris when he saw him. “If not your father, then who and why?” “I was sent only to do reconnaissance on Boris Klinkoff. I was not told why. I was told to follow him and report back where he went and who he talked to.” Her gaze had remained clear and concise, confirming that she told the truth. “Who sent you?” Now her eyes crossed. “That, General, I refuse to tell, my handler must be kept secret at all costs. And should you think to delve into my head and find out, I will lose all respect for you,” she flatly said. He was quiet and Abby could see that he was going through everything she told him. She expected him to browbeat her for more information; she did not expect the sudden crinkle of humor in his eyes nor the thunderous laughter that came next. As Nikolai exuberantly laughed, Abby waited him for him to stop or at least slow down, but as the seconds ticked by and his deep laughter continued, she got annoyed. “And why is that funny?” Nikolai was laughing so hard, tears were coming to his eyes. He wiped at them with the back of his hand; he had not heard anything so funny in years. “You’re bamboozling your father, a control freak, who thinks he knows everything that’s going on, but in reality he’s being duped by the daughter he thinks he’s been protecting from the war.” “That’s not funny.” Abby’s hands clenched angrily at her side. If he thought that was funny, he was going to have an apoplexy when he learned that it was her mother’s doing. 146 Forever Mine Nikolai knew Magnus as well as he knew himself and though they hadn’t been close in a long time, Nikolai was certain about one thing: Magnus Mac Branain was like a leopard, he did not change his spots. It was very easy to see the swagger of Magnus and the supercilious smirk the man had a patent on; it was the smirk of a man who was one hundred percent certain he had everything and everyone under his thumb. Nikolai laughed harder. It was just too priceless and he was going to enjoy rubbing it in Magnus’ face. “Come, lubimaya, even you can see the irony in that. You can’t deny that deceiving him turns you on.” No, she couldn’t, but Abby wasn’t about to admit that to the lummox who was laughing at her father’s expense. The rich deep sound vibrated through her, sending shock waves of desire to her core, not to mention out-and-out irritation with him, her reaction to him, and the whole situation she found herself in. Still… “I can see where you might find that bit of information amusing, but it’s not amusing to me…at all.” She cast him her best ‘stop or you’ll regret it’ look and slowly Nikolai’s laughter died down to a low chuckle. He swiped away the moist tears that littered his cheeks. Goddess, he hadn’t laughed like that in a hundred years. He cleared his throat. “So…your father doesn’t know you’re trained as a warrior and fighting in the war.” Abby let loose with a very unladylike snort. If he thought he was going to get anything out of her now, he was seriously mistaken. “I’m not telling you shit, General. You can take your freakishly large self and your misplaced humor, and leave me alone.” Nikolai suddenly became very serious. The laughter stopped. The light of humor left his eyes and they darkened to a fever pitched black as he gazed upon her with raw unabashed possessiveness. “I will concede you this one secret, Abaigeal…for now, but I will never…ever leave you alone.” With that fervent declaration, those sturdy male hips made a hard thrust against her sheet covered core. Shocking Abby with the fiercely lustful desires it created she was powerless against her own hips as they answered his body’s demand by grinding against that mouthwatering hardness, seeking more. “Do you seduce all your enemies, General?” Nikolai’s eyes almost rolled back in his head. “You’re not my enemy, lyubof.” Her hips gyrated against his cock again and he hissed with pleasure. “Your body knows this, yet you continue to fight it. Why?” “Oh gee, I don’t know, maybe because no matter what you think, we’re on opposite sides of the fence,” she acidly spat out but then her eyes softened to pools of hot chocolate as her voice became soft and almost sad. “Why do you persist in this game? I told you what you wanted to know, please, just leave me alone.” Even without probing her, Nikolai could see how troubled she was by their desire. How much she did not want it to be. It angered him and made him 147 Forever Mine want to prove to her just how much she did want him, how much she did belong to him. With driving determination to prove her wrong, he ran his tongue down the side of her long neck, nipping her collarbone with his teeth. She shuddered against him. A moan escaped her lips as their lower bodies moved together as one. Goddess, she was fire to him…life and energy, passion and love…everything he wanted, everything he needed for so damn long that the need to hear and feel more eclipsed anything else. “Oh, lubimaya, though the words do not come from your lips, your body speaks to me of your desires. It’s intoxicating. Tell me more…I need so much more.” His deep sultry voice shook from his dire need to have her. His tongue slid seductively down her throat as his hands restlessly gripped her hips with an urgency that was boldly ravenous. He was wild in his actions, open and honest with his raw emotions, completely out of control. Nikolai’s fierce passion startled Abby but she could not deny how his fevered attention sparked her own. When his hot breath whispered in her ear, dripping with vulnerability and tenderness, deep affection swelled her heart with much more than just lust. “To touch you, it feels so right. Goddess above, Abaigeal, have you any idea how much I need you? How you make me feel?” Without thinking, Abby reached up and laid her hands on his shoulders then she grabbed him and roughly pulled him against her. “Call me Abby…only my father calls me Abaigeal.” Not even realizing she spoke this one concession, Abby’s legs rose and wrapped around his waist. Strengthening her muscles, she squeezed him as she clenched him closer, cupping his sex against her own. His body rocked with tremors and the groan that swept hotly against her neck was full of need. It was frighteningly intense but what was even scarier was her reaction to his. She felt a keen sense of satisfaction. He may be her enemy and maybe he even hated her, but this he could not control or deny. His passion and desire for her was real. And she knew in that moment that no matter what happened between them, no matter how much they hated or distrusted one another, there would always be this…this burning ravenous obsession for the other. She couldn’t deny it, but she could not let herself act upon it either. She couldn’t ignore the tenderness she felt for him which had too many chances of blooming into something strong, like…love. In a blinding moment of truth, Abby saw herself years from now, loving him from a distance. Always yearning for the touch of her enemy but never getting it; it was a harsh certainty, one she quickly needed to come to terms with before she completely fell. “Stop.” She spoke the word but her hands flexed against his shoulders then ran down his strong back, feeling every ripple under his shirt with greedy speed. A harsh self-mocking laugh escaped Nikolai’s lips. “Stop? I can’t even breathe. Goddess, woman, you were made just for me, mine to taste and touch, 148 Forever Mine mine to give pleasure to. I don’t want to stop…I can’t stop. I want your passion, Abby, I need to feel your hot wet heat wrapped around me again. I crave it…I need it…need you.” Abby’s heart broke hearing his words for she knew that it was lust speaking and nothing else, how could it be? Besides, even if by some miracle it wasn’t, his words were too life-altering, for they spoke her greatest fear. Abby’s hands dropped to the side as her legs unraveled from around his waist and rested on the bed. Void of her touch, Nikolai stopped what he was doing and gazed into her eyes, eyes that were brimming with emotions her lips would not speak. “The only thing you need me for is to kill my father.” Nikolai’s entire being became still and disarmingly quiet. He had to tell her. She needed to understand what his intentions were. She was the reason why his plans were made to begin with. She had a right to know. With Arnost and Konstantin out of the palace, there was really no reason not to tell her. Besides, once he got this out of the way, he could proceed with claiming her and maybe, just maybe, she would be more open to him. He sat up and got off the bed. “Abby, I’m…” Grasping the sheet tight to her chest, Abby sat up and curiously watched him as he began to pace. He seemed edgy and that surprised her because she would have bet her life that nothing made this man nervous. Suddenly he stopped and faced her. His expression was one of determination and it incredibly intense. She had the sudden desire to crawl under the covers and plug her ears. “Since the moment we met, things have been happening to me, things that made me realize I could not go on doing what I’ve been doing.” Abby peered back inquisitively. “I don’t understand.” Dark eyes stared intently back. His shoulders were stiff and tense, and the vibration inside Abby thumped anxiously. She had experienced that sensation enough times now to know they were signs, clues that he was about to drop a bomb on her, that the next words to come out of his mouth would change her life forever. “I’m seeking sanctuary at the Summit, Abby. I’m switching sides.” Abby was completely stunned speechless. She didn’t know what to say. Frankly, she wasn’t even sure if she should believe him, but then she remembered what he said in the dungeon. “This is what you meant before in the dungeon, about things going on, why you treated me so…” “Heartlessly,” Nikolai answered and Abby nodded. “Do you know what they would have done if they knew what you meant to me? That whipping you received would have been nothing compared to the pain they would have inflicted on you.” Abby was confused. Okay, so she got that he seemed to be unnaturally obsessed with her and a part of her was coming to realize he just might truly care for her, but if that was the case, why would his father want to hurt something that 149 Forever Mine was important to his son? She could understand Arnost doing something like that, but Konstantin? Abby had always known the love and protection of a caring father, so it was hard for to believe a father would treat his own child so callously. What was the General playing at now? Was this just another trick? Suspicious, she asked, “But why? Konstantin, he’s your father, he…” She never got to finish because the temperature in the room dropped ten degrees. She shivered, her gaze trapped by the belligerent orbs that held hers. “Only half of me comes from that man, Abaigeal, a half that if I could, I would drain from my body. He is a cruel bastard who has tortured and used his own flesh and blood to ensure his place of power with Arnost.” Burning midnight blue eyes were raw and violent as a winter storm as they glared at Abby indignantly. A vehement snarl left his lips and Abby’s mouth snapped shut. Okay, clearly not a big fan of the ‘F’ word. His entire body was stiff with affronted fury. Under that heated glare, Abby felt like a deer caught in headlights. She saw his display of anger when she first arrived but it was nothing compared to this. This was an anger that ran deep and touched the very core of his being. It was the same explosive fury he displayed earlier when she brought this subject up in the dungeon. Then, too, his reaction had been uncontrived and fierce. His anxiety and the underlying pain tugged at Abby’s heart and soul. It broke through the wall she built around her and smashed it to pieces. She had the inner most need to comfort him. She wanted to sooth him with butterfly kisses and tender touches. She wanted to run her hands along those stiff shoulders and kneed them into sublime submission. Their gazes held as silence filled the room. The connection that began three months ago hummed with comfort and succeeded in calming Nikolai’s rage. Her eyes were filled with compassion and a vulnerability that made his heart ache. He felt so weighted down with everything, and he was tired of feeling that way. He was tired of keeping his emotions in check. He was fucking sick to death of keeping his sordid past inside. He wanted to share with her all the things he had never told anyone before. “Did you know your father and I used to be friends?” The quiet question had Abby’s eyes bulging. She shook her head. Nikolai somberly smirked. “I didn’t think so. It was a long time ago, before your mother came to D’rkenrealm. Magnus trained me, he gave me guidance and support, he…he was the father I never had. I would have done anything for him, Abby, anything!” Nikolai was pacing now with fretful strides. Abby watched him march back and forth. She wasn’t sure yet how his former friendship with her father made her feel, she was pretty sure that the impact of that statement and what it would mean to her would hit her in the face later. For now, she was too engrossed in what he was saying, and the significance of it. Her face crinkled with confusion as she asked a question, carefully. “Then why do you fight for Arnost?” 150 Forever Mine Nikolai growled. The air snapped back to life with the rage the memories brought him. With the change in the air came the shift in their connection as it rushed Abby with rapid fire shock waves. “Because the fucking bastards left me no choice!” he vehemently snarled. “They knew I would choose Magnus over them, so they took the one thing I loved more in this world and used her against me!” He had to be talking about his mother, Abby thought. She’d heard the whispered stories of the missing Aleksandra Kotova. She had been a staple in society but when the war began she disappeared. She would show up at the Summit every now and then, but the woman that came was not the same woman everyone remembered. Some say she lost her mind. That being mated to Konstantin for so long and dealing with his close connection to Arnost had taken its toll. The whispers were of a woman who barley spoke and was mad. Abby’s eyes swelled with unshed tears. The empathy she felt for him was almost unbearable. She knew this was painful for him to talk about, but she also knew it was something he had to get out. “How?” she quietly asked. Nikolai was rapidly pacing back and forth as the memory assailed him with clear vividness. “They chained me to a wall and forced me to watch as they each raped her.” “Oh god.” Abby closed her eyes against the anguish that filled her soul, but that didn’t stop the single tear that slipped out and moistened her cheek. Her voice was as torn as Nikolai felt. The memory was painful and so fucking clear in his head that he couldn’t stop talking, couldn’t stop it from playing out again in his mind. “I remember hanging there, trying to break free and feeling so fucking useless. Why did I have all this power if I couldn’t use it to protect the ones I loved! Goddess above, I was furious! I tried to rip the manacles off! I fought against the chains until there was a puddle of blood at my feet. I didn’t feel it; I didn’t see or feel anything else but her.” Nikolai stopped pacing and walked over to stand in front of the window. Seconds ticked by and he said nothing. His shoulders seemed to slump slightly as he continued to talk with a hollowness that, to Abby’s ears, said this was the defining moment of Nikolai Kotova, the moment the man died and the General was born. “My mother, she didn’t say anything. They rutted on her like fucking animals and she didn’t scream; she didn’t try to stop them; she didn’t even have one tear in her eye. She just…accepted it.” “She did it for you. She didn’t want you to hurt yourself anymore. She was strong for you.” Abby softly said. Nikolai shook his head. “Maybe, but I don’t think it was that, it was strange. She acted as if she knew it was going to happen. I remember the sensation of her voice in my head, telling me to stop struggling, that I couldn’t fight destiny, that she had accepted her role in this life a long time ago and that I had to too.” His voice lowered. “Maybe she had known, I don’t know.” 151 Forever Mine “A vision?” Nikolai shrugged. He turned away from the window and looked at Abby with empty eyes. “When they were done and long after I already agreed to help them, Konstantin beat her. It was just another way for him to prove their control over me. She barely survived, but they didn’t care. They had what they wanted, me under their thumb and away from Magnus.” “Where…where is your mother now?” “I don’t know, damn it.” Nikolai growled. “The bastards keep her from me as continued leverage. If I’m lucky, I see her once every two years.” Abby had a feeling she was going to regret asking this but, “So what changed? Why after a hundred years did you decide to switch?” Midnight eyes fixated on her with strong, steady and absolute regard. “It’s because of you, Abaigeal.” Abby’s eyes bulged as her head slowly started to shake back and forth. She really did not want to hear this, but Nikolai continued, his voice growing with infinite conviction. “Yes, the Darkness sees its S’airsul in you and it will not rest until it has you. It is because of you that I can no longer keep my antagonism behind shutters anymore. I cannot continue to mercilessly kill people I never wanted to kill to begin with. Because of you, I am becoming something my father,” he sneered, “never wanted me to become.” Yeah, she regretted it, but it still didn’t stop her from asking her next question. “What…what’s that?” “A mated Pure.” Okay, she had no idea what the hell a S’airsul was or what a Pure meant, but she knew what mated meant. With a fierce hold on the sheet, Abby flew up and out of the bed. “Look, I’m sorry about what they’ve done to you and I’m really glad you’re switching sides and all that, but I have no idea what you’re talking about. I have no clue what a Pure is, but I sure as hell do know that I don’t want to be responsible for anything this…this big.” Nikolai harshly gripped her shoulders. “But you are, Abby. It’s because of you the Darkness is unsettled. It wants you.” Panic, fierce and terrifyingly resilient, overtook her. “Look, I don’t know what the hell the Darkness is okay? And I don’t care what it wants because it’s not getting me!” she screamed. Nikolai snarled and his fingers dug deeper into her arms. “Why are you being so stubborn? Why do you continue to deny what’s between us?” Because it is my greatest fear! The intensity on the General’s face and the tension in his body was too much conviction for Abby. Whatever this Darkness was, it meant to bind her to him. To keep her in a cage, just like her father. No, she couldn’t do that. She could not allow herself to ever be in a situation like that again. 152 Forever Mine Abby shrugged her shoulders until she got lose from his grip then she stepped back and out of his embrace. Her eyes were large and panicky. Her hands gripped the sheet with such force that her knuckles were turning white. “I’m sorry, okay? I don’t know what you expect from me, but I can’t give it. I have to go.” Abby’s reaction was the complete opposite of what Nikolai was experiencing…he was so furious, he was literally shaking. He just opened his heart to her, his biggest secrets he revealed to her, and she was still denying him. Nikolai was seething and the Darkness came to the surface. His eyes turned black, his veins protruded and pulsed, his fangs elongated and those fathomless orbs watched her with a predatory gaze. Abby witnessed the change take place as she slowly walked backward toward the door. She was held hostage by the fear running through her. Not because of the snarling demon standing proudly in front of her, but because of her own inner demons that were clawing at her insides. “Fiur dak s'unna laknire misul.” Abby stared back, wide eyed, suddenly feeling that someone else just joined this conversation. The voice was deeper than the General’s and it spoke a graveled language she’d never heard before. Was this the Darkness he had been talking about? Well, if it were, she could understand the need to control it because this creature was bursting with power. Its authority and confidence filled the room with a flood of heat so strong that Abby felt sweat beading then trickling down between her breasts. She almost laughed because the funny thing was she didn’t necessarily fear what it was - it was the determination and swagger of the beast that scared the crap out of her. She shook her head back and forth. "I don't understand." She could have sworn she saw it roll its eyes in annoyance right before it closed them and then shook its entire body. When it opened its eyes again, they were still black but not as endless. The voice spoke in Old Norse with the sexy Russian accent Abby was used to hearing from the General, which told her the Darkness had retreated. “I said you’re not going anywhere, moya dusha.” Abby’s heart pounded in her chest – did he just call her his soul? Okay…definitely time to leave. “Um, yeah, I am. You know what their plan is, I have to get back. If you truly are switching sides then you’d want me to go too, you’d want to prevent the murder that will happen if I don’t.” The scheming smirk that appeared on his gorgeous face was as good as a dagger laced with poison to Abby’s peace of mind. “The Summit isn’t until next week and you yourself said that Magnus has no idea you are even here.” His smirk turned so lascivious and definitive that Abby’s entire body flushed. “That means we have at least a couple of days to…explore each other, before you must return.” An erotic image of that exploration flashed across Abby’s mind. Her breath hitched as a torrent of moisture hit her core and set her body on fire, spiking a desire so ravenous she felt herself throbbing with lust. 153 Forever Mine “No. I’m leaving now, you can try and stop me, but I’ll fight you.” Nikolai inhaled deeply. The scent of her arousal cascaded throughout his entire being. He shuddered with lust and his mouth watered; he couldn’t wait to taste her arousal on his tongue. “Considering how well that turned out for me last time…” His eyes flared with eagerness. “I hope you do.” Abby turned and made a mad dash toward the door. She reached for the knob and tried to turn it but it wouldn’t move then, she couldn’t move at all. Nikolai stood behind her, pressing his large muscled frame against hers and pushing her into the door. Using his knees, he bent his large frame so he could burrow into the crook of her neck. “You cannot open it, svass, it only opens upon my command.” He was now calling her beloved in Old Norse, and Goddess save her, it got her hotter and wetter. His breath seared her skin and sent another surge of rampant lust washing over her. Abby closed her eyes against the next blitz that came when he flexed his hips against her ass and pressed his amazingly large cock against her butt cheeks. “Oh Goddess!” she whined, hearing the pitiful sound would have had her seething if she wasn’t already locked in an irresistible state of pure mindboggling arousal. Only a thin sheet stood between them, that and Abby’s control, which was quickly slipping away under his sensual onslaught. She couldn’t resist. There was something inside her answering his demands, a willingness to give him anything he asked for - anything at all. She knew that with his next words, she would. “Come, don’t be afraid, open yourself to me and drink greedily of the pleasure I want to give you.” Abby felt the “yes” coming from deep inside, she felt her mouth forming the word even though she knew if she said it that her life would forever change. Thank the Goddess she was saved from herself when she felt a sharp rap against the door. “Go away.” Nikolai savagely growled Beyond the thick wooden door, a throat nervously cleared. “My apologies, milord, but there are some…things which require your immediate attention.” Seconds ticked by. The air was thick with sensual heat, the body lusciously pressed against hers was locked tight as the man struggled with the need to let his desire loose and hold it back all at the same time. He swore in Russian, his hot breath caressed Abby’s neck, making her tingle. Then, on a long and suffering sigh, he seemed to come to grips with the situation and she felt the air around them lighten and his body slowly uncoiling. Abby sent a quick thank you to the Goddess Anaya because she had been seconds away from relenting. Resisting the man was hard enough, but resisting the creature that a moment ago demanded her submission had been near impossible. Nikolai rumbled irately then roughly whispered in her ear, “We’ll have to continue this later, lyubof. Think about what I said. You know I speak the truth. Even if you can’t admit to it, at least acknowledge the fact that your body is hot 154 Forever Mine and wet for mine.” He licked her neck. “I can practically taste your juices on the tip of my tongue.” Abby couldn’t hold back the moan that slipped from her lips. Hearing the sound, Nikolai smugly smirked. “I know you ache, milaya moya, aching for the release only I can give and I promise you, when I come back, I will give it to you.” Taking a step backwards, Nikolai grabbed her shoulders and spun her around to face him. Holding her excited yet frightened gaze, he slowly and deliberately pressed her back against the door. With a possessive grip, he took her chin in his hand and feathered his lips across hers. Then, with a gentleness that belied the aggression behind the act, he opened her mouth. “Many, many times over.” His mouth took hers with a force that left Abby dizzy. His tongue plunged inside, tasting her completely and kissing her ravenously, telling her without words exactly what he meant. When he pulled back, Abby was breathless and electrified with lust. She couldn’t move and Nikolai, sensing her inability to grasp the situation, gently picked her up and set her aside. He whispered a few strange words and the door magically opened. In a sexual haze of unfulfilled desire, Abby’s eyes longingly followed Nikolai’s big body as he stepped out into the hallway and indicated with a casual wave of his hand the skinny old man who stood beside him, red-faced and eyes down cast. “Abaigeal, this is Alexi, my Stewart. He will bring you some food while I’m gone.” Those blue orbs sizzled with sexual promise. ”If you aren’t hungry now, you will be later.” It was the arrogance rolling out of his mouth like a fine wine that snapped Abby back to the living. That and the absurd amount of control she heard in his voice. Gods blood! She was standing there, shaking with unsated lust while he seemed to have his shit all together. She felt humiliated to the core of her being. Her gaze shifted to the left and landed on an Alexi who wouldn’t meet her gaze. She was absolutely mortified. Abby’s face reddened and her eyes promised an unholy death. Nikolai softly chuckled. He couldn’t help it; her misplaced humiliation was just too cute. Naturally, he would have to help her get rid of that because once she truly became his S’airsul she would have to get used to the fact that sex would be often, undoubtedly extremely loud, certainly very physical, and occurring whenever and wherever he wanted it. “See you in a bit, milaya. Don’t miss me too much.” “Oh, you egotistical lummox!” Abby screamed as Nikolai closed the door and then once more magically locked it. In the hallway with Alexi at his side, Nikolai’s smile faded and he took a deep breath. Goddess, she was fire and life. All he wanted was to gorge on her 155 Forever Mine energy and her lust. He had felt her resistance slipping. He’d been mere seconds away from satisfying his deepest desires. Now, standing in the cold, lonely hallway, he felt like the wind got knocked out of him, so when he addressed Alexi, it was with a pissiness the old servant did not miss nor misinterpret. “What’s the problem?” Nikolai’s growling question was harsh with annoyance Alexi didn’t mind nor was he unsettled. Inside, he was smiling from ear to ear. “It’s Gregor, milord, he said Nyah has become restless and he can’t keep her down. He’s concerned she’ll hurt herself.” Nikolai cursed. Nyah was one of his young mares pregnant with her first foal. “Fine, I’ll go see what’s happening.” Nikolai turned and headed down the steps only to be stopped by Alexi again. “Also, milord, I thought you would want to know that Dalibor has awakened and Vladimir has started the healing rite.” Now Nikolai really cursed, loudly. Dalibor might be human but his magically enhanced body healed faster than mortals. The process was still slower than an immortal, but with the healing spell Vladimir was doing, it wouldn’t be long before Dalibor would be ready to go. “Has Mikkel made contact?” Alexi had been with Nikolai forever and he was completely aware of everything that took place in the palace. So he knew exactly what Nikolai was saying. “No, milord, but I didn’t see him leave.” Nikolai stopped and fixed a hard stare on the old servant. “What do you mean?” “I saw him enter the tunnel earlier but I never saw his vehicle drive away. As far as I can tell, he’s still at the guesthouse.” Nikolai frowned. Something wasn’t right. Mikkel did not disobey orders. Especially not one that was this important. He turned and started walking again. “I’ll check it out after the stables.” “Very good, milord.” Alexi quickly followed behind Nikolai’s long agitated strides. “Alexi, please bring my guest something to eat and drink. Then go to my mother’s room and find something for her to wear.” “I’ll see to it right away, milord.” Alexi bowed. Nikolai grunted then disappeared down the stairs. Alexi smiled as Nikolai left then he headed to do his master’s bidding. 156 Forever Mine CHAPTER NINE Pechora, Komi Republic, Russia Near the Northern Ural Mountains Standing back from the mural she just completed, Aleksandra Volynski Kotova dropped the paint brush she held into a cup of turpentine then gazed at her creation with a practiced eye. This one had taken her two years to complete; it was the last one in a long and complicated process, and after a few moments of quiet reflection, she smiled. It was as beautiful as the story itself. Bright and bold, it was the final piece of an undertaking she had set upon centuries ago when her confinement began. She turned around, making a full circle, her eyes taking in the entire dome-shaped room that was now covered from floor to ceiling in the rich colors of legends of the past, stories that were her heritage. Stories that one day soon would be seen for the first time through the eyes of the one person they belonged to. A single tear fell and slid down her cheek. Instead of wiping it away as she had done for so many years, she let it run its course. For it was not a tear of shame or regrets; this teardrop was full of hope and faith, love, and a sense of accomplishment. She had endured much over the long and lonely years of being confined to the Gorod high atop the Ural Mountains. It was her home and while she had always been thankful this was where she had been banned, she still missed the surrounding world. But all that was about to end and restless excitement consumed her. Freedom was inevitable, it was just a matter of time, and this mural that took her decades to complete would be her bequest. She softly chuckled as she wiped her hands down her thick canvas skirt then set to work putting away her paints and brushes. She wished Konstantin had the nerve to enter this domain then he could see what had kept her occupied over the years. She could easily picture his face if he ever did; it would be red and blotchy with anger and she would take great delight in knowing she was the cause of his irritation. But that was wishful thinking; that spineless excuse for a vamp would never step foot in the Gorod again. In fact, she was surprised he even had the balls to venture to the gatehouse. The clock chimed, echoing throughout the dome, reminding her the time was almost near. They would be coming for her soon, but she was ready. Usually the thought of being in close quarters with Konstantin and Arnost on the way to Scotland filled her with dread, but she was so immersed in high spirits that even that didn’t deflate her. It was trivial compared to the future that lay before her. The long journey would be the last time she would have to play the act of a crazed woman and that alone was call for celebration. 157 Forever Mine Sasha frowned with abhorrence. She’d always disliked playing the submissive role. It just never sat well with her to be anything other than what she was, but she realized a long time ago that the best way to remain sane and safe was to act insane and removed. It had served its purpose well. After all, it was because of her charade that Konstantin banished her to the Gorod. At one time he had wanted to surround himself with her, but the moment she began the lifeless role of a broken woman, he could barely look at her. She found it quite amusing, actually, to see the looks of disgust on Konstantin and Arnost’s faces when they were in her presence. They thought they had broken her. Her lip curled up in disgust. Idiots. It would take much more than rape and torture to break her. They were so blinded by their vanity they never once really looked at her. They made assumptions and believed them to be true and that suited her just fine. She had more important things to do with her time than waste energy on blocking their foolish attempts to probe her. She had waited a long, long time for this day to come and when the vision first appeared she had been reborn, now every day since, she had done nothing but prepare. It was also when she began the mural. The fresco was her testament to the truth. The visualized lore of a great and powerful clan that came from a book that was made out of the dried hides of goats and bound with the strong vines of the forest and kept in a sacred place to protect the heritage of the clan. That book had become Sasha’s saving grace, her lifeline to sanity. In her grief and anger, she had taken the book from its hallowed place and began to tell the story of the elders by painting them in gilding golds, sparkling blues, and deep reds. Arnost and Konstantin tried to wipe that history out as if it never existed, but Sasha would not let them. Everyone had a destiny and hers was to ensure that that legacy was not forgotten. Her path was set in motion and had been for centuries. It was the air she breathed. The only thing she existed for. And she held that duty with honor and a great sense of pride. She visually swept the room one last time. Then, smiling contently, she stepped outside and lovingly closed the door. She walked down the hall and toward the stairs that would take her down to her rooms. “Maman, there you are. Are you not dressed? Goddess, they will be here soon. Paolo just called from the gatehouse, they are not far away.” Sasha turned at the soft sound of her daughter’s voice as Katya walked toward her. Her heart, that moments before had felt light, now constricted with shame. Her beautiful children; they more than anyone had sacrificed so much on the path Sasha had been destined to take. While she didn’t mind playing the role of crazy woman to the world, it hurt her deeply to do so in front of her children. She did not like that one bit. Something else she would hold Konstantin accountable for. Katya reached her side then gave her a kiss on the cheek. She looped her arm through Sasha’s and ‘helped’ her down the hallway and to her room, speaking to her as if their roles were reversed, and she was the mother instead of the daughter. 158 Forever Mine “Come, maman, everything is prepared. We only need to get you dressed.” Katya turned her brilliant blue eyes to Sasha, searching her face. Her mouth formed a smile as her slender hand came up and touched her cheek. “First a bath, I think. Why, you have blue paint all over your pretty face.” Katya pulled Sasha down the hall, all the while talking about how excited she was that she would be attending the Summit for the first time, something her father never allowed before. She didn’t wonder why or even ask, and Sasha didn’t offer any explanation, for it wasn’t time yet. “I think the midnight blue traveling gown will suit you well this evening, maman, you look so lovely in it.” As Katya continued to talk, Sasha’s shame only grew. Sometimes she wished Konstantin had not banished Katya with her at the Gorod. Though she loved having her daughter near, it was hard for Sasha to see Katya’s innocent face every day and not feel remorse. In those moments, she would lapse back into regrets and anger, and she would blame the Gods for putting her children through such hardships. She could carry the burden of a heavy destiny, but seeing her children go through it too went beyond the pale. They did not deserve what they’ve been through but Sasha understood it. In the end, they would be better people for their hardships, just as she had become. She only hoped that when the truth was revealed, they would not hate her for her duplicity. She could not bear their anger. That alone would break her. Still, while she recognized their destiny required sacrifices, her heart was filled with pain for the lives they had been forced to live, especially Nikolai. Katya opened the door to Sasha’s room and stepped aside for Sasha to walk in before her. “I cannot wait to see Koyla. I hope he’s okay,” Katya softly wondered out loud as she started unbuttoning Sasha’s blouse and skirt. At the mention of her son, Sasha’s eyes clouded with sadness. Katya spoke her most fervent wish and she couldn’t stop herself from reaching out to him. It was so much easier to do now than when she was first taken away from him. Before the war began, she was not able to fully train the bond she held with her children because Konstantin and Arnost watched her constantly. But when the war began, and they imprisoned her here, she had nothing but time and time was all she needed to hone those skills to perfection. Now, it was as easy as taking a breath and she could see, feel, and hear them. Her maternal bond with both her children was powerful, so she was not blind to how hard life had been for them; she felt it every day. Her Katya had endured centuries of separation from her brother and it had not been easy for her as she struggled with her identity and the cruel knowledge that her father hated her and wanted nothing to do with her. And yet, Katya was an amazingly tenderhearted woman. Filled with optimism and hope, she went about her day like any other day, with a smile on her face and a friendly word to any she should meet. 159 Forever Mine Sasha was grateful for that and she was confident that the tribulations Katya endured could be healed with attention and love, and a gentle guiding hand. Nikolai, however, was not that easy to fix. Out of all the victims in this sordid tale, her son had been the biggest one. She could feel the guilt and self-hatred that he carried every single day. The heart that had at one time been full of life and love had been turned to stone as he became everything he hated. She didn’t think he would ever forgive himself of the deeds he committed but sometimes, all one needed to be at peace was to be accepted for who and what they were. In her personal opinion, nothing helped in that regard more than love. Katya walked Sasha over to the tub that was steaming with hot water. “Here you go, maman, you get started. I’ll just go and fetch you a glass of wine. I’ll be right back.” The door closed behind Katya. Sasha pulled off her chemise then stepped into the hot water. The soft tread of footsteps sounded outside the door then stopped. There was a sturdy knock right before it was opened and a goldenhaired, heart-shaped face with pointy ears peaked in. “Psst, Sasha…” The soft childlike whisper came from Nissa, Sasha’s longtime friend and companion, and bane to Konstantin and Arnost. They hated the little Leshy. Nissa was a reminder that there were some things Arnost and Konstantin could not obliterate. As Sasha held Nissa’s gaze, she realized something was missing. As she continued to gaze at the little Leshy, it occurred to her what exactly that was. Doki was not here and, in fact, Sasha had not seen him all day. Doki was the Gorod’s Lechie, yet he did not enter the Gorod much anymore. After everything that took place, the shame he felt had been great and he hid himself away deep inside the mountains of the forest. It was only before the Summit when he would venture inside to see Sasha before she left. Typically, Nissa and Doki did not get along. They were natural enemies to begin with and even though they had lived together for centuries, there was still some strange animosity between them that Sasha never understood. She knew Nissa was angry with Doki and that she accused him of abandoning Sasha. But Sasha knew Doki had not forsaken her; it was only his deep grief and guilt that he could not let go of that kept him away. It was painful for Doki to be in the Gorod and she did not hold that against him. But it was only a matter of time before that changed. When things were set right to the way they were supposed to be, Doki would come and resume his duties with the same loyalty and passion he had in the past. Since she would be leaving soon and hadn’t seen hide or hair from Doki, Sasha studied Nissa further, intuitively knowing that Nissa had something to do with the missing Doki. Frowning, Sasha asked,“Where is Doki?” Nissa shrugged a shoulder as she toyed with the black curls of Sasha’s hair. “I do not know, Sasha. All I know is that I do not sense that Lechie 160 Forever Mine anywhere. Perhaps he went back to the mountains to…rest.” She giggled like a naughty child. After living with the impish Leshy for centuries, Sasha was all too aware of what that sound meant. “We are to leave soon, Nissa, Doki would be here. What have you done?” “Nothing.” Nissa twirled around the tub, humming a dirty little ditty. Sasha held back her grin. Nissa might be older than Sasha, but she acted like a child. She had a penchant for mischief and her favorite target was Doki. Sasha scolded her all the time on her treatment of Doki, but like any Leshy, Nissa did whatever she wanted to do. “Nissa…” Sasha’s voice was a warning and Nissa sighed. “I sorry, Sasha, I know what you require, but yesterday Doki pulled my hair and it hurt. I just wanted to return the favor.” As petulant as any child, Sasha thought as she shook her head. “What did you do, Nissa?” “I didn’t hurt him, though I wish I could, but I promised you I wouldn’t so…I shave his head while he slept.” A soft chortle spilled from Sasha’s lips. She could picture the unusually vane Doki waking up, looking into a mirror and seeing bald skin where a full head of red hair use to be. “I think he went to the caves to sulk. Such a baby!” Sasha felt bad for Doki; he struggled with so much as it was and Nissa’s teasing was an additional aggravation the Lechie didn’t need. Sasha sighed. “We’ll talk about this later, Nissa. But now it is time, are you ready?” Nissa flashed a fulsome smile, “Oh yes Sasha. Nissa very excited!” Sasha chuckled, “Good, you know what to do.” Nissa nodded her head then in a blink of an eye disappeared just as Katya opened the door. “Here I am, maman, I have your wine. Now, let’s get you cleaned up.” ********** “Lady Mac Branain? It is Alexi, I brought you some clothes.” The door swung open and Alexi stepped inside smiling at Abby who was still standing in the middle of the room, wearing nothing but a blood red silk sheet wrapped around her naked body. Abby blushed, “I’m sorry, I…” “Oh no, milady, there is no reason to apologize,” Alexi said. The kind and completely unflustered comment had Abby’s eyebrow lifting. Clearly Nikolai’s trusted servant wasn’t surprised in the least to find a half-naked woman in his master’s bed chamber, a fact that, while it shouldn’t, annoyed the ever loving crap out of her. 161 Forever Mine Without realizing it, Abby’s eyes darkened with displeasure. She knew firsthand what an incredibly virile male the General was, a man whose seductive charms were potent and exceedingly irresistible. She also couldn’t forget that he was a vamp, which automatically made him a man whore. It was logical to assume and really stupid of her not to think that he had had women in here before. A grunt of mounting irritation and aversion spilled from her lips. Most likely they came and went like the wind, she thought with rising resentment, one after a freaking another. Her eyes drifted over to the big king size bed where she had, not so long ago, took pleasure in his drugging kisses and imposing touch, and rejoiced in the feeling of his weight on top of her. It wasn’t hard for her to imagine those same hands on another’s skin. Abby felt steam coming out of her ears. Goddess above, she really, really did not like that thought one damn bit. Then a horrid thought popped into her head. What if Nikolai found those other woman more to his liking? What if the pleasure he received from them was greater than when he touched her? Her eyes bulged when she unexpectedly felt sick to her stomach with the thought. She wasn’t supposed to care about that, but she found she could think of nothing else. No matter what her head was telling her, her heart and her soul felt ripped to shreds from the very idea that she wasn’t and possibly might never be enough for that vamp. She wanted to stamp her foot in frustration. Damn it! Now she wanted to cry! What was wrong with her? Why couldn’t she get a grip on these emotions? She felt like she was riding a roller coaster that both thrilled her and made her want to puke. Alexi amusingly read every expression on the young miss’s face as if he were reading a book. The thought did pass his mind to let her keep thinking what she was thinking, it would do his master good to not always get what he wanted as easily as he usually did, and Alexi suspected that this proud lady would not give in so easily. Still, as he continued to study her face, it switched from aggravated to sad and worrisome, and that was not acceptable. “Don’t misunderstand me, mistress. It’s not that this happens all the time. In fact, you are the first woman - well, except for milord’s maman that is - to ever enter this room.” Alexi’s warm smile and the sincerity she heard in his voice put Abby at ease. She smiled back. Alexi nodded then became all business as he walked toward the bathroom. “You can use the bathroom in here, milady. I’m sure you must be longing to wash up after your ordeal in the dungeon, which, if I may be so bold as to say, was completely uncalled for.” Yeah, she really liked this one. Abby smiled. “I’m guessing you’re not a big fan of the Count?” “I most certainly am not, miss!” Abby chuckled. “That seems to be the norm around here. I find it strange that so many people feel that way, yet…here they are and here he is.” 162 Forever Mine Abby’s smile faded as she watched the Stewart’s demeanor shift from insulted to highly insulted. “Beg your pardon, miss, but I don’t think you understand all that has taken place in this household. I, therefore, do not think it fair of you to make such comments.” Abby actually blushed from the reproachful glare the servant was giving her. She ran a hand through her hair and exhaled deeply. “You’re right, Alexi. I’m not normally this difficult. I guess I’m just tired and feeling out of sorts. Please, forgive me.” Alexi heard her contriteness and quickly offered his own olive branch. “No, miss, it is I who should beg your forgiveness, I had no right to speak to you such. You’ve been through an ordeal yet you have been handling yourself with refined grace.” Abby smiled. “No, you had every right. You were being nice and it’s not your fault I’m here. I shouldn’t take my frustrations out on you. Believe me, my mother would be appalled, she taught me better than that.” Alexi returned her smile. “Your mother is a most kind and worthy woman. I enjoyed spending time with her when she was here.” He chuckled. “She has an amazingly sharp wit, which I found to be very delightful.” Abby’s eyes widened. “What?” Alexi’s smile faltered seeing the surprise on her face. “I’m sorry, miss, you were not aware your mother was kidnapped some years ago?” “No, I know that, she was pregnant with my brother Shane.” Abby softly laughed. “It was actually how he got his name. I just…I never knew she was here. I thought my father found her in a cabin in the woods of Romania.” “Indeed he did, miss, but that was after milord let her escape.” Seeing the stumped look of disbelief on her face, Alexi explained. “You see, miss, the Count commanded milord to abduct the Queen of Shikars. Circumstances as they were, milord had no choice but to comply with the Count’s demands.” After hearing the General’s story of why he betrayed her father, it wasn’t hard for Abby to imagine what other degrading thing Arnost and Konstantin did to get the General to submit. “So, much to his displeasure,” Alexi continued, “he brought the Queen here and settled her in his mother’s room. He took care of her, as much as he could at least, and when he could not, I did. She stayed here for three days and was treated with the utmost respect and given every comfort milord could give without the Counts knowledge, that is.” “So how did she end up in Romania?” Abby’s softly asked. “On the morning of the fourth day, I overheard the Count tell Vladimir to prepare the Queen for the journey to his mountain home.” Alexi stepped closer and lowered his voice. “People do not return from that evil place, miss. Only the Goddess knows what happens to the poor souls he sends to that isolated and dilapidated estate.” Standing to his full height Alexi continued in a regular tone. “I, of course, could not let that happen to your mother, she had been nothing but kind to me, so I relayed what I overhead to milord. Later in the afternoon, when 163 Forever Mine the Counts slept, milord arranged for your mother’s escape. It was Lord Haraldsson who took your mother to Romania and it was milord General who left the clue for your father to find her.” Abby turned away from Alexi because she did not want him to see how emotional that story had made her. She just wanted to cry again, damn it! At the risk of his own life and that of his mother’s, Nikolai saved her mother’s life and, in so doing, saved her brother’s. Abby felt such gratitude and compassion for him that one single tear escaped and slid down her cheek. Alexi seemed to sense her emotional state, so he gave her a moment to compose herself. He took the clothes he held in his arms and brought them to the bathroom, laying them out on the settee. Then he returned to the bedroom. “Did they, the Counts, I mean, discover what the General had done?” Abby’s voice cracked because the thought of something terrible happening to him or his mother because of what he did for her family was agonizing. Alexi softly smiled at her. “No, miss, they did not. Milord and Lord Haraldsson were not present in the palace when the Queen escaped. It was only afterwards in the woods that they met with her and the rest…well, you already know. The Counts, they just assumed she had broken free of the locked room and ambushed her guards. Considering who your mother is, it was the logical assumption to make.” Abby breathed out a sigh of relief. This was all so…enlightening, and she found herself once more confused with what was in front of her face, what her head was telling her, and what her heart and soul were screaming. She needed time to sort all these emotions out. “I fear I’ve rambled on for too long, once again. I am shirking my duties. I do not want it getting back to the Queen that I was negligent in caring for her only daughter. If you follow me, miss.” Abby followed Alexi into the bathroom and for one moment stood speechless. Wow! That was the first word that popped into her head. It was huge! Her head swung to the right and took in the glass shower that looked to be about ten by ten feet with ten shower heads strategically placed. Looking to the right, she saw a sofa and table, and to the front of her was a beautiful black marble countertop with two sinks and a toilet. “I brought you a set of clothes and a robe.” Alexi indicated the clothing lain out on the settee. “I will return with some food when you are done. You must be starving.” Alexi walked around the bathroom pulling bottles of shampoos and conditioners out, basically preparing Abby’s shower. “If that’s all, miss, I’ll leave you to your shower.” Alexi walked back into the bedroom and Abby quickly followed. While she really wanted to use the shower and wash away the grim and dirt, she felt kind of funny doing so. She imagined this was what her mother felt like. It was all rather confusing to be a prisoner yet be treated as if you belonged there. “Alexi, I don’t think it’s a good idea. I’ll just borrow the clothes, I can’t…I can’t stay. I have to get back home.” “What, leave so soon? We haven’t even been properly introduced.” 164 Forever Mine Abby looked up at the doorway to see a very large man standing in the threshold. He bowed gracefully then stood tall, his eyes immediately meeting Abby’s. She looked right at him then she eyeballed him, up then down, and then back up again, her eyes widening as she did. What the hell did they feed the pregnant women in Russia – small children? This one was almost as tall and as big as the General. His body was rock hard with plenty of rippling muscles. He wore a mustache and beard, and had blonde hair that just touched his shoulders. He had striking features and an arresting face but it was his eyes – which were checking her out as much as she was checking him out – that were truly spellbinding. They were the lightest shade of blue she had ever seen. She knew she had not actually met this man before, but she recalled the pleasing sound of a deep slightly Scandinavian accented voice, and she remembered where she’d heard it. “Good evening, my lady, I am Lord Mikkel Haraldsson. I doubt you remember but…” “I remember you. You’re the comedian from the dungeon.” Abby wanted to scowl at him because for some reason it seemed like it was what she should do, but after hearing about the role this man played in her mother’s escape, she just couldn’t. Instead, she found herself wondering what kind of man would go to such extremes to help the General. Mikkel smiled back. Feeling her brown eyes - which, unnervingly, were just like her father’s - studying him, he cleared his throat. “I am very pleased to see you up and about. It appears Koyla took good care of you.” Abby raised her eyes. “If you mean by sticking a needle in me and drugging me…then yeah, I guess he did.” Mikkel chuckled, hearing the aspersion in her voice. “Pardon me, milord, milady,” Alexi interrupted. “I’ll just go and prepare the mistress something to eat.” He respectfully bowed then quickly left the room. “Oh, no wait…” Abby wanted to tell the poor man not to go out of his way, but he was already long gone. “He looks old, but don’t let that decrepit body fool you, Alexi could run with the wolves,” Mikkel responded with a wink and charismatic smile and Abby couldn’t stop herself from smiling back. She really wanted to hate him, but for some reason she couldn’t. She blamed it on that face of his. Sweet and kind with a touch of menacing danger lurking just beneath the surface, it was very appealing and really made a girl feel safe and comfortable. Not to mention the guy had a body that would make any girl drool. Still only wrapped in a sheet, Abby knew she should be feeling some sort of shyness holding another conversation with a completely different man she didn’t know but he was so serene she felt relaxed around him and it showed when she blasted him with a smile that came naturally and made Mikkel’s heart beat just a bit faster. There was an awkward moment of silence then Mikkel cleared his throat. He came here to talk to Koyla; he had not expected to find Abaigeal Mac Branain 165 Forever Mine standing in nothing but a sheet. While the view was quite splendid, he was pretty sure Koyla would not appreciate Mikkel’s enjoyment of it. He turned to leave. “I’m sorry to disturb you, my lady…” “Please, I’ve been my lady’ed enough, just call me Abby.” Mikkel turned back around and smiled. “Very well, Abby, and I insist you call me Mikkel or Misha, whichever you prefer.” “Okay…Misha.” Mikkel’s smile broadened. “I was actually looking for Nikolai, I thought he’d be here.” “He left a few minutes ago. I don’t know where he went, sorry.” “No worries. I’ll leave you to get refreshed then.” He turned to leave again but Abby stopped him. “Wait.” “Yes?” Abby wanted to ask so many things, but she felt uncertain about all of them. She sensed he was a good man, but she felt so off kilter since arriving here that she wasn’t sure if she could trust her judgment. “Was there something you wanted to ask me, Abby?” Mikkel gently prodded. Abby’s hands twisted the sheet against her naked breasts as she asked what she’d been longing to since the moment this man walked in the room. She was taking a chance trusting him, but she had nothing to lose and she desperately needed to know. She took a step closer and whispered, “Is it true?” Mikkel just stared back with a question in his blue orbs. Abby took another step closer. “You know…you do know, don’t you?” Mikkel gave her a blank look and Abby began to get frustrated, completely forgetting the fact that she hadn’t specifically asked him anything. “Goddess above, you must know, you’re the man’s best friend, aren’t you?” Mikkel nodded. “Well, yes, but…” “So, you must know if it’s true or not?” Mikkel was thinking that there was any number of things she could be asking him and since he didn’t want to give a wrong answer, he thought it best to know exactly what she was referring to. “I’m sorry, Abby, just what are you fishing for?” Abby rolled her eyes. “Goddess, are there that many secrets around this place that you don’t know which one I’m asking you about?” After a few seconds a light shined in his blue eyes. “Ah, that secret.” Mikkel grinned. He was glad Nikolai told her what was going on, she definitely had a right to know, and honesty would only make his friend’s ultimate endeavor that much easier to achieve. Abby sighed. “Yes, that secret. So, I guess that means it is.” She sounded sad for some reason Mikkel couldn’t fathom. “This upsets you?” Abby turned away from him. She wasn’t sure how she felt about this. On the one hand, she was pretty sure Nikolai Kotova's defection would end the war, 166 Forever Mine which was great! On the other hand, she was afraid what that end might mean to her. Feeling a bit lonely and in need of a friendly ear, Abby answered honestly. “No, I mean, yes…Goddess above, I don’t know what the hell I mean! Don’t get me wrong, it’s great, no more war, woo-hoo, but I get the feeling that it’s not that cut and dry where I’m concerned.” Mikkel smiled a knowing grin and took a step closer. “I can only assume by the trepidation in your voice that Nikolai has stated his intentions toward you.” Abby snorted. “Intentions is too a weak of a word, Misha. Browbeating, won’t take no for an answer, won’t leave me alone, is more like it.” Mikkel knew how overpowering Nikolai could be and he already glimpsed the stubborn independent streak that ran through Abby, so it wasn’t hard to envision the scene that played out, and the frustration Nikolai must have felt dealing with such a strong woman who was just as stubborn as he was. Mikkel laughed. His laughter didn’t last long though when he saw the dark scowl on Abby’s face. “My apologies, Abby, I’m not laughing at you, I swear.” Abby shrugged a shoulder in utter defeat. “No, it’s okay. I’d probably laugh at myself too if I were you,” she dejectedly murmured. “Abby, you misunderstand me. I’m laughing because I find great enjoyment in seeing my best friend dealing with the outcome of a mess he himself created.” Abby sniggered. “Know him that well, do you?” “Oh, yes.” Seeing how upset Abby was getting, Mikkel started over. “Abby, I know Nikolai can be very persistent and demanding, intimidating even, and stubborn as all hell, but having known him since we were small boys, I can honestly tell you there is no one you want on your side more than him. I don’t know what rumors you’ve heard, I’m sure none are pleasing, and, to be honest, I’m certain most are true, but regardless of that, he is a man of honor, a man who would lay down his life for those he loves. He is not the cold uncaring General that everyone perceives him to be. He has the best of intentions, you must believe that.” Abby felt like throwing her hands up in the air. Here was another man singing her praises about Nikolai which only made her want to fall in love with him even more and she could not allow herself to do that and yet…she couldn’t seem to stop herself. With every kind and sincerely spoken word Mikkel and Alexi said and every despairing and empathetic story she heard, her heart filled with affection for Nikolai Kotova. Hell, she was even referring to him as Nikolia now, when the hell had at that happened? I am seriously losing my mind! “You know, I came here to spy on a man I’ve never met. They don’t tell me why, but clearly they knew about his plans but kept that little bit of information to themselves. Then, like a naïve fool, I try to help the man I’m supposed to spy on and get knocked out for my stupidity. Then I come here, I’m insulted and thrown into the dungeon by the very man who claims he wants to…I don’t know…keep me! Then after mauling me in the dungeon and acting like I 167 Forever Mine belonged to him, he treats me like shit and tells me he wants nothing to do with me. But he seems to get extremely bothered with the fact that I was whipped by his boss. He brings me up here, takes care of me, then proceeds to tell me that he’s changing sides and that I’m supposed to just believe him. Frankly, Misha, I don’t know what to believe anymore. And the worst part is that I shouldn’t trust you or him, but for some asinine reason I do. Can you explain that?” Mikkel shrugged one large shoulder. “Perhaps your heart and soul are seeing things that you cannot. Maybe they are not hindered with the fear that plagues your mind,” he softly suggested. “Is it that obvious?” Abby looked downright pitiful now and Mikkel had to keep a grin off his face. “Well, I cannot probe you to know for certain…which reminds me, that is a wonderful potion you use, I would love to know what’s in it.” Abby chuckled. “That might be arranged.” Mikkel smiled and winked. “Good, I’ll hold you to that. Now, as I was saying, I cannot know for sure of your fear, but I think being uncertain of something that is stronger, more powerful, and clearly unknown to you is natural. Even I was scared shitless when I first met him.” He leaned in and whispered, “But never, ever tell him that.” Abby softly chuckled. “You have my word.” “My point is, Abby, that he is a good man that has endured many hardships. These things sadly changed him, but when I saw him with you…Goddess, it was like seeing the Koyla I knew before the war and honestly, I miss that man. I would very much like to have that friend back.” Abby watched as Mikkel suddenly turned and headed toward the door. “Now, you must excuse me. While I have enjoyed our time together, I do not want to be seen with you in your…attractive attire by said best friend. So, I will leave you on this. No matter what you’ve heard, and no matter how you think your father and family will react, do not let that sway you. Judge the man for yourself…as the man. Get to know him, Abby, that’s all I’m saying. I am certain once you do, you will come to trust him and love him as dearly as I.” Mikkel bowed then quietly left the room, closing the door as he did and leaving Abby in tears. Trust and love…Goddess above, that was the problem! She was becoming obsessed with the man, she could admit that, and she couldn’t deny that she was beginning to develop feelings for him as well. The things she heard in this room touched her heart, but what did she know about the man himself? Nothing. She had no idea if he would trample all over her with dominance or give her room to breathe. She just didn’t know…but she was beginning to wonder if she should give him a chance. Goddess, the thought terrified her. She was still so afraid because no matter how much of a good man he was, Nikolai Kotova was still an alpha vamp. Actually, after meeting his imposing ‘Darkness,’ she knew he was much more than your average vamp, he was something else entirely; something just as attractive and even more dangerous. 168 Forever Mine She had a lot to think about and a good hot shower in an elegant bathroom was just the reprieve she needed. As she headed toward the bathroom, she remembered that she hadn’t called Shane today. That could be a big problem. If she didn’t contact him soon and let him know that she was okay, he would make his way here. If that happened all hell would break loose and Goddess save them all if he brought Nyle. There was no question. She really could not linger here any longer. She had to push all these mushy feelings she had for the General – that’s good, think of him as the General, that will make it easier – away and concentrate on escaping. ********** Itaparica, Brazil Shane stood on the balcony of his room looking out at the city before him. He took a deep breath and closed his eyes as the aroma of the city filled his nostrils, putting a smile on his face – he loved Brazil. He loved the never-ending sunshine and warmth of the city. He loved the nightlife and the endless carnivals that were always in full swing, but mostly, he loved the women. A plethora of beautiful half dressed – or half naked, depending upon how you wanted to look at it, he smirked – as far as the eye could see. They were free spirited and quick to laugh and they were full of energy, an energy he thrived on. The jubilant sounds of the carnival that had been going on for three days drew his attention to the streets below. A flash of red caught his eye and he zeroed in on that spark of crimson without any thought. With lowered brows and a harsh curse under his breath, his gaze keenly followed the voluptuous form that moved provocatively through the crowd. Goddess, talk about energy, there was none that bespoke it more than her, none that drew him more than her. His scowl turned frightening as it always did when he let himself – even for one single second – think these thoughts that were so…tainted. It was wrong. She was like a sister to him. He watched as she took her first steps, he heard the first words she ever murmured. Shit, he could even remember her toilet training for Gods sake. He should be feeling a warm brotherly affection for her, but what Shane felt when he looked at Bryony was anything but the temperate feelings a sibling should feel. She thought he hated her, he snorted, if she only knew – hell if anyone knew – the thoughts that went through his mind when he looked at her, his days would surely be numbered. She stood below on the street, talking to a street vendor who was trying to sell her a bit if cloth. It glimmered under the street lamps, a beautiful emerald green that Shane could tell even from this distance would be the same color as her eyes. An image instantly came to mind, that of a naked curvy body spread out on satin sheets the same color of the rolling hills of Ireland. Thick flame red hair spread out across his chest, tickling his belly. Full rosy lips wrapped around his 169 Forever Mine cock as delicate feminine hands squeezed his shaft. He hissed from the unbridled image, its vision was so candid, so real. It was one of many nightmares - as he’d been calling them ever since the first one came to him when she turned eighteen that plagued him. He knew he should turn away and stop staring at the woman he wanted with a fierceness he should not be feeling, but he couldn’t. It was always like that for him. Of course it was easier when there were other people about because then there were distractions and he could easily hide his desires, but when there wasn’t, he could barely contain them. He tried to keep as much distance between them as possible but it never worked. He could never stay away for long because no matter how much he hated it, he still needed to read her soul like he needed air to breath. That he had never been able to ignore or push away. It was an essential part of his being, something he absolutely needed to survive. It was the stupidest of things to say, corny almost, but to Shane’s everlasting vexation it was the truth and he fucking resented it with a passion. Hell, everything about Bryony he resented. Abby thought he was afraid of the Little Witch’s power and he wished to the Gods he was because the truth was much worse…he hungered for it. He had this existential need for her and her power. When he was near her, he felt alive and energized, like her energy seeped into his without effort or guidance. It just found him and he found it. It was powerfully strange, erotically stimulating and so damn pivotal to who he was that he actually feared it and the taste of fear did not sit well with him. It was growing into a deep bitterness that with every passing day only grew stronger. The sound of her husky laughter lifted up the balcony and scorched his soul. His hands tighten around the banister. In his head he saw her, naked…on her hands and knees, her ass nestled tightly against him as he pulled out of her sleek sheath and relentlessly slammed back inside as her screams of pleasure filled his ears. He cursed. He had to stop this. He could not keep torturing himself with these unbelievably hot images that made him feel so damn helpless. She was not his. Could never be his. And that was that. Straightening, he glared at Bryony with all the bitterness he felt then turned away and walked back inside, pacing and taking deep calming breaths. After a few more torturous seconds of phantom moans and sinful images, he slowly started to get a grip. He had to think of other things, like why he was here to begin with…Abby and her mission. He would give his sister until tonight to contact him and if she didn’t he was going to Russia. Considering how fucking hot he was right now, that sounded like a damn good idea. There was nothing like a cold-ass country to keep one’s mind out of the gutter. 170 Forever Mine CHAPTER TEN Nikolai walked out of the stables and was just about to head down to the guesthouse to see why Mikkel hadn’t left to search for Boris when Mikkel found him instead. “Did I miss the big event?” Mikkel asked. Gods, how he wished, Nikolai thought, because then he wouldn’t have to worry about it anymore, and he could focus all his attention on Abby. Instead, the unborn foal was being as stubborn as Nikolai’s woman. He grunted. “No, she’s being difficult.” Mikkel chuckled. “Oh, kind of like someone else, I would assume.” Nikolai’s sharp gaze fixed Mikkel with an agitated look. “You’ve met Abaigeal.” “Indeed I did, she is quite a unique woman.” He leaned in and winked at Nikolai. “And the view is…very fine.” Mikkel elbowed him in the side and Nikolia scowled at his teasing. She better have been dressed and not in that damn sheet when his best friend was enjoying the view. “I suppose she was still pissed off?” Mikkel, seeing the opportunity to tease his stoic friend, was unable to resist. “Pissed off?” His eyes bulged in surprise. “On the contrary, she was warm and open; friendly, a beautiful feminine creature who acted in the most proper of ladylike fashion.” Nikolai stopped walking then slowly turned to stare at Mikkel with one black eyebrow raised. “Really? Ladylike, you say?” “Oh, indeed. She was nothing but soft womanly grace. Why, she barely spoke to me at all. Only when I asked a question, did she respond.” Mikkel was ready to crack up with the look of disbelief on his friend’s face. Nikolai found it hard to believe that his roughhouse little warrior would be so contritely proper and ladylike. He stopped walking then spun around, grinning at Mikkel, who was softly chuckling under his breath. “Your games are not amusing, Misha.” “Yes, that’s why you’re smiling. I can tell.” Laughing, Nikolai started to walk toward the palace. “Alexi said you never left to find Boris. Did something happen?” Mikkel snorted, “Boris happened. He was in the guesthouse when I got there.” “And what did my esteemed uncle have to say?” “His message was ‘not to fight it, to let it happen, peace awaited you.’” Nikolai grunted but kept on walking, never once breaking stride. That surprised Mikkel because it wasn’t the reaction he was expecting. 171 Forever Mine He looked over and caught a glimpse of a slight grin on Nikolai’s face. That was also not expected, but then he noticed how different Nikola’s aura was. Before, it had been ravaged and hostile, unbalanced; now he walked with confidence. There seemed to be a peace about him that had not been there before. He seemed…relaxed. Relieved, Mikkel smiled. “So, I guess Boris’ cryptic message once again proves to be true. You have come to terms with the Darkness, I’m glad to hear it, my friend. I got to tell you, you had me shitting my pants, and I hate that feeling.” Nikolai chuckled. “Forgive me, Misha. I do feel better, I am more…” His eyes hardened. “Determined.” Mikkel was laughing now. “Yes, so I’ve heard. You know, you’re scaring the girl. Be careful you don’t push too hard, Koyla. You don’t want her running away from you.” Nikolai’s eyes gleamed predatory. “True, but I do love a chase.” “Don’t we all?” Mikkel heartily laughed. “Boris left Russia?” Nikolai somberly asked. “Yes, he’s on his way to Scotland. He should arrive before Sasha and Katya. It’s all taken care of; there is only one loose end…” “Dalibor and Vladimir,” Nikolai said. “Yes.” “He’s awake and Vladimir has been performing the healing spell. It won’t be long before he’s ready to go. Of course,” Nikolai’s eyes flashed with eagerness, “the only place he’ll be going too is hell and while I’d love to do it myself, I have more pressing matters to attend to.” Mikkel’s grin was leering. “Would those pressing matters be a woman who is currently in your bedroom taking a shower?” “Is she now? Well, that does sound promising, doesn’t it?” Mikkel laughed. “I would say so. Go, my friend, and seduce your S’airsul. I will take care of Dalibor and Vladimir.” The just reached the courtyard when Mikkel’s phone rang. Reaching into his pocket, he pulled it out. “Yes?” He scowled. “What?” A string of curses left Mikkel’s lips. There was only one thing that could draw such quick and sudden anger to the otherwise calm and mellow Mikkel. “No, I’ll come and take care of it.” Turning off his phone, Mikkel pierced Nikolai with a scorching blue gaze. “Liv?” Nikolai asked. Mikkel nodded. “That was Jock. He just saw her driving here. She’s about twenty minutes out.” “I thought you told her to meet us in Scotland instead of coming here?” “I did,” Mikkel growled. “You know how well my darling sister listens to me.” Nikolai laughed. “Where is Runa?” Runa was Liv’s companion and usually the one that kept a leash on Mikkel’s spitfire sister because Liv actually listened to Runa. The problem was that Runa was essentially more difficult to deal with than Liv. She was a Viking 172 Forever Mine and she was a woman; basically, she didn’t take any shit and she made no secret of what she thought of Mikkel’s guardianship of his young sister. Amused, Nikolai asked, “What did you do Misha to draw Runa’s wrath?” Mikkel snorted. “What haven’t I done? It’s the same shit with that woman, Koyla, she is relentless. She blames me for Liv’s wildness. She says I’ve shirked in my duty as her guardian.” Nikolia turned somber as he stopped and faced Mikkel. Laying his hand on his shoulder, he squeezed. “I’m sorry, Misha, it’s my fault. If it weren’t for me…” Mikkel knocked his hand off his shoulder. “Oh, stuff it Nikolai, it is not your fault. You didn’t force me, it was my choice.” “I know, but still…” “No, I will not allow you to take responsibility for this. This is Arnost’s doing, not yours and not mine. Lay the blame where it is due. Besides, Runa is just being…Runa. Overdramatic. There is nothing wrong with Liv. She might be a little spirited, but she’s not a wild hoyden as Runa puts it.” Nikolai nodded in agreement, but he actually agreed with Runa. Liv was a sweet and pleasant woman, but she was also determined, willful, and always looking for adventure. Mikkel just couldn’t see past the sweet façade Liv showed him. In Mikkel’s eyes, she was the same wholesome and pure little sister she had been when she was five. “Now, let me go and take care of this. I won’t be long and when I come back, I’ll take care of our little problems.” Mikkel turned to leave and as he did, he pulled out his cell phone and immediately started yelling in Old Norse. “Runa…” Nikolia chuckled as he watched a very animated Mikkel stomp through the yard, yelling at Runa and heading toward the Hummer he would take on the ten mile drive down to the gatehouse. When he moved the phone away from his ear and said a prayer to Odin for strength, Nikolai only laughed harder – he could practically hear Runa’s angry and just as loud retort. Walking inside the palace all thoughts of his friend disappeared. Nikolai looked up toward the second floor where paradise awaited. Well, paradise with a sharp tongue and a wicked jab that is. He climbed the stairs, taking the steps two at time, licking his lips in anticipation, his body already preparing for a seductive war of wills. ********** Abby stepped out of the shower, grabbed a towel, then briskly started to dry herself off. When she was done she put on the robe that Alexi left for her. She stared at herself in the mirror and what stared back was a woman who looked…happy? Everything she was feeling felt so right but how could it be? She should be worried about how to get back home, yet she wasn’t. She felt confused and adrift in sensations that she wanted to feel but shouldn’t. The only emotion that still made sense was the fear she felt whenever she looked at Nikolai, not for the 173 Forever Mine man, but for the intense feelings he brought out in her. Those were terrifying and she had to hold onto that. She had to remember that wanting him came with a price, a price she was too afraid to pay. Besides their first encounter in the dungeon, he made himself perfectly clear – he expected a lifetime with her. Oh, she could most definitely handle a life time of passion in that man’s arms, but it was everything else that came with it she didn’t want any part of. She threw back her shoulders. She had to stay strong. She had to resist him. She had to…stay away, period. It was as simple as that. Because the moment she looked at him, she got heated, and being in the presence of his demon, as proven just before, was even more irresistible. She had to leave and she would as soon as she got dressed. With her mind settled and her inner strength once more indomitable, Abby grabbed a fresh towel. Bending over, she wrapped the towel around her head and started to dry her hair. That was the view that greeted Nikolai when he walked into the room. Standing in the threshold of the bathroom, Nikolai stopped dead in his tracks. Abby was bent over shaking her hair out, and as she did, that luscious ass wiggled about temptingly. He stood stock still and used the time she gave him, though unknowingly, to caress every inch of that ass with his eyes. Goddess save him, he wanted to squeeze it as he lifted her up against him and entered her. He quietly removed his jacket and let it fall silently to the floor. He took deep calming breaths and as he did, he had a private one on one with the Darkness, who was ready to grab her and claim her. Calm down, we need to move slowly. We can’t bombard her and we can’t bully her. We have to seduce her, make her see how extraordinary we would be together. Make her crave the passion and explosive heat only we can give her. In response, the Darkness reluctantly, yet quickly, grumbled his agreement. Its fast compliance had Nikolai’s eyebrow lifting in surprise. Usually the Darkness was all about taking what it wanted and to hell with anything else. It rarely ever agreed so readily. He could only presume it was because of the woman provokingly bent over in from of them. The Darkness knew as well as Nikolai that Abby had some issues when it came to the extreme level of their intimacy, and neither one of them wanted her running away from them. They had only one goal before reaching the Summit: relieving her of that fear. Well, there was no better time to start then now. As Abby rubbed her hair in the towel, she was trying to figure out a way to escape, which was priority one. Priority two was contacting Shane. She snorted. Maybe if she asked nicely, the General would give her a phone. Yeah, right. Abby gave her hair one last good pat then stood up and flipped her hair back. A startled gasp left her lips as her gaze met a pair of hungry midnight blue eyes in the mirror, watching her with an intensity that immediately stirred her senses. She almost groaned in frustration because the second their eyes made contact, her heart beat faster and her pulse raced. The temperature in the room 174 Forever Mine rose about twenty degrees and she had to fight the urge to fan herself. She wanted to scream at him to leave, but instead her mouth opened and she licked her suddenly parched lips. She was struck dumb as not one single word came out. Her entire neurological system was thrown into chaos by the smoldering stare he was searing her with. Holding nothing back from her expressive brown orbs, Nikolai put every single carnal intention he had into his gaze. He wanted her to see and feel just how potent his attraction for her was. Even if he wanted to hide it, he wouldn’t have been able to. He was physically incapable of doing so. His need for her was too powerful and so ingrained in his mind, body, and soul that there was no way for him to be subtle. A slow seduction was going to be hard. His eyes slowly perused the exquisiteness of her naked body. There was no way in hell he could stop the yearning growl of need from escaping. Goddess, she was beautiful. The open robe gifted him with a tantalizing glimpse of a tan flat stomach and the soft sides of perfect breasts. For one second his vision blurred. She was so perfect for him, appealed to him in every single way, that Nikolai knew he would never want or need another woman. Abby reached for the robe, intending to cover her loveliness from his view but that wasn’t an option for Nikolai. “Don’t.” His voice was deep and low, graveled with passion, and loaded with authority. Abby stilled. Her eyes held his right before he once more looked down her body. She wanted to close the robe, she wanted to shield herself from his hot gaze, but she was riveted by his eyes that were growing darker with covetousness the more he looked and, Goddess help her, she liked it. It made her feel like the most desirable woman in the world; sexy, wanted, and she felt herself slipping down the rabbit hole and into a world filled with nothing but him, her, and their carnal pleasures. “Abby, ti takaya krasivaya.” With every syllable he spoke, Nikolai’s voice deepened and became richer, oozing with erotic invitation as he told her she was beautiful. Abby felt as if she were adrift in a carnal fog of exigency. Her entire body shivered with pulsating vibes of longing. Gods blood, was he trying to kill her with desire? Fighting the spell he so effortlessly cast was almost impossible when all she wanted to do was reach out to him, pull him into her body and absorb all the erotic promises his eyes and voice spoke to her. But somehow she held it back. She stood perfectly still and clenched her hands at her side because giving in would be bad. As Nikolai observed Abby’s inner war with her desires, he took a deep soothing breath to compose his own raging need, but all that did was bring the sweet honey scent of her rising excitement flowing into his nostrils. It was sweet temptation and he told her so. “Sladkoe iskushenie.” 175 Forever Mine Holding her gaze that just flared with heat, Nikolai took slow even steps into the room until he stood behind her. The moment his leather vest touched her back, her breathing increased and her eyelids became heavy. She gazed at him with a disquietude she was still holding on to. With her heart pounding in her chest, Abby felt his blistering heat against her back. Branding her. Silently demanding she give him everything he wanted. What she wanted, but shouldn’t have. Breathlessly, she pleaded with him, “Please…stop.” Slowly he threaded his fingers through her hair. “Shh, don’t be afraid, Abby,” he whispered in her ear. Abby took exception to that comment and somehow she found the gusto to speak with a confidence she just wasn’t feeling. “I’m not afraid of you.” The hard glint in her eyes said she was offended by his statement. Nikolai softly chuckled. “No, you’re not.” He smiled tenderly as his hand continued to stroke her hair. “But you are afraid of what I make you feel.” Abby opened her mouth to protest, but his finger covered her lips. “Abby, what we feel for each other, it’s not wrong; it’s beautiful, and you’re not alone feeling these strong emotions, they are as strong for me.” The urge to grab her was almost irresistible, but he didn’t. “Goddess, woman, you have been with me since that night in Germany. I was dead inside before then. Meeting you, joining our bodies together, brought me back to life, and I have been dying inside without you.” Abby closed her eyes against the emotions sweeping inside that his confession wrought. Tenderness, he was showing her the soft gentle core of the man who lay beneath the warrior. It was his greatest weapon, the one that would bring her down. She didn’t think he was aware of how susceptible she was to it. Everything in the way he spoke, to his touch, said this was not a game of manipulation, this was truth…sincerity. He was speaking what was in his soul. The hum growing with heat and life confirmed it. Told her there was nowhere to run to. That she could no longer hide from the truth, even though she desperately wanted to. “Please, don’t say anything more, I can’t hear this,” she softly pleaded. Nikolai continued to run his hand through her hair. Against her will, Abby leaned into his gentle caress. He kissed the top of her head. “Abby, I am not blind nor am I uncaring when it comes to your feelings. I know the strength of my desire scares you, but I cannot help the way I feel, lyubof, and I can’t stop them.” “Try, please try,” Abby softly sobbed as she closed her eyes and looked down at the floor. “I cannot” Nikolai’s smile became even more affectionate. He gently took her chin in his grasp and raised her head, without words demanding her attention. When she complied, his smile deepened. “Abby, when I look at you, I see a future I never thought I would have. I see the one woman in the world I desire above all others, the woman who has made me feel something other than despair. When I look at you, Abaigeal Mac Branain, I see hope… I feel… love.” 176 Forever Mine Abby blinked away the moisture gathering in her eyes and tried to look away but Nikolai would not let her. He turned her head toward him and placed a kiss on each closed eye lid. “I want you to feel those same things when you look at me. I could never hurt you or betray your trust.” Her lids slowly opened and he held her gaze, softly running his fingers through her hair. “Remember how good it felt in Germany? Remember the pleasure we shared? Don’t you want to feel that way again? Can you honestly tell me that you have not dreamt of me? That you haven’t wondered what it would be like to feel that and so much more, again and again?” Abby once more tried to look away from his heated gaze, but he held her chin in a gentle yet firm hold. “Please, Abby, don’t hide from me, answer me.” It was a command, but it was full of tenderness and affection, an appeal for truth and honesty, a need to know and understand. Abby stared into eyes of the darkest blue. He opened his heart and soul to her in that gaze and all he was asking for in return was her honesty. She couldn’t deny him that. She was scared out of her mind, but she couldn’t stop herself from revealing the truth. “It’s been… hard.” She barely got it out and when she tried to hide her flushed face he wouldn’t let her. “Don’t look away from me.” When Nikolai held her attention once more, his smile was pure love and he rewarded her honesty with another affectionate kiss to the top of her head. “Thank you.” Moving slowly, so not to startle her, he angled her head to the left then deliberately lowered his mouth to hers. Hovering just over her lips, he whispered, “Thank you so much, milaya.” The first touch of his lips on hers was electric and Abby’s hand rose to his hands that held her face. As if he had all the time in the world, Nikolai sensually slid his lips across hers, teasingly, never attempting to enter, not rushing or plundering. It was the most gentlest of strokes, yet it was more devastating than the most aggressive kiss. When he pulled back, Abby followed him, whimpering with the loss of his mouth. Smiling and still holding her gaze, Nikolai knew the moment was at hand; she was warm and relaxed, and he had to move in for the kill before she snapped out of the haze. Turning her head so she looked forward and into the mirror, he grasped the edge of the robe in his hands. His knuckles skimmed the sides of her breasts. Abby sharply inhaled and seized his hands. “No, don’t.” “Yes, Abby.” Nikolai confirmed his intentions with a soft yet authoritative answer, but he did release the robe and instead raised her damp hair up and off her left shoulder. He licked her neck then drew the flesh of her shoulder into his mouth and gently suckled. Abby shuddered as a sharp spike of lust hit her hard. “Oh, Goddess… please… you have to stop.” Nikolai paid no mind to her weak protest. Instead he released her flesh, licked it soothingly then drew it back into his mouth, gradually increasing the pressure of his mouth and suckling harder. Holy shit! She liked that. A deep throaty moan escaped her lips. 177 Forever Mine “Don’t fight it, Abby. Don’t fight what we can be together.” Nikolai bestowed another stimulating open mouth kiss on her shoulder then his hands skimmed down her arms. Reaching her hands, he lifted them up to his lips and kissed each finger, never once breaking eye contact with her in the mirror. “I want to show you there is nothing to fear. I want to give you only pleasure. Show you how good it can be for us. Let me, milaya moya…let me love you.” Abby couldn’t speak. She was drowning in his eyes that were quickly becoming pools of inky blackness. She couldn’t resist him and she no longer wanted to. Slowly Nikolai pulled the robe off her unresisting body. It dropped to the floor and she stood naked in front him. Lifting her arms, he placed them around his neck then he just gazed at her. Her eyes were a glazed chocolate as her body trembled against his. He knew she was trapped by their mutual passion as much as he was, but she was still afraid. Deep vulnerability lay just beneath the surface of desire; seeing it strengthened Nikolai’s determination to make her understand. The determination on Nikolai’s face was frightening. Abby tried to look away but he held her chin firmly in his grasp. His raw possessive regard shook her to the core. It frightened her and it exhilarated her. She wanted to so bad to give in but a part of her was still determined not to. Unable to move her head she did the only thing she could, she closed her yes. Nikolai frowned. No, that would not do at all. “Look at me, Abby. Keep your eyes on mine at all times. Your eyes are my doorway to your pleasure. They tell me without words how to please you.” Abby shook her head, squeezing her eyes closed. This was what she feared, this closeness; it was too much, too soon, and way too intimate. “Don’t fear this connection, Abby. I would never, ever use it against you. I only seek to give you pleasure, to know what you desire, to feel what you’re feeling. To know this…” He hissed with desire; his body involuntarily shook. “… this is what I dreamt of… knowing your deepest and darkest fantasy and fulfilling each and every one of them. This is inside me, Abby. My heart… it beats for you, my soul… screams for yours, and my body… Goddess above, woman, my body aches to make you come. Let me see, lubimaya, let me into your desire.” His gaze turned intense and strong, meaningful. “You have my word as a warrior that I will never, ever seek anything you do not wish to give.” This was it, the moment of truth. She could either keep her eyes plastered closed and somehow find a way to walk away from him, or she could take that scary as shit step and give him a chance to prove she could trust him with her heart, with her soul, and with her body. The memory of all he told her before and the tenderness it evoked came to mind and with it the hurtling reality of spending the rest of her life with a man of her father’s choosing; a man she did not desire, a man who couldn’t even satisfy the violent cravings he could never even possibly create. 178 Forever Mine The bitter truth hit her. That was the life that was before her, one of loneliness and indifference - and as Abby stood there, she realized if that was the life intended for her, if that was all her future consisted of, then she should seize whatever joy she could now. She was still deathly afraid of opening the door to Nikolai Kotova, but she knew in that moment that she must, because a life without ever experiencing it again was too painful to even contemplate. Slowly Abby opened her eyes and looked into his. Her breath hitched at what she saw. The Darkness stared back with eyes as black as night and veins pulsing with energy and life. The body pressed up against her naked back felt harder and stronger. His sexual allure cascaded around her then through her sending a burst of heat that scorched her on the inside. She was on fire. Her pussy ached and throbbed, her breasts were heavy and sore and the longer she looked into his fathomless eyes, the stronger and more intense that pleasure felt. Surrendering to passion, Abby gave into her desires and on a breathy plea of awe, she relented. “Nikolai.” Nikolai wanted to shout to the world as he heard the concession in her voice, that and hearing his given name spilling off her lips for the first time sent a shock of lust spearing through him. “Yes, Abby, I am here for you. Always for you, moya dusha.” His gaze turned voracious, harder, more determined but whereas before it scared her, now it thrilled her. Now she wanted his hunger. She wanted his dominance. She wanted every dirty and dark emotion he could give her, and he saw it all in her eyes. Nikolai smirked. He could read her every thought, knew without any doubt what turned her on. Knowing she had the same dark caprices as him made him ecstatic. He was a smooth and accomplished lover, and he did enjoy going slow and taking his time, but his favorite way to make love was to not make love at all. At the core, he was a sexual beast; he’d always known it and always accepted that part of his nature and he had indulged it. He loved sex, all kinds of sex; he liked group sex and he liked one on one sex. Mostly, he liked it as hot, hard, and fast as he could get it, and he loved a vocal lover that gave as good as she got. To put it simply, he liked to talk dirty and he liked to fuck. Knowing what would get Abby even hotter, he spoke in Russian, the words that so easily came to his lips. “I am going to make you come so hard, lyubof. I’m going to make you so wet and ready for me that when I sink into that tight little pussy, I’ll slide right in and take you hard and fast.” Abby moaned as Nikolai trailed a finger from her neck down between her breasts then down to her belly button. She watched as his gaze followed his finger until he reached the apex of her thighs then became fixated on the small stripe of pubic hair. Mesmerized, her heart in her throat, she watched as his eyes turned pitch black. “Mm, very nice.” 179 Forever Mine Nikolai looked back into her eyes and once more trailed his finger up to her chest. Goddess, it was amazing the connection he felt with her. Every stroke he made on her skin and every sexy little sigh she made in response seemed to feed the Darkness’ power. It was growing, seeping further into him and linking them closer to her. Fuck, he wanted that, he wanted it so bad he could taste it. “You like it when I talk that way,” Nikolai smoothly cajoled. “It gets you hotter when I tell you how I’m going to fuck you.” Abby groaned, affirming his declaration. Her hands dug into his forearms, but she didn’t answer; she didn’t have to, her body spoke to him in volumes. Nikolai’s hand moved down between her legs and he cupped her sex. “You’re so hot, Abby, and so dripping wet.” He growled with lust. “Wet, hot and soft… so soft, just the way I like it.” Flattening his hand, Nikolai skimmed them back up across her stomach and toward her breasts. He cupped each one, feeling their fullness in his hands and groaning with the pleasure. “Perfect.” Seared by his touch, Abby couldn’t take these slow measuring strokes. The pressure was too much, too powerful, she needed more and she wasn’t afraid to ask for it. “Please… touch me.” Goddess, his cock painfully hardened hearing her plea. “Spread your legs, lyubof.” Abby wasted no time in complying. She widened her stance and as Nikolai squeezed both breasts, her hands hungrily tangled in his hair and she pressed back against him, rolling her hips against the hardness nestled behind her. Nikolai greedily watched her artless moves and the way her body was succulently spread out and aching for what he could give her. Releasing one breast, he stroked her belly then caressed his way to the prize that awaited him. One finger stroked her wet engorged lips. Abby groaned loudly and moved her hips against his finger, aching for so much more. “Please, Nikolai… I need…” “I know what you need, lyubof.” His finger circled her wet entrance then, in one swift motion, he plunged inside. “Yes, Niko…” His named ended on a sharp lustful moan when he immediately followed up his first thrust with two more fingers, plunging them inside of her tight, silky heat. Nikolai could have wept from the pleasure, it was so damn good. The snug passage his fingers were sheathed in reminded him that she had been with no other man but him. “You’re so tight, lyubof. So… mine.” Nikolai growled ravenously. He had absolutely no control when it came to this woman. He wanted to keep going slow, but he could not fight his baser instincts to plunder and conquer. On their own accord, his fingers moved faster and began to fuck her harder and with four fingers. Abby’s eyes were closed; her head was thrown back and resting on his shoulder, her hips thrusting forward in sync with the fingers that were gliding effortlessly inside her. She had never known anything as good as this. Well, that 180 Forever Mine wasn’t entirely true. She wanted him fucking her harder and faster with his big thick cock, taking her with the same urgency he had done before. She was trapped by her lust for him, ensnared by the power of those commanding hands, imprisoned within the sound of his deep rich voice, held captive by his enthralling eyes that saw her every sexual desire and gave it to her unconditionally, every dirty little thing that got her wetter and hotter for him. “I want so bad to sink my cock inside you, Abby. I want to bend you over the sink and fuck you mindlessly.” Abby groaned helplessly. “Goddess yes, please, Niko, give it to me, please.” Need oozed out of Abby and pulsated with imperious demand inside of Nikolai. He felt the Darkness answering her call, but he fought it back. She might be exactly where he wanted her to be, but he knew if he took her here and now it would not be enough. He would not only crave more, but he would crave everything – he would not be able to resist the compulsory instinct to sink his fangs in her throat and truly make her his, and that was a step he himself was not ready to take. Everything he was going through, all these feelings and sensations of new life and purpose meant more than what he currently knew. Until he knew exactly what everything meant and could explain it to Abby, he could not do anything that might cause her to resent him. Still, that didn’t mean he couldn’t satisfy her and give her pleasure. He kissed her cheek. “Not yet, milaya moya, there is no need to rush. We did that before. I want to woo you.” Woo me? Abby wasn’t sure she heard him correctly. “What?” Nikolai ignored her question. He had to. Holding the Darkness back required all his concentration. “For now, I’m going to explore every inch of you with my hands and my mouth. Pleasure you until you beg me to stop.” With that said his fingers left her body and Abby cried out with the loss. But no sooner was he gone then she was turned around and thrown up on the counter. Her ass hit the cold marble countertop and she inhaled sharply from the shocking sensation. “Lean back, lyubof. Relax and just feel all I have to give you.” Complying, Abby leaned back, her movement thrust her breasts out and on a moan of hunger Nikolai bent down and took one breast into his mouth as his other hand played with the hardened nipple of the other. He feasted on her breasts for what seemed like hours to Abby. She was wiggling with need, restless for more, tugging on his hair in silent demand to give her everything. Nikolai answered with a feverish growl. Releasing her breasts Nikolai got down on his knees. He pushed her thighs apart and greedily gazed at the center of her womanhood. “Beautiful pussy. I bet it tastes like sunshine.” Abby’s eyes bulged as she watched his tongue slowly come out. When he licked her pussy from the swollen nub down to the wet weeping entrance of her 181 Forever Mine body, she shuddered in lust and surprise. “Holy shit!” She had never, ever experienced anything like it in the world. It was marvelous, fantastic, it was the most glorious sensation she ever felt. “Goddess above, Niko!” Nikolai stopped what he was doing and grinned up at her. “You like that?” Now that she knew how his mystical eyes worked, Abby found his question annoying. She glowered then, without any inhibition, grabbed his head. “You know I do. Don’t stop, damn it!” “Demanding wench.” Nikolai chuckled then resumed his reverence of her swollen pussy, alternating between nibbles and long licks to strong sucking and long hard strokes of his tongue. He took her tight little nub in between his teeth then gently bit down just as he thrust two fingers inside her. Her body tightened, her legs automatically rose and wrapped around his head, squeezing. She was going to come and he was going to feast on her pleasure. Nikolai could feel the excitement growing inside of him, he wanted so much to taste her orgasm, wanted so badly to hear her scream his name that he increased his efforts. He spread her pussy then plunged his tongue inside her tight sheath and fucked her… faster and harder. Abby gripped the back of his head then pushed him further against her. “Niko, so… good, don’t stop, please… don’t stop!” Abby was falling to pieces. She was on the precipice of a mind blowing orgasm that she desperately wanted to reach. She was almost there, teetering on the brink of magnificence, oblivious to anything but the amazing man between her legs and his talented hot mouth that coveted her. With a wicked smile of anticipation, she thrust against his face, calling his name, begging for more. Then, when she was just about to achieve everything he promised he was going to give her… he was gone. Nikolai savagely swore, hearing the urgent knock on the outside bedroom door. He gave Abby one last long lick and thrust of his fingers then pulled out. “Nikolai?” Abby bewilderedly asked. Nikolai stood up turned to the door and shouted, completely missing the shocked and growing anger on Abby’s face. “What?” Alexi’s small voice came through the door. “Milord, Stefan is here and requests a moment of your time.” Nikolai ran a hand through his hair as one expletive after another left his lips. Fuck! That prick always had the worst timing. He turned around to look at Abby. She was still sprawled out on the counter top, legs spread, juices flowing and glistening; his mouth watered. She looked at him, her gaze pleading him to come back, her breasts rising rapidly with every ragged breath she took. Goddess, he didn’t want to leave her, but he had too. “Abby…” Abby read the regret in his eyes and her own darkened with rage and resentment. “You cannot be serious.” He opened his mouth to respond but she cut 182 Forever Mine him off. “Do not even think about leaving, Nikolai.” She was pissed off; she had finally accepted the inevitable and he was going to leave her, like this! Nikolai smiled sheepishly and answered, switching to English, “I’m sorry, Lyubof, but I must. I’ll be right back, I swear.” Abby jumped off the counter, grabbed the robe off the floor and threw it on, and with it, Nikolai saw the wall he just broke through being quickly reconstructed. The emptiness that immediately entered Abby the moment he stopped was inconceivable. She felt incomplete without his attention and affection, and that only served to remind her of how dangerous this man was to her wellbeing. “Don’t bother coming back. Forget it! Just forget everything. Go and take care of all your little secrets, I don’t give a shit!” she scathingly shouted. Nikolai felt her anger to the bottom of his soul. The Darkness was still out, so with his eyes on hers, he knew the duplicity she felt, the distrust that seeped right back in. He tried to make her understand. “Abby, lyubof, don’t be angry. I don’t want to leave you, but I must go and talk to Stefan.” He reached out toward her shoulder, but she shrugged him off and glared with vehemence. Abby was absolutely enraged. She had taken the chance, she had opened herself to him, she trusted him, and as quick as a knock on a door, he was going to leave her for his own purpose. That was the truth of being involved with an alpha male – it was all about them. “Nikolai,” Abby sneered. “I give you permission to look and see what I’m really feeling in this moment, and if you need any clarification, here it is for you in Russian. Don’t call me lyubof! I am not your love! And don’t bother coming back because I won’t be here!” As soon as the words left her mouth, Abby found herself in his arms and plastered against his body. The Darkness was snarling, angry. “You are not going anywhere until we get things straightened out between us.” “There’s nothing to get straightened out, I’m leaving, or did you forget that my father’s on your father’s kill list!” Nikolai’s eyes were black with fury. “No, I did not forget, but we have at least two days until they reach Scotland and we are going to spend them together. You will come to understand that you belong to me! That we belong together!” He violently slapped his hand against his chest indicating the Darkness that was breathing with life. “This… this tells me it’s so. This Darkness that is clawing at my soul just to touch you and taste you, this tells me that you are our S’airsul, Abaigeal Mac Branain, and you will come to recognize that!” Abby’s eyes widened then immediately darkened with her own outrage – bloody alpha vamps! Violently she pushed against his chest, effectively getting him to release her and pushing him back two steps. She followed him, fiercely jabbing her finger against him. “You are out of your ever loving mind if you think I would ever want to spend the rest of my life with a controlling domineering lummox like you! I can’t 183 Forever Mine trust you! And this… leaving… proves it! You don’t care about me! This is just some stupid fucking plan of yours to get me on your side. For what, Nikolai? Huh? Do you think if I fall in love with you, that my father would accept you back under the fold with loving arms? Is that what you think?” She was on the verge of tears, but she held them at bay. She would not cry. She would only show him her defiance. Nikolai’s heart lurched with her words. Looking into her eyes, he saw how true they were; she really thought he didn’t care. He raised his hands in a sign of truce and calmed the Darkness down, keeping his voice composed and less aggressive. “Abby, trust me to take care of everything. I will not let anything happen to your family. I am not showering you with my attention to get on your father’s good side. I need you, Abby… literally. My Darkness needs you, and our need is not contingent on your father’s approval.” The sharp rap on the door had Nikolai cursing once again. “I’ll be right there, damn it!” He turned back to look at Abby, beseeching her with his eyes for understanding; seeking to gain the one thing he wanted most… her trust. “There is no game here, Abby. I swear to you. You must trust me.” Abby felt the hum inside her pulsating with unwavering earnestness. She wanted desperately to do just that, but she was hurt and angry, and a part of her was ashamed with what she let happen. It infuriated her how effortlessly it was for him to drag her into the sensual web he created. It was so easy for him. Everything made sense to him and he dug his feet into the sand with getting what he wanted. Well, it wasn’t that easy for her, and damn it, she resented his simplicity with the entire situation. She was suffering in uncertainties and he didn’t seem to understand that or care. She pushed away from him and turned around. “Go away.” Growling from her stubbornness, Nikolai leaned down and grabbed his jacket. “Stay here, and when I come back, we’re going to finish this.” Turning back around to face him, Abby harshly chortled, “No, we’re not. This…” She waved her hand between them. “Is finished already.” She turned away and gave him her back once again, but she still saw the reflection of the Darkness in the mirror as it growled menacingly, threw its hands up in the air in frustration, stalked out into the bedroom, opened the door and then slammed it shut. Outside in the hallway, Nikolai took out the table and lamp by the side of his bedroom door with one long swipe of his arm. “Fuck!” He stalked down the hallway, Alexi quietly following behind him. “Where the fuck is that ill-timing prick?” Nikolai growled. Alexi swallowed. “Um, at the back door, milord. I’m sorry for…” Nikolai held up his hand. “It is not your fault, Alexi, you did the right thing.” Agitated to the core of his being, Nikolai stormed down the stairs with Alexi behind him, completely forgetting to cast the spell that locked his bedroom door. 184 Forever Mine CHAPTER ELEVEN Hidden in the shadowy alcove down the hall, a maliciously smirking Dalibor watched Nikolai exhibit the most unfettered and violent display of emotion he had ever seen from the man before. Dalibor could barely contain his joy having witnessing something he was pretty certain no one had ever seen. He didn’t think the bastard had any feelings left after all the shit Arnost and Konstantin had put him through, but there was no denying what Dalibor just saw or what caused it. He was thankful Vladimir had finished the spell when he did, otherwise he would have missed the entire show. Dalibor grinned, of course he was also exceedingly thankful that Nikolai for forgot to lock his door. “It seems the General has been playing with the Count’s toy, Vladimir,” Dalibor happily stated with an evil glint in his eye. “I’m sure milord would wish for me to rectify that. Come, we have a prisoner to collect.” Dalibor headed toward Nikolai’s room with Vladimir close on his heels. Abby was just walking out of the bathroom and in the process of buttoning the blouse Alexi left for her when she heard the creaking of the door being opened. Without looking up, she irately said, “I’m not talking to you anymore, Nikolai, so you might as well just leave.” “From what I heard, Cherie, there wasn’t much talking going on to begin with.” Abby’s head snapped up to see Dalibor standing in the doorway. “What the hell are you doing here?” She scathingly asked. “Shouldn’t I be asking you that question?” Chuckling, Dalibor stepped further into the room. He was followed by a snarling Vladimir. “After all,” he continued. “I don’t recall the Count instructing Nikolai to bed you. Unless, of course, he didn’t and Nikolai, being the sex fiend he is, cajoled you. And of course, you being the whore you are… agreed,” he sneered. Abby’s eyes crinkled with distaste. “You know, you give the entire human race a bad name.” She crossed her arms over her chest and stared back defiantly. “If I were you, I would turn and walk right back out because I don’t think the General would like the idea of you being in his room.” Dalibor only laughed harder. “Like I care what that bastard wants, his time is over.” He stepped closer, callously staring into Abby’s face. “By sticking his cock in places it doesn’t belong, he signed his death warrant.” His eyes hardened and he stood straight, motioning to Vladimir. “Come, my sweet whore, it is time for us to leave. I have a lovely room all set and ready for you at the Count’s mountain home.” Abby took another step backwards then buckled down as Dalibor stepped out of the way and Vladimir approached her with arms outstretched. Just as he drew near, Abby fell to the floor and swept the goon’s feet out from under him. 185 Forever Mine Vladimir fell to the floor with a thud. Abby jumped up and, with both feet, landed hard on his chest, twisting her hips as she did. It was a hard hit, something that would have knocked out anyone, anyone that is except a magically enhanced vampire that was built like a Mack truck. Vladimir snarled then grabbed Abby’s legs. He sat up, twisted his upper body and threw her against the wall where she slammed cheek first into the corner of the fireplace’s mantel. Fuck, that hurt! Eyes watering from the pain, Abby turned around and tried to get her bearings back, but Vladimir was on her. His hands wrapped around her neck and then with ease, he dragged her up the wall and started to squeeze. Abby seized Vladimir’s forearms then dug her nails into his pasty skin trying to get him to release her. He didn’t even flinch. She kicked out with her legs, but Vladimir sidestepped her and squeezed harder. Abby started gasping for breath; her vision was becoming blurry and her head felt like it was floating on a cloud as she stared into Vladimir’s glowing yellow eyes. Shit, she really did not want this ugly bastard’s face to be the last thing she ever saw but her vision was turning black. Her legs slowed until they weren’t moving anymore and she heard Dalibor’s happy yet bored voice in the far off distance. “Don’t kill her, Vladimir, just knock her out. Everyone else is getting a piece of that ass, I think I would like to enjoy it as well.” Dalibor’s lecherous laugh was cut off when the bedroom door was flung open then slammed against the wall. Surprised by the violently loud noise, Vladimir dropped Abby and swung around to face the threat. Abby fell to the floor on her knees, coughing as oxygen once again entered her starving lungs. Through watery eyes, she looked up and saw the fiveinch oak door shattered in two and the perpetrator standing in the doorway, shaking with rage. The temperature in the room dropped. She could literally see the ragged breath as it left the snarling and fangs-bared mouth of Nikolai. Abby blinked again, shook her head then reversed that thought. It wasn’t Nikolai; it was the infamous Darkness. “Nikolai, so good of you to come back.” Dalibor casually said. Abby swung an incredulous gaze at Arnost’s henchman. Did he not see what she saw? Apparently not as he continued to address the Darkness with a nonchalance that was just an example of how stupid the man actually was. “I was hoping you would return soon. Now we can get everything out into the open.” Abby’s gaze swung back to the Darkness who stood silent. That black stare was riveted, not on Dalibor, but on her. She sucked in a breath at what she saw and what she felt inside. Unadulterated fury filled the hum so hard and so potent that she physically shook right along with it. When the Darkness settled its gaze on Vladimir, the snarls grew louder and more belligerent. Smoky breath came out of its mouth as it roared with righteous wrath. 186 Forever Mine Dalibor was completely unaware of the fact that the man was no longer in control. He was certain Vladimir could handle Nikolai so the idea of running never once entered his mind. He saw victory. “You are not as smart as you think, Nikolai,” he snickered. “Maybe if you’d kept your dick in your pants, your ruse would have continued.” The Darkness growled his displeasure, but Dalibor heedlessly ignored the warning sign and leeringly looked at Abby. “But I suppose the tasty little cunt is too much temptation to pass up, eh? Can’t say I blame you, I intend to have a go at her myself when we reach the mountain chalet.” The Darkness heard enough. It took a step further into the room but Mikkel came barreling in from behind him and slammed right into his back. “Nikolai, I’m sor…” The Darkness swung around and fixed Mikkel with a black stare of death. Instinctively Mikkel’s body tightened. Then he wondered what happened to draw the Darkness forth and in such a state. Peering over Nikolai’s shoulder, Mikkel had his answer. All the ingredients were present to complete the perfect recipe for death: one cocky imbecile named Dalibor, one empty-headed snarling Vladimir, and the final ingredient, the one that brought the whole recipe together…one bloody S’airsul on the floor with big red hand marks around her neck. Okay, then… Mikkel relaxed then calmly smiled as he took a step to the side, leaving plenty of room between him and the inevitable destruction that was about to take place. “I’ll, uh, just wait over here then.” The Darkness grunted its approval just as Abby slowly stood up. Her movement drew its gaze back to her where it took note of the blood trickling from the corner of her mouth and from a cut on the left side of her cheek. On her neck were black and blue marks that were already starting to fade but were still visible. She healed fast, the Darkness noted that, but… it didn’t care. The temperature once again bottomed out. The Darkness held Dalibor in place with vengeful orbs. Its nostrils pugnaciously flared as cold smoke billowed out from its ragged pants. It furiously shook its head, sending black hair flaring madly about. It exhaled a breaking breath, threw its shoulders back, then calculatingly shuddered its body with such force that the sound of cracking bones was unnervingly heard in the stillness of the room. With its arms at its side, it shook them out then extended each finger, cracking its knuckles as they slowly stretched out and produced sharp black claws that disconcertingly slide from the tips of its fingers. Breathing rapidly, claws fully extended and moving with deliberate wiggling, the Darkness stood still… deadly… waiting. Mikkel witnessed this event so many times since he’d met Nikolai that he did not entirely wear a face of shock as Abby did, but then again, even knowing of the change and what took place could not have prepared him for this. This was different. This was something Mikkel had never witnessed before – the Darkness’ total control. It was downright fearsome. Any sane man 187 Forever Mine would have slit their own throat because it would be a lot less painful than the agony this demon was about to inflict – at least if it chose to play. But regardless of how it decided to it dish out… death was in the air, Mikkel knew it, and as he looked over at Abby and saw the amazement and the recognition on her face, he knew she saw it too. It was only the other two idiots in the room that didn’t seem to realize that. Boris’ words from before, ‘One must always reflect on the ways of the stupid,’ crossed Mikkel’s mind. He softly chuckled, how true that was. Hearing the echo of amusement in a situation that clearly did not call for it had Abby looking over at the source with raised eyebrows and disbelief. Mikkel winked at her then leisurely shrugged one large shoulder and calmly settled against the wall with his legs crossed. Abby scowled. Were all the people in this household crazy? Was she the only one who saw danger standing there, snarling like a rabid beast? Was she the only one who cared – the Goddess knew why! – that Nikolai was about to do something that might come back and bite him in the ass? She opened her mouth to say something, anything that would calm the beast down and defuse the situation, but Mikkel raised his finger to his lips and shushed her. Abby’s eyes widened with disbelief. She was just about to yell at him but the stupid idiot standing boldly in the face of his own death opened his mouth and sealed his fate. “I’ve been on to your little plans for months now, Nikolai.” Dalibor said. Like a man with all the confidence in the world, he walked up to the Darkness with sure steady strides. “Now that I’ve found you fucking the Count’s toy, he’ll have no…” The Darkness was in front of Dalibor in one long stride. It grabbed Dalibor’s head and in one fluid motion, snapped his neck and threw the lifeless body to the far corner of the room. Then, without missing a beat, it took two strides toward Vladimir. With fangs bared and drool dripping off those sharp teeth, the Darkness roared a bloodthirsty bellow then punched a fist straight through Vladimir’s chest and right out the other end. Startled by the quick and ferocious blow, Abby jerked back as Vladimir’s blood splattered on her face. Her eye lids closed for one swift second and when they reopened, it was to see Vladimir’s heart held in a vise grip that was Nikolai’s hand, right in front of her face. Goddess above, it had decimated two men in less than five seconds. She had never before seen anyone or, anything for that matter, move so quickly and with such primordial power and crisp cold-blooded finality that she felt somewhat discombobulated. Dazed by the speed and strength of the Darkness, Abby’s gaze slowly rose and met fathomless primeval orbs. Holding Vladimir’s heart in its hands as if it were a gift to her, the Darkness stared back with an abundance of masculine pride. Then, on a satisfied growl, almost as if it was happy she had seen its ‘gift,’ it yanked its hand out of Vladimir’s chest and the body fell like dead weight. 188 Forever Mine Smiling a bit evilly around a mouthful of fangs, the Darkness dropped Vladimir’s heart to the floor, raised its leg and landed it with a gratifying stomp right on top of the organ. Before Abby could catch a breath, clawed hands grabbed her upper arms and she found herself held in the unrelenting hands of the Darkness, and she was literally at a loss for words. She was staring into the eyes of oblivion, being held by a creature more powerful than anything she had ever seen, and she felt… safer than she ever had before. Mikkel, on the other hand, was worried. He knew the strength of the Darkness, but that strength had always been leashed by the man, it wasn’t now. Unfamiliar with the Darkness in its current state, Mikkel wasn’t about to take any chances with Abby’s safety. Mikkel took a cautious step toward them. In an attempt to reach the man that lay behind the demon, he spoke with a serene voice and in the Darkness’ language. “Koyla.” Still holding Abby, the Darkness angled its head and answered Mikkel in kind. Held in the grips of a stupor, Abby recognized it as the same language the Darkness had spoken earlier. Learning a new language had always come freakishly fast for Abby. So she listened intently to each guttural syllable as the Darkness and Mikkel rapidly conversed back and forth trying to pick up their conversation. She detected notes of both Old Norse and Russian, but it was somewhat different, like there were fewer letters in the alphabet, and every ‘R’ was rolled, coming smoothly off the tongue. It was quite beautiful actually and she knew if she had a couple hours of hearing it continually, she would be fluent. The conversation stopped and the Darkness suddenly turned back to her. Abby was held in the grips of its penetrating gaze as it slowly pulled her up against the wall. Then with a slow deliberation that was a bit discomforting, it searched every inch of her body with a sharp clawed hand, looking for any other wounds. His hand moved with a rough swiftness that spoke of its concern yet gentle enough so as not to hurt her with its sharp deadly claws. When it was done, it leaned in and nuzzled her neck, breathing in her scent, almost as if it were assuring itself she was okay. Abby stayed still, allowing it to do so but when she felt its mouth open, when she felt its wet tongue touch the pulse rapidly beating on her neck, she stiffened. The scent of Abby’s potent blood that was trickling down her neck from her check entered the Darkness’ nostrils. It shuddered then slowly started to lap at the enthralling blood with its long tongue. Drawing the rich liquid into its mouth, it sucked on its tongue, savoring the sweetest of nectars. Yes, this was what it had been waiting for. This was what it needed. Crazed for more, the Darkness lapped hungrily. The hands that held instantaneously constricted. It growled ravenously. The hum inside Abby felt like it was growing larger and sharper, more physical. She gasped as a flash of lust and hunger drove inside of her, piercing her 189 Forever Mine soul like little knife pricks. It felt as if her soul was expanding, making room for him, filling with emotions that were not hers but his. Goddess above, what the hell was happening? With eyes wide open and full of unabashed fear, Abby began to earnestly struggle. “General!” Her voice cracked in growing hysteria, but the man and the demon were unaffected as the Darkness continued sniffing her neck, nuzzling against her, and then once more stroking her flesh with pulling licks of its tongue, completely oblivious to her plea. Then things really got scary when it started to hum and Nikolai’s body began to wildly shake. Not feeling at all safe now, Abby turned pleading eyes to Mikkel who had already taken a step closer to intervene. “Misha?” As Mikkel watched his friend with wary eyes, he could swear to Odin that with every fierce shudder Nikolai’s body took, that same body grew, getting taller, growing broader, just… expanding in size. A curse spilled from his lips. He was going to have to step in and he knew the Darkness was not going to appreciate that. He also knew the change taking place in Nikolai would require a primal force just as strong and powerful as the Darkness to stop him. Mikkel could only pray that it would be enough. With fearful pleading eyes on Mikkel, Abby watched as he shifted and his demon came to the forefront. She waited with baited breath for him to attack, but instead he did something that utterly stupefied her. His eyes closed, his hands fisted at his side and he drew long, hard breaths. When his eyes opened once again, Abby’s widened in disbelief. Eyes that were normally a beautiful light blue were now blazing red. She stared in sheer astonishment as Mikkel seemed to grow, just like Nikolai had, becoming a bit taller and broader. Not as much as Nikolai, but enough to leave her mouth hanging open in shock. At full speed, the new and improved Mikkel ran at Nikolai’s back as a bloodcurdling roar spilled from his lips. The Darkness whipped out his hand and connected with Mikkel’s chest and, with ferocious ease, brought all six feet plus brawn to a stammering halt. Without even taking a breath, the Darkness back slapped him clear across the room. “Misha!” Abby shrieked. Mikkel flew in the air like a speck of dust and slammed straight through the bathroom wall. He landed on the marble tiles in the bathroom. The sharp sound of marble cracking under his heavy muscled weight reverberated off the walls. Blood red eyes drilled onto obsidian orbs. The Berserker took offense to the treatment he just received without so much as a by your leave. Mikkel got to his feet and roared indignantly at the Darkness. The Darkness, unflustered by the Berserker’s demonstration, simply roared its displeasure from the attempted interruption then turned its attention back to Abby’s neck. Picking up where it left off, it licked her skin and hummed, its body shuddering more ferociously with every stroke. 190 Forever Mine From the corner of her eyes Abby saw Mikkel just standing there, almost passively, as if the roars he and the Darkness exchanged had been a conversation, or rather a warning, from the Darkness to stay the fuck out of it. Abby had no idea what the hell was going on between them, but full panic mood set in when she realized she could not count on Mikkel to save her. Stuck to the wall like glue, Abby didn’t have much of a choice, so using the only thing she could move she bent both knees up and drove them between her and Nikolai. Then she kicked out with all her strength and landed her feet on his stomach. He moved an inch, if that, and the Darkness didn’t even stop what it had been doing. It just steadily and contently licked her neck and purred louder. Attempt number two had Abby wedging her hands between them just enough so she could lay them flat on his chest. She was just about to push against him when she felt the flesh under her palms rippling, growing up and out even more. Stunned, she saw her hands move back toward her and then up as his chest expanded out and his body grew even taller. Goddess above, she was seriously freaking out now. She didn’t know what to do, but she knew she’d had enough. With eyes pinched shut and her fingers frantically digging into his chest, Abby screamed with true terror in her heart. “Nikolai, please stop!” Amazingly… he did. The Darkness pulled away from Abby’s neck and pierced her with heavy lids. Void of his mouth on her neck, Abby opened her eyes to see the Darkness gazing at her in eager compliance. Her own blood was smeared on his face. She watched, both horrified and a bit aroused, as he licked his bloody lips, his bigger than normal body shivering as he swallowed. He purred again, it was languid, content… at peace, and that was when Abby understood. It was her blood that had brought on the quick and stunning transformation. Why? What the hell was wrong with her? And just what the hell was it that held her in its relentless grasp, looking at her with a mix of excitement, smugness, and… conflict? Abby peered deeper into the Darkness’ eyes that now appeared agitated as they shifted between black and blue. Now, somewhat familiar with this man and with each discerning vibration the hum made, she instinctively knew the man was battling the demon for control, resisting the Darkness’ need to sink its fangs into her throat – to take her – to take what it perceived as its own. Abby was perplexed and amazed with what she was seeing. She had known from that night in Germany just how un-soulless this man was and as Nikolai struggled to regain control, she saw the evidence of that again. All vampires were soulless, that was just the way it was. Yet, here was a man that was not. His soul was open to her. He was willingly showing her everything he was, and she was held spellbound; trapped by the vulnerability she never in her life thought she would see in a man of Nikolai’s caliber. “Abby, for the love of the Goddess, come to me… move slowly and don’t make any sudden moves.” Mikkel softly and calmed said. 191 Forever Mine The Darkness whipped his head toward Mikkel and bared its fangs, roaring with growing irritation from his interference. Mikkel stood to Abby’s right, just outside the hole he made through the wall. He appeared normal again as he held his hand out to her, his ice blue eyes imploring her to heed him. Oddly enough, Abby did not feel the urgency she had moments ago. She did not feel the need to flee. Instead, she felt drawn to the demon and the man before her. “No, it’s okay, Misha.” She turned back to the Darkness and softly spoke. “Look at me, Nikolai.” The Darkness remained fixated on Mikkel, snarling unhappily. Abby spoke again, this time with more force in her voice. “Nikolai, look at me!” Velvet eyes swung back and obediently gazed at her. From the corner of her eye, Abby saw Mikkel take a step closer, ready to attack once again. Keeping her eyes on the Darkness, she softly reassured Mikkel. “Misha, it’s okay, just… stay where you are, and… don’t say anything else.” Seeing how the Darkness responded to Abby, Mikkel nodded his head in agreement and stayed still. Abby intuitively knew she had the means to help the man come back. She also knew it would be best not to mention anything about biting and blood. Her fingers lightly scratched his chest and her voice when she spoke was soft and tender. “Niko,” she gently implored him. “Stop, everything is okay. I’m okay, they didn’t hurt me.” He snarled and swung his gaze back to the dead bodies that littered the room. Abby reached out and touched his cheek, bringing his gaze back to hers. “Shh, they’re dead, you killed them. They can’t hurt me anymore.” Time seemed to stand still as Abby petted Nikolai’s face and the Darkness started to calm down. Slowly, it receded into the background. She could feel the powerful chest under her hands and see with her own eyes as his body once more altered its shape and size, decreasing back to his normal height and breadth. In mere seconds, Abby found herself gazing into a pair of cerulean eyes that were ragged and tortured. As the demon receded, Nikolai experienced the sensation of floating back into his body; it was the same as earlier in the great hall, yet this time much more intense, and the worst part was he had no idea what had happened. When he looked down and saw Abby’s bloody face, he thought the worst. “Oh my God, Abby, are you alright, did it… did it hurt you?” He grabbed her and drew her fiercely into his embrace for a bone crushing hug. Abby smiled against his chest and wrapped her arms around him. She didn’t even think twice about returning his hug, she just did. “I’m fine.” She pulled back then looked at Vladimir and Dalibor. “Better than those two at least.” A confused Nikolai turned and looked at the dead bodies in his bedroom. Then he looked over and saw Mikkel standing next to a gaping hole in bathroom wall. He remembered everything. 192 Forever Mine "Misha, Goddess, I'm sorry... are you alright?" Laughing and grinning, patting the dust off his arms, Mikkel answered. “It’s been a while since our demons played and yours put me through a wall. I’d forgotten just how fun it can be.” Then he turned serious and his voice sounded gravelly. “You scared the piss out of me, my friend. For a moment, I thought you would not return.” Abby looked up into Nikolai’s handsome face, their gazes locked and he stood stone still. She had seen the power that was inside him, witnessed the Darkness take control, and now she would run from him. Abby stepped back and Nikolai’s arms dropped to his side. He frowned. “So, that’s quite a handy little talent you have there.” Abby said. Mikkel snorted. “That’s one way of putting it.” Abby’s gaze accusingly swung to his. “That includes you too.” Mikkel’s mouth dropped open dumbly. Feeling at a loss for words, he quickly snapped it shut, then blushed and looked away. Nikolai sniggered at his friend’s discomfort. If there was one thing that truly made them brothers, it was their primitive, uncontrollable demons and the difficulty of dealing with the aftereffects with people who did not understand it. “And why is that exactly?” Abby’s sharp question effectively stopped Nikolai’s amusement. He gazed back innocently. “What?” Abby crossed her arms over her chest and glared. “What? What the hell was that, Nikolai?” Realizing she just screeched like a mad woman, Abby stopped herself, took a deep breath and started again, this time more rationally. “What makes you and him,” she pointed to Mikkel who was suddenly more interested in the picture on the wall then the conversation, “different than every other vamp I know?” Swinging her gaze back and forth between them, Abby waited patiently for one of them to speak up. Instead of answers she saw both of them shutting the door and slamming it shut. Nikolai took a step back, his back straightened and he glowered. “You don’t need to know that right now.” Abby’s eyes widened. “Oh really? Is that just your opinion or an actual statement of fact? Because from where I’m standing, that’s something I need to know.” “And you will, but not now.” Abby closed her eyes in attempt to calm down. Fine, they didn’t want to talk, that was okay by her, because what did she care anyway? She was leaving and she would never need to be near either one of them again. “You know what, whatever, I don’t give a shit because it has nothing to do with me and I’m leaving.” Nikolai glowered blackly as her hand shot out, palm up. “I need a phone,” she demanded. Her foot was tapping impatiently and her fingers wiggled graspingly. “I know you have one, so hand it over.” His glower turned fiercer as he demanded back, “What the hell for?” “So I can call Shane.” 193 Forever Mine Seeing that Nikolai was about to argue with her, Abby sighed and softened her voice. It was her reasoning voice, the same one she used on her father when she wanted to get something. “Look, if he doesn’t hear from me, he’s going to hop on a plane and come here, which means he’ll be in Moscow in fifteen hours. Now, knowing my brother, if he’s really concerned, he’ll call Nyle and since Nyle’s home in California, he’ll be here in twelve hours. I don’t want that to happen and I really don’t think you want that to happen either. Trust me when I say it’s in everyone’s best interest if I call him and let him know I’m okay.” Mikkel took a step closer. “Shane, he’s one of the Bruisers, right?” Abby quickly nodded. It was a little too quick to Nikolai. She seemed almost… embarrassed. He’d heard plenty of tales of the Mac Branain brothers known as the Bruisers. They were brawlers and they’d been known to decimate entire towns in defense of their precious baby sister, but why would she find that embarrassing? “Is it true they took on a den of Skalear demons?” Mikkel excitedly asked. Abby coyly looked away. “You heard that one right, Koyla? They butchered an entire den of thirty all by themselves. That’s quite impressive. What was the most we took out at once?” Nikolai still had his eyes on Abby, who seemed content to stare at her bare feet. “Forty.” “That’s right, it was in Norway.” Mikkel turned back to Abby, “Thirty adult Skelear demons is a big order to fill for young vamps such as your brothers, they must have been really charged. What incited it? The rumor was that it was because of you, is that true?” Abby rolled her eyes then reluctantly answered. “Yes, it’s true.” “What did the Skalears do that deserved a visit from the Bruisers?” Mikkel asked again, genuinely interested in knowing. Abby, now red-faced, quietly answered, “My cousin and I were hanging out at Nefarious, the local club when… one of them kissed me and... copped a cheap feel.” After a few silent seconds, Mikkel burst out laughing. Nikolai on the other hand was frowning. “Look, can we stop with the bedtime stories and get back to business. I need to call Shane.” Abby irately said. Nikolai was thinking that he’d like to meet Shane so he could shake his hand, but he sensed Abby’s urgency and he agreed with her. Bringing anymore Mac Branain's into the mix would only make things worse, but he wasn’t sure if letting her call was a wise decision either. Still, did he have a choice? Sighing, Nikolai reached into his vest pulled out his cell phone and held it out. With a smile on her face Abby went to grab it but he pulled his hand back at the last second. “You will tell him only that your reconnaissance is complete and you are on your way back to him, and nothing else. Do I make myself clear?” Scowling, Abby nodded. “You have my word.” 194 Forever Mine Nikolai looked into her eyes and then handed her the phone. Abby took it and started to dial Shane’s cell. It rang one time. “Iggy? Where the fuck are you? You were supposed to call me last night!” Shane bellowed across the phone. Abby had to pull the phone back from her ear to avoid going deaf. “Shane, relax. I’m okay. I’m just finishing up tonight. I’ll be in Brazil tomorrow.” Nikolai briskly nodded his head and gave a short grunt of approval with her words. Shane breathed out, long and hard. “Are you sure you’re alright?” “Yes, don’t worry, okay? I’ll be there tomorrow.” “Good. Everyone will be here tomorrow night, and when I say everyone, I specifically mean Liam. So make sure you get your ass back here before he does.” Abby nodded. “Understood, not a problem.” She would have said more, but Nikolai had his hand outstretched telling her that her time was up. “I have to go, don’t worry, I’ll see you tomorrow.” “Be careful.” “I will.” Abby clicked the phone off and handed it back to Nikolai. “Thank you.” He had the sexiest look on his face even though it was one of haughty confusion. His expression said he either didn’t like what he heard, or that it was just plain stupid. “What?” “Why does he call you Iggy?” Abby couldn’t help but chuckle. He sounded really offended by the nickname her brothers gave her with the day she was born and decided that Abaigeal was too long to say all the time. “It’s a nickname.” He gave her his most pompous look. “It’s a man’s name.” Mikkel laughed out loud, drawing Nikolai’s scowl to him. Abby’s lips quivered with amusement too but she didn’t let out a sound. “That may be, but it’s also shortened from Abaigeal. Ab-IG-eal. Iggy...” her voice trailed off, waiting to see the recognition on his face but there was none. He just continued to frown. “I don’t like it, it’s unfeminine. Your father, he approves of this?” Nikolai asked. Mikkel was still laughing, not even bothering to hide his amusement. Nikolai turned on him. “What is so funny?” Still laughing, Mikkel said, “I have no idea.” Abby wasn’t having a hard time keeping her own smile at bay. “Uh, no… hates it, actually. In fact, he pretty much looks like you do right now whenever he hears it.” Nikolai grunted and nodded his head. “Smart man.” The air was sizzling around them. Though lust was right below the surface, it felt more like a comfort zone to Abby than anything else, which wasn’t 195 Forever Mine good. She had to remember what took place in the bathroom before he came in here and saved her life. “So, can I leave now?” Now it was Nikolai’s time to laugh. “No.” Abby’s answering scowl was fierce. “Why the hell not? I have to get back to Brazil, you heard Shane. Liam will be there soon, and if he discovers me missing then all hell’s going to break loose.” Seeing the blank indifferent look staring back at her, Abby got angry. “Unless of course you don’t give a shit what my father does to me when he finds out he’s been duped.” Nikolai’s face darkened. “You know, you keep implying that I don’t care what happens to you and you’re wrong! I don’t like it. So stop it!” he demanded. Mikkel discreetly coughed. Abby ignored the Viking and snorted at Nikolai. “Yeah, and that attitude is why I don’t want anything more to do with you!” Nikolai opened his mouth but was interrupted by none other than Alexi… again. “Excuse me, my lord…” Alexi, spotting the dead bodies to his left and stopped in mid-sentence. “Great Goddess above! Is that…” He took a step closer. “… Dalibor?” Mikkel laughed, seeing the look on Alexi’s face. Nikolai raised his eyes to the ceiling, saying a prayer for strength. “Alexi, either you are purposely trying to agitate me, or you have the worst luck.” Alexi looked back questioningly. “Milord?” Seeing Nikolai’s patience running very thin, a smiling Mikkel interjected, “I think what Nikolai wants to know Alexi, is what do you want?” Alexi half-smiled, “Oh, well, it’s Nyah milord, Gregor says her time has come.” “Of course it has,” Nikolai murmured then turned to face Abby. The second he did she was stabbing her finger in his chest. “Don’t you dare leave me in this room again! You can’t keep me here. I have to get home!” Nikolai grabbed Abby’s finger and kissed it before she could swipe it back. “And you will, lyubof, but not yet.” He turned away from her. “Misha, grab a body.” Mikkel smiled sheepishly at Abby then grabbed Dalibor’s feet and dragged him out of the room as Nikolai took care of Vladimir. “Nikolai?” Abby sweetly called out. After dropping Vladimir’s body on top of Dalibor’s in the hallway, Nikolai faced her with guiltless eyes. “Yes, moya dusha?” “You’re really starting to piss me off,” she sweetly said through clenched teeth. Then, with her right foot, she kicked Vladimir’s squashed heart right at his head. Nikolai smoothly caught the bloody organ then carelessly dropped it on the bodies. He smiled and shrugged. “I’ll be back as soon as I can, milaya. Rest, you look tired.” 196 Forever Mine On that condescending note, he closed the door just as Abby picked up the lamp by the side of the bed and threw it at the door. Nikolai uttered the Upyrian spell that would lock the door then made his way to the stairs. Mikkel was right behind him. “You know, she’s got a point, Koyla.” “About what?” Nikolai asked. “Do you really want her brothers coming here and killing innocent people searching for their sister?” “They won’t. She’ll be back before then. I just need some more time, Misha. She’s very resistant to my charms,” he roguishly stated. Mikkel chuckled. “I can’t see why, they are so attuned to her every wish and desire.” Nikolai playfully smirked. “I know, she can be a most ungrateful wench.” Their hardy laughter could be heard inside the bedroom where Abby stood with her ear pressed to the door, fuming. “I heard that!” Nikolai kept laughing. 197 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWELVE Abby didn’t know how much time passed since Nikolai and Mikkel left her in the room. What she did know was after pacing for about an hour she’d finally laid down on the bed, utterly exhausted, where, much to her annoyance, she’d fallen asleep. For how long she didn’t know, but the warmth of the sun streaming through the window indicated it was daytime. She’d been awake for a few minutes, but she didn’t move. She wasn’t even going to breathe until she figured out if the thing lying next to her on the bed was friend or foe. The body pressed up next to hers felt small, almost childlike, which was really weird because she seriously doubted there were any children in this palace. She couldn’t decipher why the form felt almost familiar, but she definitely had a sense that she knew this creature or that she was supposed to. The bed moved underneath her. Behind closed lids, Abby visualized a small body lying on its stomach with legs up in the air and feet moving up and down, jostling the bed. For one brief moment, she felt like she was home in her own bed, with Connor’s three small boys snuggled up next to her as they slept. Goddess, she loved that feeling. It made her feel like she had a place somewhere, a home. She felt that now as that same comforting sense engulfed her and made her blissfully forget where she was and what she had done. The body next to hers shifted then giggled. It played like a musical note, creating a sense of frisky eagerness in the air. Abby could no longer lay still feigning sleep; time was slipping away from her. She had no idea what she would see when she opened her eyes, but she had to get moving, so she took a breath and looked. Big bright green eyes twinkled on a rosy cheeked cherub’s face. She wore a smile that was elfin and sparkling with animation. Short, pale blonde ringlets adorned a head that was perched on tiny child-sized palms as she stared into Abby’s face with unabashed curiosity. “You pretty.” Like her giggle, the girl’s voice was sweet and pleasing. Abby’s skin magically tingled, a prickle that spread throughout her body and sparked something inside her soul. There was no doubt in her mind that this creature was friend and that she was somehow unequivocally tied to her. She was also not human. Magical creatures could be very fickle and extremely short fused. Though Abby sensed no danger from this small being, she knew if she said or did the wrong thing, the little creature could turn on her at the drop of dime. Considering it was her hasty actions that left her in her current predicament, Abby decided that proceeding with caution would be best. “Um, thank you.” “Nissa pretty too.” 198 Forever Mine Abby smiled. “Yes, you are.” She cleared her throat. “Is that your name, Nissa?” The girl giggled again. Her little head titled to the side as she studied Abby with an astuteness that made her slightly uncomfortable. Nissa bobbed her head, causing the ringlets to bounce jovially. “You are Abaigeal but…” Her head tilted to the other side. “You like for Nissa to call you Abby, so Nissa call you Abby because Nissa want to please her new friend and mistress.” Abby’s eyes crinkled with mistrust. “How do you know that?” Nissa shrugged one tiny shoulder, her feet, as Abby had envisioned, were in the air swaying up and down as Nissa lay on her stomach. She leaned in further and whispered, “Nissa know everything inside. Abby Nissa’s new friend and mistress.” Like that explained anything. Abby frowned. She was really starting to resent these mental intrusions everyone here seemed to think was their right. Still, she didn’t want to offend Nissa, so she tried to push away any negative thoughts that were lingering in her mind, but she was too late. Pouting like a little girl, Nissa shook her head back and forth. “You no like that? You no like Nissa?” Those big green eyes started to get watery and Abby felt her heart lurch with compassion. “No, it’s not that I don’t like you, Nissa, you seem… well, friendly enough, I suppose. It’s just that I’m not used to everyone poking around my head like they’re looking to buy real estate or something.” Nissa slapped a hand over her mouth, but the musical giggle still escaped and Abby found herself chuckling with her. “Nissa like you too, Abby. Don’t worry; everything is the way it is supposed to be.” Abby frowned. She seriously doubted that, but she wasn’t going to be the one to burst the little imp’s bubble. “Does the General know you’re here? And why did you say I’m your new mistress?” Abby’s questions were ignored as Nissa suddenly jumped up and ran over to the door. She placed her ear against the wood and closed her eyes. “The palace is quiet. His Evilness is gone and soon the light will fade. It is time, Abby. We must go now.” Nissa turned around and skipped over to the side of the bed and before Abby could catch a breath, the cover was whisked off her naked frame and cool air touched her skin. Her arms automatically came up and covered her breasts. She gasped, her eyes lighting on Nissa with accusation. Nissa giggled. “It wasn’t me.” If it wasn’t Nissa then it had to have been Nikolai. He must have come back in when she was sleeping. Abby’s eyes turned to slits. “Why, that overbearing lummox! He’s got some nerve undressing me while I’m sleeping… again!” 199 Forever Mine Nissa giggled as she spun around in a circle. Abby watched with amazement as her little shoes left the floor and Nissa floated in the air with her arms outstretched. “Lummox, that very funny, Abby. Nissa sure he wouldn’t like it though. Doki either.” Nissa laughed harder as Abby continued to watch her with one eyebrow lifted in question. Who the hell was Doki? “Oh, you are so much fun! Nissa and Abby going to be the best of friends forever! Nissa can’t wait!” Abby stood up from the bed and wrapped the covers around her as she studied Nissa. “What are you exactly, Nissa?” Nissa continued to float around for a few more seconds then she snapped her fingers and Abby found herself fully dressed in black leather pants, a black turtleneck and knee high, black fur boots. Nissa dismissed Abby’s gasp of shock and answered her question. “Nissa a Leshy.” She twirled around. “The most powerful Leshy in all the Realm.” Abby moved around, feeling her magical clothing move with fluidity and ease. She snorted. The perfect fit… go figure. “A Leshy? You mean you’re an elf?” Nissa stopped spinning and fixed Abby with an agitated gaze. “Elf! Nissa a Leshy. Nissa much more powerful than just an elf.” Abby grinned. So the little Leshy had an ego, she wasn’t surprised. She’d never met an elf, or a Leshy for that matter, but she heard all elves were a bit egotistical, and there were many different kinds of elves. It was just Abby’s luck that her new friend happened to be the most narcissistic of the elf race, not to mention the higher up on the chain of commands. Leshy were like royalty in the elf community and Abby had to wonder why a proud Leshy, who normally didn’t bow down to anyone, was standing in the room with her and calling her mistress. “My apologies, Nissa, I meant no offense. I’m a little confused though. Why are you here exactly? And why do you keep calling me your mistress?” “No time for twenty questions.” Nissa ran forward. Her green eyes observed Abby once again then she snapped her fingers and Abby’s ensemble now included a full length, fur lined shearling coat. This time Abby let her annoyance show. “Goddess above, Nissa, will you warn me next time before you do that! Shit, that’s downright unnerving.” Nissa didn’t take offense. She just shrugged a shoulder like she was used to someone reprimanding her for her spur-of-the-moment magic tricks, her answer said as much. “You’ll get used to it.” Not bloody likely, Abby thought as Nissa took her hand and pulled her over to the wall beside the bed. “Come, we go now.” Nissa giggled. “Big lummox is not in the palace.” Abby stopped short. Oh, his royal bloody highness wasn’t in the palace. A scowl formed on her face. He’s got some nerve! Just where the hell did he disappear too after stripping her naked and tucking her in? A wave of turbulent anger coursed through her, but then she felt the warmth of the sun on her back and alarm ensued. 200 Forever Mine The sun was up. Goddess above, was that panic making her heart race? “Don’t worry, Abby, he in the stables. No sun touch him. He safe.” Abby scowled. Oh great, another mind reader. Nissa tugged on her hand and Abby dumbly started forward again. “Oh, well that’s…” She stopped and stared at the scarlet red wall in front of her. What the hell was that annoying emotion sweeping through her now? If she didn’t know any better – and clearly she didn’t because she’d lost her mind the moment she meet Nikolai– she would say it was relief, intense utter relief. Damn it! Her eyes crinkled in exasperation as she realized her chaotic and misplaced emotions almost made her say ‘thank the goddess.’ She really needed to get a grip. Trying to play it cool, Abby casually shrugged a shoulder. “Like I care if that traitor is safe or not.” Nissa’s green eyes shrewdly glittered. Abby’s face turned red. “Don’t say it.” Nissa giggled but kept quiet as she reached up and pushed one of the stones. Without a sound, it moved inward and as it did, a portion of the wall soundlessly moved out, revealing a winding stone staircase that disappeared into darkness. Abby took a step closer than cautiously peered in. Unable to see through the inky blackness, she took a deep breath and smelled mold. Her nose twitched. Goddess, she hated that smell, but at least she didn’t sense any evil. “Is this the way out?” “Stairs take us to back of palace where Nissa have White Star tethered and waiting.” Nissa grabbed Abby’s hand and started down the steps, pulling Abby with her. Abby wasn’t sure she wanted to go down there, but she didn’t have much of a choice, the little Leshy was persistent and surprisingly strong. “Why are you helping me, Nissa?” Abby curiously asked as she tried not to trip over her own two feet. She couldn’t see a damn thing, so she had to rely on the Leshy’s ability to see in the dark. Relying on strangers was not Abby’s strong point, so she was nervous and getting more suspicious by the minute. “Nissa told you. Abby Nissa’s new mistress. Nissa do anything for her mistress. Nissa is loyal and true. Never fear, Nissa will always be here for you.” Abby didn’t know if that was a good thing or not. “I hope that at some point you’re going to explain that a little better. I’m still not clear on that whole mistress thing,” she mumbled but Nissa heard her. “Oh, Nissa won’t have to. Everything will explain itself. You’ll see. Now hurry. It’s almost dark. Lummox will be coming back to palace soon. That foal fought to stay inside momma’s womb but Lummox, he bring him into the world all hale and healthy.” Abby’s mouth formed a tender smile. So that was what he was doing; Nyah was a horse. Oh, that’s so sweet. 201 Forever Mine Sweet? No, no, no… bad thoughts! That man was not sweet. He was an overbearing, arrogant, inconsiderate, cold-hearted Neanderthal! As Abby cursed her thoughts and feelings, the little Leshy remained quiet as she pulled Abby down the winding stairs until they reached a dark cellar. She whispered a few words; candles flickered and lighted the room. It was empty, but as Abby watched Nissa float over to another wall, she looked down at the ground to see tracks in the dirt from a door that was clearly used. She studied the rest of the floor and detected two more marks in the dirt, one to her right and one behind her. Every vamp had intricate tunnel systems built under their homes. It made moving around in the day healthier. She wondered where these went but wasn’t able to ponder it long because once again Nissa whispered some elfin words and a door swung inside the room. Sunlight streamed in and Nissa jerked Abby forward and yanked her outside. ********** Nikolai and Mikkel were making their way into the great hall from the tunnel that brought them back from the stables. They had spent the day helping Nyah deliver her first foal. It had been a difficult birth. Nikolai hadn’t been sure the foal would survive, but he proved to be like his mother in tenacity and once they turned the foal around, he came out with ease. Nikolai couldn’t hold back a smile of pure joy. He loved his horses and there was nothing he loved more than bringing another one into the world. It gave him a sense of peace and accomplishment. It was a refreshing change to bring life instead of death, at least for him anyway. He’d only left once and that was to check on Abby. He’d been surprised to find her sleeping, but pleased that she was resting. She hadn’t had an easy time of it so far in his home; in fact, the reminder of all that had taken place was a burr under his saddle. What happened in the bedroom was a bit blurry, but he did have memories of what took place. The rage was crystal clear, as was the need for a swift and deadly retribution, but what also stood out in his mind was how attuned he had been with the Darkness the moment he walked into the door. Not only did the singleness he felt with his demon amaze him, but also how easy the transition was becoming. It used to be something he fought against. In the past, he considered the power of the Darkness as a curse, something he had to control. He didn’t think that way anymore. Now he really didn’t give a shit if it came out to play or not, and he knew why. He was beginning to understand that his demon did what was necessary and nothing else. It did not just arbitrarily kill people. It killed people that needed to be killed; it was a simple as that. He was feeling more confident and secure because the trust that had always been missing was now there, and that trust was becoming more binding with every moment they spent in Abby’s presence. She was the glue binding them together because she was their mutual priority. The more she opened up to him and the further he sank into her soul, the 202 Forever Mine closer he and the Darkness became, and it all felt right. Even the aggressive physical change that began the moment they tasted her blood hadn’t scared him. He licked his lips. He could still taste Abby’s blood on his tongue, could still feel the power of her essence flowing through him; it was truly amazing. He had felt such a bloodlust to take more, to sink his teeth in her neck and complete the process. It was what both he and the Darkness wanted, but where Nikolai knew Abby wasn’t ready for that step and he was unwilling to force her into anything she was not ready for, the Darkness cared only to complete the transition and it wouldn’t have stopped. Hearing the fear in Abby’s voice when she called his name, seeing the panic in her eyes as she looked back at him and feeling her terror that made the hum inside of him shake, was what stopped the man and it was the man who stopped the Darkness. As he thought about that, he realized that perhaps that was the heart of his lifelong struggles. The answer was never to control the Darkness; the answer had always been accepting it and sustaining the balance between the demon’s more visceral emotions and thoughts with those of the more reasonable and logical man, and that was obtained by the bond with a S’airsul. “What shall you call this one, Koyla?” Mikkel’s cheerful question brought Nikolai back from his thoughts as they climbed the stairs to his room. “I think Brutus is a fitting name. He’s a strong little thing,” Nikolai’s smile lengthened as he once again thought of the feisty colt, but when he reached the window at the top of the stairs and a flash of black in the otherwise sunny late afternoon caught his eye, he stopped smiling. “Gods blood!” As if in a daze, Nikolai turned and looked out the window only to see Abby sprinting across the back field and heading toward his prize mare that was tethered to a tree. Standing at Nikolai’s side Mikkel watched a very feminine figure dashing across the lawn. “Is that who I think it is?” Since his cock hardened the second he saw her, Nikolai would say that was a definite yes. As Nikolai’s eyes caressed his S’airsul’s athletic body as she fled his palace, a ton of questions rapidly fired off in his head. Seeing his prize mare - his unpredictable prize mare that he knew had been in the stables the entire time he was birthing the colt - about to be stolen was the one question his mouth latched onto. “How the hell did she get my horse?” Mikkel softly chuckled. “Interesting inquiry, my friend, although, I think my first question would have been how she got out of the palace.” Yes, that was a good question too. A dark frown settled on Nikolai’s brow. Still another one was how a woman he had left gloriously naked was now fully clothed with items Nikolai knew did not exist in his wardrobe. Abby had no time to observe her surroundings once Nissa thrust her outside, but she felt the heady stillness of the deep forest stretched out before her as Nissa pulled her toward a white horse tethered to a tree. 203 Forever Mine “Come quickly. White Star is waiting and she is not the most patient of creatures.” Abby had no idea why she was letting herself be dragged around by an impish Leshy she just met, but at this point it didn’t matter, she was getting out. When Abby reached White Star, the horse turned and fixed her with a strangely intent stare. The horse snorted angrily then dug her hooves into the dirt. Abby walked up to the horse with easy steps. She stretched her hand out in greeting and spoke softly. “Hello. My, you are a beauty, aren’t you?’ Nikolai watched from the window above, his body coiled with tension. White Star was not the friendliest of horses and had been known to be a biter when it came to strangers. So he anxiously watched as Abby reached out toward those sharp teeth. White Star whined softly then proudly shook her head up then down. After a few seconds, she stilled and settled those big brown eyes on Abby. Abby chuckled as she petted the horse’s long sleek nose. “Ah, female, I should have known. We all like compliments, don’t we?” White Star pulled her lips back, showing Abby her teeth then once again neighed and shook her head up and down in response. Having been on the receiving end of White Star’s temper plenty of times before, Mikkel watched the scene below with wonder. “Are my eyes deceiving me? That is White Star, is it not?” No one besides Nikolai had ever been able to touch the skittish horse, so witnessing what he just did stunned Nikolai speechless. He answered Mikkel with a quick jerk of his head then watched with apprehension as Abby stood to the side of the horse. “By Odin’s blood, she’s going to ride her!” Mikkel said. Nikolai silently waited to see what would happen next. There wasn’t much he could do should the horse bolt or turn and nip Abby. He was trapped by the sun and held immobile by unease. Oblivious to her audience, Abby calmly neared White Star, soothingly talking to her as she did and hoping to the Goddess above that the horse would not freak out when she jumped on her back. There was no saddle, but that was okay with Abby. She’d been riding since she was five and the first thing her father taught her was how to ride bareback. “Okay, sweetie, so we’re friends, you and me, right? So you won’t mind if I jump up and we go for a ride, will you?” She loosened the rope from the tree then grabbing a fistful of White Star’s mane, took a deep breath and pulled herself up onto the proud horse’s back. Immediately White Star pranced backwards, violently shaking her head. With a patience that was only reserved for her love of animals, Abby held on through the mare’s rebellious display. She was rewarded when a few minutes later White Star finally started to relax until she was finally still. She was still tense, so Abby sat still, giving the horse more time to adjust to the feel of her weight. After a few more seconds, she could feel White Star’s muscles finally relax. Abby smiled and petted White Star’s neck, praising her. “Good girl.” 204 Forever Mine “I think that was one of the most amazing things I have ever seen,” Mikkel quietly said. Nikolai breathed out a sigh of relief at the same time as he reached down and adjusted his aching cock. Seeing Abby handle the rogue mare with such skill had been exceedingly arousing. He couldn’t stop himself from grinned. Mikkel was right about one thing. Amazing was definitely a good description of his S’airsul. “Come, Abby, quickly, not much time. This way.” Nissa floated down the path that led into the deep forest. Sensing a deep sense of admiration rumble through her, Abby turned and gazed back at the palace. Two figures stood looking out the upstairs window, but she had eyes only for one. The wind blew and she lifted her face to the sky, closing her eyes she let the sun fill her and the fresh air cleanse her worries. She felt free and lighthearted and a hearty laugh spilled from her lips. She thwarted his plans. She would escape and no one would ever know what had taken place in this cold land. Opening her eyes, she looked back at the window, defiantly staring at her wicked temptation. “She’s a cocky little thing,” Mikkel amusingly pointed out. Nikolai chuckled as he held her gaze. Then he nodded his respect to her. Abby smirked and returned his gesture by tipping her head at him. On a laugh of freedom, she spun White Star around and dug her heels into the horse’s side. The horse took off like lightening, following the little Leshy into the woods and away from the palace. Nikolai watched her disappear then he turned and headed toward his room. The moment he walked inside he saw the wall that usually hid his secret door wide open. Mikkel stood in the doorway and leaned against the doorframe with his arms across his chest, watching Nikolai study the door. “She’s also extremely resourceful. Not that I’m surprised.” “Before my mother gave me the locking spell, Arnost and Konstantin had this entire palace searched for my hidden lair and never found it. How the hell did she?” Nikolai quietly pondered. Mikkel shrugged. “Does it matter? Probably some other sort of magical potion she has at her disposal. Probably how she got that snappy outfit too. Well, she’s gone and on her way out of Russia. The only question is, will you follow or let her go?” Nikolai turned and looked at Mikkel with eyebrows raised like he’d just asked the most stupid of questions. Mikkel frowned, “What?” “She is not on her way out of Russia, Misha, she’s headed in the opposite direction. In fact, if she keeps going that way, she’ll end up in Kirill’s lap.” Visions of the brawny Cossack General came to Nikolai’s mind, irritated, he growled. Kirill had more lovers than he did horses, and that was saying a lot considering the Cossack’s main source of income was their prime horse flesh of heavily stocked stables. 205 Forever Mine Besides Nikolai’s own stables, the Cossacks bred the best in Russia. Nikolai had many business dealings with Kirill as they bought and sold from each other’s stock. In fact, just a few weeks ago he was at the camp inspecting the new foals. Of course, Kirill tried to rob him on the price of two colts Nikolai was interested in. They argued which ultimately lead to Kirill having one of his famous temper tantrums and kicking Nikolai out of the camp. As far as vamps went - or whatever the hell Kirill was, Nikolai was still trying to figure that one out - Kirill was young, only fifty years old, yet he had the body and the looks of a twenty year old, and his temperament was not much older than that. Kirill was self-indulgent, brass, bold, incredibly strong, and a tenacious fighter. His loyalty and reliance was as fickle as the many lovers that shared his bed. Even with people he liked and respected, Kirill’s allegiance could drop at a dime if it suited his purposes, and if that happened, then he could be an unscrupulous and immoral jackass. But if one looked beyond all that, which Nikolai did, Kirill was a good man. For all his bad points, Kirill knew better than to fuck with Nikolai. Oh, he took pleasure in giving Nikolai a hard time in their business transactions but Nikolai knew that no matter what happened Kirill would never betray him. Still, that didn’t negate the fact that Kirill was the biggest horn dog Nikolai knew and Abaigeal was an irresistible lure that would make Kirill drool. She was everything most of Kirill’s lovers were not; independent, intractable and fierce, traits that were sure to wet the Cossack’s insatiable appetite. Nikolai snorted. If Kirill thought he was going to seduce his S’airsul, he was seriously mistaken. Nikolai was not beyond kicking some manners into the boy; the Goddess knew he didn’t do it enough, a state of affairs he would remedy without delay and with a great deal of pleasure if Kirill even so much as touched one blonde hair on Abaigeal’s head. With a growing heated purpose in his strides, Nikolai walked over to his closet and activated the switch that revealed his weapons cabinet. Entering the code he unlocked it then pulled out his new broadsword. Closing the cabinet, he stormed past Mikkel and headed down the steps. He had thirty minutes until the sun set and he could ride out after her so he headed back to the stables to saddle Satana. “At least she won’t get lost. Kirill will aid her.” Mikkel said as he followed Nikolai. Nikolai snorted derisively. “You do realize we’re talking about Kirill. The only aid he will give her is a hand into his bed.” Mikkel couldn’t help but chuckle, seeing the wave of violence that was all around his friend. “Yes, he is a horny bastard. How many wives does he have now, fifteen?” Nikolai answered with a hard nod and Mikkel smirked. “Well, it’s nothing that can’t be prevented with a phone call from you.” They walked through the great hall and down the passageway that led to the kitchen. Stopping mid-way, Nikolai reached up and thumped on the ceiling. The door to the tunnel that led to the stables swung open and both vamps walked through, the door automatically closing behind them. 206 Forever Mine Nikolai grabbed the torch that sat on the wall and headed down the tunnel. “I can’t call him,” he crossly grumbled. Mikkel frowned. “Why not?” “Because he won’t answer.” Nikolai’s irritation was clearly expressed in the surly tone of his voice and Mikkel laughed; he couldn’t help it. He was very familiar with the Kirill’s short and juvenile temperament. “Whatever did you do, Koyla, to prick the brat’s temper?” Nikolai waved a big hand in the air. “Bah, he’s being a baby. I wouldn’t pay him what he wanted for a couple of colts. He counter-offered that he would take my new broadsword along with my money. When I refused, he threw me out of the camp. Stefan came by earlier to tell me Kirill was willing to see me and discuss it further, but he wanted a face to face.” Mikkel’s laughter only grew heartier hearing that and seeing said broadsword in Nikolai’s hand. “So I suspect you’ll have a very ornery Cossack on your hands, meeting you with scarves and scythes?” Nikolai smirked, his eyes lit with fire. Yes, that was just what he needed. There was no better way to relieve stress and tension then a fight with his Cossack ally. “Well, I will offer him a trade first,” he said as he swiped the broadsword through the air with lethal speed. Mikkel grinned. “Which he will refuse.” “Most likely. The bastard does love a good fight. I see no reason to deny him that pleasure.” Mikkel continued to laugh at the sinister anticipatory gleam in Nikolai’s eye. Reaching the other end of the tunnel, Nikolai swung the door open and stepped inside the stables, holding the door for Mikkel. He studied his friend as he walked inside the stables. Nikolai closed the door behind him. “So, you never told me what happened with Liv.” Mikkel’s mirth ended. “She actually argued with me. She does seem to be growing more willful these days,” he grumbled thoughtfully. Nikolai gazed at him as if he’d lost his mind. “Misha, don’t you think it’s time you realized that Liv is not the naïve little sister you used to know?” “What do you mean?” “She’s a woman, Misha, she’s no longer a child and yet you continue to treat her as such.” Nikolai tethered Satana and pulled him out of the stall. “You need to listen to Runa more. That gorgeous woman knows and sees the truth.” Mikkel’s scowl was livid. “Runa’s the one who sent her here! She told Liv that she should come to the palace and travel to Scotland with me because we needed to spend some quality time together.” He scoffed. “I’m telling you, Koyla, that woman is not really a woman at all because she has the biggest pair of balls than any man I know.” Thinking of the statuesque blonde Viking beauty, Nikolai couldn’t help but laugh. “She’s an assertive woman Misha but what do you expect, she’s had to deal with your family for you for the past hundred years.” 207 Forever Mine Mikkel’s frown darkened. He didn’t like to be reminded about that because he always felt a small measure of guilt and he didn’t get guilty, that was Nikolai’s bag, not his. Besides, he never tied Runa down in Norway. She could come and go as she pleased. She made the decision to stay, so whatever beef she had with that decision wasn’t his fault. “Well, I sent Liv back to Moscow and told her to wait for me at your townhouse.” Strapping his broadsword to his back, Nikolai led Satana out of the stall. Mikkel opened the stable doors just as the sun set and the early darkness settled in. “And where is the fair Runa?” Nikolai asked. “I don’t know, she wouldn’t tell me when I asked. Liv said she had personal business to attend to and that she would meet us in Scotland.” “That sounds very clandestine. Does she have a lover she’s meeting?” Nikolai asked, watching Mikkel so he could see his reaction, which was as Nikolai expected - blasé. “I don’t know, but if you ask me that is exactly what that woman needs, to get laid. She’s way too uptight.” And you, my friend, should be the one to give it to her. Nikolai continued to chuckle as he walked Satana outside. The horse stomped his hooves then breathed out, sensing his master’s agitation to go. Grabbing Satana’s mane, Nikolai pulled himself up. He didn’t need a saddle for where he was going. He could ride quicker without the extra weight, plus he would never ride into the Cossack’s camp on a saddle to begin with. The proud Cossacks lived and breathed horses; to them, using a saddle showed the weakness of the rider. Nikolai looked down at Mikkel and felt a sudden pang in his heart. He loved Mikkel, he was his best friend, his blood brother; he had stood by his side and followed him into the shadows that imprisoned him for so long and no matter what had to be done, Mikkel’s loyalty never wavered. His friendship and trust only grew and Nikolai would be forever indebted to him. He held his hand out and with a smile on his face Mikkel grabbed it, their forearms clasped together in strength and fidelity. “I can never repay you, Misha, for all you have done for me over the years. Without your friendship, I don’t think I would have made it,” Nikolai softly said. Mikkel’s smile deepened. “About time you finally admitted that.” His eyes sparkled with merriment and Nikolai chuckled, shaking his head at his friend’s enduring jollity. “You know, I have not seen you smile or heard your laughter as much as I have in the past couple of days,” Mikkel quietly stated as he peered back with earnest. “I’ve missed that. I’ve missed having my friend and I will be forever grateful to the young woman who brought you back to me.” Deep sentimental emotions filled Nikolai as he looked back at his friend. He nodded. 208 Forever Mine Grinning, Mikkel pulled back. “Listen to us, what a couple of women we’ve become. I think I’m going to cry.” He feigned a sniffle which only drew more hearty laughter from Nikolai. “So, you’re off to claim your woman and I’m off to retrieve my disobedient sister. We’ll meet in Scotland, eh?” Nikolai nodded. “Godspeed, Misha.” Mikkel smiled. “And to you, my friend.” He slapped Satana’s rump and the horse took off like a banshee. Nikolai peered into the darkening forest. Abaigeal had a bit of a lead on him and she was riding White Star, the second swiftest mare in his stables, but that didn’t mean she had the advantage, far from it actually. Nikolai casually petted Satana’s neck. The black beauty was Nikolai’s favorite. He was a war horse but that did not detract from the animal’s speed; he was the fastest steed Nikolai owned. Plus, Satana was also White Star’s mate, and he didn’t like it when she rode out without him. Bending down low, Nikolai whispered to Satana in Russian, “Ride swiftly, my friend. Follow the scent of your mate and lead me to mine.” The black horse lifted its front legs then shot out into the woods. 209 Forever Mine CHAPTER THIRTEEN The sun was setting and Abby knew it wouldn’t be long before the General was hot on her trail. She spurned White Star to go faster as she barreled down the narrow path that led through the woods. A string of curses left her lips. She’d lost sight of Nissa. In fact, she didn’t even have that tingling awareness anymore. The little Leshy had abandoned her to her own fate. She should have known not to trust the little elf. She had absolutely no idea where she was going, but she trekked on; at least she was free and on her way out of Russia. Feeling the vibration in her soul rumbling with life told her Nikolai was coming for her. She rode harder through the forest, desperate to put as much distance between them as she could. She had just turned the mare to sidestep a fallen tree when there was a noise to her left. She scanned the deep woods but saw nothing; shaking off the apprehension she felt, she continued forward, but she didn’t get very far. Abruptly, Abby reined in White Star and the horse skidded to a halt. Her eyes grew large as she took in the sight of ten men who appeared out of nowhere and now surrounded her. Sitting astride huge war horses, they were dressed in fur pants, coats and hats. Every one of them had beards and mustaches, and they were all armed with numerous weapons, ranging from long wicked blades to pistols and shotguns. They looked mean. Big and mean, and they were staring at her like she was dessert for the dinner table. Abby sat up straighter on White Star’s back. Her senses that normally alerted her to demons or magical beings nearby were going haywire; she couldn’t pinpoint anything. One second she was certain something supernatural encircled her, then in the next she was positive they were human. She shook her head, trying to clear her thoughts. She never experienced anything like it before and it was completely throwing her off. Underneath her, White Star sensed her unease and started to neigh and prance her own rising anxiety. “Easy girl.” As Abby struggled with the mare, the biggest of the men kicked his heels into the side of his horse and trotted over to her. He held his hand out toward the horse. Eyes that sparkled like a Caribbean sea were riveted on the skittish White Star. No words left his mouth but they seemed to share a silent conversation as the horse gradually settled under his wordless enchantment and stared back at the man as if he were her lifeline. Abby’s senses were still jumbled but that display clearly showed that at least one of these men had supernatural powers. She studied him further, trying to pinpoint exactly what those powers were. What she deduced was that his 210 Forever Mine influence over the horse was as impressive as the handsome face that now scrutinized her. He appeared to be no more than twenty or so, with a golden brown complexion that bespoke of countless hours spent in the sun. He had gorgeous eyes that were swiftly growing heated in his regard and a full sensual mouth quirked up in a sexy grin. His full beard and mustache gave the otherwise youthful face a rugged maturity that was quite appealing. The man took a deep breath then, closing his eyes, he breathed deeply again. His grin grew broad with what Abby could only interpret as trouble. When he opened his eyes again and gazed at her with immense concentration, she had the distinct impression she was being summed up. When that regard turned to a mix of respect and budding desire, her guard went up and she scowled. Clearly she was dealing with a man who was led around by his dick Goddess save her from horny males. Abby sighed then rolled her eyes with feminine disgust at his brazenness. He was off his rocker if he thought she was going to just swoon under his bold invitation. He was a tempting morsel, but he wasn’t strumming her ‘play with me’ strings, which meant he was wasting her time; precious time she needed in order to escape the man who did play those arousal strings like a maestro. Still uncertain as to exactly how much power this enigmatic man wielded, Abby decided it was better to be safe than sorry. She was surrounded by experienced horsemen; should she succeed in actually getting out of the tight circle they enclosed her in, it wouldn’t be long before they chased her down. After all, she had no idea where she was going and clearly these men felt at home in their surroundings. No, she had only one alternative and that was to appeal to the man currently undressing her with his eyes, and hope the brain on top of his head prevailed over the brain between his legs. “I don’t suppose you’ll just step aside and let me go?” Those sea green eyes twinkled with amusement and a soft male chuckle fell from his lips. “You have the voice of a courtesan, my luscious little kitten, a voice I intend to hear more of when I take you to my bed.” As Abby sat there, bowled over by his audacity, he motioned to the men behind him who quickly rode up besides White Star. He trotted his own horse over until he was beside her and, in a blink of an eye, Abby found herself on his horse with a hard muscular arm wrapped securely around her waist. Reflexively, she wrapped her arms around his neck, holding on so she wouldn’t fall backwards. He chuckled; she scowled. “Have no fear, my luscious little kitten. I have you.” He demonstrated that by effortlessly lifting her up then setting her back down so she sat astride. As one bulging arm wrapped around her waist again and pulled her back against his hard chest, he pressed his bulging legs against hers. Sitting bareback, this action caused her ass to slide back into a very impressive erection. Gasping with surprise, Abby tried to move away but that big arm held her immobile as he pushed his randy appendage against her butt and then had the gall to lift and rotate his hips. 211 Forever Mine “Hey! Stop that!” Abby scolded him sharply and tried to turn around to glare at the pig, but he just held her in front of him and pushed his cock into her again. “Gods blood! Will you stop doing that?” Uncaring of how disturbed and just how angry his new toy was getting, the man hummed. “You feel very nice here.” Abby continued to struggle against him, trying to put some space between her and his ‘brain,’ but he was oblivious to her efforts as he casually held her and clicked his tongue, sending his horse into motion. “Yes, I like this. I shall keep you.” “What? Now hold on one freaking minute!” Abby’s protest was never heard as the beast yanked on the mane of his horse and they shot forward and rode into the woods followed by his companions. Abby wasn’t sure what to expect from her new ‘friend’ – and she used the term loosely – but as they traveled through winding trees and over gurgling brooks, she knew one thing for sure: the man had more hands than an octopus. With a growing disgruntled snarl, Abby once more peeled the big paw that was persistently making its way up her thigh and toward the junction of her legs off of her. “Will you stop that? Gods blood, you’re like a child that can’t keep his hands out of the cookie jar.” Kirill Rusakova chuckled with mirth. She was a spitfire alright. All hot energy and titillating power that made his lips smack together in glee. Her tight little body, which his searching hands had already surmised was curvy and soft in all the right places, felt divine pressed up against his chest. To see that body with legs spread and straddling his horse only made him envision her straddling him. It was a tempting image he played over and over again. Of course, he would not take advantage of her in that way and it wasn’t because he was a nice guy. No, it was because she belonged to another, someone he loved to toy with. Kirill leaned down until his lips just barely skimmed the rim of her ear. He inhaled deeply and drew in her scent. His intentions might be honorable but that still didn’t stop the shiver of lust from running through him. He gripped the tops of her thighs again then gave them free reign to caress their way up to her core. “Cookies? No, kitten, I think what lays beneath these clothes is something much, much sweeter.” His left index finger actually got one good swipe of her core before Abby was able to wrestle him away. She grabbed his wrist and yanked him off of her. With her forefinger and thumb in the proper position, she squeezed hard and twisted. It was a common maneuver, one she had learned from her brothers and had used more times than she could count. With the stiffening of the big body behind hers, she knew she once more succeeded in proving she was not helpless. Kirill was surprised by her show of strength and he looked down in wonder as she turned her head and actually growled at him. “If you do that again, I’m going to bite your finger off and ram it down your throat.” 212 Forever Mine Stunned speechless with her plucky display, Kirill could only gaze with marvel into her stormy brown eyes of incensed fire. What a pleasant surprise she was turning out to be. He found her in the forest purely by her scent. The unfamiliar yet powerfully alluring aroma had led him right to her, and while he knew the carrier of that scent had been woman, he had envisioned a female much like his Great Aunt Ophelia, tall and robust and with the strength of a bull. A woman who didn’t take shit from anyone and looked like a linebacker. Not exactly someone that infused images of naked sweaty sex. Instead, what he discovered was a woman who was small and curvy, supple in the most sensuous of ways; she looked like a woman who, in his long experience with the opposite sex, had always proven to be quiet and ladylike, submissive. Yet, as he had drawn closer to her and took in more of her bouquet, he discovered two things. The first was that for some reason this luscious little kitten was trying to hide the scent of her mate, a mate whom Kirill was certain she had just run away from. The second was that she was not meek or dutiful. This woman would never submit easily. Most likely she would be as demanding a lover as Kirill was himself. For some reason, that just tickled him silly. He threw back his head and laughed loudly. What else should he have expected? A woman would have to be not only sexy and desirable, but also a bloodthirsty vixen to keep the ruthless and imperious Nikolai in check. This sweet tempting morsel was just what the hard-ass General needed to come back to the living and Kirill couldn’t help but feel envious. He groaned as his horse stumbled over a vine and her tight ass slid back against his semi-hard cock. Goddess, she felt damn good there; too bad he wouldn’t be able to screw her. Still, he could toy with her, grope her here and there, just to get a little bit of what Nikolai would have every night. Kirill was nothing if not covetous of what his friend and mentor owned. Why not his woman too? Abby released his wrist then slid forward once again. Her back was ramrod straight. Placing her palms on the back of his horse, she slid further away from him. Kirill couldn’t stop smiling. “I don’t think I have ever held such a prickly woman in my arms before you, kitten. Why not relax and enjoy the ride?” He leaned down and roughly whispered in her ear as he laid his hand against her belly and pushed her back against his groin, “I can make it worth your while.” He was teasing her and rolling those hips once again. Abby gritted her teeth in anger then once again pulled his hand off of her and slid forward. “First off, my name is not kitten, so stop calling me that. Secondly, I am not prickly at all. In fact, I’m an easygoing and fun person. I just don’t like being manhandled by ill-mannered, randy boys.” Kirill chuckled. He should probably be offended by her comment, but he was used to it. “You think me a boy?” Abby snorted. “You look younger than me.” “And how old is that?” he curiously asked. 213 Forever Mine Abby decided there was no reason not to tell him the truth so she answered him, “Twenty-five.” “No, kitten, I do not mean your chronological age, I mean your immortal age?” Abby stiffened. Why did everyone ask that question? Wasn’t there some unwritten rule that you never asked a woman her age? “That is my age,” she bitingly replied. Kirill was taken aback by her answer. “Truly?” Abby nodded as Kirill seemed to contemplate her further before continuing his questions. “You are not demon nor are you fey or vampire, at least none that I have ever sensed. I have never smelled a scent such as yours. Could it be…” There was a hitch in his voice that was filled with excitement. “Are you a Blendling?” “You ask that like you’ve never met one before.” “I have not.” Kirill couldn’t help but think how ironic it was that the great warlord General Nikolai Kotova, a man who had spent the last century decimating Blendlings, had one for his mate. How amusing. Abby turned around to see her captor smiling from ear to ear. She shook her head then looked at him dubiously. “How can that be? We’re everywhere.” Kirill shook his head. “Not where I am from. And here in Russia, Blendlings are wiped out as quickly as they are discovered.” Abby detected a hint of anger in his voice and she wondered if perhaps the randy man with a thousand hands could be an ally. “You sound as if you disagree with that.” “My people have been hunted and destroyed for centuries. There are only fifty of us left and still we have to fight to stay alive and live in peace on the land that is our birthright.” “You’re a Cossack.” “One hundred percent.” Kirill smiled then wrapped his arm around her waist. Before Abby could stop him, he twisted her to the side and bent her backwards; he leaned down until they were nose to nose. “I am Kirill Rusakova, Ataman of the Cossacks, legendary lover, and fierce and triumphant warrior. To put it plainly, kitten, I am the man of your dreams.” He winked then grinned playfully. Abby couldn’t help but laugh. He really was cute. “You sound so certain about that.” Kirill continued to grin at her teasingly. “Unlike you, my luscious little kitten, I have had fifty years to perfect my lovemaking.” He leaned closer, peering at her with sea blue eyes. “Are you sure I cannot tempt you to call my bluff?” Teasing aside, Abby’s face turned stern once again. She pushed him back and righted herself, once more facing forward. “I told you, my name is not kitten and there will be no lovemaking between you and me, buddy, so get that through your thick skull.” She was ready to belt him across the face if he called her kitten one more time. “My name is Abby. Even with a swollen head like yours, it shouldn’t be too hard to remember.” They rode in silence the rest of the way, and as they did, Kirill could not pull his thoughts away from the luscious woman sitting in front of him and the dangerous vampire she belonged to. The entire situation was very amusing to him. 214 Forever Mine For a man such as Nikolai to have a young and supple mate, one so full of energy and life, a dangerous entity all on her own, was something that would entertain Kirill for centuries to come. As they neared the entrance of his camp, Kirill straightened on his horse, sitting tall and proud; he entered the encampment with a nasty glint in his eye to all the males who came out to ogle the woman before him. Their interest in the girl was as palpable as the smell of his own skin. Their eyes soaked in her figure with interest and hunger. He hissed and snarled at each of them. Most were silenced by his dominant actions and with disgruntlement stepped away. The stronger males stood their ground, held his gaze and snarled right back at him. They would not be deterred from the prize. They knew the rules and they were not afraid to stand up to the Adamant and make sure he abided by them as well. He always did, but in this case he could not. The males in his tribe could not sense what Kirill did; to them, the proud beautiful woman would be just another prize to fight over. Women prisoners were considered fair game, and the strongest of the males would fight to the death for ownership. It was an archaic display, but it was the way of their people. He would be hard pressed to keep the males away and retain leadership, but he would prevail. While he relished the idea of battling Nikolai, he would not punish his tribesman with that vengeful retribution. Ignoring them all, Kirill trotted his horse over to his pavilion then came to a halt and dismounted. Reaching up, he gripped Abby’s waist and lifted her off. Abby felt all the men in the camp staring at her. No, that was not the right word; it felt more like she was being coveted and it made her extremely uncomfortable. She decided the best plan of action for the moment was to keep her mouth shut. Kirill put his big body in front of hers, blocking her from the confrontational males closing in around them. “Do you speak Romanian, kitten?” he asked her quietly. Currently, Romanian was not in her repertoire of tongues but hey, if he spoke enough, it might be. “No,” she innocently answered. Kirill nodded then spoke to the others. Abby tried to concentrate on what he was saying, but with the tension in the air and the way each and every one of the men went from looking like they were itching for a fight to getting ready to flee for the hills, she got distracted and couldn’t follow a damn thing. But it was short and obviously Kirill made his point as one by one the men turned, shoulders slumped, and walked away. Grunting with satisfaction, Kirill grabbed her arm and turned them toward the pavilion. Pushing the heavy canvas aside, he pulled her inside and let the flap drop. Looking around, Abby felt like she was standing in the middle of a sheik’s harem. Stimulating sumptuousness were the only words to describe it. The pavilion was large and colorful, pillows littered the floor while satin and silk draped the walls. On the floor was a mattress that looked to be about two feet 215 Forever Mine thick and it had dark luxurious fur coverings that would induce any woman to indulge in the succulent feeling of soft fur against naked skin. Abby swallowed. Good Gods, the place was built for seduction. How many people could fit on that bed? Her question was answered as, one by one, women of all shapes, sizes, and ages walked in from the back. They ignored her - actually, they more or less pushed her to the side - as they surrounded Kirill and began touching him and petting him as if he were a God. Kirill said something in Romanian, and by the nasty looks each and every one of those females sent her way, Abby knew they did not like what he said. Well, screw them. It wasn’t her fault she was there. She glared right back. Kirill kissed each woman on the lips then with a hearty smack to their rear ends, they piled out of the pavilion. “Excuse my wives. They can be a bit possessive at times.” Abby’s eyebrow rose. “Are you telling me that all those women are your wives?” As his head nodded with a smug blinding smile, Abby’s eyes bulged. “What are you, a machine?” Kirill laughed and walked over to her. Before Abby could react, he had her chin in his grip. “The offer is still open, kitten.” Abby snorted and tried to pull away, but Kirill jerked her back to him. “Shame, I think we would make beautiful music together.” Abby opened her mouth to tell him to fuck off but Kirill moved in quicker then she could blink. As Kirill’s lips traced her own with a soft tenderness that belied his dominate strength. She couldn’t help but speculate how funny life was. She had spent the first twenty-five years of her life never experiencing any kind of physical enjoyment with a male, yet in a span of a couple of days she had gotten the attention of not one, but two hotties that were not afraid to take what they wanted. She almost smiled with the thought of what her father would think of that until she felt Kirill’s tongue sliding into her mouth and the his hands tightening on her chin. He was a good kisser, she would give him that, but the Cossack was getting a bit too excited for something she would never let go any further. Kirill stepped closer and thrust his hard shaft against her. Abby pulled back and then, because it was just second nature to her, she hit him with a solid punch to the chin. Kirill’s head swung to the left. He looked back at her with anger in his eyes right before they lightened and he laughed out loud. He shook his head, turned away and mumbled something in Romanian. He didn’t comment on her actions and, in fact, he seemed to dismiss the entire thing without a second thought. “Come, kitten, sit, make yourself at home. You must be hungry, thirsty. I will feed you.” He walked over to the bed then in a dramatic fashion, swept his coat off, threw it on the floor and lounged on the bed. Seeing Abby standing in the middle of the room with a bland expression on her face, he chuckled and patted the cushions. “Come, don’t tell me the proud warrior Blendling is afraid?” 216 Forever Mine Abby glowered at him. “I’m not afraid of you, Cossack.” “Then come, sit beside me if you do not fear your attraction to me.” Mischief sparked in the blue depths of his eyes. Abby snorted, loudly – cocky bugger. She didn’t know why, but she actually liked the Cossack. Granted, he was a bit bold and a lot arrogant, but there was a light and fun quality about him that she was quickly warming too. Abby smirked back then mimicked Kirill’s actions. She took off her coat and carelessly dropped it to the floor. Casually she walked over to the bed and sat down beside him. The moment she did, Kirill moved over until his chest was pressed up against the side of her thigh. Abby looked down to where their bodies touched then back up into his devilish features. “What are we, magnets? Back off, Randy.” Kirill smirked. “I find you irresistible, kitten, indulge me, please. I promise I won’t bite.” His lips lifted in a full-fledged smile, showing two long and pointy fangs. Abby studied him as she concentrated on her vampy senses that were still as confused as she was. “What are you exactly, Kirill?” His grin deepened and he had that look Abby was so familiar with when it came to dominate males. He wasn’t going to answer her. Kirill looked away then reached across her to the bowl of fruit sitting on the bed. In so doing, his hard forearm rested against her thighs for one second. He looked up and winked as he grabbed the bowl then placed it on her lap. His long fingers dipped in and drew out a strawberry. Dismissing her question with a graceful wave of his hand, Kirill held the berry up for her inspection and responded with a devil-may-care voice. “I am boring. It is you I want to learn about.” He dangled the strawberry in front of her mouth and Abby couldn’t help but look at it longingly. She was hungry and the ripe strawberry looked delicious. As if he could read her mind, Kirill enticed her further. “Come, kitten, eat. I know you are hungry.” Those Caribbean eyes held a promise of carnal intimacy as he offered Abby the succulent fruit. Abby cleared her throat, feeling embarrassed and extremely uncomfortable by his gesture, not to mention the unspoken words. Lovers feed each other, not people that just met. “I can feed myself.” The tone of her voice and the look on her face said she didn’t trust him. Kirill grinned. Smart woman. “At twenty-five, I hope so. But you are a guest in my home and as your host, I insist on being allowed to take care of you… for… now.” There was too much dead air in between those last words for Abby not to wonder if Kirill had more up his sleeve then just trying to get inside her pants. She looked at him crossly then decided that she wasn’t going to get anything out of him unless he decided to spill his guts, so she shrugged it off because she had a sudden sense that it just wasn’t important. There was something else garnering her utmost attention. 217 Forever Mine Compelled by some unseen siren, Abby sought out the red fruit being held in front of her. Her eyes coveted its velvety skin in adoration. It was the perfect size and the perfect shape, its color was of the deepest reds - provocative and inviting - her fingers were just itching to touch it. She licked her lips. It was the most beautiful piece of fruit she had ever seen, perfect in every way, like it had been grown in the gardens of the Gods. Breathing in, she smelt the sweet fruity aroma of the berry lushly bewitching her. The annoying inner drone she developed since meeting the General slowly began to fade until the hum was calm, quiet… distant, so much so she was barely even aware of its existence anymore and… she didn’t even care. As her eyes continued to devour the berry, the hum was replaced with a hunger she had never known. Her stomach felt hollow and the lure of the sweet fruit Kirill presented was too tempting. Reaching out, Abby took the strawberry from a smug looking Kirill and put it in her mouth. As she bit down, the flavor of the berry exploded, titillating her taste buds and senses, and sending her body into pleasure overload. She chewed some more then swallowed and she was hit with an almost orgasmic ripple. She bit her lip to keep from moaning, but couldn’t stop her eyelids from closing in pure radiant pleasure. Goddess, it was so good it was sinful, its taste deliciously decadent, its juices a waterfall of moist wickedness cascading down her throat and electrifying every nerve ending in her body. She purred contently. She felt her body get lighter as sheer relaxation consumed her. She was warm, she felt so slumberous and feminine, that she brushed aside the nagging feeling in the back of her mind that she was supposed to be doing something else besides getting off on eating fruit. She was so at ease she didn’t even wonder why that last thought was so… wrong. Succumbing to the languorous sensations that were making her feel all numb and tingly, Abby opened her eyes and turned to look at Kirill, blasting him with a wanton yet satiated smile that made his balls ache and his dick panting for the feel of those lips around it. Abby was too ensnared with the mouthwatering berries to care that the man beside her was becoming incredibly aroused. Happily and salaciously, she licked her lips then started to lick the juice off her fingers. As urgent need slammed inside Kirill and his dick started to jump against his pants. It occurred to him it might be a good idea to take the bowl away from her. Her reaction to the magical fruit had come faster than Kirill expected. In fact, he had never seen anyone have such an immediate and intense physical reaction to it. Of course, it was made to seduce and arouse, to make a woman so hot and wet that he could just slip his cock inside her sheath no matter how tight she was, but before he offered them to Abby, he cast a minor alteration spell. He wanted her relaxed and detached from her bond with Nikolai; he did not want the woman writhing on his bed in need because that would be too enticing by far. As the bliss subsided, Abby was left feeling happy but more aware of where she was. She still felt sublimely content but the pleasure haze that 218 Forever Mine engrossed her before was gone, and she recalled the conversation she was having and the question that was asked, which caused her to be wary and cautious with her response. Abby shrugged a shoulder at the question Kirill had completely forgotten he’d asked. “Well, I’m sorry to disappoint you, but I’m pretty lame myself. Not much to tell.” Kirill didn’t hear a word she said; all his attention was focused on her pink tongue that was still licking her fingers. What he wouldn’t do to have her lick his dick like that. To feel those plump red lips wrapped around the head of his cock the way she wrapped them around the strawberry before it disappeared into her mouth. What imagery. What a scrumptious fantasy that was. He held back a groan. As Abby reached into the bowl and picked out another berry, Kirill shook himself back to reality and her comment finally registered in his brain. He wasn’t sure he understood the word ‘lame,’ but he could easily feel that she was both wary of the question and trying very hard to act like she wasn’t. Interesting. Kirill grabbed her hand that held the berry she was going to pop it into her mouth. Any more of those and she’ll find herself on her back with a new appreciation for Cossack stamina, and he would find himself in a newly dug grave. Abby frowned as Kirill pried the berry from her fingers and drew the bowl away from her; all the while those sea blue eyes keenly scrutinized her. “No, I do not believe this. You are an enigmatic creature, kitten. I think there is much to your story you are not sharing with me. This hurts my feelings. Why do you do this?” His wretched tone and pouty face were just too cute and Abby forgot about the fruit he took away and giggled. “I am being nothing but honorable and pleasant, two things that do not always come easily. So come, tell me… why do you run from your mate?” Abby’s smile disintegrated. Tension entered her body as she peered at him with a severe stare. Kirill held her gaze quietly and steadfast, confident in the legitimacy of his question, and patiently waiting for her answer. Abby’s brow crinkled; either her potions had completely worn off or Kirill Rusakova was much more than met the eye. Abby averted her gaze. “I don’t know what you’re talking about. I’m not mated to anyone. Single. Yep. That’s me.” Kirill grinned hearing her answer, which was the biggest bullshit he’d ever heard. He cocked his head to the side and let his eyes wander down her neck. “I see no mark, but it’s there nonetheless.” Abby kept her head turned away from his intense gaze, but Kirill didn’t need to see her face to know how his words affected her; the way her shoulders stiffened was telling enough. “If I was like everyone else, I would take your word for it. Pity for you, I am not.” He leaned in and nuzzled her neck; taking a deep breath then exhaling. 219 Forever Mine Feeling his hot breath against her skin, Abby instantly recoiled. That just felt all wrong. Her mind and body that had been open to such attention just moments ago now rejected the breath that feathered over it. She glowered at him. “Hey, stop that!” Ignoring her agitation, Kirill took one more breath then sat back with a cocksure expression that was also excited as hell. “I can smell the magic that surrounds you, kitten. I can sense that which it hides so well from everyone else. Goddess, the magic is sweet and utterly seductive. It makes my cock so hard I feel as if I’m going to burst.” Abby watched with one eye quirked up as he reached for his crotch and adjusted the hard appendage that was well... hard. “I am most intrigued with the conjurer of this magic. You will tell me her name,” he demanded. Looking at Kirill, Abby was certain Bryony would not mind in the least that this man was interested in knowing her. As Bryony would say, Kirill was ‘exceedingly shaggable.’ The problem was that he was as immature as Abby’s nephews. During the short span of time spent in his company, she already construed what a spoiled brat he was. He demanded and expected to get whatever he wanted, just like now. And when he didn’t, he used those boyish good looks to pout like a baby until he got what he wanted, again… just like now. Hell, he probably even had temper tantrums. Abby rolled her eyes. Men. Even when they had lived for fifty years, they still acted like children. The way Kirill acted had Abby thinking he didn’t have much of a role model growing up because his crudeness was rude even to a female who had six older brothers. After all, there was such a thing as good manners. Abby turned and seared him with the best reproachful look she could muster. “Do you kiss your wives with that mouth?” Kirill looked confused by her question, like he never had anyone take him to task for something as minuscule as language. “I do not understand.” Of course he didn’t, Abby rolled her eyes. “Never mind. What makes you think the conjurer is a woman?” she asked. Kirill scoffed. “No man would create such a travesty. It must be a woman.” Abby studied his serious face and laughed. He had a point. “Well forget it, Randy you do not need to know her name because you and she will never meet.” “How do you know this? She is close to you, is she not? “ Abby nodded. “She’s my cousin.” Kirill smiled. “Exactly.” It was Abby’s turn to look confused. “Exactly what?” “This seductive Wicca is your cousin. Since you will be living in Russia, no doubt she will visit you, which means she and I will meet. It is inevitable.” Abby held up her hand. ”Excuse me, but who the hell said I would be living in Russia?” 220 Forever Mine All of a sudden, a fierce wind blew the tent covering open and a rush of blistering energy filled the pavilion. From outside, a thunderous roar broke the stillness of the night. It was followed by the sounds of swords clanking together and fists meeting flesh. As if in sync with the chaos outside, Abby became aware of the chaos within, a sharp internal spasm that jolted her body. “Gods blood!” she screeched, her eyes locked wildly onto Kirill who was watching her with avid curiosity. “What the hell…?” Another swift sudden pain assaulted her. She clutched her stomach as her pulse began to race and that pain became steady and throbbing. She blinked back tears and when she opened her eyes back up, everything seemed to be foggy, or rather everything that had been foggy was now crystal clear. Another furious rolling spasm slammed into her, breaking that fog up even more. “Oh God!” she whimpered. “What’s happening to me?” Beseeching eyes pleaded with Kirill for answers, but he didn’t give any. He just kept watching her. Abby wrestled with the nagging feeling that she knew what that hum meant, but for the life of her she just couldn’t seem to grasp any kind of coherent memory. Panic started to seep in as the more she struggled, the more disorientated she felt. In a last pitch effort, she closed her eyes and frantically shook her head back and forth. When she opened her eyes again, relief poured over her as memories came crashing back and everything became clearer. Complete awareness of what that spasm meant slammed into her with shocking veracity and a new sense of panic took root. Her eyes turned wild with anxiety. What the hell just happened? She was certain that rumble had been with her all day. Hell, it had been with her since Germany, but it had been mysteriously absent since… since when? An agonized cry rang out from outside followed by the sickening thud of a body hitting the ground. Abby couldn’t afford to waste time wondering what happened, she had to get the hell out of here. How the hell was she going to do that? Would the Cossack help her? Her gaze flew to Kirill who was smiling from ear to ear and sporting roguish glint in his orbs. Her eyes crossed. She seethed with anger. He wasn’t going to help her; that smile was unashamed and swollen with pride. What did he do to her? Her gaze flew to the bowl of strawberries. Even now they tempted her. Damn it, she should have known! No fruit could be that perfect, that erotically enticing. She turned hateful eyes to Kirill. He had disconnected her from the vibe and kept her here, on purpose. Kirill watched in fascination as Abby’s beautiful brown eyes turned from frenzied to fuming. So, she knew what he had done. He didn’t care. After all, this had never been about her. Oh, he enjoyed her company - a lot actually - and the Goddess knew any time spent with a bodacious beautiful woman was time well spent in his book, but bringing her here, keeping her mind occupied with other things besides the vamp coming for her, was all done with the intention of 221 Forever Mine keeping her right where she was. Or, more to the point, right where he wanted her – on his bed. It was a game for Kirill, always had been, to see just how much shit Nikolai could take before he lost that legendary control of his. Over the years, Kirill had tried everything from extorting Nikolai on the prices of his colts to insulting him about his parentage. Always the infuriating vamp had responded with nothing but arrogant disdain. Of course, the more Nikolai kept things in check, the more it pissed off Kirill, who had little control and no patience. When he sensed Abby was Nikolai’s mate, he knew he had finally found what he’d been looking for all these years – Nikolai’s button – or at least, he hoped he had. Yes, he was playing with fire, but like any good science experiment, you had to take risks in order to succeed. “You little shit!” Abby scathingly sneered. Unperturbed, Kirill carelessly shrugged a shoulder then pinned her with a predatory gaze and answered her bluntly, “To answer your question, kitten, he says.” Abby looked back blankly, unable to remember just what the question had been. Being the ultimate predator, Kirill used her confusion to his advantage. Kirill sat up grabbed Abby around the waist and pulled her up against him. His hand sifted through her hair then latched onto the back of her head with urgency. Knowing his intent, Abby raised her hands to push him away, but his left arm tightened around her waist, his hand moved right below her left breast and he roughly jerked her against him, crushing her against a solid unmovable mass of muscle. She twisted her body, trying to get out of his grasp, but he held her with ease, held her still, as he brought her head closer to his. Before Abby could take her next breath, Kirill swooped in and claimed her mouth, sinking his tongue deep inside. His tongue swept inside once, twice, then there was a scorching blast of enraged energy slamming against her back and making her stomach cramp with distress. An ear-shattering roar filled the pavilion and Abby was violently ripped out of Kirill’s arms. The second Kirill’s mouth left hers Abby was hit with another cramp of such force she thought she was going to die. She clutched her stomach, gasping in discomfort from the pain but then that pain ebbed and it became something else; a wave of such pure emotion it would have brought her to her knees if she weren’t already sitting. It was raw and open, and so deep she could feel it touching her soul, feeding her everything it wanted her to know – its happiness with finding her and its displeasure with where. She could hear his heavy uneven pants and she could feel his dark gaze staring at her, willing her to look up. Inside, the vibrations grew angrier, tugging and pulling on her soul for attention. The longer she kept her head down, the more hostile they became. Abby closed her eyes, taking deep breaths in an effort to calm the beast raging inside. The sensations inside her were coming from him; they were so strong, so emotionally tangled and intimate that she could feel his disapproval and that brought on a wave of guilt. What a minute… what the hell did she have to feel guilty about? 222 Forever Mine Ignoring the steady agitation rumbling inside her, Abby openly glowered. Guilty? She actually felt guilty! Goddess above, that was utterly ridicules, she did nothing wrong. Okay, so she might have run away from him, but that was what she was supposed to do. Did he think she would just submissively stay his captor? And clearly the man was unhappy with what he walked in on, but hey, it wasn’t her fault she ended up with Kirill, it was that damn Leshy’s fault, and she was most definitely not the one to instigate the kiss, so he had nothing to be pissed about. Abby sat up straighter. And what if she had? So what? He didn’t own her. She could kiss whomever she wanted to. Abby finally turned her head and looked up, ready to give him a taste of her displeasure. She expected to see the Darkness, but what she saw made her heart skip a beat and her eyes bulge in shock. This was not the same Darkness she met earlier in the bedroom. This Darkness had… grown. Standing a foot taller than his usual six foot seven, Nikolai held Kirill with one hand wrapped around his throat. His face was broader, angular and harder, and much to her chagrin, sexier. The scar that ran down his cheek was more distinct as the veins on his face pulsed with red-hot livid life. Long sharp fangs that were longer than the last time she saw them gleamed treacherously. Even his hair was different. Beautiful black hair that had kissed his shoulders now fell about four inches past his shoulders and had grown a strip of white down the left side. If that wasn’t disturbing enough then there were the sounds of leather stretching and ripping and bones popping. Abby looked down the length of this body to see his ordinarily large muscled thighs pulsing and expanding. She could actually see the soft supple leather of his pants stretching to accommodate the new bulkier size of his thighs. She let her gaze wander all the way down to his boot-encased feet, which seemed to be trying to break loose. She gulped. The man was physically getting larger, stronger… Goddess above, she could literally feel the incredible power he always had pulsing with a new effervescent force that sizzled her skin and fired her blood. Blood? Abby froze. Her blood… this was happening because he tasted her blood. Goddess above, he’d only had a trickle of it, what would happen if he ever fully drank from her? Slow and uncertain, Abby’s gaze trailed back up his frame until she was once more looking into his eyes. Those hadn’t changed; they were as endless and inky as they always were. Her pulse raced with heated longing as she sank further into those velvety pools and felt the hum throb with life and energy that wasn’t just her own. She looked away, unable to stand the intensity of that gaze, her eyes once more completing a thorough scan of the man before her. He looked like a beast, a mad raving creature out of some dark and twisted fairy tale. It was shocking in the size and shape that it took to the angry pulse of every vein on his body that was visible in his face to the skin revealed in the V of his shirt, to the small patch of flesh that peaked out from his sleeves, this creature 223 Forever Mine could and would kill on a drop of a dime with little effort and no moral restraint whatsoever. She should be scared out of her mind. She should be running away from the beast that was snarling before her; it was wild and untamed, unpredictable and savage, and yet… she was ensnared by its voracious beauty. She wanted to feel that monstrous body beside her, against hers, inside her. She had a deep-seated need to… submit to its will, open herself to it and joyfully give it every single part of her. Abby looked away from the carnality that demanded her obedience and desperately tried to ignore her need to give it. She should have been repulsed by it; instead, she felt her pussy get wet, she felt her nipples tightening, she felt her body openly respond as her womb contracted with a profound burning need for him to come inside her. Goddess, she had been mind-bogglingly attracted to him before but this, this was so much worse; this creature made her want to rip open her chest and hand it her soul. As Abby stared at Nikolai in absolute wonder and a thousand questions growing in her eyes, he stood there waiting, almost as if he knew she needed time to adjust. But he had waited enough and a snarl of impatience left his lips. Those snarls continued, growing louder and becoming even more appetent, until they were now rasping growling snarls of someone who was really seriously pissed. Abby looked up into its eyes and just as she suspected, his pitch black orbs regarded her with allegation. “Hey! Don’t you look at me that way! I’m supposed to escape. That’s what prisoners do! They try to escape!” Never in his life had Nikolai felt such frustration and absolute vexation. He knew Kirill would try to seduce Abaigeal, which already ticked him off, but knowing was completely different than actually seeing it. He had come here prepared to fight Kirill and hand over his precious sword to the ungrateful whelp. Now he wanted to ram that sword into Kirill’s gut. The moment he stepped inside the tent, Nikolai felt the magic in the air and he could smell the lingering sweet scent of feminine arousal. After pulling his slime ball friend off of his S’airsul, Nikolai spied the bowl of strawberries sitting next to Abaigeal on the bed. Having firsthand experience with those seductive berries, his control instantly snapped. In mere seconds, he retreated to the background and gave complete control over to the Darkness. With every ragged breath he took, he could feel his body growing and stretching, becoming larger and bulkier. He felt his fangs lengthen and his jaw dislocate with ease to make room for the deadly new set of teeth that appeared. He wanted to scream and shout, but was exasperated to learn he couldn’t. The Darkness was not one for verbalizing its emotions; it preferred to show them instead and usually in the form of a rapid and jarringly demoralizing death. With the Darkness in full control and sadistic vehemence consuming his entire being, Nikolai could barely wrap his brain around one logical thought, let alone speak it. In growing frustration and anger, he fitfully shook his head back and forth. His mouth opened and only one gritted word came out. “No!” Then he scathingly 224 Forever Mine glanced at the bowl of strawberries then at Kirill who he viciously shook by the throat, emphasizing what he really wanted to know. Abby held his gaze as her own darkened to a deep hostile brown. She stood up on the bed and faced him angrily. “I was hungry! How the hell was I supposed to know it wasn’t just fruit?” Nikolai looked back at Kirill and snarled furiously. Kirill gave him an innocent smile and followed that up with a what-did-you-expect shrug of his shoulders. Nikolai’s free hand curled in readiness to wipe that smile right off of the Cossack’s lips. Abby was so aggravated with Nikolai’s highhandedness that she literally stomped her foot on the bed, crossed her arms over her chest then stated her position. “Why the hell am I even defending my actions or lack of to you anyway? It’s none of your damn business who I kiss or who kisses me!” The Darkness growled so forcefully, Abby’s hair blew around her face. It shook its head again and was actually able to rasp out a sentence in English. Well, at least some of a sentence. “It… my… business! Mine!” As Abby’s temper rose with his overbearing attitude of ownership, Kirill, who was probably only about two steps from death’s door, watched everything with delight. Seeing the trouble Nikolai was having just to speak, was the most hilarious thing he had ever seen. And then there was the added delight of Abby’s plucky stubbornness that increased Nikolai’s agitation. That pleased him the most. It was a sure sign that the disciplined life Nikolai always strived to have would never again be sedate. Abby harshly snorted at Nikolai’s gruff and broken reply. She looked over to see how Kirill was faring; it couldn’t have been good considering the death hold Nikolai had around his throat. But instead of seeing terror in those blue orbs, she saw shining laughter. The bastard even had the balls to be smiling. Incensed at the childish actions, Abby was ready to knock some heads around. It was all a game to him. This entire ridicules situation was set up by Kirill for this exact purpose. Why he would find this amusing was beyond her, but she figured since he started it, he might as well be the one to take the blame for it. Furious Abby pointed a rigid finger at Kirill. “If you want to be pissed at anyone, be pissed at him! He kissed me - twice!” The Darkness’ black gaze swung back to Kirill whose smile quickly disappeared. “Now, Koyla, hold on one second.” On that last word, Nikolai’s hand squeezed Kirill’s throat and he lifted him off the ground three feet. His frenzied mind barely registered the words his young friend beseeched. Bloodlust consumed him. Everything swam before his eyes in a haze of blood red as his ears resounded with the soon-to-be-sound of Kirill’s death. He growled again and once more shook a surprisingly non-pulsed Kirill like a rag doll, a fact that didn’t even register in Nikolai’s ravaged state. It was the Darkness that ruled every emotion and thought. It condemned Kirill for touching its mate, destroying its trust and loyalty, and defying the oath he had made to 225 Forever Mine Nikolai so many years ago. It wanted Kirill’s death. It was its right! And Gods blood, it was going to get it. Kirill’s head started to ache. Being thrashed about left and right then back and forth would definitely do that to a person, even to one of his caliber. It took him a couple of seconds to get some bearing back so he could at least hold his head up straight. When he did, his eyes were immediately drawn to Nikolai’s. As he looked into the depths of obsidian malevolence, he had a brief sense of triumph that his experiment succeeded, but that was quickly squashed when he realized the life he loved so much just might end. A new feeling overtook him then, one he was not accustomed to; desperation and fear. It was all fun and games until Abby pointed her finger at him and drew the Darkness’ attention back to its prey. Now Kirill saw the gravity of the situation he put himself in. In response to the threat before him, Kirill’s demon came to the forefront. His fangs distended as he hissed with the little bit of air that was in his body but slowly getting cut off. Feeling a sharp prick to his neck, Kirill saw long jagged claws the color of black onyx on Nikolai’s left hand, and naturally assumed those same claws were on the right hand that effortlessly held him by the throat, pricking his skin. With realization dawning that Nikolai was gravely serious, Kirill’s startled eyes looked back up to the man he considered to be a father. He had hoped for chaos and was certain he would get it, but he never ever thought Nikolai would be unhinged by it. As he searched those endless black orbs, he saw no recollection of the vamp he respected and loved. That vamp was gone. The Darkness was in control and growing with frightening ease right before Kirill’s eyes. Abby watched with horror as Nikolai increased his hold on Kirill’s neck. As he did, his body continued to shift and grow. It was as if he was transforming. Into what, she had no idea, but as the hum shook and thundered with anger, she also sensed dual emotions. One wanted Kirill’s death, the other did not, and Nikolai was battling it with everything inside of him. She was certain that if he hadn’t been then Kirill would already be dead, and wouldn’t you know it… that made her feel guilty. Oh, the randy little Cossack definitely deserved to learn a lesson, but he didn’t deserve death and yet that was where he found himself, at death’s door, and it was because of what she had said. Goddess, she practically threw her hands up in the air in disgust. Now she would have to step in and pray to the Gods she would be able to break through Nikolai’s bloodlust. She wasn’t a hundred present confident she could, but it worked in the bedroom, so… Abby stood up and reached out to Nikolai. Grabbing his forearm and with all the strength in her body she pulled. “Nikolai, stop, you’re going to kill him!” As if he were standing outside of his body, Nikolai was helpless against the Darkness’ need for revenge. He wanted to hurt Kirill, he didn’t want to kill him, but the Darkness would not relent and as his hands continued to squeeze and his claws slipped under his friend’s skin, the smell of blood filled him with 226 Forever Mine pleasure, filled him with a sense of rightness and any compassion he had vanished. A malevolent smirk appeared on his face. Sounding more like the wild beast his body had shaped into than himself, Nikolai gritted out between clenched teeth. “Don’t… care.” Abby renewed her efforts with every bit of strength she had, desperately trying to pull Nikolai off of Kirill, but his arm was a band of steel. Completely immobile, the claws that grew out of nowhere only seemed to lengthen as one dug deeper into Kirill’s neck and more blood began to trickle out. Kirill’s face was turning purple and his eye balls were bulging as the Darkness continued to shake him like a rag doll. Abby started to panic. She didn’t want to be the reason why a man was killed, especially over something she knew began only as a way to rib Nikolai. But this situation was getting bad and if she didn’t do something soon, it would get worse. As uncertainties took root, the hum began to sizzle and crack. Abby closed her eyes and concentrated on it. She felt the deep-seated need to comfort the beast, the pull to just let go and be what she was born to be. Like before in the bedroom at the palace, she didn’t think about what she was going to do. She didn’t question the way her heart opened to the distressed and irate creature before her. She didn’t even wonder why she felt the need to hold him and comfort him. All she knew was that she must. All she felt was the soul driving need to… love him. Abby took a step closer and pressed against the side of Nikolai’s body. She leaned her head back to look up at him. Releasing the death grip she had on his forearm, she started a slow yet deliberate caress, first on his arm then up to his shoulder. Her left hand rose and rested on his back. His muscles were tight but they were not straining, not like she imagined they would be to hold a man of Kirill’s size up in the air for so long. Slowly, Abby started to stroke Nikolai’s back up and down then over and across the breadth of his shoulders, pushing reassuring energy through the hum and into him. She stood up on her tippy-toes as near to his ear as she could. In Nikolai’s unusual present size she stood more than a foot away from his ear as she pleading whispered, “Nikolai, he’s teasing you. Don’t kill him.” It was his name off her lips and the consoling strokes of her hand on his body that sparked consciousness. Nikolai felt her despair in his soul and it brought his mind to life with an awareness of her and her desperation. Kirill watched as Abby worked her magic. If he hadn’t seen it with his own eyes, he never would have believed it. As it were, he watched in amazement as the Darkness turned his gaze down to Abby. His hands slackened just enough for Kirill to pry those deathly claws off his neck. With a thud, he dropped to the floor and landed on his ass, looking up in wonder as the menacing behemoth Darkness turned to the petite woman as if in a trance, completely incapable of doing anything else but complying to her wishes. 227 Forever Mine The Darkness turned toward Abby and starred into her glossy eyes, once again showing her the man and the Darkness, one unit, one entity… one being with whom she felt a deep unbending connection to. The fear that had come in the past with this intense intimacy was no longer present. As Nikolai breathed out raggedly and sought to gain control, Abby gifted him with a small smile. Her palm came up and rested against his cheek. She could feel his pulsating veins under her palm slowly starting to ebb. She held his dark gaze unflinchingly, and in those black depths she saw anxiety and bewilderment. She felt his overwhelming need to protect her and his deep-rooted possessiveness. As she sank deeper and deeper into those inky pools, Abby knew what it meant to belong, to be worshipped. Her breath hitched and her heart strummed to life as her soul filled with something akin to genesis. For the first time since she had been barraged with desire for the man who stood before her and the bone numbing fear that came with it, Abby felt… liberated. She had a keen understanding of where she stood with him. There were no lies in those orbs that revealed nothing but deep intimacy and trust, longing and desire, for her. Here, in this place and time, she understood that she was his, he was hers, and that this powerful cryptic creature would do anything for her. It was the most affecting realization she ever experienced. All this time she had been fighting her desire for him, afraid her desire would grow to become love. Petrified that that love would leave her feeling disconnected from who and what she was, but in reality, the truth of everything that was and everything that ever would be was the complete opposite. As the Darkness began a rumbling contented purr, nuzzling against her palm, Abby realized she held the power over him. Oh, she wasn’t completely full of herself, she knew that physically, he could overpower her, and that he was only giving in because he felt her despair; but still, this understanding was emancipating. The great Lord General Nikolai Kotova, possessor of a demon with unfathomable command, was powerless against her, just as she was powerless against him. Abby’s smile broadened as she softly murmured nonsensical words to the Darkness, feeling a contentment she had never known. It crossed her mind that she may end up regretting letting him in and giving him all she wanted to give, but that was another day and another moment, and most likely another argument, but now… now was all that mattered. “Letta.” She spoke to him in Old Norse, telling him to cease. She continued to caress his face as she began to hum, slipping in soothing Old Norse words in between, telling him she was unharmed, untouched, that she did not seek Kirill’s death. Kirill had no idea what Abby was saying, but his smile widened as he watched beauty calm the beast. It was enthralling to see. He knew the legends of what was, and as he sat there on the floor in monumental awe, witnessing the rebirth of something that was as beautiful as it was terrifying, he felt extremely honored and lucky. He also felt relief because he knew if it weren’t for Abby, 228 Forever Mine he’d be dead. Of course, those thoughts were quickly erased as giddiness took over. Gods blood, it was the beginning of a new age! There was no doubt in his mind. Soon, the men that sought to destroy Kirill and his people would be destroyed. Once the transformation was complete, the creature standing before him, the snarling obscenely powerful creature that was now humbled by the small form of its mate - no, not just a mate, but a S’airsul - would be invincible. Kirill was so excited that, as usual, his mouth spoke without thinking. “Ah, my luscious little kitten, I knew there was more to you than that mouthwatering body of yours. Unbeliev…” With a renewed belligerence, the Darkness pushed Abby away, grabbed Kirill by the shirt, and on a deafening roar that literally shook the ground, threw the six-foot-four Cossack out of the pavilion. Abby sighed as Nikolai stomped out after Kirill. She rolled her eyes then cursed the stupidity of men as she followed them out of the tent. Outside, the two men found themselves in the center of a man made circle that had quickly developed the moment Kirill’s body hit the dirt. Kirill, laughing, stumbled to his feet. His eyes were lit with life and his smile was broad as he faced a much more balanced Nikolai. “Ah, Koyla, so that is the way of it, is it? So quick to kill an old friend over a woman? I never thought I’d see the day when the Great General would be pussy whipped.” An angry snarl was the only answer Kirill’s taunting words drew. “Not that I blame you…“ He turned those sparkling Caribbean eyes to Abby, raking a heated gaze down her entire length. “She’s as sweet tasting as a ripe strawberry.” He winked and Abby’s eyes crinkled with irritation. Though the Darkness was still out, Nikolai now had control. Feeling the bond with Abby had brought logic back to his brain, and with it came the knowledge that Kirill was just being Kirill and pushing his buttons on purpose. The gleeful smile on Kirill’s face said he wanted a fight and Nikolai was happily prepared to give the pup exactly what he wanted. Nikolai artfully smiled around a mouthful of fangs then ripped off his coat. Next went his leather vest and his black shirt. Now that he felt more like himself, speech came easy to him and he ridiculed Kirill with it. “Fifty years old and you’re still a foul-mouthed, spoiled brat. I’ve been neglectful in my instructions. It’s past time you learned your place, boy.” The moment Nikolai revealed naked skin, Abby’s mouth dropped open and drool pooled in the corners. Greedily she gazed at a glorious bare-chested Nikolai as he flexed those incredible arms and rotated his neck. Gods blood, he was fucking hot! No, that word did not do him justice. He was beyond hot; he was every wicked fantasy a woman could think of. He oozed sexuality and eroticism as naturally as Abby took a breath. Standing in nothing but black leather pants, black shitkickers, and wearing a five inch black leather wristband on each arm, his thick black hair riotously fluttered about like some wicked sex god. He was all smooth, hard-muscled male, flexing those God-like attributions and causing Abby’s core to weep from the sight of him. 229 Forever Mine It couldn’t be normal, all that sexual energy coming off of him in waves. How could one man elicit such rousing stimulation? All vampires possessed a sexual lure in their DNA but Nikolai, Goddess help her, was a walking orgasm. Abby started to pant. Her breasts ached to be touched, to be tasted. Her pussy grew wet in preparation for that delicious maleness to pound into her and possesses her. She felt the overwhelming need to be fucked and she couldn’t help but wonder if she was the only one affected by his sexuality. Briefly, Abby’s gaze left the sex God’s form and wandered over the other women in the camp. It was obvious she wasn’t the only one ready to pounce on him and take a bite. With impure eyes and heaving bosoms, those bitches were in as much heat as Abby and she didn’t like that one damn bit. Some of them even caressed Nikolai’s naked frame as if they were remembering the taste and feel of that delectable flesh, and that made her see red. She was infused with resentment by the very notion that some of those women had felt the divinity of having Nikolai inside their bodies. The fact that she just upbraided him for being jealous didn’t even occur to her as her mind quickly tallied all the ways she wanted to rip those women apart limb from limb. Nikolai stopped in mid-stride. His head whipped around and locked onto Abby. A carnal smile lit his face and his eyes darkened to a desirous pitch. He growled as the succulent aroma of arousal filled his nostrils. His mate’s scent was easily distinguishable from the other feminine fragrances he smelled. Abby’s called out to him like no other. It was sweet and rich and the most intoxicating thing about it was that she smelled like his. Nikolai’s growl, that was licentious and swarming with yearning, reached Abby’s ears and brought her gaze swinging back to his. This time it was her eyes that spoke of her rampant thoughts and Nikolai, seeing it and feeling her thoughts through the bond as if they were his own, huskily chuckled. He was glad to know that even though she tried to deny it, she was not immune to such emotions. For Abby, that smug laugh only pissed her off more. She fixed Nikolai with a hard stare of her own and without any pause, used the hum to push her objections to his salacious look. Amused with her anger and completely understanding it, Nikolai continued to chuckle which only increased Abby’s anger and determination to stay aloof. He felt that through the hum but he shrugged off her coldness, confident that she would not remain so for long. “Come on, old man, stop thinking with your cock and show me these lessons you think to teach me.” Kirill cracked his knuckles then, on an earsplitting roar, he ran at Nikolai who easily grabbed him by the throat. Holding Kirill in place, Nikolai slugged him hard in the face. “You have the manners of a pig.” He punched him again. “I thought I taught you better than that.” He socked him in the stomach then dropped him. Kirill quickly jumped to his feet and landed a hearty blow to Nikolai’s face. He laughed. “You taught me many things, Koyla, and I’ve learned all my lessons well, especially those in the art of pleasuring a woman.” 230 Forever Mine Abby’s eyes rolled in disgust. This cock fight she had seen a thousand times before… frankly, she found it rather boring. Seeing as how the intermediate threat was over, it was time to start thinking about getting out while those two played with each other. She was just about to turn around and dismiss the overgrown children when Kirill’s next comment drew her into the fray. “I will take great pleasure in showing you all you taught me, Koyla… on your mate.” Nikolai growled, but before he could make a move, Abby was standing in between him and his punching bag. Abby grabbed Kirill by the face and brought him closer, snarling at him with her own ferocious anger. “I told you before, Randy, I am not his mate!” She punched him with a right hand cross that landed on his nose and sent him flying backwards. Once again Kirill found himself on his ass and in the dirt, and the crowd that was watching cheered riotously; they loved a good fight. Kirill snarled. He didn’t mind taking a beating from Nikolia, he had nothing to be ashamed of, but to be laid low by a mere slip of a woman, no matter how much power she had, galled him and pricked his pride. His face crinkled in anger and turned red with embarrassment as his people continued to chuckle, but then he looked up and caught a glimpse of the indignant expression on Nikolai’s face. Humiliation aside, he smiled; the Darkness was back in full force and this time it was leveled on Abby. Nikolai roughly grabbed Abby by the shoulders and spun her around to face him. Over a mouth full of long sharp fangs, he rasped, “And how many times do I have to tell you, Abaigeal, you are my mate!” Abby shrugged Nikolai’s hold off and jabbed a stern finger into his naked chest. “No! I am not, you stubborn, pigheaded fool!” As Kirill’s laughter annoyingly rang in Nikolai’s ears, he looked up to the heavens. “Goddess save me from beautiful stubborn women!” Grabbing Abby’s arms, he picked her up and set her behind him. Leaning down until they were eye to eye, he grabbed the back of her head and took her mouth in a punishing, yet totally possessive kiss. Abby was dazed when the kiss abruptly ended and Nikolai released her. Then, in a condescending tone, he said, “We will discuss your denial later, lyubof.” Nikolai gave her his back. Facing Kirill with an eager grin, he cracked his knuckles and rotated his neck. “After I teach this disrespectful pup some manners.” Abby was left to stew in growing anger as Nikolai dismissed her and once again attacked Kirill. She stood there for five seconds more, only because the sight of those two sinfully sexy bodies kicking the crap out of each other was really too much eye candy for her to ignore, until she realized what she was doing; wasting time. “What the hell am I doing?” she murmured under her breath. 231 Forever Mine Nikolai’s highhanded manner pissed her off, and as she loathsomely identified the other irksome emotion she felt as wounded pride that he rather play with Kirill than with her, she really got steamed. Abby spun on her heels and walked away, heading toward the coral of horses that were in the meadow beyond and muttering her disgust. Nikolai was deftly giving Kirill the beating he deserved, landing one more solid left to the younger man’s angelic face, and grinning with pleasure as he did. Kirill stumbled to the ground on his knees then saw Abby leaving. His face was a bloody mess and his body ached from the torrent of brutal shots Nikolai had landed, but seeing the spunky Blendling once more walk away from her mate had him laughing his ass off. “I think, Koyla, you’re going to have to invest in a heavy set of chains.” Nikolai gazed back curiously. Kirill laughed harder. “To keep your mate by your side, my friend.” Kirill nodded to the left and Nikolai swung around to see Abby’s pert ass swinging back and forth as she stormed through the camp and headed toward the coral and White Star. “She must really dislike you, I can’t imagine why!” Kirill’s robust laughter rang out through the forest. Nikolai seared his friend with a contemptuous look then took two steps to follow Abby. He was stopped by the frail elderly form of Ileana, the Cossack witch. “Stay, warrior, your woman needs time by herself. She will not leave, you have my word.” The witch’s sparkling blue eyes regarded Kirill shrewdly. She patted Nikolai on the chest. “You continue your lessons. Methinks they’ve been few and far in between.” “What?” Kirill sputtered at the crone who was more like a mother to him than just the hag witch that lived in the forest. Stunned dumb from the unexpected brushoff from his greatest defender, Kirill hesitantly faced a grinning Nikolai, but this time he was not smiling nor was he laughing. “You really have been a bad boy, eh, Kirill? Even Ileana knows this is long overdue.” On a hearty chortle of wicked merriment, Nikolai slugged Kirill in the face and sent him flying back and into the crowd of people who stood on the sidelines watching. “I am so going to enjoy this.” 232 Forever Mine CHAPTER FOURTEEN What the hell was wrong with men? Abby thought as she trotted through the grass and toward the coral. The question shocked her because, hello, she grew up in a household with seven of them and she still had to ask? She thought she had a pretty clear perspective about men and what made them tick. She knew they were creatures of habit. She knew they had egos the size of the moon. And she knew that when those egos got hurt, they did either one of two things: cried like babies – in private, of course – or attacked the person they felt responsible for making them feel that way to begin with. Nikolai and his sick little friend were no different and she really had to wonder why she thought he would be. He was just like the rest of them, running on pure testosterone-fueled emotion, which meant he would be no different than any other male when it came to a mate. He would dominate, control, and have the last word with everything. Her shoulders slumped. Goddess, that was really depressing because for just a few minutes back in the palace, she tried to think of him differently because… well, because she really wanted to. She wasn’t in love with him, at least not yet, thank the Goddess, but every little bit of her wanted him so badly that she was willing to go beyond her comfort zone and take the chance that maybe, just maybe, he would be different. She sighed despondently. She was so confused that most likely she wasn’t seeing things clearly. Maybe she was being a bit overdramatic about the whole thing. Maybe she really hadn’t honestly given him a chance to prove he could be different because she was just that terrified he would end up being like everyone else, and then it would be too late because by then, she would have fallen in love with him and she would be doomed forever. Man, she was in a real freaking pickle and the only way she knew to escape it was to leave and get home. Forget about Lord General Nikolai Kotova, forget about the desire he made her hunger for and accept the inevitable – a boring life with Richard. Reaching the coral, Abby stopped at the fence and braced her arms on top as she leaned her chin down and stared out across the lushness spread out before her. It was really beautiful here. Surrounded by the deep forest and its tall noble trees, there was a small pond nestled in the middle. A makeshift fence enclosed a coral that circled the pond and stopped at the edge of the forest. Absently, she figured about fifty horses were grazing in their enclosure. Fine sturdy animals that looked well taken care of. A few mares had low hanging bellies, signifying the coming of new life. A small neigh came from afar, followed by the sound of small hooves trampling over the ground as a spirited foal came 233 Forever Mine trotting out from the forest. Abby watched the foal is it jumped and played in the early spring grass and she smiled. It was a peaceful scene, quiet and still, and in that tranquility, verity became crystal clear, and a very depressing thought came to her. While all her previous enlightening views were wonderful, the fact remained that they really didn’t mean shit. In the end, the reality was that she lusted for a man who had betrayed her father and been killing her kind for a century. Granted, he did it for honorable reasons, which she totally and completely understood, but the damage had already been done. A hundred years of deceit and death. A hundred years for betrayals to simmer and boil into no-holds barred hatred and bitterness. She shook her head in solemn defeat. Abby knew her father; he did not forgive – ever. He held onto antipathies and wore them like a shield around his heart. She loved him, but she was not blind to his faults. He could be a very, very hard and unyielding man, a man who had more pride than one man should and who let that pride dictate his actions. Even if she persisted with this insane desire to be with Nikolai it wouldn’t matter because her father would never give his blessing. Enragement and pure acrimony that is what her father would give. Ultimately, the feelings she felt for Nikolai would end up hurting her father and his pain and legendary pride would result in his disowning her, and that was a truth she just could not handle. Lost in her depressing as hell thoughts, Abby didn’t hear the sound of heavy boots walking toward her but she felt the touch of his arm as he came to stand beside her and leaned against the fence. She felt his heavy speculative gaze searching her features, trying to decipher her thoughts. She bet he would love for her to turn around so he could dive right into her soul with those compelling black eyes and see all her thoughts. Lucky for him, he didn’t have to. “If it were any colder I’d see smoke billowing out of your ears,” Nikolai teased then gently bumped her shoulder with his. Getting absolutely no reaction from his stubborn woman, he sighed then turned and joined her observation of the night sky. “You’re thinking too hard, Abby, thinking deep thoughts that leave you searching for answers.” He turned his head slightly, regarding her profile. “I might have the answers you seek, if you only gave me a chance,” he softly entreated. “You don’t have the answers, Nikolai.” Abby spoke softly and pensively then she turned and looked at him. I know them already.” Her beautiful brown orbs were completely exposed to him. Stark finality reflected back and foreboding entered Nikolai’s heart. “And what are the answers to these questions that leave you looking so sad and decisive?” Abby quietly contemplated the man standing by her side, patiently waiting to hear her answer. As her eyes coveted every inch of his gorgeous face, she was flooded with everything she’d been feeling since meeting him and she was reminded of how hard she tried to deny those feelings and how confusing and painful that was, and she just felt… exhausted. She was tired of denying what was in her heart and she was really tired of fighting him. 234 Forever Mine “I can’t do this anymore.” “Do what?” “This…” She waved her hand between them. “Cat and mouse game with you. It’s too hard and too confusing.” A surge of anger swept through Nikolai but he held it back. She was finally opening up to him and he wanted to hear it all. “It doesn’t have to be, lyubof.” “Yes, it does, don’t you see that?” “No. What I see are two people with a strong connection to one another. Two people who desire one another. It is as simple as that,” Nikolai staunchly answered. Abby sighed. “No, it is not simple. It’s only you and your ego that are expecting it to be that simple because it’s what you want. But it’s not and it never will be. Why can’t you see that?” Nikolai turned away because the truth that was in her eyes was also in the back of his mind. His life was never simple and his courting of Abby was no different. She was right, but just because she was right didn’t mean that was the way things had to go. Nikolai was startled by the unexpected touch of her warm body leaning against him. She moved closer and laid her hand on his forearm. It was the first time she initiated an intimate overture, at least on her own and not in lust. The sensations it aroused inside him were ones of rightness and veracity. He breathed in her scent and shivered with lust and tenderness, the need to protect and keep her safe, and the primal need to possess. He breathed out and it was as if he breathed out all the negative energy in his body, all the guilt he’d been carrying around with him, all the insecurities that echoed in his head that he was not worthy to be her mate, disappeared into the night on one simple cleansing breath. When he breathed in again, he took his first new breath. A new beginning, a new man… he was filled with an abundance of fortitude and strength. This was where she belonged, by his side. She was his, was always supposed to be his, he felt that in his soul, in the way the Darkness purred in her presence, content and completed by her essence; how at peace he and his demon were, both together, and with everything he had done in the past. She did that for him. She made him feel like a man again. He was more determined than ever to keep her right where she was. He would fight anyone for her, and most importantly, he would not let her run from them. “I want you, Nikolai.” Her throaty and direct admission had Nikolai’s midnight eyes blazing with triumph and fierce lust. “But nothing can come from it.” The light slightly dimmed as she put distance between them and stepped back, taking her heat with her and leaving him feeling empty and cold – and growing crosser. “There are too many things that stand in the way. It would be too hard.” 235 Forever Mine Fury infused Nikolai. “So you are now suddenly a coward?” His voice was chilled and quietly rousing. Abby glowered. “I am not a coward.” “Then why do you run from us? Why do you bring up minuscule bullshit that has nothing to do with us?” His fists landed hard on the top of the fence. “Because it is not bullshit! My feelings are not minuscule!” she shouted. Reaching out, Nikolai grasped her arms and roughly jerked her against him. Pitch black eyes impaled her with raw anger. “No, not your feelings, but that shitty excuse is! I have seen inside your soul Abby, I know you fear our connection. Why don’t you be the warrior you want to be recognized as and tell me why?” Abby struggled out of his hold and glared at him, her own anger pushing her feelings to the surface and spilling out of her mouth without any intent. “Because I’ll get lost in you, damn it! I won’t remember where I end and you begin! I’ll lose myself!” Her cheeks were wet from the tears cascading down, her eyes slightly swollen in her distress, but they remained open, letting Nikolai see inside her soul and the truth of her words. His anger immediately softened and he took a step closer to her. Drawing her back into his arms, he lovingly cupped her cheek. “Abby, milaya moya, I would never do that to you. I would never take away your sense of self.” “Yes, you would. Don’t you see that? You couldn’t help it because it’s just who you are!” “What does that mean?” “It means you are a vamp, Nikolai. No, let me rephrase that, you’re some kind of super vamp or some shit, I don’t know, but it doesn’t matter. You’ll always want to be in charge. You’ll always want things your way and you’ll do that no matter how it makes me feel, no matter how much I disagree!” Why would she think that? Nikolai thought but then in a flash the answer came to him. Abby had grown up a spectator to Magnus and Ella’s relationship, and no one knew better than him just how much of a bully Magnus could be but then again, Nikolai knew Ella wasn’t the type of woman to take Magnus’ shit either. She was strong and independent, and Abby was just like her. Nikolai didn’t need to grow up in their house to know that, so how come Abby couldn’t see it? “Abby, I’m not your father and you are not your mother. How we deal with each other does not have to be the same way.” The moment they brought Magnus into the conversation, something flickered in her eyes and Nikolai read it for what it was. He knew this subject would come up at some point. Even so, it was a touchy topic for him and the fact that she had thought of it as well hurt him more than it should. Nikolai’s arms dropped like dead weight and his body stiffened. “But that’s not the only thing bothering you, there’s something else. What is it?” Abby shook her head. “No, that’s it,” she softly answered but her eyes were looking anywhere but him. 236 Forever Mine Angry, Nikolai grasped her arms and yanked her toward him more roughly than he wanted to, but this was a topic that really hit deep. “Why don’t you just say it, Abaigeal? Say it!” Abby’s eyes hardened. “I don’t know what you’re talking about. I told you!” “No! What’s really bothering you is that I’m a killer. A murderer! A man who betrayed your father! And you think if I betrayed my mentor, that I would betray you as well!” Abby started back, shocked to her soul because Goddess above, he was right! She hadn’t even realized it, but a part of her did feel that way. Abby gazed at him with such candidness that Nikolai’s rage grew and his tirade continued. “Not only do you think I’ll betray your trust, but you are scared shitless as to what your father would think.” A harsh chortle left his lips. “The woman who so bodily risks his wrath by becoming a Ninja and fighting in the war is afraid to tell daddy she’s falling in love with his greatest enemy! You fear your own betrayal, Abaigeal, not mine!” Abby shook off his hold as her mind scrambled with all he said. But Nikolai grabbed her again and brought her closer, his face was a mask of fury, his voice deep with persistence and drive. “You fear my control? Well, let me build on that fear for you. I don’t give a fuck what your father has to say. I don’t fucking care if he disowns you and tries to kill me! Because I will have you! You are mine! And we will be together no matter what I have to do to achieve that!” With his heated and unwavering words, Abby’s gumption returned tenfold. “That’s great, Nikolai! See, you don’t care how I feel, you’ll just go ahead and do whatever pleases you!” “Yes, because it pleases you too, you’re just too scared to admit it!” Abby roared her anger and shrugged him off. She threw a right cross and hit him in the cheek. She would have hit him again, but he caught her fist and drew her back into his arms. “Don’t be pissed at me, lubimaya, for saying what was already in your heart,” he said with soft intensity. “If you would see past all the things that stand in our way then you would see that the only true obstacle is you!” Silence ensued as they stared into each other’s ravaged gazes. Everything he said was true, but Abby was too tired and too pissed off from his imperious comments for her to agree with him right now. “Let me go,” she quietly said. After a few seconds, Nikolai released her and she turned away from him. Goddess, she was even more troubled now than she was before because everything he said was spot-on and she had been blind to it; yet he had known. “Abby,” Nikolai gently entreated. “Please, don’t shut me out. Don’t close the door on something that could be wonderful. Give me a chance to prove I’m worthy of your love.” He took a cautious step closer until his chest lightly touched her back. When he didn’t feel her stiffen, he gently laid his hands on her shoulders. “Give me a chance to win your heart, that’s all I ask.” 237 Forever Mine “Niko, please…don’t make this any more difficult for me than it already is.” That said more to Nikolai than anything else she could have said and for the first time since this all began, he felt hopeful. He kissed the top of her head and wrapped his arms around her waist, pulling her non-resistant body back against his chest, embracing her tightly. Abby gave herself over to the tenderness that swept inside her. Closing her eyes, she leaned her head against his strong chest and rested her hands on his forearms. She was content, sad yet happy to be in his warm coveted embrace, if only for a moment. “Abby.” His voice spoke close to her ear, earnestly and whisper-soft, sending tingles of awareness down her spine. “I understand your fear, but we can get through it together, lyubof. You need to trust me and you need to believe in us. I understand more than you know how difficult your father can be, but he is a good man. Yes, he’ll be upset and yes, he’s going to want to take my head, but he loves you and he would never deny you something that you wanted.” Upset wasn’t the half of it. Abby shook her head, a harsh bitter chortle leaving her lips. “It’s his love that keeps me in a cage, Niko. It’s his love that led me to deceive him in the first place. Don’t you see that? He would never understand this. He would never agree.” She turned in his arms and looked at him with tenderness in her eyes. She reached for him. Her warm palm lay against his cheek as her eyes brimmed with truth and warmth. “I… I could easily fall in love with you, but at what expense? Losing my family? I can’t do that. I’m sorry, I just… can’t.” “You two like watching soap opera. So sad and melodramatic. You make Nissa cry.” The sniffling that came from the right had startled both Nikolai and Abby but it was Nikolai that reacted first. Turning around to face the threat, Nikolai pushed Abby behind him. A small child sat on the fence. She blew her nose and blonde curls bobbed up and down. “Who are you?” Nikolai demanded. She completely ignored him. Scowling, Nikolai opened his mouth to demand she answer him, but Abby stepped in front of him. “Nissa, where did you go?” Surprised, Nikolai turned to Abby. “You know her?” “She got me out of the palace.” Abby looked at him quizzically. “I thought you knew who she was.” Nikolai shook his head then angrily turned on Nissa. “Who the hell are you?” Unfazed by his anger, Nissa smiled brightly. “I am Nissa.” She jumped down off the fence and grabbed Abby’s hand, pulling her away from Nikolia. “Time to go, much to see and little time to see it in.” Nissa began to pull Abby away, but the sound of Nikolai’s livid growl stopped her. She turned slowly and with frightful eyes saw the Darkness. 238 Forever Mine “Where do you think you’re going with my S’airsul, elf?” it demanded in Old Norse. Nissa gasped with outrage. Her face turned bright red as her body grew until she was standing as tall as Abby. “Um, Niko, she really doesn’t like to be called elf, maybe you should apologize,” Abby suggested with a nervous smile on her face, afraid of what the Leshy would do. “Nissa not an elf, Nissa a Leshy!” Nissa’s voice grew as her body did, becoming a booming sound that echoed throughout the night. Abby’s eyes widened and she began to look at the little Leshy with more admiration and respect than she had before. Clearly, not a being you want to trifle with. “Niko…” Abby pleaded with Nikolai to calm down, but evidently he felt no such threat from Nissa’s quick display of temper and power. The Darkness snorted then addressed the Leshy in that strange language. “I don’t care what you are. You are not taking my S’airsul anywhere.” Hearing Upyrian sparked an unexpected laugh from Nissa. She threw her hands up in the air and shrunk back to her natural size, her giggles filling the night. “Sometimes Nissa very forgetful, I sorry, master.” Feeling no more threat the Darkness faded away. Nikolai gazed back at the Leshy with one black eyebrow quirked up in unspoken question. “Nissa taking Abby now, master. You will follow because you are meant to. When you find us, you will see what Nissa mean. Then Nissa will accept your apology for calling Nissa elf and Nissa in turn will forgive you.” She smiled brightly. Nikolai was darkly scowling then right before his eyes Nissa grabbed Abby’s hand and blinked. They were gone. “Abby!” Nikolai screamed into the dark night, his eyes frantically searching the shadowed forest that surrounded him. Where the hell did they go? “She is right, warrior, you are meant to follow. It is your destiny to learn the truth.” Nikolai spun around to stare at Ileana as she stood behind him. Had she been there the whole time? “What the hell is going on?” The witch smiled, showing her missing teeth. “You are a good man, Nikolai Kotova. A man who has made many sacrifices for those he loved. A man who has gone out of his way to make sure innocents like myself and my ill-bred boy are kept safe. Yes, you have lived a hard life and all of it not of your choosing.” She sadly shook her head. Nikolai snorted. “I made choices, the wrong ones, but they were mine to make nonetheless.” “Perhaps, but it was the path you were on that led you to make those choices. A path that others set you on.” 239 Forever Mine Nikolai had no idea what the hell she was talking about, but he couldn’t waste time standing here doing nothing when some obnoxious little elf - or Leshy, whatever the hell it was - just took Abby. He didn’t know where the elf took Abby, but he would find out and he would get Kirill to help him. It was the least he could do after all, and considering he would be bedridden for a few days anyway from the beating Nikolai gave him, he had nothing else to do. “I don’t have time for riddles, witch.” Ileana’s boney hand landed on his chest with the force of ten men, bringing him to an abrupt halt. “You have time for this one, warrior. There is much you don’t know. Secrets that have been hidden for far too long. Now it is time for them to be known. Now it is time for you to learn.” Ileana reached into her pocket and pulled out a small pouch. She opened it, stuck three fingers inside and drew out some kind of silvery powder. Her hand rose to her mouth, her lips pursed then she blew it directly in Nikolai’s face. The moment the silver substance entered his nostrils, Nikolai felt it move swiftly as it swam through his nose at rapid speed, tickling his throat as it did and making him cough. “What the…” Ileana keenly and calmly observed Nikolai as he stumbled back and shook his head. “Now you carry the magic to follow your woman.” Nikolia felt magic coursing through his entire being. He felt the Darkness snap to life, felt the incredible mystical power as it quickly absorbed it. When the tingling passed, Nikolai straightened and shook off the remnant itch the magic caused. He was acutely aware of the fact that another piece of the puzzle had just been put into place. “What was that, what did you to?” Ileana chuckled. “Nothing you didn’t already have the power to do.” “What are you talking about?” Ileana’s eyes hardened and her voice grew stronger. “You tasted her blood, did you not?” Nikolai took a step closer, fierce anger surging through him. “What do you know about it?” “You are Upyr, warrior.” Nikolai snorted. “Half.” Now it was Ileana’s time to snort. “Yes… half.” She studied him and Nikolai felt like she was reading him like a book. “You have not drank fully yet, but you have tasted her. The magic has always been inside you, I have simply helped you, that is all. When you fully bond with your mate, you will no longer need an old witch’s assistance.” She turned, leaving Nikolai stupefied with his mouth hanging open. “What the fuck are you talking about?” Ileana chuckled once again and Nikolia wanted to rip her head off. “You go now, time is running out.” Nikolai threw his hands up in the air in complete and utter exasperation. “Go where, old witch?” “Think of your mate, warrior, and the magic will take you to her.” 240 Forever Mine Nikolai closed his eyes, seeking patience, but instead he was immediately bombarded with images of Abby. The bleak look on her face when she whispered with great sadness what was in her heart, her beautiful eyes glistening with tears and the most incredible feeling of her giving him her warmth and affection. Goddess, he needed that. He needed it so bad he could taste it, could feel his soul crying out for hers. His eyes snapped open and Nikolai found himself standing in the middle of a forest he had never been in, with his feet firmly set on the skeleton of an old dirt road that wound up a mountain he had never before seen. “Ileana, what have you done?” He didn’t expect answer but nonetheless… he got one. Out of the darkness, he saw a thick fog coming out of the forest and rolling toward him. Before he knew what was going on, he was completely enclosed within its thick damp walls. It pricked him with irrefutable licks of magic. Coarse undertones of an unknown language came from within the fog and centered on him. It was alive. With what, he did not know, but he knew he was being observed. He growled menacingly at the mist. “Show yourself.” Words drifted out from the fog once again. He felt the prick of a sharp claw on his shoulder and he swiftly moved to his left to see what had made it, but there was nothing but dense hot mist. Feeling a bit out of his element, Nikolai let the Darkness emerge, and when it did, it roared threateningly and repeated the words Nikolai just spoke, but this time in Upyrian. Silence ensued but the feeling of being studied only increased as the fog moved closer, touching him, skating over his skin like a dog sniffing a bone. Then it all stopped. Seconds ticked by and the fog slowly receded and an opening appeared in front of him. It did not completely disappear; it just lifted and cleared a path for him. The thick air from before dissipated and he breathed in fresh cool air that had the slightest hint of sweetness to it. Perplexed, Nikolai studied the mist as it hovered around him, almost protectively. The path before him opened further and like a pair of arms waiting for him to step inside, the mist swept to the side. As it did, Nikolai’s vision became clearer. What had previously been hidden in the depth of the fog was revealed and his eyes widened with what he saw. Standing in the distance, high atop a formidable mountain and outlined against the pitch black starless sky, stood a monstrous stone castle. It took his breath away and made the Darkness howl. The connection with Abby hummed vigorously and the Darkness spoke with fervent want. “S’airsul.” Nikolai could not refrain the Darkness from taking control, he didn’t want to. He allowed his demon to take the lead, knowing that the Darkness would know where to go, what to do. It sniffed the air, its head whipping to the right as 241 Forever Mine it picked up the sound of men talking in the distance. Hearing the name of its nemesis being said, it growled fiercely with abhorrence. Then, on an animalistic roar, turned right into the woods and took off. Sitting in the gatehouse five miles up the dirt road, two soldiers looked at each other. “What the hell was that?” one whispered to the other who shook his head. “I don’t know, but I think I agree with Count Kotova, these woods are haunted.” ********** The moment Abby’s feet touched solid ground she fell to her knees and heaved. Goddess above, what the hell just happened? She felt Nissa calmly rubbing her back as she hummed a soft tune, she guessed in an attempt to reassure her, but she didn’t feel reassured; she felt dizzy and discombobulated. She felt like she had been picked up, thrown into the air hurling at impossible speeds then dropped like dead weight. Her body ached and her throat was parched and raw. Had she been screaming? Nissa giggled. “Yes, you have very strong vocal chords.” Nissa placed her hands on her knees and bent toward Abby’s face. Her head titled to the side in an annoyingly cute way. “It’s a bit strange the first time, but you’ll get used to it.” Nissa jumped up and Abby turned irksome eyes to see the Leshy spinning around in a circle. “Gods blood, Nissa, will you stop that, you’re turning my stomach.” Nissa stopped immediately and rushed over to Abby’s side. She took her arm and helped her to her feet. “I sorry, Abby, I just very excited!” Nissa opened her mouth to say something else, most likely something that would have Abby clenching her fists at her side to keep from strangling her, but then her mouth snapped shut. Her eyes became slits as she tilted her head to the right and… sniffed the air? Abby chuckled. “Is that your impersonation of a dog? ‘Cause I gotta tell you, it’s pretty damn accurate.” Glowing red eyes zeroed in on Abby. “Shh…” Nissa’s voice was ragged, but it wasn’t the voice that had Abby jumping back in surprise, it was her eyes; glowing unnaturally and steadily staring at her. “Someone coming. Quickly, hide.” Just like that Nissa disappeared and that’s when Abby heard the sounds of feet scuffling against stone and the voices of men. Frantically Abby looked around. She had no idea where she was but the barren room she was left nowhere to hide. “Damn you, Nissa! Don’t just leave me here!” “I know I heard voices coming from the hall.” The footsteps got louder and two men turned the corner. Seeing Abby standing there, surprise crossed their faces then surprise quickly turned to anger as they rushed her with their crossbows raised pointed directly at her. 242 Forever Mine Oh, isn’t this just great. She was going to kill that troublesome little Leshy. Abby smiled. “Uh, hi!” “Who are you? How did you get inside?” “Um, well… you see, that’s actually kind of funny because I, um… don’t know.” Abby smiled again then shrugged. “I don’t suppose you could tell me exactly where here is?” They closed the distance between them until one held a crossbow against Abby’s heart and the other held one against her temple. “You are in Russia.” One man said. “Well, duh, we are conversing in Russian, aren’t we? I mean, really, are you that stupid?” The man standing to her right pushed the sharp point of the crossbow against her temple. “How did you get inside the Gorod?” The man in front of her stepped closer and pressed the tip of his bow against her chest as he did. “And how did you even find it?” he asked. Abby exhaled. “Look, guys, I really would love to answer your questions, seeing how nice you are in asking them and all.” They continued to stare at her blankly and Abby rolled her eyes. “Right, over the heads, huh, fellas? I can tell you two are just brimming with intelligence.” She guessed they got that insult when she felt the sharp point of the bow once more pushing against her temple. She put her hands up. “Okay, okay… geez, not much for a joke, are you? You know, you guys are way too serious, you need to learn to lighten up a little; relax, enjoy life. After all, there is so much to see.” The one in front of her snorted. “Really, like what?” Abby casually crossed her arms over her chest and tapped one finger against her chin as she looked up at the ceiling in deep thought. “Well, let me think for a minute.” Her eyes lit and she looked back at the man in front of her, snapping her fingers. “I got it. Tell me, have you ever seen a trained Ninja Blendling kill a vampire in one second flat?” The men’s eyes became slits as they shared another confused look before the one in front of her turned back to her. “No. Now stop playing these games and tell…” Abby leaned back and grabbed the cross bow at her temple then rammed it into the heart of the vamp in front of her. Then she ducked and swung it up again slamming it into the chest of the one to her right. Straightening, Abby dusty the ashes off and smiling. “Well, now you have.” She turned around to look for that rotten little Leshy and walked right into the cold hard steel of a gun. “You’re fast, but you can’t beat a bullet, Blendling,” a vamp sneered around a mouthful of fangs. “No, but I can.” The vamp’s head was spun completely around. Abby heard the snap of his neck then watched as his body fell to the ground. “I had that, you know,” she irately said as she looked up at Nikolai, who had appeared out of nowhere. 243 Forever Mine “I know, but I enjoy killing Arnost’s men so much more than you do.” Thinking of the things Nikolai told her, Abby harrumphed. “No doubt.” She gazed down at the vamp’s lifeless body on the floor; stomach down, dead eyes were staring straight up at her. Freaky. “You have a thing for twisting people’s heads, don’t you?” Nikolai shrugged a big shoulder then he leaned down until they were eye to eye. Abby couldn’t help but watch his full lips as they quirked up into a panty creamer smirk. “I‘m good with my hands.” His voice was deep and sensual, and he followed it up with a sexy wink that had Abby’s lower body shooting sparks of wet heat. Held immobile by the memory of just how good his hands were, Abby watched as he took a deep breath that had him shivering and his eyes turning pitch black. His smile turned feral and the hum throbbed wickedly. All she could do was pray to the Goddess that he would keep that sinful mouth shut because if he said one naughty word, she wouldn’t be able to control herself. There was a crackle from the lit torch on the wall that thankfully snapped her out of her lustful daze. What the hell was she doing? Taking a step back, Abby glared. The man had a penchant for getting her all hot and bothered at the most inappropriate times and places; it was really annoying. “Stop that.” “Stop what?” he innocently asked. Fine, he wanted to play that game? Well, she could too. Abby stuck her nose up in the air then spun away. As she sidestepped him, she caught a glimpse of an amused grin on his face but she ignored him and instead started to inspect the room and as she did, she frowned. What a strange place. The room was in the shape of a circle. With no windows, it was dark and gloomy. Cold. “Do you have any idea where we are?” Abby asked as she continued to slowly walk around the room. Nikolai took his time to look around the vast room. He hadn’t when he first popped in. For one reason, the fact that he just popped in had been… weird, and two, because he’d been zoned in on the vamp threatening his woman and not his surroundings. Now, however, in the aftermath of a sizzling moment Abby was intent on ignoring, he regarded the room with as much curiosity as she did. “No.” For a few quiet seconds, they explored the room. It was a wide open space. It held no furniture or rugs. The only embellishment it did have were the torches on the stone walls that provided meager light against the dark grey of the big stone blocks. It was just empty space, but it was a big empty space… really big and really cold. Abby rubbed her arms. “How did you get here so fast? How did you know where I was?” She finally looked at Nikolai, but he had already turned away from her and was doing his own inspection of the large cavernous room. 244 Forever Mine Fuck if I know, Nikolai thought. He kept his scattered thoughts to himself because there was no need to fuel more fire to Abby’s fear. He stopped in the middle of the room and answered her offhandedly as he once again shrugged one big shoulder. “I just thought of you and… here I am.” Then he stopped talking and his head slowly rose. Abby, who was already eyeballing him suspiciously, because hello - what the hell did that mean? - followed his gaze as his lifted to the ceiling. She whistled. “Wow, that has got to be the tallest cathedral ceiling I have ever seen.” Without even realizing it, she walked up to Nikolai’s side. “What do you think? Thirty feet?” Nikolai shook his head. “Forty easily, maybe fifty. If you think that’s impressive,” he pointed to the door to the left of them. Abby’s eyes bulged. “Bloody hell!” She walked over to the closed door hidden in the dark shadows. She laid her hand on top of it then slowly traced the intricate carving. She couldn’t exactly make it out standing so close so she took a step back, then two, then another and that was when the carving lost its awe effect. The door was made out of some kind of wood, which wasn’t unusual, but what was bizarre was the size of the door. Slowly Abby looked up the span of the archway. That door had to be about twenty feet high and twenty wide. “Now that is impressive. Who the hell lives here?” she asked, gazing back at Nikolai whose face looked as bewildered as she felt. The funny thing was that while Nikolai had no idea where he was, no idea how he got here, and was clueless as to why a person would want such height in their ceilings and doorways, he felt… “I… I belong here.” Without conscious thought, Abby walked over and playfully slapped him on the arm. “Baby, you’re big, but you’re not that big.” The moment she said it, her eyes widened. Where the hell had that come from? Abby took a step back then frowned as she caught Nikolai smirking smugly. She could feel her cheeks getting red and she turned away. “Not yet, at least.” Nikolai and Abby turned and faced the opposite side of the room. There, in front of another door, this one wide open, stood Nissa. Frowning, Abby approached her with Nikolai hot on her trail. “Nissa, next time you leave me alone like that, and without any warning, I’m going to strangle you.” Nissa pouted. “Strangle Nissa! Don’t be mad at Nissa, mistress. Nissa had to go. Them vamps can’t see Nissa.” She shook her head back and forth. “No, no, that very bad. That against the rules.” “Rules, what rules?” Abby asked as she shared a look with Nikolai. Nissa smiled once again then stepped into the doorway. “Come, Nissa show you.” 245 Forever Mine Nikolai and Abby watched as Nissa literally floated through the doorway. With cautious steps, they followed her. Walking through the door, they saw her float up a winding stone staircase. “Come, quickly, time is running short.” Abby went to walk up the stairs, but Nikolai reached out and grabbed her arm. “Get behind me.” He pulled her behind his broad back and started up the steps. Abby rolled her eyes. “Get behind me, man must protect woman,” she said in a deep mocking voice, then in her own voice added, “Overbearing control freak.” Nikolai’s steps never faltered as he answered her. “Yes, and this overbearing control freak wants to keep you safe. Now keep quiet and move. We don’t know where that wretched creature is taking us. We have to be ready for anything.” Abby would have taken exception to that, but he said the magic word that made her heart pang – ‘we.’ Smiling like a dolt, Abby quietly followed Nikolai up the steps. With each winding turn, the treads took them higher and higher into the castle. When they finally reached a small platform, Abby looked down… and down and down. Her body swayed forward, feeling like she was going to fall. She gasped and reached out to grab onto something just as Nikolai’s arm shot out around her waist and yanked her back against his chest. He raggedly whispered in her ear, “Take care, lubimaya, I adore that body too much to see it flattened on the floor like a pancake.” "Come, this way.” Nissa’s voice was full of excitement and Abby couldn’t help but wonder what lay behind the very large door Nissa was impatiently standing in front of. This door was the same size as the one in the room below, but it instead of it being wood, it was metal, and just like the door below, it was forged into an articulate pattern of swirls and circles, all forming into and coming out of… Abby peered closer. “Is that a dragon?” Nikolai studied the pattern and as he did, the Darkness stirred restlessly, increasing the edginess he felt. Whatever was behind that door was important. “It looks like a Zmey Gorynych.” He stood back and considered the door as whole. “A Zmey Gorynych getting his heads taken off.” He pointed to what appeared to look like a man on a horse swinging a very big sword. Nikolai felt itchy all over. He stared at the door, feeling excited and uneasy all at the same time. He didn’t move as his gaze settled and fixated on the door that, for some reason, meant something to him. As Nikolai’s gaze was glued to the door, Abby’s was curiously glued to him, and getting more nervous with every second. He seemed a bit off center. His hand rose to his chin. Then he slowly rubbed it back and forth, never once taking his eyes off that door. He was deep in thought, completely attuned to the metal door. The hum inside her grew with anxiety. “Nikolai?” 246 Forever Mine “You feel it, don’t you, master?” Nissa asked with glowing eyes and a voice that sounded as ancient as time itself. Nissa stared at Nikolai with a steady, almost ruthless concentration that was unsettling Abby. “Feel what?” She looked back and forth between the Leshy and Nikolai, who still hadn’t taken his eyes off that damn door. “Nikolai?” Her voice grew louder as her concern grew. Nikolai nodded his head. He could hear Abby’s breath increasing. He could feel her growing distress through the hum. So attuned to the door and what was behind it, he could not verbalize the reassurance he wanted to give her, so instead he reached out and took her hand in his, squeezing it gently, hoping it would calm her, hoping it would calm him. “It’s… mine.” Nikolai’s voice sounded far off, like he was somewhere else completely and though he held Abby’s hand in his and she could feel the heat and weight of the body beside her, it was almost like he wasn’t even there, that’s how distracted he was. She moved closer and ran her free hand up his arm, squeezing him tightly against her breasts. “Niko, please… look at me.” He didn’t move, didn’t utter a sound, he just kept staring at the door. “Stop looking at the fucking door!” she yelled frantically but he was completely unresponsive. It was as if he was in a trance, lost in his own thoughts and it was seriously freaking Abby out. “What lies behind this door is the answer to all the questions you seek.” Nissa’s voice rang out like thunder. The calm almost heady tone snapped Abby’s control. Riding a fierce wave of protective violence, Abby reached out and snatched the Leshy by the throat, slamming her tiny body against the metal door. “What the fuck are you doing to him, you little bitch!” She viciously shook Nissa. “If you don’t stop it, I’ll fucking kill you.” Abby’s rage knew no bounds as she sneered into the Leshy’s face and tightened her hold. She was so unbalanced that her high emotions sparked through the hum and jolted Nikolai to what was happening around him. Walking over to Abby’s side, Nikolai laid a hand on Abby’s shoulder. “Abby, stop.” Crazed brown eyes fixated on him. She was breathing rapidly, her pulse was firing with fury, and it was all for him. Nikolai softly smiled. “It’s okay, lyubof, let her go. I’m fine.” Abby stared into calm blue eyes and felt a push of serenity through the hum. Instantly she released Nissa who slumped to the floor and stared up at Abby with tears in her eyes. Abby stood motionless. She blinked and sanity returned. What had she done? She would have killed Nissa, there was no doubt in her mind. She had been so enraged, so out of control that she didn’t know what came over her. All she felt was incredible fear and fathomless anger that Nissa had been harming Nikolai. 247 Forever Mine Now, in the aftermath she felt them both staring at her, one with love and affection, the other with alarm and fear. Her face reddened. “She was doing something to you. I… I had to stop her.” As Nissa quietly sniffled on the floor, Nikolai’s smile grew even tenderer as he drew Abby into his arms. He hugged her tightly then bestowed one gentle kiss to her lips. “It’s okay, lyubof, she wasn’t hurting me. But thank you for caring.” He kissed her again, this time more intently. He lingered, taking his time, reveling in the sweet taste of a love not yet realized. As her lips softened against his then slowly began to firm, seeking more of his mouth, Nikolai sighed and reluctantly released her. Void of his kiss, Abby held onto his arms with strength. Her eyes were dazed with her desire as she gazed up at him with tenderness brimming in her eyes. Nikolai’s heart lurched with love as he ran his hand through her hair. She closed her eyes and rubbed her cheek against his arm. Their gazes met again, they shared a soft smile full of everything they were feeling, but unable to say. He dropped one last kiss on her forehead and held her hand in his then his smile vanished as he looked at the door once again. “I know this is going to sound funny, but I feel that whatever is behind this door is going to change everything.” “Nissa no hurt master! Nissa only doing what Nissa told to do!” Nissa cried out and the sound was downright pitiful. Feeling guilt, Abby got down on her knees and lifted Nissa’s chin. “I’m so sorry, Nissa, you just scared me and I...” Startling Abby and interrupting her guilt ridden apology, Nissa jumped up and chuckled with glee. “You were afraid for the Lummox!” Nikolai viewed Abby with one black eyebrow rose. She gave him a halfsmile and shrugged. “See, everything the way it supposed to be! Mistress care for master, master care for mistress. This is how it should be.” Nissa swung her arms wide and the doors unexpectedly flew open. “This is the beginning, the now, the end… this is forever!” On a giggle, she performed a graceful backward flip then floated into the room. Nikolai just stood there, his midnight eyes stared fiercely at the open door; his heart was racing in his chest and he felt like he was going to have an anxiety attack. Did vampires get anxiety attacks? But then he felt Abby’s hand in his. Nikolai looked down into her steady brown gaze. Abby smiled, squeezing his hand reassuringly. “Ready to step into the twilight zone Lummox?” She teasingly asked. Abby’s smile blinded Nikolai with tranquility. Returning her smile, he brought her hand to his mouth and kissed her knuckles. “As ready as I’ll ever be, my little warrior.” With hands grasped tightly together, they walked into the room. They didn’t know what they would discover but they both knew it would be lifealtering. 248 Forever Mine CHAPTER FIFTEEN “Oh my Goddess… this is amazing… beautiful!” Abby took a step further into the room, dropping Nikolai’s hand as she did. “It’s a mural… a…” She stopped as a wave of dizziness suddenly hit her. Nikolai drew his gaze away from the painted ceiling to see Abby holding her head and swaying on her feet. “Abby, are you alright?” He rushed to her side just as she fell back and into his arms. “Abby!” “I… I feel really tired… so…” She gazed at him with unfocused eyes that slowly started to fall. “…tired.” Abby’s lids closed and her head hung loosely over Nikolai’s arm. In a panic, Nikolia lightly shook her. “Abby… Abaigeal! Wake up!” A vehement snarl filled the room. Black eyes looked at the Leshy who stood quietly to the side watching. “What’s happened to her?” Nissa slowly and cautiously approached Nikolai. “She okay, master. She sleeping, that all.” “Did you do this?” Nikolai roared. Nissa’s eyes widened and she took a step back. “No, master, not Nissa.” She looked over his shoulder. “Doki did.” Nikolai quickly spun around to confront whatever this new threat was. From out of the shadowed corner, a figure emerged. It was a small, baldheaded male standing no taller than three feet. He had a long red beard that swept the floor with every step that brought him closer to Nikolai. His round face glistened as if he’d been crying. His startling green eyes were swollen and red. When he reached Nikolai, he dropped to his knees and bowed respectfully. “Master, I cannot believe my eyes. You are here. They told me you would come, but I could not believe them.” Nikolai was in not in the mood for sad sap ramblings that meant shit to him. “Stop with the fucking gibberish and explain what you did to Abby! Now!” he demanded on a menacing roar. Doki immediately twisted the hat he held nervously. “She is fine, master, she is only sleeping.” “Sleeping?” Unsure whether or not to believe this Doki, Nikolai looked down at Abby in concern. Her eyes were closed and her chest peacefully rose with each breath she took. Her face was still and relaxed; she was indeed soundly sleeping. Perplexed, Nikolai glared at Doki. “Why?” He turned around to face them both, feeling cornered and unsure. He clutched Abby’s still form closer to him, protectively. “What the hell is going on here?” 249 Forever Mine Doki held Nikolai’s accusing glare and smiled. It was kind and gentle, meaningful. It confused Nikolai even more. “She needed to sleep, master. She will be fine. Trust me when I tell you that we…” He waved his hand between himself and Nissa. “Would never hurt her or you. What must be revealed in this room tonight is for you to hear and see.” “Then why bring her here?” “Like Nissa told master, you were meant to follow.” “Why? I don’t understand…” He stopped in mid-sentence as Nissa’s small, childlike form grew larger and approached him. Keeping her bright blue gaze on Nikolai, Nissa tentatively reached out and gently laid her hand on Abby’s hair than she began to lightly, almost lovingly, stroke her. “She’s not yet ready to hear what must be said. She fights destiny, she is afraid of all that will be. This…” Nissa looked up and all around at the mural surrounding them. “This will only scare her more.” Nissa stopped stroking Abby’s hair. She stepped back and held out her arms. “Please, master, give her to me. You have nothing to fear.” Nikolai was unsure what to do. For some reason, he trusted both of these strange creatures and he knew that whatever it was they had to tell him he must hear. Still, he was reluctant to hand Abby over to Nissa. Should something happen, she could not protect herself if she was sleeping, and he still had no idea just where the hell they were. Nissa felt Nikolai’s concern so she waited patiently for him to release his beloved package. She held his gaze with no pretense, showing him the truth of her words, what was in her heart. Her sincerity reached Nikolai and he gave her a small nod of this head. Leaning down, he lightly grazed his lips against Abby’s. She smiled softly and turned her head toward him, seeking more. He smiled, kissing her gently once again. “I will come for you later, lubimaya, I promise.” Nikolai gave Abby one last kiss then hesitantly handed her over to Nissa who was now as tall as him. The Darkness emerged and swiftly grew an intimidating foot taller than the Leshy. They snarled down at her, the combined will of both the man and the demon, and spoke to her in Upyrian. “If you hurt her, I will make you suffer a thousand deaths.” Nissa simply smiled as she cradled Abby in her arms. Then she bowed respectfully, acquiescing to the demon’s authority. When she rose, her smile was gone, and her eyes once more reflected her earnest. “You will come to understand, master, that Nissa cannot hurt her mistress. Nissa here only to protect and keep her safe. Thank you, master, for your trust.” She inclined her head at Nikolai then, looking over at Doki, she curtly nodded, blinked, and was gone. Nikolai concentrated on the hum, making sure Abby was still near. When he felt her soul still close by, he relaxed slightly and took a deep, deep breath. When he felt prepared for whatever was about to happen, he turned toward Doki, who stood patiently waiting for his attention. “Who are you?” 250 Forever Mine Doki stood tall with shoulders proudly back. “I am Doki, Lechie of the Ural Mountain Forests that protect this Gorod. I have been guardian of this forest for hundreds of thousands of years, and I have been the Lechie to the Master of this Gorod for more than a thousand centuries.” Nikolai looked around the room and at the mural that depicted what he could only decipher as some sort of storyboard to someone’s life. He saw images of children, men and women, young and old, wars being fought, children being born, mating rites taking place, and he saw blood - lots of blood. It was beautiful; colorful, almost alive with the story it was wordlessly telling. He could almost hear the sounds of children laughing. He could feel the profound emotions of love and family as it flowed through the rainbow of life it luminously portrayed and wrapped around him like a warm comforting blanket. He felt… connected to it. Like he was a vital piece of this stunning mural and that it was a piece of him. It was the same sensation that struck him before when he looked at the doors. Familiar… his. “Whose house is this?” he quietly and warily asked. Doki watched the young master with a gleam in his eye. “Why, it is your house, master.” Though Nikolai felt the truth of Doki’s words in his heart, his brain, which was always logical, barked its skepticism. “My house?” Doki nodded and a harsh laugh spilled from Nikolai’s lips. “I don’t know where you’ve been, little fellow, but I just got here. I didn’t even know this place existed, so how the hell could it be my house?” “There is much for you to know, master, and the easiest way for me to tell you is for you to see for yourself. Please sit, master, it is better this way.” Nikolai sat down on the floor and crossed his legs, warily watching as Doki stood in front of him in the middle of the room and lifted his hands. He closed his eyes and in a language, which Nikolai assumed was that of the Lechie, began to chant. He didn’t not know what to expect but as Doki continued to chant, Nikolai’s vision became blurry and he felt himself becoming lighter. In the silence of the room, he began to hear noises that logically could not be taking place where he physically sat. The noises grew louder and he jerked as a high-pierced scream filled his ears, followed by wails of pain and the sound of swords slicing through flesh and dead bodies slapping on stone. He inhaled and the copper taste of blood settled in his senses and on his tongue, a scent that was somehow familiar to him. As the noises grew louder, his eyes got heavier until he could no longer keep them open. The last thing Nikolai saw before they closed completely was the Lechie standing as a tall as a mountain, his red beard blowing in a fierce cyclone that swirled around them; his voice was louder and deeper, ringing in the background with the sounds of the past. He looked down at Nikolai and his green eyes glowed with vibrancy, dark and light, the past and the now. He felt his soul leave his body and, on a gasp of shock, he slammed into another. The man’s actions became his own. The man’s heart beat in Nikolai’s chest, his thoughts became his, his pain and anger surged through him. 251 Forever Mine Nikolai fell back against the floor and dreamed of another time, a time long ago, a time forgotten by many and hidden from all… He could barely make it up the stairs, but he would. No matter what happened to him, or to his clan, who were already in the throes of a deadly battle in the courtyard below, he would make it up this winding staircase and he would save her. He must, for there was no other option for Maksim Tereschenko. His hand gripped the railing as his feet doggedly met the next step. The bastards; he still could not believe he had been betrayed by the man he gave eternal life to, the one person in the world he never would have seen it coming from and in such a cowardly way no less. He lifted his leg, something that should have been the most natural thing to do, becoming more of chore with each step he tried to take - morphine. He could taste it’s vileness on his lips, feel the drug running through his veins; his mind was becoming hazy, his body slowing down, wanting only to lie down and dream, but he would not. He must get up the stairs and get Sasha out of the house. He was no fool, he might have been blind when it came to the betrayer, but he knew what they were about now. As they held him down with chains and held the blasted vile to his lips, forcing his mouth open to drink, he told Maksim. Hatred and resentment spewed from his lips, along with his plans for Maksim’s beloved. How had this happened? How could he have been so blind to what was going on around him? He didn’t have any answers except that he had just been content. For centuries, he had walked D’rkenrealm as only half a man. A cold, hard warrior with only one purpose: to destroy his enemies and keep the Clan safe and alive. And he had, for a long time. He had lived through the Three Thousand Year war with the Lycans just as he had survived The Brethren Wars, and he had done so with no other thoughts but to preserve the House of Maksim. He had thought he was content, living the life of the warrior he had been trained to be; it wasn’t until he saw her that he knew was not. Aleksandra Volynski changed everything. From the first moment he saw her, he knew he was one of the lucky few to find his S’airsul. He had heard the stories before, how an Upyr was never complete until they met their S’airsul but he had scoffed at that. He already felt complete, how could a woman change that? But from the first moment he saw her, he could not mock it any more. For his heart had beat with new life. His Darkness had filled his entire being, power unlike anything he had ever before felt had cascaded inside him with no way to stop it or control it. It had just happened. Of course, he was an arrogant bastard, and even though he felt the connection to her, even though he knew he loved her, and even though he joined his life with hers, he still could not admit that it was she that completed his change and made him what he was. He could deny it no longer. For it was the sickening words the traitor spoke that riled Maksim’s Darkness to the most violent degree it had ever grown before. 252 Forever Mine Somewhere between the last drop of morphine that rolled down his throat and the last word vehemently spat in his ear, he lost consciousness and when he gained it back, he was here, trekking up the staircase as fast as his drug-induced body would allow him to go. He didn’t need to wonder what happened to get him here. The Darkness retaliated against the threats to their S’airsul; it broke through the otherwise unbreakable bonds that had held the body back. The blood Maksim was covered in was the proof… his Darkness ripped them all to shreds. He was almost there, just a few more steps to go, and then he had to make it down the hallway and to his chamber before they returned, before the hushed silence of death reached their ears. Maksim smirked as his foot stumbled slightly; the cowards were probably still hiding outside in the forest, expecting the Darkness to come after them. Which is exactly where that coward ran to when he saw the change happening. The bastard was quite familiar with Maksim’s demon and when he saw it coming, he ran and left the others there to deal with it. He wasn’t surprised; the traitor was not Upyr, he did not have the power of the Darkness inside him, nor did his accomplice. Neither one could overtake their pure blood lords honorably, so they drugged them instead. That night, at Maksim’s very own table, from his very own wine, the two men with their turned vamp minions, drugged all the Pure Bloods from both Maksim’s house and Halvard’s. When the women went to sleep and the morphine started to take effect, they attacked. As his foot reached for the last step, the image of Halvard’s face and that of his Darkness desperately trying to get out of the drug induced state, flashed in Maksim’s mind. Shock and then anger had reflected on Halvard’s face right before his head rolled off his shoulders. Halvard’s blood had gushed out onto the walls and onto Arnost, his second-in-command, who still held Halvard’s sword in his hand. With his sire’s blood dripping off the steel, the bastard had smiled with twisted glee. Bastards. It was a coward’s treachery, something so reprehensible that Maksim did not even think the Lycans would commit it. It was nothing less than the most despicable act a warrior could do. He could at least get some measure of relief in knowing that, should the Goddess Anaya see fit to take his life tonight, at least the traitors would burn in hell when their time came. For no act as spineless as this one could go unpunished by the Gods. Somehow he made it down the hall to his chamber. Using the wall as leverage, he managed to stand and walk into it. “Sasha! Wake up!” Closing the door, Maksim limped over to the bed where his beloved lay sleeping. Sasha heard the urgent tone and felt calloused hands gripping her naked shoulders, but it was from a dream of impassioned words and soft caresses that she was being roused from, so even the ominous feeling of dread that filled her soul could not make her eyes open any faster. “Aleksandra!” 253 Forever Mine Louder, sharper… angry, the voice rattled her to her core. Her eyes finally snapped open and she peered into the black orbs of her love. “Maksim? What, what is amiss?” Maksim Tereschenko gazed into the most beautiful pair of azure eyes he had ever seen. He could gaze into them for hours on end and he had many times before. They had only been mated for a year, but it was the most blessed and loved year of his entire existence. She was so special to him, had given him such a sense of purpose and life, that it was no surprise she had become his everything. Protecting her was the only thing that mattered. His eyes blackened further, the veins on his face protruded with a violent beat; he would kill anyone who tried to harm her, destroy anyone who tried to take her away from him. “Shh, listen to me very carefully, Sasha. I need you to get up and get dressed, very quickly. Do you understand me, lubimaya?” Sasha did not know what was going on, but as she stared into her mate’s deep gaze and felt his life force inside her vibrating with anger and outrage, the sounds of what was happening finally registered. It was the sound of rolling thunder riding toward their home. A battle cry at the gate. Swords clashing together. Her azure eyes that Maksim valued so much flashed with alarm… they were being attacked! “Yes, Maksim, I understand.” “Good.” He threw her clothes on the bed and stood up. “Hurry, milaya, you must be quick.” Sasha jumped up and haphazardly pulled the clothes on that he gave her as Maksim moved around the room with purpose. “Quickly, milaya, there is no time to waste.” Sasha pulled on her leather riding pants and the wool tunic her mother had made for her then slipped on her fur boots and tied her hair up at the base of her neck. “Are you ready, lubimaya?” He spoke to her calmly and softly, but Sasha felt his fear for her in their bond and she felt something else, something that scared her more than the clashing sounds of war at their gates - it was the ever slowing sound of her mate’s heartbeat. Goddess above, he was dying. Her eyes swelled and tears cascaded down her cheeks. She shook her head frantically. “Maksim, please, no… please, Goddess, no!” Maksim gripped her face in his big hands, gently, yet in urgent need to touch and feel her soft skin one last time. “Shh, lubimaya, I’m sorry… it is done, I don’t have much time left.” Sasha was hysterically crying. She kissed his palms, holding onto him tightly. “No, please, Maksim, don’t leave me… I beg of you, please!” With tears in his own eyes, Maksim grabbed her and hugged her tightly. Closing his eyes, he breathed in her scent; she smelled like love and loyalty, trust and devotion, all things he had always associated with his S’airsul. As he breathed in her sweet scent one last time, another tugged at his senses; this one was new, it was life it was… everything. 254 Forever Mine Maksim smiled and looking up at the ceiling and the heavens beyond, he thanked the Great Goddess Anaya for this last gift. With this gift he knew what took place this night would be revenged. He knew his S’airsul would always have a piece of him with her. She would be taken care of. She would be loved, and she would never be alone. The crash of the great door below resounded through the castle and up the stairs. He gripped her arms and pulled her back. “Sasha, listen to me. It’s going to be alright, lubimaya.” “No, Maksim, not without you… please do not leave me here alone!” she pleaded, holding onto his waist with incredible strength. They both heard the sounds of booted feet as they ran up the stairs. Sasha’s frantic eyes flew to the door, but Maksim turned her head back to him. “Sasha, I need for you to be strong. Do you understand me?” The authority in his voice compelled her to obey. Sasha sniffled then nodded her head. “I understand, Maksim.” “That’s a good girl.” Taking her hand, Maksim pulled her toward the secret door. He quickly felt for the latch that lay hidden in the mortar between two stones and slid it down. The door silently and swiftly opened and he gently pushed her inside. “Do not worry about me, lubimaya, you must think of yourself; you must protect your future, our future.” Sasha looked back with confusion, but the strength in his voice was too compelling to deny. “Yes, Maksim, I will, I promise.” Fists slammed against the wooden door of the chamber and Sasha once again turned frantic eyes to the sound. Maksim felt the morphine running through his body, slowing him down; he wouldn’t be able to stand for much longer. “Are you ready, lubimaya?” Once more he compelled her to look at him. “I am ready, Maksim.” Sasha gazed upon her mate, the man she loved more than anything else in the world. The man whose blood flowed through her veins as hers did through his. He placed her fur hat on her head then gripped her arms and pulled her closer. “Listen to me, lubimaya, you’re going to leave through the hidden stairwell; you will follow it all the way until the end. Do not stop and do not look back. Whatever you hear, ignore it, just keep going. When you get to the end, you will emerge in the forest.” Settling her fur cloak around her shoulders, he tied the thick leather bands at her neck with nimble fingers. “I want you to follow the path down the mountain and go to Boris. It’s not too far; if you run very fast, you should get there in two hours. Do not stop for anything. Do you understand me, Aleksandra? Do not stop for anything or anyone!” “Yes, Maksim, I understand, but what is… who is attacking us?” “That is not for you to worry about, lubimaya. Trust me to take care of you. You trust me, do you not?” “Yes, Maksim, more than anything else.” “Good.” 255 Forever Mine Maksim stared into her eyes and then clutched her to his leather clad chest. His warm wet mouth covered hers in a searing kiss that curled her toes and sparked the ever raging desire she had for her mate. When he pulled away but a few short moments later, his hands cupped her cheek as he stared at her intently, lovingly. “I love you, Aleksandra Tereschenko. No matter what happens never, ever forget that.” Tears fell from her eyes and ran down her cheeks onto his hand. “I love you, Maksim, you are my heart, my soul. I could never forget.” They shared one last burning kiss and then, before Sasha could gain her bearings, Maksim pushed her further into the dark catacomb and pressed the lever to close the door. As it quietly began to close, they stared into each other’s eyes, never once breaking contact even when the bedroom door crashed open. The sounds of death that were taking place all around the Gorod spilled into the bed chamber. Blood curdling screams resonated off the stone walls as Maksim whispered raggedly, “Go, Sasha, run!” Maksim turned and faced the intruders, but Sasha was incapable of moving and instead, she looked around the broad body of her mate and into the bedroom. Her hand flew to her mouth, her eyes grew large with disbelief and stark terror as she witnessed Konstantin, her mate’s trusted second-in-command, come roaring into the room with Maksim’s own sword held high above his head. She felt the hum inside her weakening. Maksim dropped to his knees. As the door came within an inch of sealing shut, Sasha watched in horror as Konstantin took a mighty swing. The sword sailed through the air and cleaved the head of her mate off in one clean swoop. Nikolai jerked and violently writhed on the floor. His eyes snapped open. He sat up on his knees then viciously threw up. As his body heaved with each convulsion, the memories of what he had seen, what he felt, consumed him. When the last convulsion faded, he sat back on his haunches. His eyes were wild as they jerked around the room, seeking the enemy. Finding no one, he stilled and clutched his chest, his hands frantically feeling his head that was still connected to his neck. Feeling a rapid strong heartbeat, his eyes closed and the heart that was beating so vigorously inside him cried and wept for what he felt, for what saw. The Darkness howled with an agony so severe, Nikolia felt like he was being torn in two. Grabbing his head, staring blankly up at the ceiling, a scream of such horror and gut-wrenching anguish tore from his throat. He screamed and screamed, unable to stop the memories from replaying in his mind, unable to stop the torment that hammered his heart and his soul. As his throat became sore and parched, the last scream left his lips. His head dropped in defeat and deep sorrow ricocheted throughout him like a ball 256 Forever Mine bouncing between two walls. Silence ensued, a deathly stillness that rang as loud as the memory of the screams he had heard. Hearing footsteps walking toward him, Nikolai looked up through glassy eyes and tears streaming down his face. Doki stood still, watching him. He reached out and touched Nikolai’s head in tenderness, understanding. “Now you know. Now you understand what took place in this house. Now you see your past and your future. I am sorry that I could not keep this pain from you, but it is yours to feel and learn. For it is your destiny.” Nikolai bowed his head in deep sadness. “All these years… why…” His voice hitched in pain. “Why was I not told?” “It was not meant to be that way.” Angry black eyes jerked up to Doki. “Not meant to be? Gods blood! All the pain, all the fucking lies!” His eyes turned blacker and his voice filled with such fury that the walls actually shook. “My mother, Goddess above, what she endured all these years at the hands of those fucking traitors!” “The mistress knew her destiny, master, she did what we all must do… she walked Fate’s path with her head held high and with the knowledge and faith that you would make it right.” Nikolai got to his feet and turned away from the Lechie. Anger infused him. Guilt consumed him. Resentful rage that this had been kept hidden from him, hidden from the world, permeated every inch of his body. If only his mother would have told someone, all of it, the entire war never would have even begun! He began to pace back and forth, his strides full of rage, his mind swirling with thoughts that he wasn’t even aware were coming out of his mouth in a torrent of Upyrian. “There was nothing she could have done to prevent it, master, and there was no one alive capable to enact revenge.” Doki said. “I could have stopped this years ago! I could have killed them both!” Nikolia savagely swore. Doki sadly shook his head. “No, master, you could not. Though a full blooded Upyr you are, you had no knowledge of the power that existed inside you, no knowledge of the ancient magic all Upyr have at their disposal. Count Moravec, though not Upyr, is strong from the power of the black arts and from the blood of his dead sire. He would have killed you.” Nikolia had different thoughts on that. “Everyone must wait for the pivotal moment when the Gods decree that time has come. That time came May sixteenth…twenty-five years ago.” Nikolai stopped pacing and fixed an intense stare on Doki. He remembered hearing Maksim’s thoughts as if they were his own. He felt how Maksim’s heart had beaten rapidly with life and power for his S’airsul, for Sasha. It was everything Nikolai felt for Abby. His head lowered and he shook it in dumb disbelief. “Abby.” “And one shall be born from a love as great as the bond between S’airsuls, though a Pure she will not be, the blood of Celtic High Kings and the most powerful Master Vampire shall flow through her veins. She will embody the essence of a woman who shall come from a great land and have the power of the 257 Forever Mine Gods inside her. This child will be born, the quintessence of everything an Upyr female would be. She alone can awaken the Darkness and bring back that which has been lost. “ Doki spoke with reverence as if he read from a sacred book and all Nikolai could do was harshly laugh at the injustice of it all. He just could not believe it. Oh, he was thankful he didn’t share the same genes as Konstantin, but that was little comfort when one looked at the big picture. “So much has been taken from me. So much that I have missed.” “I cannot dispute this, master; however, you have been given a great gift. You are the last of a great breed of vampire warriors, the fathers of all those who walk the Realm today. Now that you have been given your gift, you can be all that an Upyr was born to be. Your children, they will be the rebirth of a powerful clan. They are the future.” Nikolai snorted. How right Nissa was. Abby was petrified of their connection now; if she heard this, she would be running for the hills. Nikolai looked over at the mural, soaking in everything that was there, everything that had played out in his mind. His eyes landed on the image of a man, his face not that much different from his own, Maksim Tereschenko… his father. “Come, the mistress does not have much time and I am sure you would like to spend those remaining hours with her and not with an old Lechie like me.” Doki said with a smile in his voice. Abby. Longingly, Nikolai closed his eyes and saw her beautiful face, her beautiful soul. The need he had for her in that moment was so intense, so much a part of him, that he felt weakened without her. He needed to see her, to touch her and taste her…he needed her comfort. He opened his eyes to ask Doki to take him to her but instead found himself standing in a hallway. What the hell? “Upyrian magic is very powerful.” Nikolai sharply turned. Doki stood in front of a door with a mischievous smile. “Why does this keep happening? I’m not a Soothsayer.” “Agreed, you are not. You are Upyr and Upyrian magic is more ancient than any Soothsayer’s magic of today, and more powerful. It has always been inside you, but it was never nourished, never wielded. It is alive now because you have tasted your mate’s essence and it feels the beginning of the Efnaru, once completed the magic will grow, become stronger, it will become a part of you. So much so that you will not even have to think about it, it will just… happen.” Nikolai snorted. “You know about that too, do you?” “I am your Lechie, I am attuned to you, your every need and thought, just as I was to your father.” Nikolai opened his mouth to ask questions but Doki wouldn’t let him. “But that is for another day. When the time is right, you will return to the Gorod with the mistress at your side, and together you will learn everything you 258 Forever Mine need to know. For now…” He looked at the door that was before Nikolai and it gently swung open. “You must see to the mistress. She is strong, but her heart is tender and fragile. She is frightened and she will run from her fear if given the chance. You must not let her, master. You will need to be patient, understanding and giving of yourself. Then, and only then, will she truly open her heart to you.” Nikolai nodded and looked away, but Doki spoke again, his voice grave and dire. “Be warned, master, she must give to you her essence freely. Only then will the bond be solidified with all the white power a love such yours is. If you take her before she is ready, if you let the Darkness feed against her will, then her essence will not sustain you. It will turn you into something you do not want to become - evil – pure, unadulterated evil.” “I understand, Doki, thank you… for everything,” Nikolai quietly said, feeling gratitude for the Lechie. Doki bowed his head. “No, master, do not thank me, I am not worthy. I failed in my duty to your father. I was not here the night of the massacre. Nissa and me, we were tricked away from the Gorod and because of our absences we were not here to stop it. I have lived for centuries with this guilt and I swear to you, this will never, ever happen again.” The little Lechie was fierce and most adamant in his conviction, and Nikolai could see the guilt he lived with – guilt Nikolai was very familiar with. Smiling, Nikolai got down on one knee and placed his hand on Doki’s shoulder. “Remember your words to me not so long ago, Doki. You could not stop fate any more than I could. I do not hold that against you as I am sure my mother and my father do not either.” Standing, he looked pointedly at the Lechie. “I am honored to have you, Doki of the Lechie, as my friend, and I am thankful in more words than I could ever say for showing me all I needed to see.” He respectfully bowed. Doki’s chest puffed up with pride. He nodded at Nikolai, blinked then disappeared. 259 Forever Mine CHAPTER SIXTEEN Nikolai walked into the room with soft steps that barely made any sound against the carpet under his feet. His eyes immediately found Abby. She slept on a huge bed. She was turned on her side, facing the window, one bare shoulder peeked out from under a thick black fur cover. She looked at peace. She looked beautiful. He pushed the door closed, never once taking his eyes off his S’airsul. Walking over to the bed, he was hit with the realization that he had always known, right from the first time he saw her, that she would mean everything to him. Turns out that not only was he right but his instincts had been modest. He ran a hand through his hair, feeling like a fly stuck to fly paper. He wanted so badly to tell her everything, he wanted to share with her what he was feeling and he couldn’t. She just wasn’t ready for something as huge as this. She was already afraid of the power a male held in a mated pair; discovering he was all Pure would only freak her out more, no matter how much his words denied it. Sitting down on the bed next to her, he was unable to resist touching her so he ran one finger over her arm. Her fear was dead on nonetheless. He didn’t know how much, if anything, she knew of Pure Bloods. Hell, he didn’t even know everything there was to know, but what he did know, what was common knowledge to anyone, was that male Upyr were more dominate and bigger control freaks – as Abby had called him herself – than a turned vamp. It was just the way they were – demons at the heart, demons that thrived on sex, demons that lived off the essences of their S’airsul. He could reassure her until he was blue in the face, but that still would not comfort her fear. Doki’s words rang true. He would have to move very, very slowly with her. And he also knew that before he could begin anything with Abby, he needed to resolve his past and make a clean start for their future. His eyes hardened like black steel. He was looking forward to that. He was going to rip Arnost and Konstantin apart very slowly, piece by tiny piece. He was going to make them pay for all the sins they committed, all the lies that had spewed out of their mouths, all the pain and suffering they bestowed on his mother and his sister - they would pay for everything. Including making him betray his friend and all the innocents who died in this war their treachery created. Because that was the other obstacle he must resolve before Abby would open her heart to him; he must make things right with Magnus. Regardless of what he told her before, he was not willing to hurt her in that way, and he was definitely not willing to hurt his onetime friend any more than he already had. 260 Forever Mine With the path he must take clear in his mind, Nikolai looked intensely at Abby and his heart swelled with such profound emotions, he felt like he couldn’t breathe. Tenderness for this strong young woman overtook him. He knew and he understood that he must send her back to her family, away from him, and he knew he had to give her space, but he also knew how incredibly hard that was going to be for him. It wasn’t going to be easy for her either. Facing the wrath of her father because of her feelings for him and Magnus’ discovery of her duplicity was going to break her heart. Goddess, she had a lot on her plate, his little warrior. She was so young, so untouched by the sins of the world that he almost felt guilty for dragging her into this mess… almost. She was literally his life and no matter how hard things were going to get, which they were, he was going to fight for her…but for now, he had to let her go. He wouldn’t let her leave, though, without a sweet remembrance of the passion they shared, of the pleasure only he could give her. He would let her go with a reminder that eternal love awaited her in his arms. Nikolai stood and slowly peeled off his jacket then he took off his vest and thermal top. His leather pants would remain as a buffer between temptation and his hungry cock, so he left them on. Placing his clothes on the chair by the window, he turned back to the bed and gradually lifted the covers then slid inside. She shifted slightly, and much to Nikolai’s delight, moved back and cuddled that sassy little ass up against his crotch. He began the seduction he had planned from the beginning, light strokes of his fingers down her arm, and kissing the hollow of her neck. In a cocoon of heat and growing hunger, Abby slowly woke to the sensations of a thousand tiny sparks shooting down her neck and arm. Goddess that felt so good, so right. She smiled and hummed, nestling further into the heat she felt against her naked back. Her eyelids fluttered open and without thought, lingering in the remnants of the sweet sensations she was feeling, she reached back and touched silky thick strands of hair that tickled her neck as lips caressed a path of hot open kisses down her neck. “Mm, Niko… what are you doing?” she softly asked, savoring his sensual attentions, but knowing deep in her heart she could not let him continue. “I am finishing what we started in the bathroom,” his deep throaty voice whispered in her ear and she tingled from his hot breath that sent shivers of delicious anticipation down her spine. “We can’t…” Abby breathlessly said as his hand left her arm and snuck under the sheets to trail a path across her belly to stroke the underside of one breast. “Oh… I… have to go home.” “I know, and you will… but after I’ve pleasured you.” His quick and non-argumentative answer snapped Abby’s eyes fully open. The memory of where they were - wherever the hell that was - came to her in a flash. “What happened? What…” Realizing she was naked – again – she glowered. “Why am I naked again? And how the hell…” 261 Forever Mine Nikolai gently cupped her chin, silencing her with a long and slumberous open-mouthed kiss that brought a low moan from Abby and her fingers plowing into his hair. Her tongue played with his, fighting for control, fighting for more. Goddess, the man could kiss her to orgasm. Nikolai drew her bottom lip between his teeth then sucked on it gently right before he released her mouth entirely. Void of that succulent gateway to carnality, Abby’s hand that wasn’t tunneled in his hair fisted in frustration under the sheet. With swift evasive maneuvering, Nikolai rained kisses all over her face while he thought of the best way to answer her. He decided that for now he would keep Doki’s presence a secret. When he finally brought Abby back to the Gorod, she would meet the Lechie then. “Though I wish I could take the credit this time, I cannot. It was Nissa. She made you sleep and she brought you here.” “Why? What happened up there?” she asked suspiciously. “Where are we?” Abby’s throat constricted, seeing the soft yet fierce gaze in his black eyes. “There is so much I want to tell you, but now is not the time.” Abby opened her mouth to argue but he placed one finger over her lips. Nikolai looked at her intently, trying to give her all the truth he felt in his heart. “I promise to tell you everything, but later. Not here and not now. Right now…” his eyes lowered to her chest and grew dark with desire, “all I want is to love you before I send you home.” His gaze lifted to hers with fiery carnal intent that inspired Abby’s entire body to tingle with heat. “I want to see you weeping in orgasmic bliss.” He groaned with uninhabited longing as his dick grew painfully harder from the heated images his words invoked in his mind. The sound was a bonfire to Abby’s ears, setting off her own intrinsic desire to give him everything his groans cried out for. Everything else vanished and all that remained was him and her. Under Nikolai’s licentious regard, Abby’s warm chocolate gaze became smoky and sensual… sinfully submissive. Her body was willing and open, ready for his pleasure and ready to receive all the wickedness he would bestow upon her. In the far off corners of her mind, the place where rationality and logic still dwelled, was the thought that she must be under some sort of enthrallment, some sort of lust spell only he could weave, because the instantaneous need to feel him – skin to skin – to have him inside her body, fucking her, possessing her, was too strong, too corporeal and utterly irresistible to be anything else. With a swipe of his strong calloused hand across her belly, causing it to flex and quiver with need, she decided she really didn’t care if it was or not. She was mesmerized by the heat and sexual promise she read in his gaze, attuned to every touch his hands made on her skin, enthralled by the way his leather pants rubbed erotically against her bare ass. She was a slave to his desire, a slave to her body’s mounting hunger to seek out his, to take whatever he gave her no matter how he gave it. She wanted that so badly, needed it with everything inside her, that she just didn’t give a fuck. “Niko, touch me…” Her body moved restlessly against his. 262 Forever Mine Nikolai ruthlessly smirked. Her mind was not ready to accept his dominance, but her body most definitely was. If she only knew what he was reading in her gaze; if she had any idea how easily her body consented to his, she most likely would have pushed him away. As it was, Abby’s open and compliant responses had Nikolai gritting his teeth to keep the Darkness at bay. Somehow he was able to sustain the Darkness from breaking free and turning Nikolai’s seduction plan into a full out fuck-fest, but he could not stop his voice from becoming deeper and huskier. Abby listened as he spoke in Old Norse, telling her all the things he was going to do to her in a tone that said his possession of her would not always be gentle and slow. She swallowed, holding his hot greedy gaze and hoping to the Goddess above that he didn’t go slow because she didn’t think she could take it. Memories of their night in Germany, how he had taken her with hard deep strokes, plundering her body, stealing her sanity, soared through her. That was what she wanted, that was what her body craved. If Nikolai read her thoughts, he did not say or act upon them, he simply kept talking, guiding Abby’s lust higher and higher with skillful sensory ease that was laced with open tenderness and affection. He appealed to every part of her senses; her mind, her heart, and her body. It was the most devastating weapon he could have chosen and he wielded it with a cocky assurance that only fueled the flames already licking at Abby’s skin. “I will give you so much please that you won’t be able to forget me or what we can be together.” Abby’s eyes watered from his tender declaration. Her body temperature spiked again and she moved against him like a bitch in heat. With a coherency she didn’t feel, she lifted her hand and cupped his cheek. “I haven’t been able to forget for three months, it’s not going to happen overnight now.” Nikolai’s grin was smug and naughty; he kissed her palm. “I want you so much, Nikolai, but being with you… intimately… it’s just going to make everything else harder, can’t you see that?” So stubborn, his little warrior. Even in the throes of a burning need, she still clung to her fears. “No, lyubof, I do not see that because I do not see a future without you. I understand your worries, and I promise you with everything inside me that I will make things right. I will fight these fears for you. I will make you see that I can be the man you need me to be.” Goddess, he was so sweet. She looked into the sensually rugged face of the Darkness. Velvet eyes stared down at her and the fear that had at first come from this intimacy was nowhere to be found. She saw conviction and pleasure in pools of inky blackness. “Now, there will be no more talking of fears or what is to come, the only words I want to hear coming out of your mouth is my name when you’re screaming your release.” His mouth dipped down and licked one pebbled nipple. Abby arched into him, pushing her breast further into the warmth of his mouth. 263 Forever Mine Pulling back, Nikolai adjusted her so she was fully facing away from him. Before Abby could protest, he touched her neck with tempered strength then leisurely moved to her shoulder. Not stopping there, that wicked hand wandered down to her breasts, stopping to pick one up and squeeze it gently. “I love your breasts they fit so perfectly in my hand, so soft and full.” He licked her ear and whispered roughly, “Tell me lubimaya, do they ache?” Goddess, did they ever! He just started to touch her and she was already a wreck of heat and fire, a bundle of prickly awareness of what would come next. And she really, really loved it when he talked to her. “Yes.” Reaching for her right breast, Nikolai took the hard nipple in between his two fingers, rolled it then slightly pinched it. The sparking pleasure had Abby jerking against him. Her breathing instantly became more ragged as spikes of throbbing pleasure flooded her. “Oh, Goddess, Niko… that feels so good.” Nikolai watched her every reaction with an immoral grin on his lips. He felt her need inside of him coiling like a snake ready to strike. It was as ravenous and decadent as his. His mouth watered as he thought of all the wickedly kinky sex they would enjoy together. He purred in her ear, his fingers continuing their wicked tweaks on her aching nipples. “Mm, yes, it is a very fine line between pleasure and pain, isn’t it?” Abby nodded her head against his shoulder, unable to speak, held spellbound in a web of erotic sensations that just continued to converge on her with every pinch he made. “The sting feels good, it electrifies the pleasure, makes you want it more, harder, rougher.” He jerked her against him, grinding his leather-covered cock against her ass and nipping her ear with his teeth. A throaty moan erupted from her lips, right before he melded his mouth to hers. He kissed her with love and passion, excitement that she was as hot for him as he was for her. She melted into him, her body softening, becoming pliant and oh so luscious. He squeezed her nipple again then wandered down her belly. His fingers scratched over her abdomen and then slipped right between her legs and to the wet heat that was on fire for him. Nikolai tore his mouth away and Abby gasped with the ache his sudden loss created, and the body-burning sensations his fingers delving into her sopping folds created. She arched into his hand, pressing down, grinding against him. She grasped his hair with strength, pushing his head back to her. “More, Niko… give me more.” Abby licked her lips and whether she realized it or not, to Nikolai’s hungry cock, it was pure wanton seduction. “Mm, that’s so sexy. I want to feel that wild pink tongue stroking my cock.” Abby’s eyes widened with heat. Goddess, she wanted that. She wanted to taste him. She wanted to wrap her lips around his thick cock and make him mad with desire. She groaned and licked her lips again. 264 Forever Mine Nikolai groaned with her as her pussy became even wetter, soaking his hand and applying more slippery lubrication for his fingers to effortlessly glide over her clit and then swirl around the honey thick wet opening. “You want that too, don’t you? My cock in your mouth,” he roughly said as his finger teased her opening. Abby briskly nodded her head, her hips moving in sequence with his torturous fingers, desperately trying to grab one tip and pull him inside her weeping body. “Yes,” she whined then pushed back against him, “I want to taste you Niko, like you tasted me.” Nikolai’s eyes practically rolled back in his head, hearing her raspy admission. With his finger still teasing her pussy, he rewarded her with another mind blowing kiss right before he pulled back and nipped her lower lip. “You will, lubimaya, but not today. Today is all about you.” He thrust two of his teasing fingers inside her and Abby cried out, her body arching forcibly against his hand. “Oh Goddess, yes, more, please… give me more.” She moaned and Nikolai rewarded her again by adding a third finger and starting a slow yet thorough pumping motion that had Abby’s lower body moving fluidly with him. Gods blood, it was good... so fucking good that Abby thought she was going to break in two. But no matter how good those fingers felt, she wanted more, she wanted to feel every ripple and pulsating vein of his dick fucking her with mindless strokes. “Nikolai, please, I need more… so much more… stop teasing me, please.” Nikolai smirked but kept his fingers inside her sheath. They moved slower now, but still just as deep and penetrating. “No, lubimaya, not tonight. Tonight, I’m going to love you with my hands and my mouth.” Abby frowned slightly. She had two thoughts. The first was that the last time he said that, it hadn’t ended well for her and she did not want to be left hanging again. The second was that she really, really wanted his cock pounding inside her. Since she was a girl who knew how to get what she wanted, she simply voiced her own demands. With Blendling strength, she violently grabbed Nikolai’s hair and yanked him hard, bringing his eyes, which darkened further from her bold maneuver, directly to hers. “If you stop this time, Nikolai, I’ll kill you. I swear to the Goddess above, I’ll kill you,” she seethed. His veins were violently pulsating and black velvet eyes stared directly into hers. “It would take the Gods themselves to stop me this time.” Accepting his answer as truth, Abby nodded, then, increasing the pressure on his head, she moved up and slammed her mouth against his, rotating her hips down on his hand. She tried to quicken the pace as she mauled his mouth, but with one hand, Nikolai steadied her eager hips and kept his slow and steady pace. On a frustrated cry, Abby tore her mouth away and pleaded with him. She didn’t care if she sounded desperate or not. 265 Forever Mine “Please, Niko, I need you inside me. I need to feel you… like last time. Fuck me hard and fast, just like last time, please.” Gods blood, he didn’t know if he would be able to sustain something they both wanted so desperately. But he must. Doki’s words rang in the back of his head and the need to maintain control intensified. As Abby continued to move her scrumptious body like a siren against his, made more of those sexy little noises in the back of her throat and tried to seduce him into doing what she wanted with those huskily spoken words, Nikolai’s annoyance got piqued. Snarling in frustration, he removed his hand from her pussy and in one effortless move had the fur covers off the bed and Abby flat on her stomach and pinned to the bed. He grabbed a fistful of her long curly hair that tormented him to wrap it around his fist and fuck her long and hard. He yanked her head back with unyielding fierceness and kept nothing back from the sound of his voice. He needed her to understand just how imperative it was for him to maintain control and to feel how hard it was for him to do so. “Listen to me, Abaigeal, and understand what I’m about to tell you.” Abby’s eyes were wide open, yet still glazed with smoky heat, her body aching for more of the dominance he was displaying. Yet she heard the urgency in his tone and she felt the violent waves coursing through his body and into hers. “I want nothing more than to sink my cock inside your pussy and fuck you senseless, but if I do, you know what’s going to happen, don’t you? You know what else I’m going to need?” Nikolai’s words scared her back to reality. Abby stilled, her eyes were clearer, almost fearful. “I see that you do. Do you want that, Abby? Do you want me to drink from you? Do you want to give me life?” Nikolai waited with baited breath to hear the answer he sought. When she immediately shook her head no, he felt disappointment, but it wasn’t extreme because it was the answer he expected… she wasn’t ready. “I didn’t think so.” He loosened his hold on her hair and smoothed one hand down the side of her body, leisurely, controlled, and in complete contrast to the force he just displayed. “That’s why we’re going to do this my way. We’re going to take this slow and easy.” He inhaled then exhaled a shaky torrent of breath, an outright display of his struggles to hold the Darkness back. ”And by the Gods, Abby, you are going to comply.” That imperious tone and stringent command reminded Abby of who she was dealing with and why she had promised herself to stay away from him to begin with. She started to struggle underneath him, suddenly unsure of what she was getting herself into. Nikolai effortlessly held her down and caressed her ass. Cupping a left cheek, he squeezed it roughly and bewitched her once more with that seductive voice. “And when you do, lubimaya, you will be rewarded in more ways than one.” He gave her playful yet sharp slap to her ass. It was such an unexpected action that Abby jumped but what was even more surprising was the instantaneous and highly arousing sensation it gave her. 266 Forever Mine As Abby’s body temperature rose with excitement, Nikolai smirked with renewed willpower. He caressed the cheek he slapped, soothing the sting he knew had startled her and made her even wetter. Leaning down, he sucked on her neck. Abby froze. Ignoring the tight bundle of nerves underneath him, Nikolai kissed the same spot then licked a trail up to her ear. “I cannot resist loving that erotic spot. You must trust me when I tell you that I will not take from you until you are ready to give.” He licked the rim of her ear and softly asked, “Do you trust me, Abby?” Abby’s eyes were closed, her heart pounding against her chest, her body aflame with need and passion, her juices freely flowing out of her and onto the bed, making the sheet wet. Her breasts ached even more with the pressure his large body made as his weight pushed her into the bed. Goddess, she needed to come, she needed it to so badly that a tear broke through her closed lids and rolled down her cheek. Could she trust him? She must. “Yes,” Abby whined and she was rewarded. Nikolai’s fingers slide down the crack of her ass and circled her entrance. “That’s good, malyshka. Very good.” Abby melted hearing him call her baby in Russian and she was indeed compensated when he lifted his lower body, raised her hips with one hand then sank the fingers of his other hand deep inside her again. “Oh Gods!” She cried out with pleasure feeling him back inside her. Smiling against the pillow, she willed her body to remain still and pliant, waiting to see what he would give her next. Everything in her wanted his roughness, his hunger, and she thought that was what he was going to give her, so when he suddenly pulled his fingers out and she felt him sit back on his knees, felt his eyes as they drilled into her back, she knew that wasn’t what she was going to get. Nikolai gazed at the beautiful naked back below him. He saw perfection; there was not one mark on that lovely skin. Except, in his mind, he saw every mark Vladimir’s leather whip had made. He saw every trickle of blood that had coated her skin. Fury rose for what they did to her and guilt for not being there to stop it. Abby felt Nikolai’s instant mood shift and she braced herself for what would come next. He picked up her hair then gently placed it to the side, revealing her back. She felt his mouth on the back of her neck, slow and sensually he kissed her. As his finger snaked a line over her right shoulder, that wicked mouth followed its path. When he spoke, his hot breath against her skin made her tingle all over. “Do you know what it did to me to see you in the dungeon, whipped and bloody?” Abby didn’t think he required an answer, so she didn’t speak; she just held her breath. His finger picked up, landed on her right shoulder then slowly slid down her shoulder blade. “It almost killed me, Abby.” He kissed the spot his finger had started on and then licked his way down the same way the finger had gone. 267 Forever Mine His compassion and tenderness was such a flip from the dominate violence he had just shown her that Abby felt a bit dazed. There were so many layers to this man, each one deeper and more honest than the previous one. The more time she spent with him, the more layers he revealed. The hum inside her felt as if it was weeping and her heart felt as near to bursting. “I’m okay, it wasn’t that bad,” she quietly answered, wanting to comfort his distress. Nikolai kissed the end of the whip mark he saw in his mind. “I suppose a woman who has been training as a Ninja has had her fair share of pain, but not that kind.” His voice became soft and thoughtful as his fingers continued to pick out the invisible whip marks and trace them. “I can see every one of them as if they were still there.” His lips followed the line his fingers drew and Abby shivered under his light delicate touches. “I’m so sorry, malyshka, it’s my fault.” It was such an honest and tender overture that a tear came to Abby’s eyes. He laid his head against her back and his arms that were now resting against each side of her body tenderly, comfortingly, hugged her. “Niko, it wasn’t your fault. I don’t blame you.” No, but he blamed himself, he would always blame himself. A few seconds of silence ticked by as Nikolai just savored the feeling of her body underneath his; the soft muscled thigh his hand lay against was tight and strong, and the vision of those legs wrapping around his waist was intoxicating. “You feel so good underneath me, Abby. Your body is beautiful, perfect.” She felt him pick his head up then she shivered when he placed a wet kiss on the left cheek of her ass. “You are everything I could ever want in a lover.” His husky admission had Abby groaning once again; especially when he ran his tongue down the crevice of her butt and licked her somewhere she never in her wildest dreams thought would be stimulating to feel. “Niko!” Nikolai softly chuckled then he bestowed another kiss on the neglected cheek. “It pleases me so much that you have never experienced these things with a man before.” Suddenly his demeanor changed, becoming hungry once again. Sitting up, Nikolai roughly pulled her to her knees, drawing her arms up he placed her hands palm side down on the bed then he covered her, draping that big hard warrior’s body over hers. “Now you are being so good, I’m going to reward you.” In the position they were in, Abby couldn’t help but rub against his cock. Nikolai evilly chuckled, “I know what you want, lyubof, but instead of my cock, I will give you this.” He reached down and greedily plucked at one raw and distended nipple. He licked her neck and as his hands played with her breasts, squeezing and tweaking their nipples, his lips kissed a path down her spine. She felt his big body readjust and then she felt his hands as they slapped the inside of her thighs. She jumped again. “Spread your legs for me, Abby, so I can taste that sweet honey pot.” 268 Forever Mine Abby moaned then obeyed, spreading her legs. The bed dipped, Nikolai laid on his back then moved up the bed until he was right under her. His hands once more found their way to her breasts where they began their torment again. “Come to me, milaya moya, give me that sweet wet pussy.” Abby groaned loudly then lowered her hips to his mouth. On the first swipe of his tongue against her folds, her groans turned to guttural moans of bliss. Goddess all mighty, what he was doing to her? Abby felt consumed with heat and lust. Her breasts ached from his fingers rough play. His mouth ravaged her pussy, nipping, licking, and then suckling on her clit that was throbbing mercilessly. She whimpered, she screamed. Her fingers dug into the sheets as wave after wave of pleasure soared through her. “That’s it, Abby, come for me, malyshka, let me taste your pleasure, come in my mouth,” Nikolai commanded and Abby responded. She lost sight for one second as a million brilliant stars shone behind her closed lids. She jerked and heaved, as roll after roll of orgasmic bliss belted her from every direction and every angle, and still he licked her, he sucked her, he pulled and pinched her nipples, never stopping, only going faster and getting more meticulous. His persistence paid off as orgasm number two slammed inside her right on top of the receding waves of the first one. “Oh God, Niko!” She screamed his name, over and over again, her body, desperate to express its intense orgasm, moved against him, shuddering, but he held her still and he kept going, eating her, fulfilling her, never seeming to get enough of her pleasure that just rolled into another orgasm. Nikolai lapped at her pussy like a starving man. He never imagined a woman could taste so earthy and sweet at the same time. So delicious and addictive; he could eat her pussy forever and never get tired of it. With every shudder her body made, her pleasure seemed to stream right into him. It felt like little bolts of power filling him, making him stronger, giving him life. Goddess, it was incredible! Her orgasms were affecting him, changing him, taking him closer to the ultimate goal. He never would have imagined it would be like this. He’d always felt rejuvenated after sex and always knew that if he went too long without it, he grew off balanced; he never fully understood why, but he did now. The Upyr lived by and for sex. It was like oxygen to them. Pleasuring Abby, giving her exactly what she needed and making her come, made him stronger – gave him life. It was fucking amazing. Nikolai continued to tap into her orgasms, savoring each and every one. The Darkness was practically howling in bliss, growing, becoming stronger. The magic Doki said was always inside him ecstatically tingled all over. It was a damn bloody addiction he would have enjoyed all night, but after giving her four more orgasms, he heard the hitching in her voice, he felt her body’s drone-like state and that slowed him down. “Please, Niko… I… I can’t take anymore.” She pleaded but her pleas only stimulated Nikolai’s naughty need to give her more, to take more of what her body so naturally gave him. 269 Forever Mine He gave her one last lick and in exhaustion, Abby almost dropped to the bed but Nikolai’s arm was suddenly wrapped around her waist and he hauled her back against his sweaty naked chest. He wasn’t done yet, he needed more. On her knees, with the strength of this alpha male behind her, Abby felt Nikolai gently part her legs then trail a finger ever so lightly over her quivering clit. She whimpered, not sure if she could take anymore. “A body is a miraculous creation, Abby. It can take so much more than what the mind believes it can.” She cried out as his nail scrapped her ultrasensitive clit. “Shh, relax and listen to the sound of my voice. Concentrate on the feeling of my hands on your body.” His words seemed to press a button inside her and she instantly relaxed against him. She was amazed with the ease he was able to control her response and bring forth the exact thing he wanted, what she needed. Smiling dreamily, she reached up and held his head as he nuzzled her neck and gently played with one breast while the other hand snaked down to her overcharged pussy and calculatingly sank three fingers into her sheath. She moaned, feeling him surround her inside and out, and she listened to the sound of his deep voice as he started to talk to her in Russian. “Your body is gorgeous, Abby,” he told her as his fingers once more began an easy light pumping rhythm. “Your pussy is so tight and hot.” He licked her neck and increased his rhythm. “You taste like sunshine, milaya moya, pure golden sunshine. I could eat that sweet pussy all day.” In mere seconds, he had once again reduced her to nothing but a quivering mass of flesh needing release. “Oh Gods, Niko, faster, please…” Nikolai smiled as Abby’s body came back to life. Her inner walls once more opened to his touch as his fingers started a stronger and deeper motion that had her moving with him and slamming her hips down on his hand. “That’s it, malyshka squeeze my fingers, ride them hard and fast. Now, come for me again. Come now!” And she did, violently so. As the orgasm hit Abby’s entire body, she fiercely bowed against him. Her head pitched back over his shoulder, her teeth grinded together, and she was babbling like an idiot. “Yes, Niko, gods yes… yes, yes!” As she rode his hand, her body sensually moving with the orgasm that soared through her, Nikolai ran his hand through her hair, moving it off her sweaty face, lovingly taking care of his woman. “Gods, woman, you’re stunning when you come, so fucking gorgeous.” When her body finally stilled, Nikolai gently picked her up and laid her down on the bed, lying down next to her. Abby immediately turned to him and threw an arm over his chest. She settled down on top of him and smiled like a Cheshire cat, thoroughly pleased and amazingly content. It wasn’t until she exhaled a deep steadying breath that she noticed the gruff panting blowing her hair and the tense body underneath hers. 270 Forever Mine Abby sat up and peered at Nikolai with concerned eyes. His eyes were closed, sweat dripped down his face and his mouth was slightly parted as he breathed rapidly. “Niko, are you… okay?” she quietly asked. Nikolai chuckled and placed a hand on top his eyes. “No, lyubof, far from okay.” He felt like he was strung out on a rack, his body was so tight with unsated lust. “I can,” Abby caressed his chest, sliding over tight male nipples then rock hard abs that had her licking her lips before she boldly ran her hand lower. “Help you with that.” The tone of her voice was seductively eager as her hand rove down between his legs and palmed the head of his cock. Nikolai raggedly hissed then latched on to her wrist and pulled her hand away so fast that Abby gasped. She gazed into black eyes that were filled with savage hunger. His face was tight with brutal restraint. The hand on her wrist tightened with scantly leashed control. “The next time I come it will not be by your hand. It will be inside you with your pussy milking me and your blood pumping through my soul. Are you ready for that?” Abby searched the stringent gaze of a man on the brink of losing control. He looked primal, dangerous and so sexy that her breath hitched. She wanted to ease him, she wanted to bring him pleasure so bad that it almost hurt but she wasn’t ready for what he was asking and that had her heart squeezing in her chest. She shook her head. “I…I’m sorry Niko.” She lowered her gaze but not before Nikolai glimpsed their watery glaze. Softly cursing his savage need Nikolai gently grasped her chin and lifted her gaze to him. “Shh, lyubof, it’s okay. Forgive me, I’m not pressuring you and I am not mad. I understand. It’s okay.” He held her concerned gaze and brought her hand to his mouth, kissing her palm. “I’ll be fine. Just being here with you and holding you, feeling your heartbeat next to mine is all the satisfaction I need.” For now, Nikolai thought, and no truer words existed. His need for her was becoming too great and way to existential to be denied for much longer. Abby felt as if she were floating on a cloud. He had pleasured her so thoroughly, thinking only of her and refusing to take his own release, that she was overwhelmed by his thoughtfulness. Smiling softly Abby leaned up and gifted him with a honeyed press of her lips against his. “That’s one of the sweetest things anyone has ever said to me.” Nikolai snorted, “Sweet? My demon doesn’t think so. He’s practically clawing at my insides to get out.” He took a deep breath. His chest rose high, carrying Abby with him as she rested against his chest. He held her hand, his fingers lightly scraping her palm as he took several more calming breaths. “Thank you Niko, for understanding.” Abby kissed his chest and Nikolai’s heart that just started to calm down sped up once again. 271 Forever Mine “No Abby, thank you for trusting me, for giving yourself to me so freely, so beautifully.” He wrapped his arms around her and hugged her tightly. Abby snuggled against him and closed her eyes. “You know, this doesn’t change anything,” she softly whispered, every note of her voice tinged with sadness and regret. Nikolai didn’t answer her because she was right, it didn’t change anything – she was still his and he would still fight to keep her. It wasn’t long before sleep overtook Abby and she fell into a deep slumber. Nikolai, meanwhile, laid wide awake and staring at the ceiling. He loved her with everything he was. She was the most amazing woman he ever met, and if he hadn’t already been filled with determination to make her his, then this night would have sealed the deal. What they shared had been incredible and he knew when she was finally ready to truly give herself to him, incredible would become astounding. He breathed out and finally closed his eyes. Kissing her one last time, he gently hugged her. The wait would be worth it, she would be worth it; he just had to hold on. It was some time later when Nikolai felt a keen sense of being alone. The Darkness emerged. He sat up, his eyes swinging to the empty space next to him then settling its unforgiving glare on the small shape at the foot of the bed. “She is safe, master.” Doki quickly said to put the demon at ease. It had been a long time since he stared into such wrathful fury but he wasn’t afraid, no, he welcomed it. “Nissa put her safely on a plane. She should be arriving at her destination right about now.” Hearing that, the Darkness quietly retreated. Nikolai ran a hand through his hair then stood up. Though it was what needed to be done, he still felt the sharp edge of loneliness Abby’s absence created. It was a good thing he had plenty of crap to keep him busy, like telling Arnost his prisoner escaped and convincing the Count that Nikolai was still on his side. It was unfortunate, but it was what he had to do because he could not kill Arnost and Konstantin at the Summit, which meant he had to make them believe their original plan could still work. He had a fleeting thought that he should have told Abby, but then quickly discarded it. He knew what had to be done before he could fully claim her; kill Arnost and Konstantin and repair the damage with Magnus. Just two simple steps. He snorted… Yeah, right. “Doki, I need to get to Scotland before she does.” Doki smiled. “Of course, master.” Doki snapped his fingers and Nikolai was fully dressed. He perked one eyebrow at the Lechie. Doki grinned, “The advantages of having me around, master. Now, as soon as you are ready, I will send you there.” “You can’t just blink me to Circinn’s castle Doki. That would raise some eyebrows.” “Oh, do not worry, master, you will arrive in your regular grand fashion.” 272 Forever Mine Nikolai wondered how Doki knew what his regular fashion was then disregarded it. He had other things to worry about. Grunting, Nikolai picked up the leather satchel that was mysteriously right by his side. I could get used to this, he thought. “Alright, Doki, whenever you’re ready.” Doki nodded and raised his hands. “Oh, Doki?” “Yes, master?” Nikolai smiled. “You don’t have to call me master. You can call me by my name.” Doki looked horrified. “Oh no, master, that would be wrong.” Nikolai held back his laughter. “Nissa calls Abby by her name,” he casually mentioned. Doki scowled. “That’s because she is a disrespectful little Leshy. They are philistines, master, not like the noble Lechie,” he proudly stated, but then suddenly he was jumping up in the air and squealing as a flame of fire unexpectedly appeared on the top of his head. He patted it out quickly with Nikolai’s help then looked angrily at the ceiling. “See, master, disrespectful!” A girlish giggle filled the room and Nikolai chuckled. Clearly, living with these two was going to be quite the adventure. “Are you ready, master?” Nikolai nodded. “I am.” “I will be here awaiting you.” “Thank you, Doki.” Nikolai picked up the bag and then in a blink of an eye, he was gone. Doki breathed out then shouted, “Nissa! When will you ever learn your place?” 273 Forever Mine CHAPTER SEVENTEEN Castle Cinn The Highlands, Scotland “What are you brewing, Anaya?” Circinn the Consul stood before the window in his private study, hands clasped behind his back. Steel grey eyes peered out the necrotempered glass, brooding thoughtfully as the sun set on the horizon. The tingle of awareness that always forewarned him of his incoming visitor now spiked his entire being. A mix of sharp singes muffled by softness and fog cascaded throughout him. It was a sensation that would most likely send any normal man into the depths of insanity, but Circinn was not a normal man. “Oh, my suspicious warrior, have you nothing new to ask me?” Circinn callously smirked, hearing the offhanded tone. “Anaya, I ask the same question because you have not given me an answer.” “No, Circinn, I have given you an answer, it is just not the answer you seek.” Now it was Circinn’s turn to sigh, this time with built up annoyance. For three months, three long and tedious months, he had felt a change in the air, a sign he had learned long ago to never dismiss; it was a mark of something to come. He had been asking Anaya what it meant since the first time he felt it, but she was being remarkably obstinate, playing innocent, not telling him a damn thing and he knew she was lying. “Do you tell me that you do not sense the change in the air?” he asked with rising anger. “Is that not the coming of spring, my bonny warrior?” Circinn’s grey eyes became slits of steel. “You are being obtuse, Anaya. We have known each other too long for me not to understand exactly what that means.” A sweet sigh filled his mind. “Circinn, I have great respect and love for you but you that even though you are my Consul that does not make you privy to all things. Some things just must be.” Circinn’s brow rose and he snorted with growing exasperation from her ambiguous response. Of course he knew that, had always known that because she had proven to him, time and time again, that knowing everything was not always a good thing. Frankly, he did not want to know everything. That was like holding the world in the palm of your hands and that was not who he was. He was simply a warrior who had been given a lifetime duty, one he fulfilled with loyalty and devotion, one that had seen him survive things nobody else could have, and that was enough for him. 274 Forever Mine Still, there was something about what he felt now that sent shockwaves through his mind. And this time, not knowing was killing him. Cinn felt the touch of her warm palm as she caressed his cheek. His eyes did not close in comfort as they did in his mind, as he savored the attention of the beautiful Goddess, the woman who had changed his life in so many ways, and was – as typical with a woman – currently driving him daft. “My sweet Circinn, do not fear what is to come. It is truth and I know how much you love truth. Embrace it with an open heart and an open mind.” “I would love to, Anaya, but something tells me that it is not as simple as that.” She sighed again. Her hand left his face and Cinn could sense her fading into the background – back to the otherworld where the Gods resided. “Perhaps, but I cannot help you, Circinn. What is to come shall come no matter what. I only hope that when it does, you will understand.” The tingling sensation left and Circinn knew she was gone. Too bad she didn’t take with her the uneasiness her parting words caused. In the distance, but closing fast toward the main gate of the castle, Cinn spied a white camouflaged Hummer as it drove almost recklessly down the treacherous mountain pass - almost being the key word. Nikolai Kotova was many things, but reckless was not one of them. He was also not expected until tomorrow, yet the Hummer skidded to a halt in the main courtyard just as the last of the sun’s rays disappeared behind the mountain. Circinn's curiosity was piqued. The infamous General never attended the first night of the Summit. Considered the official opening of the Summit, the first night hosted an extravagant ball, a social event meant to cool everyone’s warring mentalities and ease them into the negotiating proceedings in a peaceful and calm way. Since the war began and the Summit’s first meeting, Nikolai - not one for socializing, at least since the beginning of the war - avoided the first night of the Summit like the plague. His early arrival could only mean there had to be something of great importance he had to tell the Counts who had arrived two hours earlier. Nikolai stepped out of the Hummer, closed the door then shook out his long leather duster. His black hair blew in the brisk breeze that was present in the Highlands today. He was a formidable presence, a warrior through and through, and he appeared just as he always did, except… Cinn’s eyes crinkled. Something was different, something very, very different. It was his aura. It was shining with validity and life; a bright brilliant radiance of white surrounded the Russian instead of the grey gloom that normally encircled him. Nikolai took one step toward the castle doors then stopped and looked right up at Cinn. Their eyes met through the window. Both men nodded their heads in greeting, nothing strange there, but it was the smile that lit Nikolai’s face that had Cinn’s black eyebrows rising in surprise.. Nikolai’s shoulders started to move, as if he were… laughing? 275 Forever Mine Apparently Cinn’s expression must have been very comical because Nikolai saw it and his shoulders only seemed to shake harder. Then he lifted his hand, saluted him and, still smiling, walked into the keep. With his mind reeling from what he saw and felt, Cinn turned away from the window. At least his question had finally been answered, to a point. The only one that remained was exactly why the infamous Lord General Nikolai Kotova, a man who was not prone to smiling or laughing, was doing just that. ********** Nikolai stood outside Arnost’s bedroom door, his first stop immediately after entering the Castle. Moving his neck around in a circle, he shook his entire body; he took a silent yet deep breath and firmly rapped on the door then swung it open and stormed through. “Nikolai, this is quite a shock.” Arnost’s black eyes became slits of inquisitiveness as he followed Nikolai’s path to the credenza then watched as he poured himself a shot of vodka. “Have you suddenly grown a desire to socialize?” The answer Arnost got was the typical antagonistic grunt right before Nikolai drank his shot. Arnost chuckled. “No, I suppose not.” He lifted his own goblet of blood and took a drink. “Well, regardless of why you’re early, I am pleased. I’ve been trying to reach Dalibor, but he’s not answering his phone.” After downing another shot of vodka, Nikolai turned around. “You’re going to need a better cellphone plan, Arnost, he’s dead.” Arnost considered Nikolai with discerning eyes. “I don’t think I heard you correctly. Did you say Dalibor was dead?” he quietly asked. “As dead as they come. I found him in the dungeon, neck snapped. Vladimir lay next to him, hole gaping in his chest and his heart squashed on the floor like a grape.” Nikolai stared back at Arnost derisively. “She’s a sick little puppy, that one.” Arnost shifted and his demon came to the forefront. He stood up, shaking with fury, yet still trying to retain a resemblance of control. He would be mortified to know he was not succeeding. “And where was my trusted General while my prisoner was killing my men and escaping?” Nikolai gave him what he always did: a jaded, I-don’t-give-a-fuck irritated answer after a callous shrug. “It was not my duty to watch her, Arnost, we agreed, remember? Besides, I wasn’t even in the palace at the time. I was in the stables; Nyah was giving birth.” Arnost seethed with fury and disbelief. He watched as Nikolai walked over to the window and looked out. His hands were behind his back and his stance was no different than what Arnost usually saw. 276 Forever Mine He breathed out, taking a few minutes to collect his raging thoughts. It was his own fault. He had underestimated the whore’s whelp. Dalibor would be missed because he was a controllable tool, but he was one of a million out in the world of lost and wandering humans that would do anything for a taste of the supernatural, so his death was not that much of a huge loss. Arnost would simply get himself another, but the Mac Branain girl… Arnost’s gaze swung to Nikolai, a cunning smirk playing his lips. There was no reason not to continue with his plans. All he had to do was make sure the chit ended up missing before the Council met. Everything else could still work out the way he planned it. After all, it’s not entirely broke - it’s just a hiccup along the way, one that can be rectified. Feeling confident once again, Arnost pushed his demon back then casually made his way back to his chair. “You understand what this means, do you not, Nikolai?” Nikolai pierced Arnost with an insipid expression. “Why do you think I’m here?” Arnost chuckled settling himself back in his chair. “Good, then there is no need for us to go into specifics. You know what I require in order for my plan to go forth.” Nikolai dipped his head in acknowledgement. “Excellent. Then see that it happens.” Nikolai gave a curt nod then headed toward the door, only to be stopped. “Nikolai, I find it most curious that you show no discord upon hearing this request.” Slowly Nikolai pivoted. One black eyebrow rose in questions. “Is it a request? It sounded more like an order.” Arnost evilly chuckled. “As it is. Still, in the past you have been most forward in expressing your thoughts of my plans, and yet, here you are with ready obedience. I find it, interesting.” Arnost’s beady malevolent eyes watched Nikolai with probing intensity. “What can I say, Arnost, Dalibor’s death has left me feeling… affable.” Knowing the hatred that brewed between the two men, Arnost chuckled. “I’m sure it has. Still, I feel as though I am at a loss with your actions, or rather, lack of. You seem so untouched by all of this, so… indifferent to what fate has in store for your former mentor. Tell me, whatever will you do when Magnus is put down like the thieving dog he is and I take his place? Will you finally concede to my authority?” Nikolai stared back emotionless. “What the hell have I been doing these last hundred years, Arnost?” “Saving your family.” If Arnost expected some sort of emotional response, he would be sadly mistaken because he wasn’t going to get it. Nikolai chaffed. “Oh, I thought I was helping you create a better D’rkenrealm.” Arnost stood and approached Nikolai. His face was sternly set, his eyes brilliant in their malevolence. “There are no illusions between you and I, are 277 Forever Mine there, Nikolai? Just as there is no love lost between us, or your father for that matter. You do what you must to keep those bitches you call mother and sister safe, but I think if you look deep into your soul, you will see that there is more to it than that.” His head titled to the side, his gaze intensifying. “You are not that different than me.” “Really?” Nikolai scoffed obnoxiously as he held back the vomit from rising in his throat and spewing all over Arnost’s face. “You cannot deny that the power you hold feeds your soul.” Arnost took another step closer, his eyes growing more intent, more delving. “You cannot pretend to me that when you take the life of someone less powerful that you do not rejoice in his death. I know you, Nikolai.” His thin lips lifted in a sneer of underlying hatred, a hatred Nikolai finally understood. “I know you better than you do; therefore, I know these things to be true. I say you are more like me than you would ever care to admit.” It was hard to stand there in the same room with the man that had organized the murder of his father and converse with him as if nothing had changed. Still, Nikolai found the task not as difficult as he thought it would be, simply because cold detachment was second nature to him. After all, that was exactly what his life had been…before, but while that had changed, and with it so many things yet to be changed, one thing still remained the same and that was Arnost’s enormously pitiful attempts to manipulate him to his side. It wasn’t the first time he had tried this particular ploy. Over the course of numerous - no, thousands if not millions - of failed efforts to probe him in the past, this was what usually came next: the endeavor to bond with him. What was really pathetic was Arnost thought Nikolai was completely ignorant of this. Nikolai almost snorted. It was so insulting. The man helped butcher his father and destroy his people, took away his birthright. He raped and beat his mother, hid his sister from him, then used her as a weapon against him. And the last dirty deed the asshole committed, the one still so fresh in Nikolai’s mind, was the whipping of his S’airsul. As those thoughts consumed Nikolai, the rage that followed grew infinite, the desire to reach out and snap Arnost’s neck, almost inescapable. Nikolai let that rage flow right through him, let Arnost see it and feel it. Cold harsh air snapped to life and filled the room. “Arnost, the only thing I know is that I’m tired and hungry. Whatever your plans for the future are, I don’t give a fuck as long as they don’t involve my sister or my mother. You can kill, maim, torture, and rape anyone you choose, I don’t care.” Nikolai took the last step that Arnost seemed naught to do. With a low growl of warning, he looked directly into Arnost’s eyes. “When this is over, and you and Konstantin have all you ever wanted, I want only one thing from you and that is for you two to leave me and mine the fuck alone!” Nikolai’s answer was scathing and sincere, and Arnost saw no reason not to believe him. With a bland expression, Arnost agreed with a quick nod of his head. “I don’t see why not. After all, your many years of devoted service deserve a reward.” 278 Forever Mine What a load of shit! Nikolai thought as he stared into Arnost’s cruelly smiling face. The man planned on haunting him until his death, most likely at his hands or Konstantin’s hands. Nikolai turned and headed toward the door. “I’ll do what you want. Abaigeal Mac Branain will not be here for the Council’s meeting, but don’t blame me if the little twit has a big mouth and runs to tell daddy about her visit with you before I can snatch her.” “I do not fear her saying anything,” Arnost confidently continued. “Magnus is not the type to let things go unpunished. Strong she might be, but she is not stupid. She would not want her father to know she failed in her duty. She is turning out to be quite the conundrum, is she not? I will not underestimate her again.” Nikolai grunted impatiently “Great, whatever.” Arnost walked back to his chair and sat down. “I’m glad we had this little talk. It reassures me in so many ways.” The mocking tone was not lost on Nikolai, so he threw out one of his own. “Glad to hear it.” He opened the door to leave. “Where is Konstantin?” Arnost waved a dismissive hand. “In his room, most likely passed out and riding the morphine cloud.” “Then excuse me while I go and visit with my mother and Katya.” Nikolai didn’t wait for a response. He just walked out of the room and closed the door. He made his way down the hall and toward his mother’s room, maintaining the cold heartless facade of the legendary General. As he neared the end of the hallway, the beginnings of a smile came to life and only grew broader as he neared his destination. In just minutes, he would have his mother and his sister in his arms. He could breathe in their scents, hold them, and he could do it all with the knowledge that they would still be with him, where they belonged, and would always remain. When he finally stood in front of the door to his family's suite, he stood there and stared at it. For a moment, he felt unsure of what he would find inside. Of course, his mother and sister would be there, but what left him standing in the hallway were the emotions that immediately slammed into him the moment he got here. It was rage and blinding resentment at his mother, a woman who, for all intended purposes, did not deserve it. He saw what took place so many years ago. He had felt her sadness and confusion, her deep unbending love for his father and her rage witnessing his death at the hands of her now husband Konstantin. He got all of that. What he was having a really hard time dealing with was the why part. Regardless of what Doki said, a part of him felt Sasha betrayed him by keeping this secret - his entire fucking life! – and let him think he was tainted by the blood of a madman even though she knew how much that made his life a living hell. That was where the bitterness came from, not to mention pain, anger and confusion. Goddess above, there was a lot of that! Like how could no one else have known of the treachery that took place or of the children Sasha had carried in her womb, the children fathered by someone other than who everyone knew her husband to be? Especially Circinn. How could 279 Forever Mine he not have known? The man was the liaison to the Gods, he knew everything! It was hard for Nikolai to swallow the idea that the Consul had known. If he did, then wouldn’t this be something that Cinn, someone Nikolai always thought of as a friend, would have told him? It didn’t make any sense, and he was determined to get all the answers tonight before the ball began. Nikolai lifted his hand, knocked once then, without waiting for an answer, walked inside. She stood before the window, proud and tall, the regal bearing of the Upyr princess she was. She wore a long gown of bright yellow that accentuated her pale skin and ebony hair that was swept up in a perfect coif. Her appearance was striking and elegant, young, even though she was far from it. She stood still and serene, waiting for him. Of course, she had known he would be coming and by the look on her face, she knew what was about to be discussed. Nikolai met his mother’s gaze and was startled to see cerulean eyes gleaming back with sharp awareness. Her gaze was steady and strong, clear, and… sane. He expected to see a hollow woman with no life, the woman he had come to know as his mother for the past one hundred years, not this woman who stood before him like this only in his memories. His eyes hardened. Had it all been a sham? Had she been lying this whole time about this too? A frown appeared, darker this time as his thoughts deepened. He closed the door behind him, never once taking his eyes from the orbs that were so much like his own. Her cheeks appeared wet; she’d been crying. He wanted to reach out and comfort her, but a part of him, the one that was holding on to the resentment he had never felt for this woman before, was too strong to just push aside with just a happy kiss and hello. He wanted answers, damn it, and he was going to get them. He was angry. That was easy for Sasha to see. It was in the hard set of his jaw and his stiff shoulders, shoulders so much like her beloved Maksim. She had expected it, and she thought she had prepared herself for his condemnation, but facing it was an entirely different matter. “You are angry.” Nikolai’s eyes seethed with fury. He didn’t speak, his black eyes stayed riveted on her, his chest rapidly rising in his agitation. It was not the explosive response she had been expecting. She tilted her head in question then realized why he hesitated to speak his mind. “It is just you and I. Katya is with Misha. You may speak freely.” Still, he said nothing as those obsidian eyes just watched her… accusing her. Sasha swallowed and tried once again. “Koyla, I know you have many questions. You are angry. We cannot get past this anger until you talk to me.” Finally he spoke; harshly, low, as if it required all his strength to not shout. “I don’t know where to begin.” His answer was filled with the all the scorn he felt. Sasha inadvertently shivered. That voice - a voice that brought back sharp memories of the man she had lost - spoken just so, was a sign Nikolai was barely holding back his temper, a temper that rivaled his father’s. She deserved his contempt and his anger. She would not shy away from her culpability. 280 Forever Mine Sasha held her head higher and stood her ground. “Your anger is merited.” It was a patronizing answer, a laidback response and tone, that to Nikolai belittled everything he was feeling and destroyed the control he had been maintaining. Nikolai harshly snorted, “You think!” Violently, he begun to pace and vent his anger, a tirade of everything he was feeling. “Gods blood, mother! I mean… fuck!” Sasha watched as Nikolai switched from English to Upyrian. She could not help but rejoice hearing the language of her people coming from his lips, even though he most likely had no idea he was even speaking it. His strides were heavy and irate as he continued his fast pacing, continued speaking. What she was seeing was the future, the man melding with the demon. Ultimately, when they became one, Upyrian would always be spoken when his emotions ran high, like they were now. It was the native tongue of the Darkness and since the Darkness controlled his primal emotions – those of anger and passion – the Darkness would regulate Nikolai’s baser skills, such as language. It was what every male Upyrian had to adjust to. Becoming one with a powerful demon required a person with great control, patience, and a clear understanding that this was what was supposed to take place, the natural way of things. Sasha had lost many family members and friends to the insanity one was wrought with when they tried to fight it, tried to deny the balance that must be achieved in order to just survive. She did not worry for her son. Even though for Nikolai that adjustment would be harder because he had been denied the acceptance of his heritage, he was his father’s son, and there was no Upyr more controlled and more astute than Maksim had been. That Nikolai had been controlling the Darkness all these years without any repercussions was an amazing feat and a true testament of the man he was. Nikolai stopped in front of her, his eyes black as night. The Darkness remained hidden within the man, the rage still present, but not as explosive. “Were you ever planning on telling me? Ever?” “Nikolai, you must understand, it was not up to me tell you. You had to discover on your own. It was the way it was foreseen, the way I was told it would be. I could do nothing but… wait.” As she expected, Nikolai’s rage came back to the surface, and that rage, that desperate attempt to understand what she was saying, began his fitful pacing once again as he threw his hands up in the air in disgust and growled angrily. “Gods blood! Is that the only answer you can give me?” He stopped and pinned her with an appalled black gaze. “Is that supposed to mollify me? Well, guess what, maman, it isn’t working! You’ll have to do better than that, damn it!” The insolence in his voice sparked Sasha’s own fury. Sasha stepped forward, her own eyes blazing a deep wrath of midnight blue that startled Nikolai. “Do you think I do not know or understand all that you are feeling? You have led a hard life, I do not dispute that nor do I deny my part that led you down that path, but do not for one instant think I have ever had it easy. I had to watch as my mate, my soul, was murdered right before my eyes! I 281 Forever Mine had to stand by and act the part of an idiot in order to keep my children alive. I have been beaten, raped, and scorned by the very men that took everything away from me!” Her petite frame was literally shaking with outrage. “Do not stand there and speak to me with such insolence, Nikolai Tereschenko! I can accept your anger and bitterness, but I will not stand here and allow you to treat me so callously!” Her voice had risen in in her own anger and oddly enough, it cooled Nikolai’s. As he held her gaze, he saw within them all he had felt, all he had seen, what she had gone through over the long years to protect him, and he felt… ashamed. “You are angry with me, as you have every right to be,” Sasha continued, more quietly, but with just as much conviction. “You think I have betrayed you and I will not tell you that I have not, but I did what I must to keep you alive, to keep hope thriving for when the day would come when all would be revealed.” Sasha stepped closer and touched his cheek. Her smile was hesitant, but full of love and affection, hope. “You may feel your anger and bitterness, I only hope that one day you will come to understand why I did what I did, and… forgive me,” she quietly said. Seeing that smile, feeling her love and warmth, her truth, encircle him, Nikolai’s heart cracked and the brewing resentment drifted away. Nikolai reached for her and pulled her into his arms. “I’m sorry, maman, I never meant to hurt you. You’ve been through so much. It’s not right for me to add to your pain.” Sasha embraced her son, her eyes closing in contentment. “No, Dorogoy, you have every right. I just… I am so happy that the truth has been revealed, so happy you know, and I am so sorry for what has been done to you, for all that you have had to sacrifice. You could never understand just how much I love you, what you mean to me.” She pulled back and gripped his face between her hands. Her glassy eyes searched his features in love and wonder. “You are so much like my Maksim. Goddess, every time I see you, I cannot help but think of him.” Her breath hitched; her voice cracked with deep sorrow. “Goddess, Koyla, I miss him so much.” Nikolai’s own tears came feeling his mother’s body rock in grief as she cried for the love she had lost so long ago. He thought of Abby then and how alive he felt since meeting her. He recognized that his emotions were beyond being strong; they were embedded in his soul… into his very being. Knowing what he now knew, he understood the very meaning of S’airsul, what it meant to have a S’airsul, and just how life connecting and altering that was. His mother’s anguish would be his own if he let himself think of life without Abby. He could not even begin to fathom how his mother had survived all these years without Maksim. Copiously understanding all his mother had endured, the respect and admiration Nikolai had for the woman weeping in his arms grew in strength, devotion and love. 282 Forever Mine Time slipped by, neither one knowing how much, each one lost in memories and regrets, pain and sorrow. When Sasha finally pulled back, she held him at arm’s length. “You have many questions, and I want to answer all of them, but perhaps now is not the time.” She pulled a handkerchief from her pocket and daintily wiped at her eyes. Nikolai gently took her arm and steered her over to a chair. “Sit, maman.” Sasha smiled warmly then sat down and arranged her long skirt. Nikolai did want to know everything but she was right, there were more dire issues that needed to be dealt with first. He could spend the rest of his days learning about his birthright and discovering what kind of man his father had been. For now, there were only a few things he needed answers to. Nikolai sat down across from her. Leaning forward, he leaned his forearms against his thighs and gripped his hands together in front of him. “There are certain things I must know, maman.” Sasha smiled. “Of course. I take it you plan on speaking with Cinn?” Nikolai nodded. “Then what is it you wish to know, Koyla?” Not wanting to cause her any more distress, Nikolai had every intention of starting slowly, yet he found his mind thinking faster than he’d intended and his questions came out like rapid fire. “I don’t understand how they could have hid something like this? How did no one know? How did Circinn not know? And how the hell did no one realize you were carrying Maksim Tereschenko’s children?” Sasha’s eyebrow lifted then she grinned. “I will take one question at a time, yes?” Nikolai’s instant blush had Sasha softly chuckling then she leaned forward and patted his knee. “It’s okay, Dorogoy, I understand your urgency.” She sat back and cleared her throat. “To answer questions one, two, and I’m just going to skip over number three for the moment and jump right to number four, yes?” Nikolai inclined his head, a warm smile on his own lips as Sasha began. “Keeping the secret was simpler than you would believe. A month before, we learned a small group of Lycanthropes had survived the war and had been hiding in Siberia. Maksim gave Konstantin the duty of dispatching them. Konstantin, however, did not. He waited, and once he and Arnost killed our clans, they blamed it on the Lycans then killed them. No one suspected treachery because no one would ever believe the sired children of two Master Vampires would be able to kill them. Logically, they should not have been able to. Turned vampires do not hold the power an Upyr has, especially a bonded one.” Her eyes crinkled in thought. “I never understood how they did it.” “They drugged everyone,” Nikolai softly said. “Is that what they did? I never knew. I sensed something was not right with Maksim through the bond, but drugged, Goddess above, it was morphine, wasn’t it?” Nikolai nodded and Sasha growled with anger. “I always knew that bastard’s habit would bring trouble into the house. I told Maksim. I told him to banish Konstantin until he got rid of it, but he refused. He was so loyal to him. He thought Konstantin a brother.” Sasha, after taking a deep, calming breath, continued. 283 Forever Mine “Back then, things were much different than they are now. Vampires and Lycans were the predominate power in D’rkenrealm, and once the Lycans had been decimated, the Houses fought each other for control. Master Vampires did not socialize with each other; they only wanted to destroy one another. No one knew I carried Maksim’s children because no one but those within the clan knew I was his S’airsul.” “I don’t understand. How can that be? Carvilius must have known? You must have met him?” Sasha shook her head. “No. I did not. The first time I met Carvilius was three months before you and Katya were born. The fact is Nikolai that before Konstantin murdered your father I had never even been out of Russia.” Nikolai stared back blankly. Sasha leaned forward once again, her eyes seeking. She took a deep breath, unnerving Nikolai as he felt those eyes questing deep within his soul. “I see you have not fully taken from her yet. This is good, for the time is not yet right, but you have to some extent, so I can assume you are beginning to understand the true power you have within your grasp.” She angled her head slightly, waiting for a confirmation. “I didn’t know you could probe, maman?” Sasha chuckled. “It is not probing that tells me this is so. It is my connection to you and your demon that does. Upyr females instinctively know when another male Upyr is near. It is our means of protecting ourselves. We, unlike the males of our species, do not have the strength nor the power or size to defend ourselves. We rely upon our visions and our intelligence, if one does not have a mate, that is. I know you found your S’airsul because I sense your demon’s restlessness to complete the bond. Basically, Dorogoy…” She playfully grinned. “I can sense your demon, in heat, for lack of a better word.” Nikolai looked away, a bit embarrassed, but Sasha’s laughter only grew. “No, my pet, do not be embarrassed, sex is breath for Upyr. As I think you have already learned, yes?” Nikolai looked back into her eyes and saw no censure, only love. He smirked. “Now that you have, you see how indestructible the demon inside you can be. The only weakness a mated Upyr has is his S’airsul. Once the Efnaru is complete, you will be connected to her, in the most literal of meanings, with your life. It is her blood that sustains you, and only her blood. Should she die, you die. That is why a mated Upyr never revealed who his S’airsul was, and that is why no one outside the Clan ever knew I was Maksim’s.” Nikolai sat back and reflected on that. It made sense. With so many Upyr around and being imperishable creations, revealing your S’airsul would be signing your death wish. “What of Circinn?” he quietly asked. Sasha sighed and then sat back. “I do not know, Koyla. It is a question that has stumped me as well. You must seek Cinn for that answer.” And he would, right after this. 284 Forever Mine Nikolai already left a message with a servant that he wanted to speak with the Consul before the ball began. He was pretty sure Cinn would want to speak with him as well considering the confusion and curiosity Nikolai saw on his face earlier. He had found it amusing and still did simply because he knew that cheerfulness was not his usual persona the world saw. Sighing, Nikolai stood up and walked over to the window. He gazed out thoughtfully and an image of Katya sprang to mine. How was she reacting to her first visit to Scotland and the Summit? It was going to be quite an experience for his sheltered sister. Learning the truth of their past was going to be extremely difficult for her and Nikolai was concerned how she would handle the news. “Katya? Does she know?” “Goddess no, and I think it wise not to tell her, at least until all of this has passed.” Nikolai had to agree. “You fear her being probed?” Sasha nodded. “She has never learned to control her thoughts. It is something that must come in time. When she finds her S’airsul, she will blossom into everything she is supposed to be, she will become a true Upyr, just as you have.” Sasha turned and angled her body so she could look at Nikolai when she asked her next question. “Koyla, when will you reveal what you have learned?” Nikolai heard the restlessness in her voice. She was tired of the lies and just wanted everything out in the open. While he did too, he was still in a precarious position, one that required patience. “Soon. There are things I must amend first. For now, Arnost and Konstantin must believe I am still on their side. “ Sasha nodded, seemingly understanding that. “They fear you, you know, they fear all that you could become if you found your other half. It is why they have kept you tied to them, to keep control over your destiny. But that is no more. Your destiny is now yours to make and this day begins that new destiny. I shall stand proudly by your side with, whatever decision you make." Nikolai didn’t like the sound of that. "What decision?" Sasha’s eyes widened. "Nikolai, have you not heard what I just told you. You are the son of Maksim Tereschenko, the line that is the father of all others. Being his son makes you the rightful Overlord. When the Council learns that a direct descendent of Maksim is alive, they will have no choice but to make you Overlord." Nikolai quietly cursed as he spun completely around and fixed Sasha with a hard look. "Maman, I do not want to be Overlord. I'm tired of fighting and I’m fed up with all the political bullshit. I want only to take Abby home and live quietly with her, raise a family, spend time with you and Katya - live my life!" Sasha smiled knowingly at him. "Hence the 'whatever decision you make' part, Dorogoy." "What?" Sasha chuckled at the riled expression on Nikolai’s face. "Do you think I do not know my own son? Nikolai, I for one do not wish to see you take over as ruler. After watching my beloved die for his role as ruler, I 285 Forever Mine do not wish to see my son befall the same fate. No, Magnus is a fine and honorable Overlord, and I for one would be very happy to see him continue as he has. However, that does not displace the fact that it is your birthright and should you choose otherwise…well then, I will stand by your side." Nikolai grunted then turned back to the window. That would never happen. He was tired and most definitely did not want to rule anything but his own domain. “Tell me, Koyla.” Sasha’s voice was wistful and longing. “What does she look like? Does she look like her mother or father? My visions were not clear. I sense she is a thing of beauty, so full of life… is it true?” Nikolai watched two black limos as they pulled into the courtyard below. The doors opened and people started to emerge. He knew who they each were, yet he had eyes only for one. And when she stepped out into the early evening night, wearing a dress as black as the sky, he almost lost his breath. “She leaves me…breathless,” he softly said. “She is… the sun and vitality all rolled into one perfectly magnificent package created… just for me.” He felt the warmth of his mother’s body beside his, felt her arm wrap around his waist as she looked out the window and smiled. “That is her, isn’t it?” Nikolai nodded, his gaze focused on Abby as she talked to a young redheaded woman. Then he saw Magnus walk outside and greet his family. He stopped in front of the boys, exchanging handshakes and rough hugs with each of them. “Oh, Koyla, she is lovely… I knew she would be,” Sasha joyfully commented as she continued to look at Abby. Nikolai was still watching Magnus. He snorted. "Yes, that she is. She is also as stubborn as that strutting ass she calls a father." Sasha laughed. "I do not doubt that.” She peeked up at him, a twinkle in her eye. “I remember a time when you strutted about just like him, following his every step, wanting to be just like him.” She sighed, “I suppose he has not yet forgiven you?" "I don't think that’s a word in Magnus' vocabulary, maman." There was a flash of red and Nikolai gazed back out the window and at the courtyard below to see Ella running out the doors at full speed. With arms wide open, she ran straight for Abby. Reaching her, she pulled her daughter into a fierce hug. Sasha softly chuckled, witnessing the reunion between mother and daughter, but still pondering the stubborn father who she knew so well. “No, I suppose not. Magnus will come around, he'll have no choice, Abaigeal is your S’airsul and he will accept it. Besides, there are… others who do not feel the same way as he." Nikolai had no idea what that cryptic comment meant but it didn’t matter. His thoughts were now on Magnus as he watched his former mentor approach Abby and pull her into a big bear hug. Forgive him? He snorted. Like hell. 286 Forever Mine CHAPTER EIGHTEEN Abby stepped out of the limo and stretched her travel weary body. She leaned her head back, closed her eyes and took a deep breath in an attempt to calm her mind that had done nothing but stress out over pretty much everything the entire trip to Scotland. She had no idea what to expect. From the Summit itself, to her father and his plans for her - whatever the hell those were - and most importantly, Nikolai. Her body reflectively shivered just like it had every time she thought of him in the past twenty-four hours. The time they spent together in Russia consumed her thoughts on every level. From every word spoken, to every single touch or searing look, right down to how comfortable she had felt being with him. Talking to him, touching him, just holding him in her arms…everything had felt so damn right that it was downright scary. She couldn’t ignore the fact that she was attuned to him in every aspect. That attention, that driving need to seek him out, to be… his, was almost too strong to resist. She opened her eyes and stared up at the sky. Bryony stood to her left, talking to Tiernan and Keegan, who had ridden in the limo with them. Their quiet laughter filled her ears, but she didn’t share their easygoing nature. She felt tight; she felt her nerves slipping and it was all because she had no idea how she was going to be able to ignore the person that completely filled her soul. Would she be able to keep her eyes from straying and seeking his hulking figure? Would she be able to completely ignore her body’s need for his when they were in the same room together? How was she supposed to do that and keep a happy-go-lucky, dutiful daughter smile on her face? She heard Tiernan’s deep soft voice as he answered a question Bryony put forth. As she looked over at her brother, she wished to the Gods she could be more like him; aloof and unaffected by everything around him. Tiernan looked over Bryony’s head and met Abby’s troubled gaze. He smiled affectionately, winking as he did. It was Tiernan’s way of telling her that everything would be okay. Abby returned his smile, wishing she could be as confident as him. Exhaling a long breath, she told herself she could do this. She could avoid Nikolai Kotova. She could face her father and whatever plans he had in store for her - even though her gut was telling her she wasn’t going to like them - and she would do it all with her head held high and her back straight. “Thank the Goddess, I thought we’d never get here.” Hearing Shane’s voice told Abby the rest of her brothers had arrived. As they met Tiernan and Keegan in the middle of the courtyard, a third limo came to a stop behind theirs. The door opened and Bryon’s sisters Laurel and Alone, and their half-brother Taran, stepped out and joined the brothers. “Does this trip take longer every time or is it just me?” Shane asked. 287 Forever Mine Nyle smirked and slapped him on the back. “It’s just you, brother, and your excitement to sample all the lasses.” Shane’s answering grin was full of devilish delight. “So true.” “Try to at least keep it in your pants the first day, will you, Shane?” Liam sternly said. “Don’t talk the talk if you can’t walk the walk… brother.” Tiernan made that dry comment to Liam who shot him a fierce glower. Tiernan ignored him with his characteristic detachment as he walked past him and up the stone stairs toward the door. Shane and Nyle both glanced at Keegan. “Who do we have to thank for the return of the Royal Ass?” “A long plane ride with you, son, would make any man disagreeable.” On that dry note, Magnus walked down the steps of the keep. He greeted his sons one by one with hearty handshakes and sturdy slaps on the back. While he talked the boys a whirlwind of red emerged from the house and ran down the steps, straight toward Abby. Squealing with excitement, Ella rushed past her mate, completely giving him the cold shoulder, and grabbed Abby in a fierce maternal hug. “Hello, my baby.” “Hi, mom.” Abby smiled and hugged her mom back. Ella drew back and searched her daughter’s features. “How are you? Are you okay? I’ve missed you so much!” “I’m good, mom, I’ve missed you too.” Ella smiled again and then once more drew her into a hug. She whispered in her ear. “Prepare yourself, baby.” Abby’s heart lurched in her chest. Those three little words were so powerful, so… revealing, that Abby instantly knew hell was right around the corner. “Elizabeth.” Magnus’ low warning came from behind Ella. Rolling her eyes, Ella pulled back from Abby and kissed her on the cheek. “I’m so glad you’re here.” With a twinkle in her eye, her mom stepped to the side to make room for her dad. As Abby looked up into her father’s face, a fleeting thought passed her mind: she really wished she wasn’t here. “Abaigeal.” Once again Abby found herself in a fierce paternal hug that almost left her gasping for breath. She breathed in her father’s rich scent and cuddled against his chest. Regardless of how angry he could make her, she still loved him. He was her daddy, the one man in the world she could always count on, even if his love sometimes made her feel stifled. “Hi, dad.” Magnus pulled back and beheld the face of his daughter, a face he hadn’t seen in three months. She wore her long blonde hair down and free. Parted to the side, a wave of shimmering tresses covered a portion of her face. With a smile 288 Forever Mine overflowing with love and warmth, he reached up and pushed the thick mass back behind her ear. Abaigeal’s response was an annoyed rolling of her eyes. It was her way of telling him he was treating her like a baby. His smile grew tenderer and more devoted as she remained silent instead of rebuking him for the gesture. Magnus prided himself on being a fair individual, especially when it came to his children. When you had a large brood like he did, equality was a must to keep the peace and ultimately him maintaining some sort of sanity. He loved, respected, and felt a tremendous amount of pride for all his children, but when it came to his one and only daughter, he could admit that equality and fairness flew right out the window. That in no meant he loved her more than his sons, it just meant she held a special place in his heart that his sons could never touch. She was his only daughter, his baby, and no matter how old she was, she always would be. Abaigeal was the perfect daughter with the exception of one small flaw: she had an independent streak - inherited from her mother - that was going to be the death of him. Actually, independence was just one of the many traits Abaigeal shared with her mother. In fact, they were alike in so many ways, it was downright irritating. Of course, that’s not to say he would change either one of them because he wouldn’t. He was able to admit that it was his own feelings that were the problem, not them. The undeniable truth was that his mate and his daughter stirred emotions that were sometimes too overwhelming for even him to deal with. They were fierce protectiveness and deep unbending love that sometimes bordered on being violent and obsessive. He had an innate need to keep them tied to him at any costs. Those driving emotions caused him to make decisions and do things that often left him quarreling with both of them. He knew this, but knowing he was sometimes suffocating them didn’t mean he could in any way curtail his actions and stop feeling the way he did. He had tried. During the first twenty years of living with Elizabeth, he tried to change, he tried to put a lid on all those dominant and all-consuming sentiments, but he quickly learned he was completely incapable of restraining himself, and accepted the Gods giving truth that he would never be able to. Was it a flaw in his character? He knew Elizabeth thought, so but he didn’t see it that way. He was just a man, a warrior to the depth of his soul, with an inborn drive to protect his women. It did not necessarily mean he thought they were weak or couldn’t protect themselves, he knew both of them were incredibly capable of doing so, but knowing that did not alter his instinctive nature to protect them. He had come to grips with that. He just wished his mate and daughter could. Tenderly, Magnus cupped Abaigeal’s cheek and his eyes caressed her features. “I feel like I haven’t seen you in months, Princess,” he softly said. “That’s because you haven’t, dolt.” Ella interjected that wiseass remark, which got her a heavy scowl from Magnus. “Don’t you have sons to greet?” he irritably asked. Elizabeth huffed indignantly then turned away to do just that. 289 Forever Mine After a resigned shake of his head from his mate’s obvious displeasure with him, Magnus turned his attention back to the girls standing in front of him. Abaigeal was grinning and sporting that same mischievous twinkle green that Elizabeth often did, telling him she was enjoying his prickly interaction with her mother. He winked at her. Then his gaze settled on Bryony. Smiling, Magnus released Abby and held out his arms to his favorite niece. “And you, come here, it’s been too long since I’ve seen you as well.” Bryony’s smile was full of affection as she walked into Magnus’ arms. She hugged him back just as fiercely as he hugged her and greeted him with the nickname she always called him. “Hi, Unc.” Magnus kissed the top of Bryony’s head and gave her one good squeeze. “I hope you two haven’t been getting into too much trouble.” The girls glanced at one another and then Abby turned stony eyes to her father. “That’s hard to do, dad, when you have Bruisers following you everywhere you go,” she sourly said. Magnus sighed then gently grasped Abby’s shoulders. “Abaigeal, can we not have a truce while we’re here?” he softly asked. If you haven’t done something that’s going to seriously piss me off, sure – why not? Pushing her thoughts to the back of mind, Abby plastered a fake smile on her face. “Sure, dad, whatever you say.” Magnus frowned. He knew that tone, it was the same one Elizabeth used when she was not pleased with him but wanted him to think she was. Goddess save him from the women in his life! Magnus pulled Abaigeal into another hug and kissed the top her head. “You know I love you?” Abby sighed then hugged him back. “I know, dad. I love you too.” Standing on her tippy toes, she leaned in and kissed him on the cheek, giving him a true smile. Magnus grunted his approval then addressed the rest of his family. “Alright, everyone inside!” His voice carried over the wind, booming and drawing the family’s attention to him. He threw one arm over Abby’s shoulder and the other over Bryony’s then started walking into the keep. ”And get ready for tonight.” He speared Shane and Nyle with a piercing gaze as he and the girls passed them. “I don’t want to see you two in the ladies parlor. You understand me?” The Bruisers gazed at each other innocently then back at their father as they answered him together. “Yeah, sure.” Magnus glowered. “I’m serious.” He added that comment a bit more sternly. Nyle and Shane passed him and the girls then climbed the stairs to the keep. Naturally, Magnus’s harsh tone was completely ignored as they blew him off with a casual wave and a flippant in sync answer of, “Okay, whatever.” Then walked inside the keep and… headed toward the ladies parlor. Magnus watched them go with a growl on his lips. Impertinent pups. One of these days he was going to seriously put those two in their places. 290 Forever Mine “They’re your sons,” Elizabeth was sweet enough to remind him as she breezed by with a smile, taking Abby and Bryony with her as she walked into the castle. The moment everyone stepped inside, chaos erupted. It was a rare occasion indeed when they all gathered together as they were now – like one big crazy mob. What wasn’t rare though was the boisterous greetings that came in the form of bone crushing hugs. Like the one Abby currently found herself in, being exuberantly given by her Aunt Devyn, a petite woman with the strength of a professional wrestler. “Has it really been three months since we saw you last?” Big blue eyes gazed back at Abby with open affection and a touch of wonderment. Devyn was one of the most caring and outwardly giving people Abby knew. Actually, the woman was a saint – she had a knack for seeing the good in everyone. She dedicated her life to helping the poor and sick children that had no one, and she did so with gusto, even adopting some of them. A husky laugh drew Abby’s eyes to the right and to the intoxicating smile of the platinum blonde with purple neon streaks in her hair and currently locking lips with Connor. Lucy, Connor’s mate and wife, had been one of those children Devyn adopted, and Abby thanked the Goddess every day for that. Lucy was a perfect fit into the Mac Branain brood. She was a strong, outspoken, independent woman that didn’t take shit. Everyone loved her, but she did have a tendency to get on the male’s nerves when she very bluntly – and quite often – told them they were ‘bloody idiotic barbarians that had dicks for brains to think they could control Abby’s life.’ Abby grinned. Yeah, she loved Lucy. Lucy turned her head and their eyes met. She smiled and winked at Abby then grabbed Connor’s right butt cheek and wiggled her eyes. The frisky and open show of affection had Abby laughing and Connor smacking Lucy’s ass. Abby was pretty certain those two would be late to the ball tonight. “Goddess, Abby, I swear you have grown even more beautiful than the last time I saw you.” Abby turned back to her aunt. Devyn’s head was cocked to the side and her eyes were lowered in deep thought as she continued to study Abby closely. “You seem… older.” Abby’s smile faltered for one second before she caught herself and forced her body not to stiffen up in nervousness. While everyone in her family had their own idiosyncrasies, special talents, and flaws, the one they thing they shared was their uncanny perceptiveness, especially the women. “Well, I am three months older, Dev.” Abby halfheartedly chuckled. Devyn gave her one last thorough and unnervingly silent stare before her eyes twinkled and she laughed right along with Abby. “And as much of a smartass as you were before.” Abby hid her sigh of relieve behind the laugh that left her lips. Thankfully, she was spared anymore soul probing from her aunt when her feet 291 Forever Mine suddenly left the floor and she was lifted up from behind, swung around, and what a surprise - hugged unmercifully once again. “It’s in her DNA, luv,” Slade replied as he planted a hearty wet kiss on Abby’s forehead. “She opens her mouth and it just falls right out.” If there was anyone who was the complete opposite of Devyn, it was her mate, Slade. Loud-mouthed and sarcastic, Slade could be self-centered and quite mean, if he didn’t like you at least. If you were lucky enough to have his affection then you knew that underneath all that mockery and seemingly uncaring attitude was a man with deep emotions and a whole lot of crushing love to give. Abby wrapped her arms around Slade’s neck, grinning. “I’m not sure if I should be insulted or not.” Slade smirked. “Well, pet, since you have the dubious honor of inheriting a hard head from both your parents…” He leaned in and added on a whisper, “Especially your mum, I’m sure my witty comments will bounce right off you.” “I heard that.” Ella’s cross yet deceptively quiet comment came from behind Slade where she stood with Alona and Laurel, glaring at the back of Slade’s head. Slade rolled his eyes and let loose an exaggerated sigh. “Just be thankful you didn’t get her harpy ways too.” Abby held back a giggle as her mom’s stare became as heated as the Sahara desert right before she slapped Slade on the shoulder blade, which pushed him forward. “Oi!” Slade let go of Abby and turned around to confront Ella. “What did I tell you about hitting me, Blonde!” With a smile of joy on her face, Abby watched her mom and Slade argue with each other. Their relationship was more like water and vinegar than two caring friends. Oh, they respected each other and cared for one another; Abby would even go so far as to say that on some level, they loved each other, but they rarely showed it – that would require a life or death situation. Normally, they just insulted the crap out of each other. It was pretty funny to watch, at least when there was someone there to reel them in when things got out of hand, someone like Abby’s dad or Devyn. But when that buffer wasn’t there and the insults hit too close to home, fists would fly and blood would spill. As an exasperated sigh left Devyn’s lips, Abby knew there was no way things would escalate that far today. She turned her attention to Slade at the same time that Abby’s dad grabbed her mom’s arm and literally dragged her away from. “Auntie Iggy!” Abby barely had time to turn around and open her arms before she was blitzed by the small frame of her five-year-old nephew Jagger. “Hey there, little man!” She hugged him tightly then gave him a sloppy kiss on the cheek. Jagger was the youngest of Connor and Lucy’s children. He was sweettempered and exceedingly selfless; he also carried some of his mother’s magical 292 Forever Mine traits. This became apparent six months ago when he was told he couldn’t have another peanut butter cookie, his favorite. After crying for a full ten minutes and still not getting a cookie, Jagger took matters into his own hands and teleported the entire tray Dobbs just took out of the oven to his plate. Luckily the only people present at the time were Dobbs, Abby and Liam. If Lucy had been there, she would have freaked out. While Lucy was a talented witch thanks to a psycho Soothsayer for a father, Lucy understandably had some issues when it came to anything magical. So Abby, Liam and Dobbs, opted to tell only Connor about Jagger’s magical display. Since none of them had seen Lucy go into a fit of rage, which was a scary thing indeed, they all assumed Connor hadn’t told her yet. Naturally, he would have to soon. Magic, especially young growing magic, was not something you could hide for long. “I missed you, Auntie Iggy!” Jagger giggled and fidgeted within Abby’s arms as she tickled him in the side. “I missed you too, squirt. Did you have fun with Slade and Devyn?” Before Jagger could respond, a solemn voice broke in from behind. “Quiet, runt, or Grandpa Magnus will hear you.” Abby looked up and into the very serious face of Connor’s eldest, eightyear-old Hendrix. “You know you’re not supposed to call her Iggy in front of him.” Hendrix looked at Abby and grinned. “Or at least anywhere he might hear you,” he playfully added. Abby laughed then reached out and grabbed Hendrix’s tall lanky frame and pulled him into her embrace. While Jagger was the typical precarious five-year-old, Hendrix, at the ever wise age of eight, was already a serious and sometimes quiet young man. He took the responsibility of being the oldest very earnestly. “Oof.” Abby expelled a rush of breath from the sturdy body that jumped on her back. Leaning back she smiled and ruffled the pale blond head of six-yearold Strummer. “Gods, Strummer, it feels like you gained twenty pounds!” Strummer squeezed Abby’s neck, appreciatively grinning from ear to ear. “You think so? Uncle Kee showed me how to make his special super-duper chocolaty fudgy shakes. They’re real easy to make and I’ve been making a lot of them.” Out of the three of them, Strummer, at the tender age of six, was already on his way to being as big as his Uncle Keegan. Temperament-wise, he was like his mother, boisterous and rowdy, and like Jagger, already showing a growing propensity in the magic department. Which Lucy already knew and wasn’t too happy about. “Ig…” Jagger started to say, but then stopped when he heard the tired sigh that came from Hendrix. He blushed. “I mean, Abby. I got a pony for my birthday from Grandma Devyn and Grandpa Slade.” 293 Forever Mine “Hey.” Slade’s stern tone had Jagger looking up at him with wide innocent eyes. “What I tell you about calling me that?” Abby closed her eyes and shook her head. If there was one thing Slade loathed, it was being called Grandpa. “You said not to call you Grandpa,” Jagger answered flatly. Slade nodded then sternly asked, “That’s right, so why are you?” With the virtuousness of a five-year-old, Jagger answered, “’Cause you’re my Grandpa.” Slade exhaled a long and tired breath. “Yes, but you just call me Slade. Remember that.” “Don’t worry about it, Jagger. He doesn’t let me call him Uncle either.” Abby leaned in and whispered, “He has a rep to protect.” She winked and all three boys laughed. Slade scowled. “I don’t know why everyone finds that so funny.” “Because you’re over a thousand years old, Slade,” Connor answered as he came up next to him. “Get over it already.” Connor jokingly commented as Slade frowned at him. “Now, what’s this I hear about a pony? Didn’t I tell you no extravagant gifts?” Slade shook his head. “A pony is not extravagant, Connor. Now a Ducati Desmosedici, which I almost got, would be an extravagant gift and worth every penny, I might add.” Connor laughed, seeing his young son’s eyes lighting up with excitement. He picked him up. “Seeing as Jagger is only five, I think you made the right decision.” Slade grunted. “Yeah, well, he should be at least ten to truly enjoy it.” Connor shook his head then looked at his kids. “Come on, boys, mom wants everyone upstairs to take naps before tonight.” A long wail of no’s and come on’s followed that comment. Connor smiled but held firm. “I know, she’s such a tyrant.” All three boys nodded their heads in agreement. “But,” Connor continued, “we love her and we like to keep her happy. Right?” Three faces smiled and nodded their heads again. “Okay, then no arguing, let’s go.” “Come on, kids, I’ve got the perfect bedtime story. It’s got heroes - yours truly - and horses and a whole lot of blood and dismemberment. You’re going to love it,” Slade happily said. Strummer jumped up and down as Jagger clapped his hands. Hendrix quietly stood to the side with a huge grin on his face and his eyes alit with anticipation. “For the love of the Gods, pop, I’ve asked you not to tell them your old war stories. You’re going to give them nightmares.” Lucy walked up to Connor’s side, scowling at Slade who just shrugged a shoulder then proceeded to take Jagger out of Connor’s arms. “Bullocks that. These kids are made from tough stuff, Luce. They can take it.” Lucy rolled her eyes as Connor softly chuckled, seeing all three boys exuberantly nod their heads once again. 294 Forever Mine Slade looked pointedly back at Lucy. “Besides, I don’t think you should be complaining, missy. Those old war stories is what’s going to give you alone time with your mate, who you haven’t see in what… three weeks? But of course, if you really don’t want me to tell them a story, then I could easily…” Connor immediately stopped laughing. “No, tell them as many as you want Slade. Right, honey?” The mixed emotions that were playing over Lucy’s face were hilarious and Abby showed her amusement with a giggle that had Lucy glaring at her. Connor leaned into Lucy’s ear and said something that had her blushing like a red rose. “Okay, pops, but please keep the blood and dismemberment part to a minimum, okay?” Lucy said. Slade snorted. “That’s what I thought.” “Don’t worry, sweetie,” Devyn said as she appeared by Slade’s side. “I’ll be sure he does.” Slade and Devyn left the foyer with all three boys in tow and waving goodbye. “Connor, he’s going to give those boys nightmares.” Connor simply smiled at his mate then kissed her on the neck. “He’ll be fine, you worry too much. I missed you… a lot.” Connor nuzzled Lucy’s neck and Abby could hear him whispering something in her ear that had Lucy giggling again. It was the sound of a woman in love and it drew forth a weary sense of wistfulness inside Abby. It made her long to feel those spiraling emotions she knew Lucy was feeling, the knowledge that your man loved you for who you were and would never try to put you in a cage. They had the most balanced relationship, and seeing it now made Abby envious, just like it always did. She looked away. Goddess, she wanted that so bad. She truly did, but she couldn’t seem to get past the blasted fear that always came with it. “Abby, milaya moya, I would never do that to you. I would never take away your sense of self.” Nikola was offering her a loving, balanced relationship but when it came down to it, could he really? Could he suppress what was in his DNA? What made him the man he was? Was she strong enough to take the chance? Abby closed her eyes against the confusion and pain that filled her. Goddess, she had come here determined to avoid him, determined to forget about his sensual offer, and all she seemed to be able to do was dwell on it. “You alright, sweetie?” Abby’s gaze jerked up to Lucy’s. “What? Yeah, sure, fine, why?” “You zoned out there for a minute.” Abby felt completely under the gun as Connor’s piercing green eyes avidly watched her. She smiled. “No, I’m just tired, that’s all. Maybe I’ll take a nap,” she joked but neither Lucy nor Connor laughed with her. Connor walked up to her and drew her into his arms, hugging her tightly. “Everything will be okay, Abby, don’t worry. Dad loves you. Eventually…” He 295 Forever Mine sighed. “Well, he’ll come around, you’ll see.” He pulled back and kissed her on the forehead. “Rest up. It’s a big night for you. We’ll see you later.” Lucy’s eyes, full of pity, gazed back and Abby felt like such a sad sop that she wanted to cry. “Oh, oh… Abby!” Abby was spun around so quickly she almost got lightheaded as she was pulled into another fierce hug, this one by her Aunt Mati. When Mati sufficiently squeezed Abby to her satisfaction, she released her and looked directly into her eyes. “How are you, sweetie? I’m sorry I wasn’t home when you were there last week. I would have loved to spend some time with you and Bry.” She pouted. “I feel like I don’t see you guys often enough.” “What every child dreams of – time away from their overbearing parents and prying aunts and uncles.” Abby turned a twinkling gaze to her Uncle Ruari, Mati’s mate. They were the cutest couple. Abby didn’t think there were two people more suited for one another than them. While Devyn and Slade were apples and oranges, and her own parents like water and vinegar, Ruari and Mati were like peanut butter and jelly. “I’m good, Ruari, how ‘bout you?” Abby asked. Ruari nodded his head. “I am pleasantly… pleasant,” he stoically answered. Abby chuckled at the typical Ruari answer. Gazing back at Mati, Abby could see the redhead biting her lip in anxious anticipation. “I’m fine, Mati, no worries,” Abby responded. “Besides, we’ll get to hang out here.” Mati smiled. “I know, I’m so excited for you.” She leaned in and whispered seriously, “Are you nervous? Do you need help with anything? Because you know if you do, you can…” “Mati, Abby’s fine, and I’m sure she knows she can come to you with anything,” Ruari answered. “Ruari’s right, Mati, truly, I’m okay. A bit nervous, but excited too.” “Well, just remember I’m always here for you, sweetie.” Mati’s smile faltered as she quickly scanned the crowd. "I don't see Oriane?" She looked back at Abby. "Didn't she come?" Why Mati looked surprised was beyond Abby. Mati knew just like everyone else how uncomfortable Oriane was around supernatural beings. "I think coming to the Summit is too big a step for Oriane to take. It’s all too new for her.” Mati nodded her head in agreement. “Besides, even if she wanted to come, I don’t think Kee would let her,” Abby said with a smile in her voice. “Ah yes, well, first time fathers can get a little overprotective.” Ruari said. “Overprotective isn’t the word, he’s driving her daft. Oriane’s lucky if she can get outside the house without Keegan following her everywhere she goes.” Ruari softly chuckled, shaking his head as he did. 296 Forever Mine “Oh, that’s so cute.” Mati’s comment had Abby’s eyebrow lifting. Mati blushed, “Oh, well, you know, from a bystander’s point of view but I can see how Oriane might not think so.” The next fifteen minutes, Abby was busy greeting the rest of Ruari's and Mati's children, as Alona, Laurel and Taran all came over then one by one moved onto greet someone else. Then for the first time since she walked into the Castle, Abby was blessedly alone. She stood quietly to the side and leaned against the wall. Contented, she watched her family interact. Yes, they were crazy, yes, they were loud and obnoxious, and yes, most times they could rile each other up to the point of madness, but they still loved each other; they still took care of one another, and they respected each other deeply. There was a squeal of laughter that drew Abby’s gaze toward Jagger. Unable to make their quick escape, Connor and Lucy stood in the foyer as Connor tossed Jagger to Keegan who stood about five feet away from him. Keegan caught him then turned and tossed him to Slade, who was down the hallway with arms wide open. Abby chuckled. “You like children?” The clipped British accent had Abby’s smile instantly faltering. “Hello, Richard.” She hoped her cool greeting would be enough of a brushoff. When she heard him take a step forward and felt his presence closer to her, she almost snarled. Goddess, this man was obtuse when it came to women. She had never given him any thought to believe she desired his attention. Each and every time they met, she acted as she did now; pleasant but cool and distant. But, just like all those other times, the man just didn’t seem to get it. Goddess, how rude did she have to be for him to take a hint? She heard his feet shuffling, felt his presence grow stronger behind her and she had to bite her lip to keep from telling him what she really thought of his close proximity. Instead, she silently cursed. Now she was stuck having to converse with him. Abby rolled her eyes. Great – this was just what she needed to start the Summit – a healthy dose of revulsion. While Abby continued to watch her family, Richard was watching her. It had been a while since he saw last her and she looked different; she seemed more mature, more feminine. He took a deep breath and breathed in her sweet innocent scent. She was lovely, he always thought so; it was one of the reasons why he fought so hard for the mating contract, but it wasn’t the main reason. Richard wanted what he always wanted – to rule. He wanted the power Magnus had and in Abaigeal, he saw his means of getting it. Being mated to Abby meant he was a part of Magnus’ inner circle and once he got inside that circle, it would only be a matter of time before he moved all the players on the board – mainly, the rest of Magnus’ children - out of the way. Of course just mating Abaigeal did not mean he was the 297 Forever Mine next in line but being on the inside opened doors to so many different possibilities to squeeze those that stood in his way out. It was a good plan. It was a plan that required all his attention and energy. Abaigeal was a big part of that plan, but the violent and possessive desire he was now suddenly feeling was not something he had planned on. Before, the prospect of bedding her had been an agreeable necessity to set his plan into action. Now, he couldn’t seem to take his eyes off her. He couldn’t seem to squelch the hunger growing to taste her flesh. To know her woman’s body the way a mate should. His hands actually itched to reach up and stroke her thick silky hair, to turn her around and take her mouth in a deep kiss. For the first time in his life, Richard desired something more than power; he desired her, and he found he couldn’t wait for the night when she would be his. When Richard didn’t immediately respond, Abby turned her head to the side. Her eyebrow rose in question when she saw him standing there with his eyes closed and breathing deeply. “Are you alright?” she asked. Not like she cared, but he looked like he was high on something. If he was going to pass out, she wanted to know, so she could get out of the way. Richard’s eyes snapped open and he stared at her blankly, then he smiled and cleared his throat. “Yes, my apologies, you were saying?” Abby frowned. “I asked if you like kids.” Just then there was a high pierce scream of happiness. Richard’s smile waned and his face became pinched as his finger rose to his left ear to block out the sound. “Jagger’s favorite game,” Abby said. “It makes him feel like a football. He loves football.” “How… endearing.” Richard’s strained response had Abby rolling her eyes again. She should’ve known. “So I guess that’s a no.” Richard looked perplexed. “About children?” Abby reminded him. “Oh, well, of course children are an…obligatory occurrence.” Abby’s eyebrow rose. “Obligatory?” “Oh, don’t get me wrong, children would be… fine. Actually,” Richard stepped closer and from over her should Abby watched, horrified, as he picked up a piece of her hair and rubbed it between his fingers. His voice dropped and he gave her a look that she could only assume was meant to make her feel special. “I look forward to having children… with you.” What did he just say? Abby slowly turned around to face him then she took a step back to put more distance between them. This way she’d have plenty of room to throw a right hand to break his nose. “Excuse me?” 298 Forever Mine Richard smiled that half-ass freaky-deaky smile again - Goddess, she really wished he would stop doing that because it was freaking her out - and took a step closer. “To be honest, Abaigeal, I never had any aspirations to have children. However, I must say that the prospect of making them with you is exceedingly interesting.” Abby’s eyes almost popped out of her head. Was he serious? Was he trying to be suave and seductive? If so, he really needed to look up the word interesting because in her book, ‘exceedingly interesting’ was not exactly a turn on. Abby’s eyes hardened. "That's a bit bold, don't you think?” Richard’s smile, which was only making Abby more nausea by the minute, grew in confidence. “Bold? No, I’m simply stating my eagerness to proceed.” Abby’s eyebrow quirked up. “You think awfully highly of yourself, Richard. Just what the hell makes you think I’d ever give you a chance to… proceed?” Richard frowned back, openly showing his aversion at her statement and her bossy tone, but then very quickly that frown disappeared. He smirked, and mockingly chuckled, as if she were a child. “The choice is not yours to make. You see…” He leaned down and whispered in her face. “It’s already been made for you.” Those words together with what her mother said before and all the pitying gazes she’d been receiving drew the picture Abby never wanted to see. For one second, it felt like her heart stopped beating. Then it beat so furiously she thought it was going to pop out of her chest. Seeing Richard’s snide smirk still lingering on his face, did not help. Abby curled her fist at her side then she took another step back, ready to wallop the asshole. Instead, she stepped back into a lean hard chest and had a hand curled around her closed fist. “Richard, I know my sister is irresistible, but she only just arrived,” Tiernan coolly said from behind Abby. “I’m afraid you’ll have to catch up with her later. Family before acquaintances, I’m sure you understand.” Tiernan’s statement, said in that seamless mix of pleasant yet hostile manner that her brother had a patent on, leant little mystery for what he thought of Richard and that sentiment wasn’t lost on Richard either. Richard visibly tensed. “Of course.” His voice was strained, his friendly smile so fake it had Abby seeing red. “My apologies.” Richard inclined his head at Tiernan. Tiernan didn’t even bother giving him the same courtesy, instead he held his gaze with a look that said, ‘Why are you still here then?’ Stiff as a board Richard bowed, “until this evening, Abaigeal,” then he turned and walked down the hall. Abby’s burning gaze followed Richard as he disappeared down the hall. That statement could only mean one thing. She didn’t know why she felt shocked. For one reason, he hadn’t specifically said anything, but she wasn’t stupid. She 299 Forever Mine had considered this possibility, but she honestly thought her father would at least discuss it with her first. She looked over to where her father stood between Liam and Ruari talking to them with a smile on his face, like he was completely at ease with betraying her, which was exactly what he did. She felt hollow inside. How could he do this to her? How could he treat her like just a thing? Didn’t he care for her at all? Abby’s chaotic emotions played over her face like a really bad book and Tiernan watched them all with strident fury. His father was an idiot and Richard, that insensitive prick, just proved why he wasn’t good enough for her. The shining white light surrounding Abby drew Tiernan’s gaze to it now, just like it did at home. Goddess, it was magnificent, even to a jaded bastard like him. It was hope and love, things he himself did not hold a lot of stock in. He wasn’t much of a fan of destinies and fate either. Actually, his personal opinion on the matter was that it was a prison sentence, but Abby wasn’t like him. Her soul cried out for the things she so adamantly tried to push away. She needed love in her life and she needed someone who would respect that love and be grateful for it. Richard was not that man. Gently, Tiernan placed his hands on Abby’s shoulders and squeezed. “You are so out of his league, Imp,” he whispered before he brought her curled fist up to his mouth and placed a brotherly kiss on it. “I know, I’m way too much woman for him,” she halfheartedly joked but her eyes were becoming glassy with her true emotions. Staring into Tiernan’s warm gaze, she didn’t even bother with a brave face anymore. Her smile faded as she grabbed his hand and squeezed him back. “Thank you.” Tiernan’s reply was a warm loving smile that almost had Abby breaking out into tears. “Was that Richard?” Magnus asked as he stepped up to Tiernan’s side. The look in Abaigeal’s eyes pretty much answered his question. It was all there to see in those open eyes that were full of condemnation and ready to burst with tears. Fuck! Abby opened her mouth to say something, but Magnus quickly stopped her. “Not here. We’ll talk upstairs.” Abby glowered as he turned away and walked over to her mother. He whispered something in her ear then her mom turned and looked at Abby. Her green eyes blazed as she turned back to her mate then feverishly whispered something to him. Her father responded, and by the way her mother stiffened and her face turned redder than Bryony’s hair, Abby knew her mother just lost that round. “Sometimes what you see isn’t always what’s real,” Tiernan softly said. “Everything you want is yours for the taking, Imp, you just have to be brave enough to fight for it.” He kissed her one more time then headed toward the staircase. What the hell did that mean? “Come on, sweetie, let’s go.” 300 Forever Mine Ella looped her arm into Abby’s and gently tugged her toward the main staircase, following Tiernan’s track. The tension coiled in her daughter’s stiff body only served to increase her own. She sharply looked at Magnus. Her lips tightly pursed in furious anger and her eyes blazed expletives she couldn’t vocalize in that moment. The chicken wouldn’t even look at her. He avoided her burning gaze and instead looked up the stairs as he fell into step behind her and Abby. “Tiernan?” Magnus called out. A few steps ahead of them, Tiernan stopped and held back a tired sigh. “Walk with us. You can get me up to date with happenings in New York.” Magnus said. Tiernan nodded and stood to the side as his sister and mother passed him. His mother’s features instantly relaxed as she looked at him. “You’re such a good boy.” She cupped his cheek. “And you’re so handsome, baby.” She blew him a kiss then kept on walking. Tiernan smirked at his mother and waited for Magnus to reach his side. “How are things with Lucian?” Magnus asked. “There are so many things we need to talk about,” Ella quietly said to Abby. “Once this… well, once your father has to say what he needs to say, we’ll chat… just you and me, okay?” Abby kept her eyes on the carpet, trying to maintain composure until they were in the privacy of their family’s suite where she could let it all out. Her mother pulled her around the corner and then came to a dead stop. Wondering why they stopped, Abby looked up and locked onto midnight orbs that were not as surprised to see her as she was him. What the hell was he doing here? Silently, Abby cursed her luck. It was as if the Gods were conspiring against her. Abby’s annoyance swam through the hum just like it had at Kirill’s camp and Nikolai’s eyes gleamed with amusement. He actually hadn’t meant to come this way, he hadn’t even been thinking about Abby. He had been thinking about Cinn, and why he would keep something like Maksim’s murder a secret. He’d also been getting angrier with every step he took and his feet unconsciously took him this way - the most direct route to Cinn’s private study - and there was no turning back now. Nikolai looked at Ella. As usual, she was smiling. Her eyes were shining brightly and her aura was open and friendly, caring. Then he heard the whispered sounds of male voices coming from around the corner and getting closer. He should probably turn around and leave, it would be the wisest thing to do but for some reason the prospect of seeing his old friend, and with Abby here, appealed to him. Abby’s scowl darkened with irritation as Nikolai suddenly grinned with mischief. What was he doing? He knew her father was just about to turn the corner and yet there he stood, looking playful and damn it… sexy. Her eyes crinkled. If she’d learned anything about Nikolai Kotova in their short time together, it was that the man didn’t do anything without reason. She 301 Forever Mine couldn’t even begin to imagine what he was up to but she knew one thing, it was either the boldest move or the absolute most moronic. “Kotova.” Magnus’s harsh tone carried down the hall. Abby started to panic as she glared at Nikolai, who clearly did not feel the same way she did. In fact, the lummox actually had the balls to wink at her! I’m going to kill him! Amused by Abby’s anger, Nikolai watched Magnus stalk over to Ella’s side and stand there with his arms over his chest while Tiernan took position slightly behind Abaigeal. Passively he gazed at both men’s faces. Magnus was glowering and Tiernan looked… uninterested. Nikolai ignored Magnus – who wore his emotions clearly on his face – and for the moment centered his attention on the man, whose seemingly unaffected attitude was in reality the more dangerous threat. As their eyes met and silently challenged one another, Tiernan’s steel gray orbs seemed to seek deep within Nikolai’s, going places Arnost had only ever dreamed of going. Waiting for the indignant retort his demon would inevitably retaliate with, Nikolai tensed and prepared to hold the Darkness back, but… it never came. The Darkness sensed no threat from the intrusion. Instead, it silently… purred? Nikolai’s startled brow rose. Tiernan’s steel grey regard drew back then he inclined his head and merrily assessed Nikolai with a gaze that was both relieved and strangely pleased. Nikolai wasn’t sure what to make of that, but he got the distinct impression that Tiernan now knew a lot more than anyone else in Abby’s family. With one potential threat evaded, Nikolai took a deep silent breath and turned his gaze to Magnus who was still glowering daggers at him. Nikolai’s eyes twinkled as a playful grin lurked on his face. Respectively, he tipped his head at his former mentor. “Magnus, a pleasure as always.” Magnus’ eyes were slits of suspicion. As usual, his emotions came to the surface whenever he saw Nikolai. They were fierce and confounding because they were an amalgam of regret and sadness, deep boiling rage, and affection. The last one really steamed him because after all Nikolai had done, he should be feeling anything but affection for the Russian Ox. Unfortunately he had never been able to rid himself of that particular feeling. This time he had to add another emotion into that mix and that was speechlessness. Magnus could not remember the last time Nikolai said more than two words to him, and he was doing it with a smile on his face. A smile! Magnus hadn’t seen that in over a century! Then there was the fact that he had that look in his eye, the one that said the Ox was going to antagonize him to no end, just like he used to do. Magnus’ eyes darkened, his scowl deepened; something was not right. The man standing before him seemed different. In what way, he wasn’t sure, but he meant to find out because he did not like surprises, and for some reason this one felt like it was going jump up and bite him in the ass. Sensing he had Magnus in the palm of his cheeky hands and just going with the flow of the growing pleasure he was feeling, Nikolai decided to take things up a notch. 302 Forever Mine Dismissing Magnus for the moment, he turned his full attention to Ella. With a grand flourish, he bowed and tipped his head. “My lady, your beauty never ceases to amaze me. You have only grown more stunning with the passing years.” That flowery praise drew several different reactions from the people standing around him. Ella glowed, Abby looked like she wanted to belt him across the face, Magnus was softly starting to growl, and Tiernan looked… bored. Holding back his laughter, Nikolai then settled his bright cerulean gaze on Abby and directed all his attention on her. Trapped in Nikolai’s gaze, immediately drawn to him and wrapped in a warm contented cocoon his focused attentions gave her, Abby tried to maintain her composure. She tried to hold back her heart’s rapid beating. She tried to squelch the lust that was flowing rampantly in her body. She really, really tried. But she was just a simple girl and the man was too irresistible, way too sexy and sensual, and the fact that she knew exactly what that luscious mouth tasted like, knew how it felt to have those lips on her flesh and those big capable hands caressing her skin overwhelmed her. She blushed, profusely, as her eyes turned hot and heavy. Nikolai’s smile deepened as wicked passion licked his skin. Ignoring the dangerously rising growl to his left, he reached out and took Abby’s hand. Raising it to his lips he kissed her knuckles. The contact was a light touch of lips, yet to Abby it was highly sensual. The final assault on her nerves was the voice that spoke… low, deep, and erotically enticing. “And you must be the fair Abaigeal.” Nikolai’s gaze flitted back between a deer-in-the-headlights Abby and a smiling-like-an-idiot Ella, before settling once more on Abby. “You are the spitting image of your lovely mother, lyubof.” The growls grew even more furious, more threatening, but Nikolai ignored him and leaned in closer to Abby. His eyes never left her startled gaze as he gifted her hand with another lust whip kiss to her senses. He was most likely pushing his luck, but he was having too much fun to stop so… “Although, you are…” Nikolai took a deep dramatic breath then visibly shivered from her sweet sunny scent. “Much more to my liking. Tell me, lyubof, are you available later? Perhaps we can meet and explore our burgeoning acquaintance together,” he added with a roguish wink. Abby gasped, she couldn’t believe how bold Nikolai was being. Behind her she heard Tiernan’s soft chuckle. Then, with worried eyes, she snuck a peek at her father to see his reaction. She gulped. Not good. Magnus was absolutely livid. His demon came out and growled; it was loud and utterly enraged. Abby watched with growing concern as her father grabbed Nikolai by his vest and savagely slammed him up against the wall. Though he stood about four inches shorter then Nikolai her father bellowed in his face, speaking that unknown language. Nikolai, meanwhile, looked as relaxed as a cat that just ate as he continued to grin. Abby leaned closer to her mom. “What language is that?” she whispered. 303 Forever Mine Ella kept her gaze on her mate, ready to move in if she had too, as she answered Abby. “Upyrian. It’s the language of the Pure Bloods.” Magnus was seething with fury. His grip tightened on Nikolai’s vest as he snarled into his face. “What’s this about, Nikolai?” “What? I offer a kind and friendly greeting and this is the thanks I get?” Nikolai smartly answered back. “Kind and friendly greeting?” Magnus snorted. “Don’t bullshit me. You never talk to me… at all. You barely look me in the eye anymore.” Sneering, he cruelly added, “You run like a fucking coward whenever I’m near. Now you stand here, boldly touching my daughter! Making a fucking play! Have you lost your fucking mind?” That statement wiped Nikolai’s smile clean. He really did not like being called a coward. Nikolai growled back. “That’s not cowardice, that’s preserving your life!” Magnus snorted, “Really, from who, you? You couldn’t take me on your best day, not then and not now!” The Darkness took offense to that comment. Swiftly it came to the forefront but Nikolai didn’t need to exert too much effort in controlling it. The Darkness might have been insulted, but it always viewed Magnus’ demon as an old friend, so the comment was taken more as an instigation to play, rather than a direct insult to its pride. Still that didn’t stop it from snarling menacingly. Eyes that were black and endless, ancient, held Magnus’ gaze with unflinching bravado. Staggered and confused by what he was seeing, Magnus reared back as the Darkness’ gravelly voice spoke in Upyrian. “You’d be surprised as to what I can take now.” There was no doubt in Magnus’ mind that that statement was one hundred percent true. This was not the same demon Magnus had known, it was different, not only could he see that but he sensed it as well. In fact, he was fairly certain that the only reason he still held Nikolai in his grasp was because the Darkness didn’t want to get out of it. For some reason this unexpected turn of events filled him with a growing sense of excitement. Magnus’ smiled around a mouthful of fangs. “Well, I love a good surprise, so why don’t you enlighten me.” Silence stretched out; the tension between the former friends was thick and suffocating. At least it was for Abby, who felt like she was going to puke. “I do believe this is my home, gentlemen, and there are certain rules I expect everyone to follow.” Circinn harshly stated as he stood next to Tiernan. Considering the two former friends hadn’t been within ten feet of each other in years, he was surprised to see them entangled together now but when his keen gaze settled on Abby surprise turned to dumbfounded shock. Abby’s aura was brilliantly glimmering with life - it was the same aura that surrounded Nikolai. The question Cinn asked himself earlier quickly sprang to mind. What would make a man like Nikolai smile and feel hope? What else but the affection of a young beautiful woman? 304 Forever Mine Cinn closed his eyes and shook his back and forth as he pinched the bridge of his nose. He would have laughed if the moment did not call for austerity. Feeling Tiernan’s brooding gaze, Cinn opened his eyes and met his gaze. Tiernan saw it too and he didn’t even bother to hide his mirth. Of course he would be amused by this little twist of events, Cinn thought. Giving Tiernan a condescending frown, Cinn stepped up to Magnus, who was still holding Nikolai against the wall by his vest. “Have you both gone daft?” Cinn feverishly whispered. “Be thankful it was I that walked in on this little bout and not the Council members!” When neither one moved nor looked away from the other, Cinn sharply demanded in Upyrian, “Magnus, release Nikolai now!” After a few silent seconds of tense dead air that had Cinn wondering if either one of them were going to comply, Magnus slowly let go of Nikolai as his demon retreated. Straightening away from the wall, Nikolai grabbed the bottom of his vest and pulled it down, never once taking his gaze from Magnus’. “There’s something… different about you,” Magnus quietly stated. “More than you could ever know.” Nikolai softly answered. “Nikolai, come with me. I want a word with you.” Cinn didn’t wait to see if Nikolai followed, he just headed down the hallway and toward the stairs. Nikolai respectfully nodded at Magnus then did the same to Ella, just adding a warm smile to it. Then he looked at Abby. Her face was ashen, her eyes wide. He smiled and held nothing back from his dark piercing gaze. It was heated, lustful, and completely proprietary. “I look forward to our next meeting, lyubof.” His voice was low and rough, confident. To everyone that heard him, it was a clear and blatant promise. Magnus took a step toward him, but Ella’s hand on his arm held him back. Facing Tiernan, Nikolai nodded then briskly followed Cinn down the hall. Too afraid to look anywhere else, Abby was staring at the floor. Her heart was pounding in her chest as she desperately tried to keep her emotions in check. Feeling Tiernan’s gaze on her she peeked up at him. His grey orbs were lit with amusement and she could practically hear his laughter that, if their parents weren’t here, would be bouncing off the walls. He knew. Abby scowled and her mouth formed the unspoken word, ‘What?’ Tiernan simply held her gaze as he shook his head with such subtleness, she barely even registered it. “Okay, show time’s over.” Ella grabbed Abby’s arm and started walking. “Let’s go and get this… talk over with. Then we can all get ready for the night’s festivities,” she added on a happy note. As Ella and Abby started up the staircase, Tiernan walked up to his father and waited for what he knew was coming. “I want you to watch him at all times.” Magnus’ voice was calm, logical. A little incongruous with the unfettered rage he had just been in. “And keep Abaigeal in your sights as well. Something is brewing and I want to know what it 305 Forever Mine is.” Magnus didn’t wait for a response. He turned and followed Ella and Abby up the stairs. Alone in the hallway, a low soft chuckle slowly emitted from Tiernan’s lips. His father wasn’t that far off the mark, something was brewing… or rather, had already boiled over. 306 Forever Mine CHAPTER NINETEEN Nikolai stalked through Cinn’s private study then slammed the door shut. He was agitated with what just happened in the hallway. Sure, it had been fun up until the point where Magnus’ sharp barbs had stung, deeply. Now he was angry and sexually frustrated beyond measure, which was entirely Abby’s fault. She looked so delicious and her scent was so scrumptious that keeping his hands off her had been difficult. Hiding his desire had been impossible. He mentally cursed himself because he should have realized that before he began the Antagonize Magnus game. Cinn had been right, he and Magnus were lucky it was Cinn that found them at each other’s throats, or they would both be dead. “There had better be a good reason for what I just witnessed in the hall.” Cinn stood before the fire. Seemingly unperturbed, he stood with his hands behind his back and a serene gaze on Nikolai. It was all a farce. It was the tone of his voice that revealed the stirring emotions Cinn was feeling. It was far from calm or casual. He wanted answers, and he wanted them now. It wasn’t the first time Nikolai had heard that tone coming off the Consul’s lips and he doubted it would be the last. Standing in the center of the study, his stance not that much different than Cinn’s, Nikolai felt like he was fifteen again and getting reprimanded for being caught in the barn with the milk maid – again. “Better yet,” Circinn cut in. His orbs were slits of astuteness as they fixated on Nikolai. Slowly he came forward until he stood directly in front of him. Then with a cool arrogant glance, he turned and began to circle him. Nikolai bit his lip to keep it from lifting in annoyance. He hated this part. Cinn had a knack of making even the most intelligent of men feel like an imbecile, and this was his preferred method. As he slowly circled you, his imperial authority and his displeasure somehow seemed to wrap around you like a cloak of shame. It didn’t matter who you were or how old you were, it still made you feel like a moron. “Why don’t you begin by explaining to me how,” completing his circle of Nikolai’s rigid frame, Cinn once again stood before him, “you and Abby came to be bonded.” Nikolai opened his mouth to respond, but he quickly closed it when he saw Cinn’s eyes turn from their normal grey to swirling gold. He tightened every muscle in his body as he waited to feel the icy air he knew would follow next. When he felt the freezing gust wrap around him like a fist, he couldn’t stop his eyes from closing. All the preparation in the world could not have prevented his body from shivering against the artic freeze. It was the only movement he could make. Unable to even lift a finger, he was held in an invisible vise grip of cold fury. 307 Forever Mine “Gods blood, Nikolai!” Cinn’s golden eyes were swirling rapidly, his voice becoming more hostile, more incredulous, as every second ticked by. “Just what the hell is going on between the two of you? Have you no sense? Do you have any idea what you began? How Magnus is going to react to this? Just what the hell were you thinking?” Cinn’s tone and questions peeved the hell out of Nikolai and the Darkness was becoming increasingly agitated with his patronizing manner. Did the man really think he was that irresponsible, that stupid? Didn’t he realize they never had a choice about the matter? Goddess, his jaw was beginning to ache. His teeth were tightly clenched as he tried to keep calm and stay in control of the snarling beast who did not appreciate being talked down to. “I wasn’t thinking, it ju…” “Obviously!” Nikolai growled. He couldn’t help it; Cinn’s sarcastic tone and haughty mannerisms finally pushed the Darkness’, who believed Cinn had a lot more to account for then Nikolai did, over the edge. Within seconds, the combined dynamic emotions of the Darkness and the Consul merged. The temperature in the room dropped fifty degrees. Ice began to form on the windows. Like the fine silk of a spider’s web, it spread out to the walls then down to the floor and furniture. The air thickened as the oxygen seemed to dissipate under the cold dense air, making breathing hard and dousing the flames of the fire. Under Cinn’s startled golden gaze, the Darkness came forth and broke through his freezing fist with little effort. Growing taller, broader, it didn’t stop until it stood a full foot and half taller than him. He looked up and into its black gaze as it glared accusingly, then contemptuously spoke in Upyrian. “You stand before me, Circinn the Consul, questioning me about my S’airsul when you should be on your knees offering your own explanations and begging my forgiveness!” Gods blood, Anaya – this is what you have been up to – you should have told me! Cinn could not for the life of him believe what he was seeing, what was standing right before his very eyes. It was a creature from the past, a beast thought to be extinct. The fact that it was not, that it was still here, alive, and exceedingly well considering the arrogant set of its shoulders and the pretentiousness rolling out of its lips, was almost too much to grasp. But what really left him thunderstruck was that it was not the first time he had met this demon. Cinn had been walking this Realm for more centuries then he could count. At one time he had personally known every single Upyr that walked the Realm. From fathers to sons, when they were in the form of the man, Upyr were all unique; different hair color, eye color. Sometimes sons were shorter than their fathers, other times taller or leaner. You could gaze upon father and son and not even be able to tell they were related, but when their demons came out, when the Darkness within took control, there was no mistaking kin from kin. 308 Forever Mine As Cinn stood there, staring up at this particular demon, every recognition bell in his body rang like Big Ben. How could this be? How could he be staring into the obsidian eyes of a dear friend who had been dead for over a thousand years? Every twisted and unsettling emotion he felt for the past three months consumed him in that moment of stilled recognition. It was quickly followed by the stinging bite of betrayal from the one person he never would have seen it coming from. Unbridled fury seeped into every pore of Cinn’s immortal being and then exhaled in a fierce violent wind that caused the papers in the room to lift up and fly about. A chair kicked over, his desk rattled on the floor as it teetered between touching the floor and lifting off like the weightless paper. It was a rage he had experienced only one other time in his life…when he had lost his friend. “Don’t you have anything to say for yourself, Consul!” The demon’s arrogant and disdainful words snapped at Cinn. Cinn’s eyes became slits as he snarled back. This demon understood only two things… dominance and strength. If he faltered for one second, he would lose whatever respect the Darkness, and Nikolai for that matter, had for him. He had to take control of this situation and quickly! Cinn’s eyes turned a solid burning gold. His grabbed the Darkness by the throat. Lifting him off the floor, he ran toward the wall and slammed the over seven foot tall demon up against it with ease. The Darkness snarled and fought against Cinn’s Godlike hold but it couldn’t move. Held once again by the Consul’s wrathful strength, it could do nothing but stare back indignantly and roar its affronted fury. With fangs bared and, snarling like an angry beast, Cinn answered in kind. “Something is afoot, my friend.” The Darkness let loose a roar so loud Cinn was surprised the entire castle wasn’t ramming down his study door. “Let’s just cut through the shite and get right to the heart of things.” As the Darkness continued to struggle, Cinn placed his free hand against the Darkness’ forehead. Closing his eyes, he quickly moved through the beast’s mind, seeking answers. What he found had him dropping Nikolai in utter horror and stumbling back in shock. Nikolai fell to the floor. He shook his head to clear the fogginess created from Cinn’s intrusion and the Darkness’ withdrawal. “Milord! Milord, are you alright?” A guardsman called out from beyond the locked door as he rapidly knocked. Cinn and Nikolai reigned in their emotions and as quickly as it begun, it ended. The room returned to its normal temperature. The ice that had formed on the wall, floor and furniture, disappeared. Papers drifted down and settled on the floor. Everything was still. “I’m fine. I do not need assistance.” Cinn’s voice, back to its usual tone, rang out. “Be on your way.” After a second’s hesitation, the solider replied, “Yes, milord.” As Cinn listened to the guardsman walk away, Nikolai slowly stood. Their gazes met. Angry dark blue eyes stared back belligerently, but Cinn felt such deep sorrow, he could no longer take the bait. He felt spent, drained, and 309 Forever Mine the amount of pain and sorrow he knew Nikolai must be feeling only multiplied his own. “You’ve sought your answers. You have seen what I have seen, felt what I have felt!” Nikolai took a step closer, his fists clenching at his sides. “Now tell me Cinn, how did you not know? You know everything! Tell me why did you not know this?” Cinn was irritated with Nikolai’s lack of faith in his character, but he kept that to himself. Nikolai did not deserve his anger, someone else did, and he could not wait to lay it at the feet of the woman who would be held accountable for this lie. Still Nikolai’s anger was warranted and his assumptions were logical. Holding his gaze, Cinn took a step closer and spoke to him calmly and openly. “You need not ask me, Nikolai. You have the power to seek those answers just as I have sought mine.” Nikolai’s eyes flitted between dark blue and black. He was struggling for control, struggling to understand. Cinn stood only a foot away, his gaze turning more open, more inviting. “Seek them now, my friend, and know that I would never have withheld a sordid secret such as this. Know that I would have sought revenge with the strength of my steel and the power of my fists!” Cinn’s heated response had the air crackling with coolness. Nikolai didn’t need to look to know that the words Cinn spoke were truth, and he began to feel foolish in even thinking they weren’t. Nikolai lowered his gaze, shaking his head. “No, Cinn… I…” Cinn grabbed Nikolai by his shirt and brought his startled face right up against his own. “No! I do not want your blind obedience, Nikolai. You are Upyr. The Upyr do not bow to anyone’s wishes!” Cinn’s vehement statement startled Nikolai but the Darkness howled with agreement. “You can and you will seek the answers the Darkness needs to see for itself.” Cinn demanded and the Darkness obeyed. It came forth and delved into Cinn’s open orbs. Within seconds, it understood the deep-seated betrayal Cinn was feeling, and it was pacified to learn its admirable friend was indeed telling the truth. The Darkness somberly withdrew. “I’m sorry, Cinn. I should have known,” Nikolai softly commented. Cinn released the breath he’d been holding. The Darkness was a powerful mind prober; it had taken all his strength to keep it only where Cinn wanted it to go. It had been centuries since he had to utilize that particular skill and using it now sapped him. Cinn placed his hand on Nikolai’s shoulder and squeezed gently. “No, do not apologize, Koyla. If I were in your shoes, I would have thought the same thing.” Cinn turned and walked over to the chair to sit down. “In truth, I feel as if I should be apologizing to you.” Nikolai quietly followed and sat down across from Cinn. “What happened wasn’t your fault Cinn,” Nikolai quietly interjected. 310 Forever Mine Cinn half-smiled. “Perhaps not literally, but I cannot help but feel responsible in some way.” He looked up into Nikolai’s eyes. “Maksim was my friend. When he died, a piece of me died with him. He was an extraordinary man. A good man.” His eyes studied Nikolai with a mix of wonder and disgust. “I feel like an ass, truth be told. I look at you now, knowing what I know, and I wonder how I never saw him in you before.” Nikolai smirked. “After seeing the face of my true father, I was wondering that myself.” Cinn sighed. “The only explanation is the magic. Upyr magic is ancient. I don’t even know the Upyrian word for it – it’s that secretive and unattainable by anyone who is not Upyr. My guess is someone placed some sort of spell on you, to hide the connection to the world. Now why they would want to hide this atrocity, I cannot even fathom.” “I’ve been told that it was the way it had to be.” Cinn snorted. “That sounds like something Boris would say. Rubbish!” Nikolai softly chuckled. “Not to my ears, but I do believe he rattled something like that off to Mikkel.” Cinn shared his mirth but then turned serious once again. “Once an Upyrian spell is cast, only the castor can remove it or when destiny decrees it is time. “ He shrugged then looked steadily at Nikolai, sighing. “I guess it is safe to say that destiny came in the form of Abby.” Nikolai nodded and Cinn’s sigh only went deeper. “Tell me.” Nikolai told Cinn everything that took place since meeting Abby in Germany three months ago, up until their last night at the Gorod, leaving out only Nissa and Doki’s involvement. At the end, Cinn wore a smirk on his face. “Forgive me, for some reason I am finding this entire situation terribly humorous at the same time that it sickens me. My rage is great but the ironies of the revelation leave me both relieved and oddly enough, tickled,” Cinn said, shaking his head. “Believe me Cinn the irony is not lost on me.” Nikolai bowed his head. “I know even though this has been revealed to me and even though I have found the one person in the world created just for me that it will not be easy.” He looked up. Resolve shone brightly in his eyes. “I don’t want it to be. I don’t expect Magnus’ easy comply, nor do I want it. I will accept whatever punishment he feels I deserve.” A grin slowly spread across Cinn’s face right before he erupted into hearty laughter. Nikolai’s eyes crossed. “Did I say something funny?” “No, no, I’m sorry, Koyla, it’s just… Goddess above, man, your guilt is completely misplaced.” Nikolai went to speak but Cinn stopped him with a hand up in the air. “No, the acts you committed were done in the time of war, a war not brought on by you I might add, and it was the work of a warrior protecting his family and nothing else. Magnus will understand this because that is all he has ever done.” Thinking of the contract the Overlord signed with Richard, he added sourly, “What he still does. No, Magnus will not find fault with that, he will most likely be very angry that you did not allow him the chance to help you.” He sat 311 Forever Mine forward and held Nikolai’s gaze. “You know he deeply cares for you and Sasha. There is no denying his rage will be great, but I think it will be more about that than anything else.” Thinking back to what he witnessed in the hallway, Cinn added, “You must tell him now, Koyla. He is not stupid and he knows you like the back of his own hand. I guarantee your little display in the hallway has already got him wondering.” Nikolai nodded, his eyes twinkling. “I just couldn’t resist pushing his buttons, Cinn. I’ve missed that, and I…” He looked down, almost embarrassed to admit his need for Abby. “I had to see Abby. I had to touch her and smell her scent again.” Seriousness hung in the air on those words and when he looked up, Cinn was intently staring. “Nikolai, do you understand what she is to you, as an Upyr?” Nikolai nodded. “I saw maman before coming here. She told me, but I think I knew even before then.” “That Darkness is a powerful force, Koyla, more powerful than anything else that walks the Realm. Honestly, its power rivals my own, as you now know.” Nikolai smirked, remembering what it had felt like to break free of Cinn’s hold. Cinn continued, “And you haven’t fully drank from her yet?”. “No, as I told you, she was cut in the incident with Vladimir. The Darkness tasted her blood that is al. I will not take from her until she is ready to give herself to me.” Pleased, Cinn nodded. “Sasha told you of the consequences?” Nikolai looked down when he answered him. “Yes.” He cleared his throat. “She did.” Cinn sighed. “Koyla, you do not have to lie to me.” Nikolai’s head snapped up. “I know of Doki, you may speak freely to me about him.” “How?” “Maksim was my friend. He shared with me some of his secrets, at least those he felt did not betray the Upyr. I have met Doki. He is an interesting little fellow.” “To say the least.” “Never underestimate him, he is as powerful as a God, and…” Cinn smirked. “As loyal as a dog. You want him on your side at all times, believe me. Now, as for Abby, enacting the Efnaru is not wise until you are ready to reveal the truth. Once you are fully bonded to her no magic, or potion for that matter, will be able to hide it and it would be physically impossible for you to control the Darkness, should you need to.” Nikolai took note of the word ‘potion’ Cinn threw in there. Clearly he knew about the potions Abby took. He wasn’t surprised. Nothing escaped Cinn. The last words, however, did get his attention. “Control him from what?” “It is the very nature of the Darkness to keep its S’airsul hidden from the outside world, Koyla. Centuries ago, female Upyr did not fight that dominance because they understood the need for it. Abby, on the other hand…” Cinn sighed 312 Forever Mine and shook his head. “She is not Upyr, and as her father will tell you, she has not one biddable bone in her body, compliments of her mother.” Cinn chuckled. “You have now spent time with her, I’m sure you understand exactly how she feels about Magnus’ treatment of her, and I am sure you are aware of the pains she has gone to escape that.” Did he ever, Nikolai nodded. “She’s afraid I’ll be just like Magnus. Frankly, I can’t say I won’t be. It’s not me. I understand how she feels and I want to give her space and time, but the Darkness… Gods, it wants her with a passion that is obsessive. I honestly don’t know how I’ve held it back.” “The Darkness will make it exceptionally hard for you to abide by her wishes, this is true, but you are an exceptional man, Koyla, and I have no doubt that you will strive to control that aspect of your demon, for her.” “I don’t know, Cinn, I’m… concerned. I almost killed Kirill and I like him… most times, at least.” Cinn chuckled. “Yes, but Abby has a connection to the demon the Cossack witch does not. She alone can control the Darkness. I suspect she has already.” Nikolai nodded his head, but kept quiet, remembering back in his bedroom and then again in Kirill’s tent. It had been Abby who stopped the beast, not him. “She has.” Cinn smiled, “So you see, you have nothing to fear. The Darkness lives to please its S’airsul. It is a give and take relationship. She gives it life and power by her very essence, and the demon gives her unbending loyalty and submission. She is afraid you will run right over her, but the reality is the complete opposite.” The sound of Abby’s soothing humming and the feeling of her hands as they stroked his back in Kirill’s tent came back to Nikolai. He smirked. “I think she’s beginning to understand that.” Cinn stood up then walked over to the bar and poured himself a drink. Silently, he offered Nikolai a glass but he refused. “So, now for the twenty thousand dollar question...” Cinn’s voice deepened, turning hostile. “What of Arnost and Konstantin?” Nikolai went on to tell him Arnost’s original plan. All throughout, Circinn’s face turned red and a distinct chill formed in the air once again. “He sought to play his treacherous game in my home?” Cinn’s voice was deathly soft. “What else?” The question was filled with rage and as Nikolai told Cinn of his own plans. Cinn’s disposition settled and when he spoke again, he was calmer. “I agree with. Let the bastards think they are still in control until the Council meets tomorrow night.” “I’m going to need your assistance, Cinn.” Cinn’s eyes twinkled with excitement. “I understand exactly what you need, do not worry. Arnost and Konstantin will find no resistance when they escape. By the time you catch up with them, you’ll have free reign to dissect them into as many tiny little pieces as you see fit. I do, however, have one small request.” “Of course, you need only ask.” 313 Forever Mine Cinn’s eyes turned solid gold, his face hardened like steel and his voice was whisper soft. “Before you kill them, call for me… I want to be there when their blood spills from their bodies.” Nikolai grinned. “You have my word.” He stood up. “Now if you’ll excuse me, I need to find Misha and Katya. I’m anxious to see how she is faring with her first visit here.” Cinn smiled. It was filled with warmth. “I saw them both earlier. Katya is beautiful, and considering everything, a very grounded woman, Koyla. You have nothing to worry about.” Nikolai snorted then went to leave. “That’s good to know. The Goddess knows I have enough to deal with right now.” “Nikolai, before you go, there is something you need to know.” Stopping at the door, Nikolai turned back to Cinn. “The next twenty-four hours are going to be… exceptionally difficult for you.” There was urgency in Cinn’s words that had Nikolai’s eye’s hardening. “Why, what’s going on?” Cinn wasn’t certain telling Nikolai would help, but it was better he knew now where he was somewhere Cinn could control the beast and not where every eyeball within distance would witness the change no one had seen in centuries. “Magnus signed a contract with Richard Wexler.” Nikolia just gazed back blankly, Cinn braved on. “It’s a mating contract, Koyla, with Abby.” At first, Nikolai wasn't sure he heard Cinn correctly, but the sound of rolling thunder echoing up from the pit of his being and filling his ears, blocking out all other sounds, said the Darkness heard everything – loud and clear. Wexler! Richard fucking Wexler! That priggish sop head! As the Darkness continued to roar its affronted fury, Nikolai thought of the man Magnus had chosen for Abby and one question kept popping up: what the fuck had he been thinking? He couldn’t believe it. Wexler was a prick! To the world, he seemed to be an outstanding soldier and man, but there was an evil inside him that the Darkness always sensed and never liked. The first time Nikolai met him was at the House of Carvilius. Nikolai had been a member of the elite assassins The Blood Pact for three years when Wexler tried to join. From the first moment they shook hands, Nikolai knew there was an underlying darkness Richard that only Nikolai’s demon seemed to sense. When Richard failed the tests to join the Pact, Nikolai sensed his mounting malice. Over the years when Nikolai has seen him again, the angry bitterness that was inside him had grown so profound that Nikolai often wondered why Slade never sensed it himself, why nobody did. Not that any of that mattered now. That was just long ago history that was complexly irrelevant. Abby had a mate – him! The Darkness roared his agreement and a heat wave of fury consume him. Abby was theirs. Soon, Magnus and the world, and most importantly that prick Wexler, would know it. Cinn thoughtfully observed Nikolai. He made no movements, no sounds. The only telling sign he heard what Cinn had said was in the darkening of his eyes 314 Forever Mine as they turned to black. A second ticked by and the veins on his face protruded and throbbed. His hands curled at his sides and then when they relaxed, black nails grew out from his fingers. The air snapped with coldness, yet the Darkness did not come out. The man held it back. Feeling a fatherly pride that wasn’t his too feel but could no way stop, Cinn’s thoughts deepened. It was truly one of the most fascinating things to observe, the transition an Upyr male took from man to demon, and that transition differed depending on whether or not the Upyr was mated. They shared certain aspects, like their bodies growing in height and girth, their eyes changing to black and they both grew claws, but the demon of a nonmated Upyr was in a nutshell, stunted, physically, mentally, even magically. They were still crazily powerful beasts, but the lack of a S’airsul meant the demon never fully developed. A mated Upyr, however, could grow to be an amazingly four to seven feet taller and adding on about another 100-200 pounds of girth and weight than that of the man. The demon’s claws could grow an entire foot, and as typical with most of the breed, their hair grew longer and sometimes even changed color. For either mated or non-mated Upyr, there were different stages that lay in between the transition as well, it all depended on the balance that had been formed between the man and the demon, and how much control the man had over the demon. Cinn use to have a nickname for it: shared space. Maksim had been a master at it. Able to bring forth all the power of the demon while maintaining complete control over the physical transition, thereby never letting the demon’s true form come out unless he was fighting, or Cinn was certain, if its S’airsul was in danger. Nikolai was currently in that shared space. Physically, he was the same yet his eyes were black, his claws had grown out about six inches, his hair was longer and there was a three inch white stripe on the left side. The demon was there but Nikolai was controlling it. Cinn inwardly smiled. It was a good sign; Maksim would be proud. “When?” Nikolai’s voice was lethally soft as he voiced his question in Upyrian. “Three months ago. It was right after her birthday.” “Does she know?” Cinn shook his head. “No, at least up until her arrival here, she did not. Magnus wanted it kept quiet. The only others that know besides myself is Ruari, Slade and Ella. However, I think it would be safe to say that the boys know as well as Mati and Devyn. It’s hard to keep secrets in that family.” Nikolai still said nothing. “Ella was and still is against it, I might add.” Cinn continued. “She and Magnus have been fighting about it ever since Magnus came up with the idea. Coming here has not made it any better. They are barely speaking to each other in private, of course. For appearance’s sake, they are as always the happy and attentive couple. I tell you this because you have allies you never knew you had.” Still Nikolai said nothing. He just stood there, his eyes black as night, his breathing rapid, veins throbbing. 315 Forever Mine “Did you hear me, Koyla?” “It doesn’t matter.” Finally speaking, Nikolai’s voice was rigid and assured. “She is mine.” Cinn smirked, not bothering to hide his amusement. Having experience with Upyrian demons, he knew exactly how to respond to make it see reason. He had done this particular exercise numerous times in the past and most of them had been with Maksim. It was a very fine line. One had to speak both to the man and the demon; you had to appeal to both of their wants and have a keen understanding of what drove them. In this particular case, the Darkness wanted to show its dominance over its woman; it wanted to take and most likely kill anything it deemed a threat to its possession, especially since the Efnaru was not complete. Nikolai, however, was more logical; he knew what needed to be done. He also knew he could not allow any of the Darkness’ baser emotions to come forth. For Cinn to be successful, the key was to be just as confident and dominate as the demon, and just as logical and reasonable as the man. When an Upyr achieved perfect balance, this tact worked. Cinn was curious to see just how much balance had been established between Nikolai and his demon, and this was the perfect way to find out. “I didn’t think it would, my friend. I know she is yours,” Cinn stated. “The problem is how will you control your baser emotions?” Silence ensued, so Cinn continued. “You cannot allow yourself to fall victim to your emotions. In order for your plan to work, you will have to stand by and watch her interact with another man, one who believes she is his.” The Darkness’ mouth opened and it hissed angrily, but Cinn pressed on. “Can you do that? Can you stand there and not act?” That was the question, wasn’t it? Nikolai thought. The Darkness responded with another deep internal roar and Nikolai didn’t blame it. They were both of a mind to find Wexler and make him mysteriously disappear, then find Magnus and wring his bloody neck for even thinking he could take Abby away from them. Then find Abby and remind her that she belonged to them. Unfortunately, they could do none of that and he had to make his demon understand that. Several quiet moments went by where it seemed Nikolai was having an internal conversation with the Darkness. Cinn observed it with growing admiration. Moments later, a full smile curved Cinn’s lips as he watched the Darkness recede and dark blue eyes return. “We have no choice,” Nikolai finally answered in English, through clenched teeth. Cinn walked over and slapped him on the back. “You show amazing control over the Darkness, Koyla, very impressive. You will be fine and of course I will help you where I can.” Nikolai didn’t want to hear anymore. He wanted to kill someone or hurt something… really, really bad. 316 Forever Mine Abruptly, he spun on his heels and headed toward the door. “Please send word to Misha that I’ll join them later.” Cinn’s eyebrow rose. “I thought you were going to see them now.” “I’m going to the gym.” A vicious snarl left his lips before he continued, “I need to… hit something.” He walked out of the study, slamming the door on his way out. Cinn’s smile was broad. Though his exchange with Nikolai had elicited so many different and volatile emotions in Cinn, after witnessing Nikolai’s exceptional control over the darkness and seeing for himself the balance that was already established between man and demon, and that would only grow stronger after the Efnaru was completed, he knew Maksim’s son would be just fine. Nevertheless Cinn wished to avoid any situation that might put Nikolai into that position to begin with. Since he himself would not always be there tonight to help Nikolai out meant he would have to get assistance from someone else. Unfortunately, there was only one other suitable person, a dark frown settled over his brow. ********** Grumpy, suspicious, and just in a foul mood, Magnus followed Elizabeth and Abaigeal into the parlor of their suite. As Elizabeth settled down on the couch, she pulled a drone-like Abaigeal down with her, pulling her tightly against her side. Her beautiful green eyes blazed with pure anger as she took a protective position with her daughter, as if he were the enemy. Magnus glared back as he closed the door. He was still somewhat in a daze from their interlude with Nikolai. The more he thought about it, how strange his old friend had appeared - how unlike Nikolai it was - Elizabeth’s comment in England came to mind, ‘Why not choose Nikolai…’ That was what she had said, among other things, but that comment in particular stood out like a shining star… or a punch in the gut, which was the way he chose to look at it. He hadn’t been that crazed in the hallway to not see the pleasure Elizabeth received from watching Nikolai flirt with Abby. She had been enjoying it… way too much for Magnus’ taste. So, now he was not only suspicious of his former friend’s odd behavior, but of his mate’s as well, and that did not sit well with him at all. “Cat got your tongue?” The caustic question came from Elizabeth who was still staring daggers at him as he walked toward the fireplace then turned around to face her. Crossing his arms over his chest, he took a stand that made him feel in control, though he wasn’t sure exactly how much control he was going to have in this conversation. As her parents silently battled each other Abby’s mind was racing. What the hell was wrong with Nikolai? What the bloody hell did he hope to accomplish with that meeting in the hallway? Was he looking to get himself 317 Forever Mine killed? Did he think my father wasn’t going to react? And how the hell could he put me in that position to begin with? Abby’s eyes crinkled in a heavy frown. He knows how I feel. How could he not? I couldn’t have been more honest with him. But did he care? Clearly not with that little display of… of… shit, I can’t even find a word for it! That’s how discombobulated I feel! This is what he does to me! Goddess in heaven and hell… he’s making me crazy! “Abaigeal.” I mean, really, I just don’t get it! And what the hell was up with mom? She had been calm and as happy as a pig in shit with the entire thing? And what about Tiernan? Clearly Mr. Perfect knows Nikolai was the man I gave my virginity to, that snarky little laugh pretty much said that! Of course he wouldn’t say anything, but did he have to laugh? Has everyone gone nuts? Am I the only sane person left around here? “Abaigeal!” Her father’s stringent voice broke through Abby’s crazed thoughts. Irritated, her gaze swung to his and she snapped at him, “What?” Her father stared at her coolly with one eyebrow rose. She flustered, mumbled an apology then looked back down at her hands. Magnus saw his daughter’s strained and it had him growling and cursing Nikolai. The Ox most likely scared the crap out of his sweet innocent daughter. After all, she had never in her life met anyone like him. “I want you to avoid Nikolai Kotova at all costs, honey.” Yeah, easier said than done. “He is not a man to trifle with,” her father flatly stated as he began to pace in front of them. No, he definitely is not, especially now that he’s tasted my blood. “If he approaches you,” he continued. “At any time…” He stopped pacing and speared her with inflexible stare. “I want you to find me, one of your brothers, or Ruari or Slade, understand?” Abby nodded numbly and gave him the answer he wanted. “Sure, dad.” Pleased with her answer, Magnus nodded then made the mistake of looking at Elizabeth, whose green glare, if it could, would be shooting fireballs at him. Magnus cleared his throat. “Abaigeal, there is something your mother and I need to tell you.” Ella snorted. “Actually, baby, it’s your father that has something to tell you, I’m just here to keep you from killing him when he does.” Magnus furiously snarled. “You’re not making things any easier.” Ella calmly leaned back against the couch and gave him a chilly look. “Why should I? You dug this hole, not me. “ Magnus’ scowl was black as his anger teetered on the verge of exploding. He would get no help from Elizabeth in this discussion, not that he expected any, but still, a part of him had hoped she would be somewhat reasonable when it came to telling Abaigeal. You know, that whole united front 318 Forever Mine thing. With green fireballs shooting from her eyes and the stubborn tilt of her chin, he knew that was not going to happen. The air in the room was stifling and the sparks of antagonism shooting between her parents reminded Abby of why they were there to begin with and a deep anger started to build. She was surrounded by men who thought they controlled everything. Thought they knew what was best for everyone. Why? Because they were men, that’s why! And Goddess save you if they had feelings for you because then they really became overbearing and righteous. Goddess, the more she thought about it, the angrier she got. Her father had no right to make decisions for her and Richard had no right to think he already owned her! And Nikolai, he was the worst. He tells her he respects her and cares for her then what does he do? He puts her in the most uncomfortable position he possibly could. He had no right, damn it! None of them do! Seething with growing fury and not caring how this conversation was going to end Abby slowly looked up at her father and came right out and asked him. “Dad, what did you to do?” Abaigeal’s soft question drew Magnus’ eyes to her. She was sitting down on the edge of the couch with her hands clenched together in her lap and a steely gaze leveled on him reprovingly. Gods blood, this was awkward. Magnus shifted on his feet. He actually had to look away because he felt so uncomfortable. Her father’s actions spoke for themselves. Abby’s gaze darkened right before she shook her head as sadness mixed in deep seated rage. “It’s true then? You signed a contract with Richard, didn’t you?” Feeling somewhat unsure of what to do next and not liking the sad vibes coming off his beloved daughter, Magnus fell back on his natural instincts. He stood straighter and with his hands behind his back, he finally regarded his daughter with a firm, unyielding gaze. “Yes, I did.” Abby shook her head again as she looked away from him, a hard laugh escaping her lips as she did. Magnus’ frown darkened as he hastened to explain himself. “Richard is a good man, Abaigeal. He desires you for a mate.” Abby chortled, loudly, and Magnus’ face turned a bit redder as he continued, “And well, he…” He had something really intelligent to say, something that would make everything okay; it was on the tip of his tongue, he knew it, but then she glared at him with unbridled censure and his face grew even hotter and he completely lost his train of thought. Magnus cleared his throat and spat out the first thing that came to mind, “He’s a good man.” “You said that already,” Ella mumbled under her breath which drew another dark frown from Magnus. Abby stood up and walked over to the window, trying to hold it together as her parents shared a battle of eyeball death tag. 319 Forever Mine She felt so disheartened and empty inside that she was at a loss for words. She crossed her arms over her chest as she looked out the window. She felt so betrayed so hurt by her father’s actions that she just wanted to scream at him. Her back stiffened. And why shouldn’t she? Tiernan’s words came back, taunting her. He was right. She couldn’t just stand there and let her father run her life anymore; he’d done enough of that already. She wasn’t sure what Tiernan meant with the other stuff he said but she knew one thing: she was a fighter and she was going to fight for her freedom. It was time she stepped up to the plate and be the warrior she wanted everyone to see her as, just like the lummox said. A true warrior wouldn’t take this shit, and she wasn’t going to, not anymore. She spun around and pierced her father with a hard, resolute glare. “I’m not mating Richard.” The conviction in Abaigeal’s voice had Magnus slowly turning toward her. She stood defiantly, holding his gaze with unyielding determination and pure stubbornness. He sighed. “Abaigeal, I know this comes as a shock, but you must understand that I’m doing what’s best for you.” She didn’t turn away. If anything, she held his gaze even more intently. “I am not mating Richard,” she quietly said again. Magnus frowned. “Abaigeal…” His voice became sterner. “I signed a contract.” “Then you mate him.” Magnus' took another step closer to her, his eyes hardening as he did. “Do not be disrespectful.” “Why not, you obviously have no idea what the meaning of the word is.” Her father’s face turned beet red, the veins on his head thumped angrily, but Abby stood her ground as he neared her. “I don’t appreciate your tone or attitude.” Abby scoffed. “Yeah, well, I don’t appreciate you deciding my life for me!” she answered back, her voice rising as she did. Magnus gritted his teeth, desperately trying to maintain composure and not let his anger get the better of him. “Abaigeal, there is a war going on, times are dangerous and I made the decisions I had to make in order to keep you safe. I’m sorry if you don’t agree with that, but it’s done. My decision is final. I signed the contract and you will be mating Richard.” The condescending tone, the unbelievably cruel and heartless words, broke the little control Abby had been holding on too. She exploded. “I can’t believe you did this! Do you have any idea of what I think of him? Do you even care? Does it matter at all to you that I barely even know him and what I do know, I don’t even like?“ With every word Abby spoke, her voice grew stronger and more aggravated, and before she knew it, she was revealing things she never in life wanted to talk about with her father. “Goddess above, the thought of him touching me makes me want to vomit! Doesn’t it bother you that I’m not even the slightest bit attracted to him?” 320 Forever Mine Her father growled. Abby knew she was taunting him, but she couldn’t stop, didn’t want to stop; she was tired of always backing off, tired of letting him do whatever he wanted. She stepped closer and peered into his eyes. “Do you know what I feel when he touches me, dad? Nothing! There’s no spark! All I want to do is punch him in the face! How can I be mated to a man who I don’t even desire as a lover?” “Desire?” Magnus bellowed so loud the pictures on the wall rattled. “Gods Blood! You are only twenty-five; you should not be feeling desire of any kind!” His hands fisted at his sides. “No, there will be no desiring, I forbid it!” “I cannot believe you just said that!” Ella said as she grabbed her head and shook it in utter disbelief. But neither Abby nor Magnus paid her any attention. Father and daughter stood face to face, both of them seething in fury, and neither one of them holding it back or backing down. “You cannot forbid me to desire someone, dad, that’s not the way it works!” “Oh, yes it is, damn it!” Magnus heatedly replied, not even realizing just how illogical that statement was because he was too blinded by rage. The thought of his baby girl getting intimate with any man, even the one he chose for her, made him see red. “Oh my God! You can’t control my feelings like you do everything else!” “Abaigeal, I do not control you.” he scoffed. Abby’s eyes widened. “Are you serious? I have no life because of you! I can’t even go out of the house by myself without someone following me! Do you know how degrading that it is, to know your own father doesn’t even trust you?” Magnus vehemently shook his head. “That’s not true. I trust you.” “Really?” Abby’s eyes bulged. “You have a great way of showing it.” "Abaigeal, I am not going to argue on whether or not I trust you, because I do.” Abby snorted but he continued, “This is not about trust. This is about keeping you safe!” “No, dad, this is about keeping me locked up like a fucking dog!” Magnus’ face turned molten red. “Watch your mouth, young lady!” “No, I won’t watch my mouth! I’m tired of watching mouth! I’m tired of doing everything you want me to do! I’m tired of living my life the way you want it! Damn it, I am twenty-five years old! I’m not five! You can’t do this anymore!” Magnus was stunned speechless. Abaigeal had never spoken to him this way before. This was not the respectful daughter that did what he wanted even though she didn’t like it. This was the actions of a free thinking woman, an adult… just as she said. He turned away because he couldn’t believe it, but there was a damn smirk threatening to show itself. She was standing up to him, and he admired and respected her for it, but that didn’t change anything. When Magnus turned around, much of his anger had vanished. “Abaigeal, I hear what you’re telling me, I really do. I’m sorry if my need to protect you makes you feel smothered or inadequate, it is not my opinion of 321 Forever Mine you.” He walked over and took her hands in his. He squeezed them gently. His eyes were light and understanding. “You make me so proud.” Abby’s anger was momentarily forgotten hearing the unexpected praise. Her eyes widened in shock. “I do?” Magnus softly chuckled then drew her head close for a quick peck on the forehead. “Of course, sweetheart. This is the first time you ever told me what was in your heart, and I appreciate that and I respect you for it.” Abby smiled, but it faded with his next words. “But I can’t let that change my mind. This was not an easy decision for me to make. I know you and your mother both have reservations about Richard, but I don’t.” He released her and stood back, once more taking the hard stance of the decision maker. “You will wed Richard, Abaigeal. That is my final decision.” Sadly, Abby shook her head. “How can you know what’s best for me, dad, when I don’t even know?” she softly asked. Hearing the sadness in her voice had a lump of shame filling Magnus’ throat, but he remained firm. “That’s why you must trust me to know what is best.” Abby harshly laughed then she completely snapped. “Trust you? How do you expect me to trust you when you go behind my back and sell my body to the highest bidder?” “Abaigeal!” Ella quickly admonished Abby as she got to her feet. She knew this conversation wasn’t going to go over like cookies and milk, but this was getting a bit out of hand. “Calm down, sweetie. We can talk about this rationally.” Her gaze swung over to Magnus and she pinned him with a hard glare. “Like the adults we are.” Ignoring his mate, Magnus cursed and stepped around Elizabeth so he could properly yell at his daughter. “Don’t talk like that, damn it! That is not what I’ve done!” “No? Then what do you call it?” “I call it protecting my daughter’s well-being, securing her future!” “Securing my future?” Abby sneered. “That’s great, dad, and what a future it’s going to be. I get to be fucked every night by a man that makes my skin crawl! Yay me! Thanks, dad!” A resounding slap crackled in the room. Abby’s mouth dropped open in shock as her palm rose and cupped her tender cheek. “Gods blood, Magnus!” Enraged, Ella moved like an avenging angel. Storming over to her mate, she pushed him away from Abby. “What the hell’s wrong with you?” Magnus stumbled back and hit the side of a chair. Goddess above, what had he done? He never in his life raised a hand in anger to any of his children, no matter how angry they made him, but the words that came out of Abaigeal’s mouth and the imagery those words invoked had him seeing red and he lost it. Now, his daughter stared back as if he were a stranger, and a part of him, the one that felt guilty about signing the contract with Richard, agreed with 322 Forever Mine everything she said. Still, there was no excuse for what he did. None at all and he felt his face warm with heat, but it was not in anger; it was shame. Magnus took a step toward Abaigeal, needing to comfort her, needing her forgiveness, but her glare froze him to the spot. He reached a hand out to her, but she took a cold and deliberate step back. “Abaigeal, I’m sorry. I didn’t mean to… I’m sorry.” Abby couldn’t believe he struck her even though she instigated it. She knew being as blunt as she had been would get some kind of reaction from him. Of course, she hadn’t expected that, but she had never spoken to him in such a way, and his shock and anger got the better of him. She didn’t hold that against him, but the other, that she could hold against him until the day she died. Abby held Magnus’ tortured gaze as she moved her jaw back and forth. “Yeah dad you did but it’s okay. I’m a big girl. I can take a little pain. If you knew me at all, you would know that,” she scornfully said. “Abaigeal…” Magnus’ plea was ignored as Abaigeal dismissed him and walked over to the door. The stricken look on her mates face had Ella walking over to Abby. “Abby, please come back so we can talk about this. Everyone’s emotions are running high and you’re both saying things and doing things you normally wouldn’t. We can talk about this, sweetie, we can figure this out together, as a family.” Ignoring her mother, Abby reached the door. With her hand on the knob she turned back to look at her father. “I don’t care what you signed, dad, I’m not mating Richard. I’m a grown woman with my own hopes and desires and when I’m ready, when I’ve found the man I want to spend the rest of my life with, then I will make that decision, not you.” On that final note and with her head held high, Abby opened the door and walked out, not even bothering to close it. 323 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWENTY Abby stormed down the hall toward her bedroom. Reaching it, she kicked open the door, stormed inside her room and slammed it shut, screaming out her frustration. “Fathers suck, don’t they?” The candid comment drew Abby’s gaze to the far corner of the room where the light of the moon shone through the window and reflected off shiny black hair. Sparkling grey eyes stared back, complementing lips that were quirked up in a snarl of disgust. She wasn’t surprised to find Caoimhe Skye, Circinn the Consul’s only daughter, waiting for her in her bedroom. Surprise visits from Skye were common nature. Skye sat serenely in the chair. Her red leather clad legs were crossed and one swung up and down in a smooth almost bored manner. It belied the true emotions she was feeling that were being revealed as the air snapped with electric sensations of anger that spiked Abby’s own fury. “Goddess above, Skye, I have never felt such a need to… to…” “Kill him?” Skye sweetly offered. “Gods blood, yes!” Skye softly chuckled. “I tried to tell him!” Abby threw her hands up in the air in pure frustration. “I told him I didn’t want to be with Richard, told him I didn’t desire him, but he wouldn’t listen!” She started to erratically pace in agitation. “He just shut me out and treated me like a two-year-old! He actually had the nerve to tell me I shouldn’t desire anyone! Can you believe that? For the love of the Goddess, I’m twenty-five, not ten!” Skye’s grey eyes followed Abby’s rigid frame as she stalked about her room. She noticed Abby didn’t mention the fact that her father hit her, which was clearly evident from her red cheek. Skye’s temper flared. She had the greatest desire to find Magnus and slap him right back, because she was sure Abby didn’t do it. She refrained from telling her young friend that though because she was already agitated enough. “He loves you, sweeting, and he truly thinks he is doing right by you.” Abby snorted. “You know, I’m sick to fucking death of hearing that! That is no excuse for going behind my back like he did.” With her anger slowly calming from her outburst, Abby’s shoulders slumped in defeat. “Why can’t they just listen to us? Why do they think we’re incapable of making our own decisions?” Now it was Skye’s turn to snort. “Because they’re jackasses, that’s why. Of course, it’s all done with pure intentions because they want what’s best for their children.” She sneered with aversion. “Sadly for us, they can’t see anything 324 Forever Mine beyond that, and they’re too damn egotistical to even think that they just might be wrong.” “Yeah, that about sums it up.” “But really, sweeting, I don’t know why you’re getting so riled about this. You are not helpless, you know,” Skye lightly added. Abby stopped pacing. She knew that tone; it was the one that said ‘come to the dark side.’ Inside, Abby chuckled with her thought because to attribute anything evil to the woman who sat across from her was ridiculous. Skye was many things, but she was not evil; in fact, there was a purity to her that was almost blinding, it was so full of white power. She was an amazing woman, but a mystery as well. She had also made herself protector of not only Abby, but Bryony too. Abby loved Skye with all her heart. She had stuck by her side and never shied away from vocalizing what she thought of Magnus’ treatment of his daughter, to his face too. She was ferocious in her protection, unafraid to speak her mind to anyone and not afraid to physically harm any who would dare hurt Abby or Bry. She was loyal, loving, and openly affectionate with them. But there was a dark side to Skye that could be downright frightening. It was cold and bitter, resentful, and deeply, deeply angry. She could be exceedingly calculating and sinisterly scheming, not to mention spiteful, and she did it all with a siren’s smile on her face. One that, if you didn’t know her, made you feel completely safe and carefree. Skye was the master of duplicity, and exactly what that devious mind had in store for Abby was positively intriguing. “What do you mean?” Skye softly laughed. “Abby, your father might be blind, but I am not.” Her head tilted to the side, a smirk growing on her lovely face. “You finally got laid, and you enjoyed it… immensely.” Abby’s eyes crinkled and her lips pursed together. Why did she even bother to keep secrets when everyone around her seemed to know them already? “How the hell do you know that?” Skye stood and walked over to Abby. She playfully tweaked her nose. “There’s nothing mystical about it, sweeting. It’s just you. You’re glowing with contentment and happiness. Any woman who knows what a fantastic orgasm feels like could see that.” Abby blanched. Skye’s laughter continued. “Relax, I’m teasing. I doubt anyone else will notice, well… except my father, most likely, and quite possibly…” She scowled blackly. “The Pompous Ass.” Abby grinned at Skye’s glowering face. For some unknown reason, Skye really disliked Tiernan – whose name never actually came from her lips. Instead, she referred to him as ‘Pompous Ass,’ ‘that brother’ or ’him.’ “Yeah, he knows.” And he now knows who too, Abby thought. Skye snorted, which said she knew that then she casually waved a hand in the air, her expression once more serene. “You father, however, can’t see it because he’s stuck in his own misery that his actions created.” That was probably true, Abby thought. 325 Forever Mine Besides the fact that her father was doing what he thought was right, he knew how pissed she was and after what just took place, he was most definitely feeling guilty. It was the one emotion he was susceptible too; at least when it came to Abby or her mom. She almost smirked. He must be neck-deep in guilt; it would serve him right. “You have an opportunity here to make him see things your way,” Skye continued. Abby quirked an eyebrow, “How so?” “If I were you…” Skye started to walk around Abby’s room, picking up knick knacks here and there, quietly studying them then returning them to their place. “I would use this time to make your father see just how inappropriate a mate Richard is for you.” Abby cunningly smiled. She loved Skye. She was so clever and sneaky, so dastardly. “If you were me… what exactly would you do?” she asked. “I would be myself, and not the you your father thinks you are… be the real you, sweeting.” Skye turned and seared Abby with a stern gaze. “You have to stop catering to his wants. It’s your life, isn’t it? Take control of it for once! Be the brave, outspoken woman you are. If Richard makes a comment and you don’t agree with him, tell him in whatever coarse manner you choose. Goddess willing, if you’re really revolting, he’ll break the contract himself.” Abby thought about that and came to the conclusion that it was actually a good idea and she liked it, but Skye being Skye, had already moved on to another scenario. “Or you could choose another route. Richard is just a man, after all, a boring man, no doubt about that, but still just a man.” Her derisive tone almost scalded Abby’s ears. “Why not… grab him by his dick…” She reached out and grabbed a fistful of air. “… and drag him down the path of his own destruction.” She jerked her hand back, hard. Abby almost choked. “What?” Skye’s eyes rolled. “Abby, you are a gorgeous woman. You really don’t use that enough to get what you want.” She turned away again, once more contemplating Abby’s stuff as she mumbled under her breath, “I should talk to Bry, get her to teach you some things.” She spun back around. “My point is… tease him until he makes an inappropriate play.” Abby’s first thought was Nikolai’s reaction to Kirill kissing her, someone he considered a friend. She gulped. Goddess, she didn’t like Richard, but she would never consciously set the Darkness on anyone. “No, I can’t do that.” Skye pensively studied Abby then she exclaimed with glee, slapping her hands on her thighs. “Oh Goddess, this just keeps getting better! Your lover will be here then?” Abby frowned and whispered feverishly. “Shh, for the love of the Goddess Skye, keep your voice down and don’t call him that!” She crossed her arms over her chest and gave Skye a very haughty glare, one meant to throw off the 326 Forever Mine wickedly sharp mind of her friend. “He’s not my lover, he was just a… fling, a… a…” “A one night stand?” Skye casually offered. “Yes, that’s right! A one night stand, three months ago. He does not mean anything to me.” Skye sinfully smiled at her. “Sweeting, you are so full of shit!” Abby started to protest and sputter, but Skye just talked right over her as she grabbed her in fierce hug. She leaned back and kissed Abby’s forehead. “Good for you! Sowing your royal oats before your father ruins your life! You make me so proud!” Her head tilted to the side. “So who is he? Do tell.” Abby peered into Skye’s penetrating orbs. She shook her head no, but was instantly dismissed when Skye let her go and started moving around the room once again. “Oh, never mind, I’ll know when I see him,” Skye offhandedly said with another crisp wave of her hand then once more moved on. “Sweeting, if it was just a fling, as you said…” She winked at Abby’s now red face. “… then what does it matter if he’s here or not?” “Because he’s under the misguided notion that I’m his; he’ll get all… possessive, and he won’t be able to stop himself from doing something stupid.” Skye scoffed. “The jealous type?” There was a note of cynicism in Skye’s voice that Abby had heard before. For some reason, Skye thought the idea of a man getting jealous was preposterous. Only the Goddess knew why. Abby had seen countless men getting jealous over the beautiful and sensual Skye but for some reason the object of their jealousy never saw it herself. Abby rolled her eyes. “Skye, it is a common occurrence. You may not believe it, but there are many males out there that are afflicted with it.” Skye snorted. “So you say.” “Well, regardless of whether or not you believe it to be true, it is. Actually…” Abby’s face crinkled in thought. “Jealousy is too light a word for this man, it’s more like… a violent thing, a very, very violent reaction that, if unchecked, would definitely turn things fatal.” Skye’s eyes twinkled with twisted excitement. “Really?” Abby nodded. “Mm, interesting.” Abby amusingly watched as Skye reflected on that and a smirk of demented pleasure crossed her features. “An intriguing concept, one I would love to see.” She looked at Abby who knew what was coming next. “Are you sure you don’t want to go that route?” Abby chuckled. “No, Skye, trust me when I tell you that will only make things worse.” Skye petulantly shrugged. “Oh, alright fine, don’t play the cock tease, but you can at least be as disagreeable and as much as bitch as you can be. I know Richard far better then you, sweeting, and he does not like outspoken women. You might just get him to show his true colors, which if I might add, are really nasty.” She leaned down and whispered, “He’s not all your father thinks he is. 327 Forever Mine All you have to do is get Richard to reveal his true nature, and when your father sees him for what he really is, there is no way he could keep the contract.” Hopeful brown orbs locked onto Skye. “Do you think so?” “Sweeting, you must trust me on this. Richard is a dog of the lowest order. He just keeps it hidden extremely well because he has high aspirations which include getting your father in his pocket. He thinks he can accomplish that by mating you.” Abby contemplated Skye’s words has she continued to move about the room, stopping at the bulletin board on the wall to gaze at the pictures pinned up. Abby didn’t know why Skye thought Richard was hiding something, but she could believe it. While he appeared to be a nice guy, appeared was really the key word, because there was something about him that kind of freaked her out. She always assumed it was just her annoyance with the whole situation that made her think that, but know she wondered. Could Skye be right? “You don’t have to let the men in your life control everything, Abby, trust me. I don’t.” Skye added. She was right, Abby thought. Skye was the only daughter of the most powerful man in the Realm, and she didn’t listen to a word he said. Half the time, Abby didn’t even think the two spoke to each other. There was a lot of tension between father and daughter. Skye never said why and Abby never asked. She figured when Skye was ready to talk, if ever, she would. It was a good point though. Skye was her own person and she lived her life that way. She didn’t let any man push her around. All Abby had to do was be more like that. She frowned. Nikolai would not be receptive to that idea. He was the most alpha male she knew; hell, she wasn’t even entirely sure exactly what he was. Abby looked over at Skye. Did she know anything about Pure Bloods? She must know something. After all, she was Cinn’s daughter. All of a sudden, Skye’s attention was drawn to the door. She glared at it then swung her gaze back at Abby, blank faced. “Think about it, Abby, you are not helpless and you’re not alone.” She walked over and kissed Abby on the cheek. “I’ll see you later. Oh, by the way, you haven’t seen me.” Abby just nodded; another common event. “Yeah, yeah, I know. I’ll see you tonight.” Skye left the room just as Abby remembered she wanted to ask to her if she knew anything about Pure Bloods. Abby opened the door, but the hallway was empty. There was no was sign of Skye anywhere. “Goddess, she’s quick.” Shrugging, Abby closed the door to her room and started taking off her clothes. She had to take a shower and get ready for tonight, and for whatever else was going to happen. Down the hallway, Ella slammed the parlor door shut where her mate was wallowing in self-disgust and anger, and stormed down the long hallway. 328 Forever Mine She needed a drink and a listening ear. Both she could get one floor below in Mati’s suite, which is where she was headed. She’d had enough of stubborn pissy people that couldn’t control their mouths or their actions for one day, thank you very much. Hearing Abby talk back to her father like that had startled Ella as much as it did Magnus. Well, it was about bloody time, if you asked her. Of course, standing up to Magnus – whether friend, family or foe - and so damn brazenly, always came with a price. Ella shook her head as the scene replayed in her mind. She still couldn’t believe he hit her. There had been so many times in the past when one of her children deserved a good smack. Of course they got it but it usually came from her. Magnus had never touched any of their kids in anger. To slap Abby, the one he held closest to his heart, said how much Abby had pushed his buttons. Frankly, Ella couldn’t even say she blamed him, well… too much at least. After all, it was his stupidity that created the entire situation to begin with, but Abby had let her anger and her mouth get away from her. Ella smirked. Kind of like me. Still, she was so damn angry, she practically snarled. She wanted to go back there and kick his ass herself. The only reason she didn’t was because she knew he was doing a pretty good job of that himself. Served him right. The parlor door suddenly whipped open behind Ella then slammed shut. Magnus quickly marched past her. “I’ll be at the gym,” he snarled as he stalked down the hall and toward the stairs where he practically ran into Tiernan, who was on his way up. Tiernan stepped to the side to let his growling, snarling father pass him. “Fine, you do that,” Ella angrily replied as she kept on walking. Tiernan glided up next to her. “So, the war has begun.” His mother’s only response was an annoyed grunt. “I gather she did not respond as the happy bride to be that father wished for?” Ella fixed her son with a heated glare. “What kind of question is that? You knew she wouldn’t. Gods blood, that man irritates me to no end!” Tiernan chuckled. “Yes, but we still love him.” Ella snorted. "It’s an affliction we all have. Unfortunately, I’m not feeling too much love right now and neither is Abby. He really did it this time, T. She is pissed off, and she was not shy in letting him know that.” Tiernan nodded. “Not surprising. She’s a passionate woman who wants her freedom, and she’s willing to fight for it. Plus, she’s intelligent enough to know that Richard is not the man for her.” “You know that, she knows that, I know that… hell, everyone seems to see that except him.” She shook her head. “He’s deeply hurt. Of course, he’ll never admit or act it. Instead, he’ll just be an unfeeling hard-ass, like he always is.” She sighed deeply. “They’re going to be at each other’s throats, you know.” She gazed up at Tiernan to see him nod his head. “I think it would be best to keep them apart as much as possible. After all, you know how much your father hates making scenes in public.” Tiernan nodded, a smirk playing around his lips. “I know he told you to watch Abby so you just go ahead and do that; I’ll keep my 329 Forever Mine eye on him. That man’s going to be the death of me. Once again, he creates the mess and it’s up to me to clean it up.” Tiernan stopped his mom when they were five doors away from Abby’s room. He grabbed her arm and leaned down to whisper, “Mom, I don’t know how you’ve done whatever it is you’ve done…” “What? I haven’t done anything!” Ella proclaimed with offense. When Tiernan’s only response was a bland don’t-call-me-stupid look, she sighed, knowing that keeping anything from Tiernan was impossible. “Oh, alright, I did, but it’s all good, I swear.” Tiernan almost laughed. His mom, my the Gods bless her, was a true hoyden. Sometimes she acted younger than him with the mischief she got herself into, but beyond that, she was one of the fiercest women he knew, if not the most. She loved deeply and showed it often, even when she was berating them or slapping them upside the head for doing something idiotic, as she put it. She was a woman that had a motive behind everything she did, and it usually pertained to her children, or rather, the destinies she had seen in her visions. She was ready to defend and protect her children at any expense, even if that meant at her own personal expense. Knowing his father’s favorite form of punishment and how much his mother loathed it, Tiernan felt the need to remind her of the predicament she was putting herself in. “Mom, I know it is, and personally, I don’t care what you did, but I know the result.” Ella looked at him through slits. “How do you know? Oh, never mind, it’s you… of course you know,” she exasperatingly said. “When he finds out, it’s going to make things even more difficult, especially when he finds out that it was you that instigated it.” “I know that! Goddess, why do all my children think I’m an idiot? It doesn’t matter what he does to me, Tiernan. I will do anything to give Abby her destiny and if that means punishment for me, then whatever… I can take it.” Tiernan gazed back blankly. Ella smiled. “Now, don’t worry about me, baby. Trust me.” She patted his chest. “Everything will work out just fine, just the way it’s supposed to. I’m going down to talk to Mati. Wanna come with?” Tiernan nodded and started to follow her, but then he stopped when they reached Abby’s door. It took Ella a minute to realize Tiernan wasn’t by her side. She turned and looked back. “Are you coming?” Tiernan stood in front of Abby’s door, his body rigid and his face emotionless as his dark grey eyes fixed on her. “No. It’s getting late and I need to get ready.” He walked up to her and kissed her on the cheek. “I’ll see you later, mom.” Ella watched as Tiernan walked down the hall toward his room. She spared one more glance at Abby’s door; she could practically feel the heat of anger swarming through the wood from inside. She shook her head. Definitely not going in there. She turned on her heels and headed to the stairs. 330 Forever Mine ********** He knew he had a visitor even before he got out of the shower and he knew who it was. Nevertheless, Tiernan took his time in the bathroom, and left the man that waited in the other room to cool his heels. If he had so little respect in barging uninvited into his private chambers, then he could pace out there until the sun rose for all he cared. After pulling on his black Armani pants and blow drying his long hair - a mere forty minutes later - Tiernan finally opened the bathroom door and walked out. “I really don’t need you popping in here to tell me what I already know.” Hard, nearly black eyes followed Tiernan as he swaggered over to the closet and pulled out a grey silk shirt. With his bare back turned toward him, Cinn’s eyes were immediately drawn to the intricate tattoo. Though Tiernan’s long hair covered the center of the tat, when he moved to put his shirt on and lifted his hair up in the process, Cinn got a very good look at it. There was much more to it since the last time he saw it. Not only did the tat now cover his entire back, it was making its way to the back of his arms. Cinn even caught a glimpse of black ink on the back of Tiernan’s neck. Interesting. Cinn’s eyes became slits of steel as he observed Tiernan’s movements with a closer eye. “How much do you know?” he curiously asked. Silent Tiernan turned around and faced him. He was buttoning his shirt and insipidly staring back as if to say, ‘What do you think?’ Cinn held back a growl. He hadn’t wanted to come here because dealing with Tiernan was as difficult as dealing with a rabid boar - actually, he’d prefer dealing with the boar - but with things the way they were… “Good. Then you understand the circumstances.” Cinn said through clenched teeth. Again, Tiernan said nothing. He just continued to button his shirt with that haughty stare. He did nod however. Cinn grunted. “He’s going to need our assistance and, unfortunately, I can’t always be there.” Tiernan coldly brushed Cinn off by giving him his back again and reaching into his closest. “I’ve already been put on watch dog duty,” he dryly answered as he pulled out the matching black jacket and laid it on his bed. “There’s no need in wasting any more of your time or mine.” His haughty dismissal had Cinn’s temper flowing. Tiernan knew it - you’d have to be deaf, dumb and blind not to know it, but still… he couldn’t have cared less how pissed off the Consul was and he showed it by walking right past him and back into the bathroom. Standing in front of the mirror, he tucked his shirt in his pants then, when he was done, he vainly looked at himself, making sure every crease was perfect and every hair on his head tamed. Not that he had to, his appearance was always perfect. He had no control over it; it was just the way things were. As he stood 331 Forever Mine there, he felt Cinn’s burning gaze but he didn’t care. He had ceased to care a long time ago. “One day, Tiernan Mac Branain, you will cross paths with someone who will knock that bloody arrogance right out of you,” Cinn seethed. Tiernan casually strolled out until he stood in front of Cinn, one black eyebrow rose in beautiful elegance. “I suppose this is where I’m supposed to say the obvious cliché, ‘Are you threatening me?’ but we both know I don’t do clichés.” Cinn’s anger flared as his eyes flitted between grey and gold. Tiernan just continued to stand there, silently watching, not one iota of emotion showing on his perfect face. When Cinn spoke next, his voice echoed in the room. Any other man would have turned white as a ghost and hid under the bed. Tiernan didn’t even blink. “And we both know that I do not issue threats.” Cinn took a step closer until they were inches away from each other. “I suggest you take a good long look at your life and what you have become, because very soon the inherent ability to make your own choices, something I know you value so highly, will be taken away from you.” Unfazed by the threat in Cinn’s voice, Tiernan glibly replied, “They already were.” Cinn’s eyes sparked with foreboding and a harsh laugh escaped his lips. “Oh, that was nothing, my boy, nothing compared to what’s in store for you if you don’t get your shit together. Do not let that ego of yours trick you into a false state of control. You are far from being in control, and if you think you ever were, then you are vainer then I thought.” Cinn let that sit for a second before continuing. “You can only ignore your responsibilities for so long without suffering some form of ramifications and you know that. I urge you, do not make that mistake. If you do, then you can bet your narcissistic ass that that freedom you think you gave yourself when you turned your back on your destiny will be taken from you and it won’t be by my hand.” Tiernan glowered. His eyes were almost black with fury but he didn’t speak and he didn’t move a muscle. Inwardly, Cinn was smiling from ear to ear. Finally, some damn emotion. “And that my boy is no threat, it is truth, a truth even I will not be able to stop.” Cinn turned away, his long dress gown swinging violently around as he did, and walked toward the door. Turning back, his eyes were a peaceful grey but still hard and intent with purpose. “Watch him. Keep him from killing not only himself, but Richard and your father as well. When you’re ready to discuss, other matters, you know where to find me.” Cinn blinked and he was gone. Tiernan was left alone in his room, staring at nothing with his fists curled at his sides and his eyes dangerously shifting from grey to black to gold. His back itched, pressure built; fuck, he hated that. He took a deep cleansing breath and within minutes, the feeling disappeared. 332 Forever Mine Shaking his shoulders, he grabbed the jacket off the bed and pulled it on. His eyes returned to their gunmetal grey as he left his room and made his way down to the ballroom. 333 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE It had been a long, long time since he felt the sharp sting of betrayal. It was so long ago he couldn’t even remember what it had been about. What he did know was that it had not felt this gut-wrenchingly painful. Circinn sat in his study, quietly staring into space… brooding. Since Nikolai’s departure and Cinn’s frustrated yet curious interlude with Tiernan – which he really could not even think about now – he’d been sitting here, feeling the whip of treachery as it sliced cavernous cuts into every part of his being. He had a lot of things to take care of before the ball but he was incapable of doing any of it. He was too astounded to do much of anything but stare into nothingness and sink further into the darkness. He never would have thought that she, out of all people, would betray him. After everything he sacrificed - for her, everything he had done and gone through in his long years of existence - all in the honor of her name, this was what he got? This was how she treated him? The notion that deceit was his payment was just completely unbelievable for him. Oh, he always knew there was a selfish, narcissistic side that dwelled behind those violet eyes. What God, or Goddess for that matter, didn’t have one of those, but she had never shown that side to him. He thought… no, he would have bet his immortal life, that she had always been upfront and honest with him. To discover that was not the case was almost too hard to believe. A heavy scowl settled on his face. He felt like he had been played. Felt like he had been cheated out of serving justice. He had deeply mourned Maksim’s death and now that mourning felt like a fallacy. How can you truly mourn the loss of a loved one when the reason for that loss was a lie? He wasn’t sure if that made sense, but it felt right to him. He was, after all, a warrior, and a true warrior would have sought revenge, meted out justice, and then properly mourned the loss of a comrade. He had not been given that chance and that made him feel like he let Maksim down. A hard sneer left his lips. Betrayal – what a dirty word it was, and yet he himself was as much a part of it as Anaya. By naively believing the lie of Maksim’s death, he had betrayed his friend, and that was the root of his anger. That self-loathing was the crux of all the vehement emotions currently throwing him off balance and Circinn the Consul did not become unbalanced… ever. He growled, loudly. His fist slammed down on the arm of the chair. Why had she kept this from him? And why would she even permit this atrocity to happen in the first place? He didn’t understand it, and he wasn’t sure if he ever would. Remembering her parting words from earlier, and how she hoped he would forgive her, had him shaking his head. How could he ever forgive this? Closing his eyes, Circinn leaned his head against the back of the chair and took deep breaths as he tried to wrap his mind around everything. Tried to 334 Forever Mine understand, to come to grips with the disturbingly violent emotions he hadn’t felt in centuries. The clock on the mantel ticked quietly in the background. The study was still and dark as the faint smoky scent of peat infused the room – it fit his mood perfectly, until it suddenly became crisp and… fresh. The systematic tick of the clock gradually developed into a musical chirp of a Robin. The stillness evolved into a whisper of a light blowing breeze and the darkness shifted to become bright sunshine. He knew where he would find himself when he opened his eyes and a part of him longed for the tranquility that always embodied him while in this plane. He waited for what felt like a lifetime but… that feeling did not come. Scowling, Cinn opened his eyes. Standing on pristine white polished tiles, he was in a chamber he had been in many times before. It was large and opulent; with no walls, the room felt and looked like an extension of the colorful garden that surrounded it. He could hear the rush of the waterfall that was at the end of the garden. The birds chirped louder, almost annoyingly so. The sweet smell of Calla Lilies filled his nostrils, and he felt sick to his stomach. His reaction was another punch to his rage. Coming to this plane should have made him feel better, he should feel at peace, serenity should be rushing through his veins instead, it only angered him more. He blinked a couple of times, letting his eyes adjust from the dark to light. When he opened them fully, he was gazing into violet orbs awash with unshed tears. “Perhaps after I’ve explained you’ll see things more clearly,” she softly said. Against his will, Cinn’s gaze roamed down Anaya’s tall feminine form. As usual, she was dressed in another one of those lavish gowns she favored, a dress from a fairytale wedding; this one was silver. It sparkled and shimmered like diamonds, and as with anything she wore, it suited her perfectly. It fit her frame with seductive ease and temptation. Draping her curves, it stimulated his vision and strained his body with heated hunger. She wore her blonde hair down, the tips reaching her waist and curling like a lovers hand on her hip. She was, as she always was, the embodiment of what a beautiful sensual woman should be. Looking at her, standing mere feet away from her, roused a hunger he did not want to feel, yet could not escape. For the first time, Cinn resented the natural allure she wielded; hated it with everything in his being. “I had hoped, Circinn, that you would have taken my advice and accept this truth with an open mind.” The sound of her voice, which typically relaxed and excited him all at the same time, now filled him with bitterness and he didn’t bother hiding. “How can I accept this ‘truth,’ as you so callously call it, with an open mind?” Looking at her beautiful, guileless face, Cinn had the sudden urge to hurt her, to inflict as much pain on her as he was feeling. 335 Forever Mine Instead, he held his body with rigidity, clenching his fists at his sides to maintain control. After all, he might want to hurt her, but if he did and here in this plane, he was as good as dead. “You lied to me! You deliberately kept this from me! Why, damn it?” The Great Goddess Anaya, creator of D’rkenrealm and Mother to all who had and still walked the Realm, pensively studied her liaison with hesitant eyes and a heavy heart. This was Circinn…as his heart wept, so too did hers; his pain became her own. She could not distance herself from it nor could she ignore it. She always knew one day she would have to face his scorn, his hatred, and she knew it would not be pleasant, but this was beyond anything she could have imagined. She could never have prepared for the hostility and abhorrence standing before her now; she was almost unsure on how to continue. There was nothing she could say that would make him feel better. No excuse she could possibly give that would justify her actions in his eyes. The only course left open to her was to do what she had not been able to do before… be honest. “I never wanted to keep this from you, but I had no choice.” Cinn’s eyes turned gold with anger. “That is an answer I would expect to hear from a five-year-old, not from the Goddess that created everything!” He took a step forward. “You had a choice and you made it. Now I want to know why?” Anaya’s violet eyes, that were full of sympathy and understanding, turned dark with virtuous irritation and her own voice rose as she spoke. “It was not my choice, Circinn! I do not control the Fates, you know this. I simply create.” A derisive snort left Cinn’s lips; he knew she was going to say that. He took the final step that drew him to her. Reaching out, he grasped her arms and roughly pulled her against him. “I do not speak of the decision to let this massacre take place. I know the Fates control everyone’s destiny. I’m talking about how you did not tell me!” His grip tightened. “Maksim was my friend, Anaya! I had a right to know! A right to seek vengeance! You should have told me!” Anaya’s eyes shifted, becoming a deep, almost black, amethyst. “You fool! It is because of your friendship I did not tell you! If you had known, you would have destroyed Arnost and Konstantin.” “Yes! Because that is what they deserved!” “I agree, but at whose expense? Yours!” Her words hit Cinn in the face like a sharp slap. Anaya shrugged out of his grasp. His hands dropped to his sides, and this time it was Anaya who stood up to him, poking him in the chest with a hard finger as anger radiated out of her mystical being. “How easily you forget your purpose when in the throes of rage! You are my liaison Circinn, do you forget the conditions of that agreement?” Anaya responded and her response had Cinn’s face turning to stone. “By going after them, you would have destroyed yourself and I could not allow that.” Tense seconds passed as they held each other’s gaze. 336 Forever Mine Then Anaya’s face softened, her voice lowered, becoming the ethereal composure that was Anaya. She reached out to him and touched his cheek. “You are more important to me than setting right a wrong that had to be.” Cinn felt her love and affection wrap around and inside him, it helped to lessen his rage. He closed his eyes to her touch and as his rage subsided, his sorrow returned. His voice was ragged when he spoke, heartbroken. “Why? Why did this have to be? He was a good man, an honorable man.” His eyes opened and he peered back with intensity. “He did not deserve to die such a death.” Anaya smiled soothingly. “I know. Maksim was all those things, but in your affection for him, you forget what he really was. He was Upyr, Circinn.” She half-laughed. “He was the Upyr and you know as well as I that no matter how educated or intelligent an Upyr was, they were still dangerous demons who were undisciplined and uncontrollable. The Fates made the decision, and I could not disagree with them.” “How can you say that? They were your children, your creations!’ “Yes, and for centuries I let them choose their own way, and look at the choices they made. They destroyed everything in their path! They eradicated a race of beings then they turned on each other. They would have killed off their own race if they had not set their sights on the mortals.” Anaya took a step back and faced the garden. Her back stiffened in resolve as she continued to speak. “They became too bold, too pretentious, and they overstepped their bounds.” She turned to face him and Cinn was staring into the unyieldingly hard face of a Goddess that had come to the end of her rope. “Their time had come. Maksim’s fate had been sealed. He was the one that kept the species alive and strong. Once he died, it was only a matter of time before the rest did.” Cinn harshly laughed. It was cold and filled with disgust. He turned away from her, because if he continued to look at her he would strangle her. “And yet you let two live.” He scathingly said. Anaya sighed, “You know as well I as that the females are harmless and as for Nikolai, Nikolai is different, special.” Her voice was lathed with smugness. Cinn whipped back around to face her self-righteous smile with incredulity. “How? He isn’t any different! I met his Darkness Anaya, it is the same demon that dwelled in his father.” Anaya softly laughed. “You are wrong, Circinn. He is not like his father. The suffering Nikolai has endured and the sacrifices he has made is what sets him apart from Maksim and all Upyr that came before him. Come, Circinn, tell me you did not sense something different in Nikolai’s Darkness than that of his father’s.” Glowering like the devil, Cinn walked over to the edge of the room and stared out into the garden. Pensively, he rubbed his chin as he contemplated what Anaya said and quickly realized he was unable to deny it as truth. There had been something different about Nikolai’s Darkness. He had thought it was just the usual slight differences one could detect in the demons of father and sons, but Anaya was right, that wasn’t what it was. It was the 337 Forever Mine impression that Nikolai’s Darkness was a breed apart from the others before it. Cinn never would have thought that it was the path Nikolai had walked that made his Darkness different, but it made sense and he was hard pressed to ignore it. Still, knowing everything Nikolai had suffered seemed a heavy price to pay for evolution to take place, and he spoke his thoughts out loud. “He has been through so much, endured such heartache, all for the sole purpose of progressing the species.” “As he was meant to do, Circinn.” Cinn sighed; it was deep and troubled. Anaya walked up behind him, laying one hand on his shoulder. She spoke to him, desperate to make him understand. “And he is stronger for it. Nikolai has learned the one thing the Upyr of old never did - he has learned how to be humble. He understands you cannot always have what you want and that you don’t always get what you deserve. Maksim, though an honorable man indeed, would have slit your throat if killing you would have gained him more power.” Cinn closed his eyes in silent acknowledgement. Anaya felt his despair and it softened her voice even more. “Do not let your optimism in seeing the good in everyone blind you to this truth. You are only hurting yourself by thinking that. ” Unable to bear the touch of her kindness, her… love, Cinn’s feet carried him outside and into the heart of the garden. Anaya quietly followed behind him. Reaching the center, Cinn sat down on the bench before the fountain. Anaya gave him the space she knew he needed and instead fixed her attention on the blood red rosebushes next to him. Cinn fixed his gaze on the ultra-blue sky above as a self-condemning scowl appeared on his face. Anaya was right. He had seen that side of Maksim, on all Upyr for that matter, it was just who they were. They hungered for power and Maksim had been no different. It was what led him to Russia to begin with, the hunger for more glory and power, and the inherent need to control. Cinn had never liked that side of his friend, but he had always known it existed. It was just really hard for him to admit it. “I fought for him, Circinn, you must believe in that.” Cinn looked up. Anaya was standing in front of him, her hands twisting nervously in front of her. Her face was void of any shadows; it was open and vulnerable, and inside he felt her genuineness, knew her sadness had been as great as his is now. “Maksim was my most beloved Upyr. He was a part of me, created from me, it was not easy to stand by and watch his demise, but I could not fight the Fates. And to be honest, I agreed with their decision, which is not easy to admit either, but in order to save them, the mightiest had to fall.” Cinn sighed; it was long and tired, resigned. “What happens now? What of Nikolai?” “You know there is only one way this can go. Nikolai will seek out the vengeance that is due. He will give you the justice your warrior’s heart craves. It is his destiny. “ “And Abaigeal?” 338 Forever Mine Anaya smiled. “Abaigeal is as unique as Nikolai. She is one of the sweetest souls; brimming with compassion and uncluttered with blackness.” Her smile broadened. “She leaves me in awe sometimes.” Circinn half-smiled and nodded in agreement. “She is a remarkable young woman.” “Yes, hard to believe she comes from the loins of the Mac Branain,” Anaya teased and Circinn softly chuckled. Hearing Cinn’s laughter gave comfort to Anaya, and his acceptance of what happened gave her the opportunity to approach him when he stood up. Reaching his side, Anaya grabbed his hand and steered him down the cobblestone path that meandered through the garden. “Just imagine Circinn, the children created from their mating. They will be glorious, just glorious.” Circinn smirked. “And arrogant and stubborn and rebellious.” “Yes, but in a good way.” "You know Magnus isn't going to take this very well." Anaya waved her hand in the air. “He will come to understand. Granted, at first, he will no doubt exhibit that legendary temper, but he will quickly come to see the good in all that is to come.” Sure, it was easy for her to be so nonchalant about that because she wasn’t the one that had to deal with the hotheaded Irishman. As they quietly walked through the garden, Cinn heard a faded sound of a knock on a door, and the faint sound of his name being called. Sighing, he stopped walking then turned to face Anaya. Though he had come here filled with anger and resentment, and while a small part of him still held onto those emotions, he was overall content. He could never stay angry with her for long. He understood the difficult decisions she had to make as a Goddess; he had always known and he had never held them against her. As Cinn stared into Anaya’s violet eyes, he had the distinct feeling that it would not be long before they were here together once again. After all, there was still so much left unsaid, so much between them that had yet to play out, and all of it would rear its ugly head sooner than later. Grasping her hands in his, Circinn looked down at Anaya somberly. They shared a knowing look; Anaya knew his thoughts and she offered him a small sad smile. “You will never know how much it pained me to deceive you, Circinn, your pain becomes my own.” Cinn smiled then, leaning down, he closed his eyes and kissed her on the forehead. When he opened them up again, he was back in his study. The room was dark so he walked over to the window and pulled the drapes back, casting the room in the low orangey glow of the fading sun. Then he opened the door to the persistent knock. “Yes?” “My lord, you told me to come and get you thirty minutes before the ball was to begin.” Cinn nodded. “I did, thank you, Dugald.” After closing the door, Cinn took the hidden staircase that led to his private rooms. 339 Forever Mine He needed to rest just a little before the ball. Leaving the Otherworld always left him slightly lagging in energy, and he would need all of it for what was to come. ********** Nikolai rarely ever made what some people would categorize as a ‘bad’ decision, but when he did… man, they were doozies. Take now, for instance. He was, much to his annoyance, pacing once again. Not that that was out of the ordinary for him lately, but what was really spectacularly stupid was that he wasn’t doing it in his room. Nor was he downstairs in the gym, which is where he planned on going, nor was he anywhere that would be considered a relatively ‘safe’ place for him to be. Oh, he started out in one of those places, in the arboretum to be exact, pacing just like he was now, thinking about Richard and Abby. The anger had built the more he thought about it, and the next thing he knew, he was here – in Abby’s bedroom. He could validate it by saying he had no intention of coming here, because he knew this was bad, but in his defense, he had no control over it. He had just been so focused on her that the next thing he knew, he was pacing on a squishy black rug instead of hard marble tiles, and instead of breathing in the scent of lilies and tulips, he was breathing in the scent of his S’airsul. He closed his eyes, his body shivering with the immediate lust that rocked him whenever he smelt the succulent aroma that was Abby. A licentious smile crossed his lips. She was in the bathroom and had been since he first popped in. He was impatient for her to come out, but at the same time, he prayed to the Goddess above that she would be clothed when she did. He was so tight with lust and anger, he wasn’t sure he could control himself if she walked out that bathroom door in nothing but her birthday suit. In an attempt to calm himself, which was really a piss poor attempt, he looked around the bedroom. It was a nice room, big and roomy, with a queen size bed covered with a black down comforter and white sheets. There was a large chair beside the window with an ottoman and a small table. A bookcase stood to his right with books on combat and weapons, and the walls were littered with pictures of her family and friends. It was a nice comfy room, one that would have given him much more contentment if he didn’t feel like he was going to snap the moment she stepped out. Nikolai swung his gaze to the door in anticipation, softly mewling with need. He felt like he was drooling, he was so excited, so pent up with frustration. His hands curled and flexed. His breathing increased, becoming shallow and rapid. His heart was pounding against his chest and his dick was throbbing with urgency. Basically, he felt like a beast ready to break free of his chains the moment she stepped into the room. He knew his eyes were pitch black, he could feel his veins throbbing, had felt the tingling sensation in his scalp as his hair 340 Forever Mine grew longer; they were parts of the transformation he let happen. What he held back was his body’s demand to change that came in the form of a burning sensation. He ignored the demanding ache. He was determined to show his mate that he would not be controlled by the Darkness. He was the master, not the demon. The lock on the door clicked. Black eyes focused on it as it slowly swung open to reveal Abby. His breath sucked in sharply, her beauty striking him so hard in the gut he couldn’t think, couldn’t move, couldn’t do anything but stand there like a growling beast and caress every inch of her luscious body with his eyes. The need to mark her as his was unbearably urgent. He took a step forward, his hands reaching out to grab her and throw her on the bed. “Don’t move!” Abby sternly yet quietly said as she thrust one hand up in front of Nikolai. Both the man and the Darkness instantly obeyed; they stopped. Abby breathed out a ragged breath. She couldn’t believe he had the balls to just pop into her room. And clearly he had every intention of pouncing on her. Goddess, she really wanted to yell at him, but it would draw the entire family into her bedroom in seconds. And really, did they need that bunch here now? Uh, no. Her Lummox Link, or the L.L. which she had affectionately come to consider the constant warm hum, now vibrated with Nikolai’s raw emotions of anger and lust. It had been those same emotions that told her he was here, thankfully right after Bryony left, and mere seconds before she locked the bathroom door. “I know you know you’re not supposed to be here, so I’m not even going to go there.” She spoke as firmly as she could without raising her voice above a whisper. “By the look in your eye, I can only assume you found out about Richard.” He snarled; it was loud and thoroughly displeased. He took another step closer. Abby threw up another hand. “Stop.” He growled again, but thankfully, still stopped. “Do you see what I’m wearing, Nikolai?” Nikolai frowned. What kind of damn question was that? Was she really asking him if he saw the long black skirt encasing her curvaceous hips in black leather that seamlessly flowed into black satin material covering those sexy, well defined legs? Or, maybe she wanted to know if he could see the eye popping black leather corset that hugged her beautiful breasts, like his hands itched to, pushing those perfect globes up as a decadent offering to his mouth. Or, perhaps she meant the way her thick soft hair was hanging down her back in perfectly sculpted ringlets and the sides swept up on the top of her head, leaving her long elegant neck open and vulnerable. Gods Blood, she was killing him! He was going to fucking explode if he didn’t touch her soon! 341 Forever Mine Nikolai took another step, intent on grabbing her, yet once again Abby held up her hand, and stomped her foot to get his eyes on her face and off the tempting display of cleavage. He growled. “See this?” She agitatedly waved her hand in front of her, up and then down. “This is why you…” She pointed at him. “Are staying exactly where you are and I’m staying here. If you make one crease in my dress, take one hair out of place, I won’t be able to fix it, because,” she stopped suddenly as embarrassment filled her, “well, because I didn’t do it, okay? There you have it, I have absolutely no talent when it comes to girly things.” Abby reluctantly admitted. Why she felt less of a woman admitting it to him was beyond her. “Bry did it and I can’t get her back here to fix me in time,” she glumly added right before her voice hardened. “Got it?” Nikolai looked really confused, but then after another soft, yet full of annoyance growl, he took a deep breath and nodded his head. “Good. There will also be no shouting. I swear to the Goddess Nikolai, if you shout, if you make me raise my voice any louder than what it is right now, I’ll kill you. Got it?” He rolled his eyes and nodded again. “Good, now… what the hell are you doing here?” Abby expected an answer. What she got instead was one very fast, very strong, and very agitated vampire grabbing her, picking her up and throwing her down on the bed. A surprised ‘O’ emitted from her lips as Nikolai’s big body covered hers. Before she could speak, before she could do anything, he had both her hands in one big grip held above her head while the other held her chin captive. His mouth hotly possessed hers in a passionate kiss that had her toes curling and her breasts straining against his chest as she tried to breathe. After Nikolai thoroughly tasted every corner of Abby’s mouth, he pulled back and looked down in her dazed face. He smirked smugly then licked her bottom lip. “You really didn’t think I could not touch you when you look so incredibly beautiful in that dress did you, lyubof?” Gently tilting her chin up, he moved in and placed a kiss on the base of her throat where her pulse pounded with lust. “How could I not taste you, not feel you against me, when I’ve done nothing but think of having you underneath me again, just like this.” He released her chin and his wicked hand rove down her neck and toward her chest, where he cupped her right breast and gifted it with a most proprietary squeeze. Abby closed her eyes and moaned, awash in the instant pleasure his touch gave her. He nipped her throat and even that primal act did not deter the lust flowing rampantly in her body; it sent it soaring. “How could I deny the need to mark you as mine after learning about the mating contract with Richard?” Abby’s eyes snapped open, burning with anger. “Not that I have to explain myself to you, but I had nothing to do with that - that was my father’s doing.” “I know. That’s the only reason you’re not over my knee getting spanked.” 342 Forever Mine Abby’s eyes bulged as she sharply inhaled as started to struggle. “Get off me, you lummox! Did you not hear what I just told you?” Nikolai smirked, but stayed right where he was. “I heard you.” He shifted slightly to the right and his bulging appendage rubbed against her thigh. Abby instantly stilled, her heart thudded against her chest, which succeeded in pressing her now aching breasts further into his hard chest. Goddess, that felt so damn good. Nikolai quietly pondered her. “Who is Bry, by the way?” “She’s my cousin.” “Ah, the one that makes the potions?” he asked, Abby nodded. “She’s one of Ruari’s, isn’t she?” “Ooh, aren’t you observant? What gave it away, was it the flaming red hair?” Abby sardonically answered. Nikolai tightened his hold on her wrists again and then soothed the sting with a long wet tongue racing up her throat to her ear. “Abaigeal, I am really not in the best of moods, I would suggest you refrain from the bratty comments,” he whispered right before he plunged his tongue into her ear and his hand once again squeezed her breast. “Gods blood, woman, you feel so damn good.” As he continued to tease and torment her breasts, Abby’s eyes were practically rolling back in pleasure. “Niko… please, stop. You… can’t… be…” His hand dipped down the confines of her corset where he tweaked the nipple then rolled the pad of his finger over it. “Gods, that feels amazing.” She made that husky admission right before she berated herself for doing so. Damn it, she was weak! A weak woman at the mercy of this enigmatic man’s every touch. She had no control and it was damn alarming. On its own accord, Abby’s body glided from side to side underneath his, drawing his hard body, that she really just wanted to strip and lick all over, further against her own as she tried once again to get her hands free. “Niko, stop. You can’t be here.” Of course, he didn’t listen to her; instead, his fingers continued to tease her nipple and his lips continued their sinful path down her neck, licking her pulse point then gently taking the skin in between his lips and suckling gently. “Do you have your potions?” he asked in between light nips and licks of her neck. “After everything that happened, do you really think I would come here without them?” Nikolai pulled back and looked down at her, finally pulling his hand out of her corset. He lovingly caressed her cheek. “You say that as if you were displeased? Did you not enjoy the time we spent together?” Moving her hands down and in between them, Abby laid her palms against his chest. “Niko, you know I did, and you know why I’m saying that. Nothing’s changed since we parted ways.” He scowled. “Some things have changed.” His tone left no question as to what he was referring to. 343 Forever Mine Reminded of the controlling men in her life, Abby succeeded in pushing him off of her. She scrambled to her feet, scowling as she smoothed down her gown. “That wasn’t my fault.” “I know, but that doesn’t lessen the anger I feel knowing about it.” He stood up and took the two steps that had him in front of her. He grabbed her chin and brought her annoyed gaze up to his. “Abby, I’m trying really hard to stay away from you…” Her eyes bulged and she jerked her chin out of his grasp, half-laughing as she did. “Really? Is that what that little show in the hallway was? You staying away?” Nikolai sheepishly smiled. “No that was just, a game.” He shrugged then sighed. “He’s going to find out anyway, why not get him used to the idea now?” Abby’s mouth dropped open hearing his blasé and completely self-assured answer, then it slammed shut and she glowered at him. She was certain smoke had to be coming out of her ears as she took a step closer and whispered angrily. “No, damn it! We talked about this. We agreed.” Nikolai softly chuckled, “No, lyubof. You expressed your concerns and I made a promise to rectify all of them. Which I will. That was all that was discussed.” Goddess, he was obstinate. “You can’t just keep pushing my feelings aside like they don’t matter, Nikolai.” He frowned. “That’s not what I’m doing.” His voice rose slightly in agitation. “Your feelings matter very much to me, and inside you know that.” He shook his head. “No, it is not me that is the problem, it is your refusal to accept your fate that is. You are too afraid to take what you want…what I can give you.” With dark eyes of distress, Abby moved to turn away, but Nikolai wouldn’t let her. With his hands on her hips, Nikolai backed her up against the wall and closed in around her. His body lightly touched hers as he leaned down and nuzzled her neck, placing an open mouth kiss right below ear. Full, suckable lips hovered seductively above hers. “I’m offering you a lifetime of pleasure, a lifetime of love. Don’t walk away from that.” He placed a tender kiss on the corner of her mouth. Abby’s expression softened from the tenderness he invoked, right before stark terror seeped in. “Love? Is that what you think this is?” she softly asked, almost afraid to even voice it. They’d never spoke about love; desire and passion…pleasure, those were things they had talked about. But love? Nikolai reassuringly rubbed her cheek with the back of his hand. He could feel her panic. See the fear that one little word invoked in her eyes. It was the first time that word had ever come off his lips for a woman; he hadn’t planned on saying it, it just naturally came out. And unlike Abby, he wasn’t afraid. Instead, saying it invigorated him. “I don’t think. I know.” Abby closed her eyes from the determined truth she read in his gaze. 344 Forever Mine “Abby, I have lived a long time, been with many lovers.” Her eyes snapped open and glared at him. Seeing it had Nikolai’s heart skipping a beat. “And I have never experienced with them the feelings that I do for you. The moment we met in Germany, I knew you were mine, and I knew that I could never live without you.” Oh Gods, that was sweet. Abby felt her heart opening to him. She fell into his dark gaze that was as open and loving as her heart was feeling. When he spoke again, it was soft and endearing, and the icing on the cake, spoken in Russian. “Don’t be afraid to love me, Abby. Open yourself to my love. I promise it will never hurt you.” Holding Abby’s gaze, his dark head slowly bent toward her. He whispered hot words of passion and love against her lips before he gently took her mouth in a soul searing kiss that Abby would realize much later sealed her fate. ********** Shane was whistling as he climbed the stairs. He didn’t know why he was whistling, he really wasn’t in that great of a mood. Keegan came to the ladies parlor to find him and Nyle, not only to tell them they needed to get ready before mom came down and dragged their asses up for them, but also to inform them that their father told Abby about Richard – hence, the non-happy mood he was in. He was worried about Abby, which is why he was going to her room, so he could be as supportive as she needed him to be. He could only imagine the pain and anger she must be feeling. Whistling helped to keep his own anger at bay because going in Abby’s room pissed would only spurn her anger on. She should enjoy herself tonight and not be weighted down with the prospect of a future with Wexler. Reaching the top of the stairs, Shane made his way down the hall until he stopped in front of Abby’s door. He lifted his hand to knock when he heard something coming from behind the door. A sound he was utterly familiar with, a sound he should not be hearing in his baby sister’s room. He shook his head, a silly smile played on his lips. No, he had to be mistaken but then he heard it again – a soft feminine moan. He frowned ominously when he heard the sound once again. He pressed his ear against the door and heard it again, yet this time it was followed up by a soft masculine voice - in Russian. He knew that voice and he knew there was no damn reason why it should be coming from inside Abby’s room and speaking things he should not be speaking…to his baby sister! Shane’s face twisted with fury. His hand reached out for the doorknob and his foot lifted to kick it open, but he never got the chance. Without warning, a hand was thrown over his mouth and he was roughly grabbed from the side and thrown into the room next to Abby’s. The violence of 345 Forever Mine entering the unused room was in stark contrast to the door that closed without a sound. He was standing in utter darkness ready to kill whoever it was helping the scoundrel inside his sister’s room. “Who the…” “Shh. Keep your voice down.” The light snapped on and Shane found himself staring into calm grey eyes. “T? What the hell? Someone’s in Abby’s room and he’s not one of us! And he’s…” Shane shook himself, unable to even think the thought let alone speak it. “Doing things to her he should not be doing!” “I know.” Shane’s eyes bulged. His fists clenched at his side as he took a step closer. “You know? That’s all you have to say? What the fuck is going on?” “I’ll tell you as soon as you calm down and stop shouting.” Obviously, if Tiernan wasn’t already in that room then he must know something and, with that smile lurking on his lips, he wasn’t bothered by it in the least. Still, Shane was confused. “Is that who I think it is?” “It is.” Before Shane could respond, Tiernan slapped him on the back and steered him toward the bed, pushing him down. “It would be better if you sat.” Dumbly, Shane sat down and peered up at him. His brother’s face was animatedly confused. Tiernan couldn’t blame him, he’d feel the same way if he…well, if he was Shane. “Yeah, I have a funny feeling you’re right,” Shane softly said. Then he moved up the bed and leaned against the wall, crossing his arms over his chest he crossed his feet. “Okay, enlighten me.” ********** When Nikolai’s hand wandered down her leg and lifted it, deftly laying it on his hip and then meandering slowly up her leg and toward her wet panties, was when Abby knew she really had to put a stop to this or she’d have the entire household barging in when she screamed with pleasure. She grabbed his wrist. “Nikolai, stop. Please.” Hearing Abby’s the soft pleading that was filled with trepidation halted any further exploration Nikolai yearned to make. He leaned his forehead against hers and smiled. “I’m sorry. I can’t seem to help myself when I’m near you.” His hand lifted cupped her cheek as his fingers caressed her skin. Abby didn’t even try to hold back the smile of pleasure that lit her face. Knowing what awaited beyond that door though had her sighing despondently. “You have to go, Nikolai. This is too risky.” “I know.” Nikolai released her leg then took a step back, putting much needed distance between her all too tempting form and his raging desires. After catching her breath, Abby walked over to the full length mirror to see what damage had been done. She was surprisingly pleased to see everything 346 Forever Mine still in place except one lone curl that had come down from the top of her head. She scowled then set about to fix it. Nikolai watched as Abby tried for several unsuccessful moments to fix her hair. Sighing, he walked up behind her and knocked her hands out of the way. Picking up the silky strand he began to set it right. “I wanted to tell you that you don’t have to worry about Arnost or Konstantin. They know you escaped so they won’t be shocked when they see you tonight.” Abby watched as the infamous hard-ass Russian warlord deftly fixed her hair with the speed of a man that had done it a thousand times before. She stared up at him crossly. “A special talent you forgot to mention?” Nikolai smirked then kissed her cheek. “I was never a monk, lyubof.” Abby snorted. Nikolai continued, “Just act like you never met them or saw them and everything will fall into place.” Abby turned around to face him. “And what exactly does that mean?” “It means you don’t have to worry about your father finding out you were in Russia. Isn’t that your main concern, after all?” One eyebrow rose pointedly as he stared at her. Abby bit her lip, feeling a bit awkward. “Yes, but…” Nikolai beamed a smile then he grabbed her shoulders, pulled her closer, and kissed her heartedly on the lips. “Good. That’s one promise fulfilled.” He stood back, knowing his time had come to an end. “Abby, I want you to know that I will do everything I can to keep the Darkness at bay.” Abby frowned. “And you’re telling me this because…” His gaze turned hot and fierce and his voice was a low promise of death. “Because if Richard so much as touches one hair on your head, I’ll kill him, and I don’t give a shit who sees it.” Abby’s mouth dropped open. Nikolai closed it for her then kissed her again. “Enjoy your evening, lubimaya,” he happily said. “I’ll be watching you.” He disappeared right before Abby’s astonished eyes. Her mouth opened to say something. What, she had no idea, because really, what did a woman say to that anyway? 347 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO With just a thought Nikolai blinked to the antechamber of his bedroom. Mikkel and Boris were waiting for him. He greeted them with a broad welcoming smile and an amused laugh when he saw the sheer shock on Misha’s face. His blue eyes were wide, the drink he held in his hand stopped in midair, and his mouth was hanging open. “By Odin’s blood, since when can you blink?” Boris laughed. “The perks of being an Upyr, Viking.” Mikkel scowled at Boris then turned and snorted at Nikolai. “As if you weren’t already arrogant enough, Gods, you’ll be unbearable now.” He shook his head, lifted his drink and swallowed it down. Nikolai chuckled with Boris then sat down across from them. Boris immediately filled a glass for him. “How goes things, Koyla?” Nikolai pierced Boris with a stern gaze as he took the drink he offered him. “I could belt you, Boris.” Boris grinned as both men leaned back against their chairs and raised their drinks. “Nostrovia.” Nikolai placed his empty glass on the table and smirked at the gleam in Boris’ eye. “You enjoyed leaving me in the dark, didn’t you?” Boris’ belly jiggled with the rich laughter that spilled from his lips. “Of course! It was most entertaining to hear of your struggles with your S’airsul. Most entertaining indeed.” “How did it go at Kirill’s?” Mikkel asked with a big stupid grin on his face. Nikolai scowled at him. “Kirill is a horn dog who almost lost his head.” Mikkel chuckled. “I know that, but what else happened?” It wasn’t until that moment, as Nikolai looked into his best friend’s open gaze that he realized something very important – he was an utter ass. He had not even thought of Misha when he learned about Arnost and Konstantin’s betrayal, and he should have. After all, it wasn’t just Nikolai’s father who had been murdered that night. Taking a deep breath, holding Mikkel’s gaze steadily with his own, Nikolai proceeded to tell Misha and Boris all that transpired, from Kirill’s camp to the Gorod. Misha’s expression went from amused interest to stone silent regard. He quickly stood then turned his back on both Nikolai and Boris who were watching him intently, waiting for him to say or do something. Nikolai shared a look with Boris then sighed deeply, knowing Misha would not venture forth with whatever he was feeling. It was just his way. Sadness entered Boris’ gaze. That and shame as he looked from one to the other. “I’m sorry, Misha, Koyla. If I had been there that night…” 348 Forever Mine Nikolai sighed. “Then you would have been murdered too.” “You are not responsible, Boris.” Mikkel finally turned and seared both of them with a cold hard stare. “They are, and by Odin and the Great Goddess Anaya willing, they will suffer a thousand deaths for their deeds.” Boris looked away from the red-hazed glare of the Berserker and into the obsidian orbs of the Darkness. Surrounded by the fury of two of the most powerful demons to ever exist, he almost choked on the thick putrid air of death that filled the room. He almost felt sorry for the Counts - almost. “What’s your plan, Koyla? When does Arnost expect you to kidnap Abby again?” Mikkel’s calmly spoken question was a sign his rage had been put on the back burner, for now. Nikolai snorted. “Believe it or not, Arnost is not my main concern right now.” Thoughts of dismembering Arnost piece by piece played out like movie in Mikkel’s mind. So his voice was crisp and to the point. “What is?” “That would be keeping myself from killing Richard Wexler.” Mikkel’s eyebrow rose. “Koyla, while I agree the little turd deserves a good killing, why would he take precedence over Arnost?” “Because,” Nikolai sighed, “in his heartfelt fatherly attempts to keep his daughter safe, Magnus signed a mating contract with him.” “He did what?” Boris shouted. His face was red, he was so livid. “Gods blood! Has the man lost his mind?” Personally Nikolai was in agreement, but a part of him understood what drove his former friend to make the pact. Nikolia shared a small amused glance with Mikkel as Boris continued to curse and shout. Clearly he did not. “Has he no idea what he’s done?” Boris shook his head frantically. “You cannot mate an Upyr’s S’airsul to another man! Why that’s… preposterous… stupid… it’s a bloody death sentence, that’s what that is!” “Boris, calm down.” Nikolai interjected. “Of course he doesn’t have any idea, he doesn’t know, remember?” Boris stopped in mid-rant, his mouth clamped shut as he seemed to lose some of his bluster. “Yes, yes of course. Well, there’s nothing that can be done about it now. You’ll have to tell him, Koyla. Get him to break the contract now, before it’s too late.” “I can’t do that, Boris,” Nikolai softly said. Boris’ eyes bulged, “You must! You are a strong man, Nikolai, I know this, but not even you can hold the beast back after this.” He shook his head. “No. It cannot be done.” “Perhaps you are not giving Koyla enough credit, Boris,” Mikkel interjected. “I’ve seen him show an amazing display of control when dealing with the Darkness.” He turned and gave Nikolai a nod. “I have faith he will succeed.” Nikolai smiled. “Thank you, Misha. It’s nice to know that one of you does.” Boris glowered at Mikkel. “Damn you both. You know I have faith in your abilities, Nikolai, but the Darkness…” 349 Forever Mine “The Darkness will do what is in Abby’s best interest, Boris. Do you not agree?” Nikolai peered at him, waiting for his acquiescent. Boris exhaled a long deep breath. He poured himself a drink then quickly drank it down. “Yes, damn it. But still…” “Still nothing, I know it won’t be easy, but if I told Magnus,” he shook his head, “it would only be worse.” His reference to Arnost probing Magnus was not lost on Mikkel or Boris. “Besides,” Nikolai continued, “I’m hoping Magnus will help me out.” Nikolai’s deep smile had Boris and Mikkel looking at each other strangely. “How do you figure that?” Mikkel asked. “Because it is no longer a secret, Abby knows. Knowing the short fuse and wild mouth my woman has, I would not put it past her to have reamed Magnus out for his deception. My guess is he’s probably wallowing in guilt and anger even as we speak.” Mikkel softly chuckled. “No doubt that.” “I can’t see Magnus forcing her to do anything she really doesn’t want to do. I think once he’s calmed down and thinking clearly, he’ll break the contract for me, which in turn will keep me from killing Richard at the Summit.” “I hope so, Koyla, because I do not relish the idea of mourning another Tereschenko,” Boris said. ********** Magnus was pacing in the living room of their suite as he waited for Elizabeth to come down. He was still vexed and he was not looking forward to spending his night pretending everything was grand and dandy when they weren’t. He wanted to speak to Abaigeal. He didn’t like the void that was between them now. When she came down from her room before, dressed to the nines and looking so beautiful and so much like an adult, he had been at a loss for words. He tried to approach her so he could pull her to the side to apologize and explain, but she avoided his gaze, and instead had taken Shane’s arm and let him lead her from the room. The boys had followed them out, anger etched on all their faces as they looked at him and showed their disapproval with what he had done. Lucy had actually stuck her tongue out at him. Even Liam, his most steadfast son, the one who was always loyal to him, had looked at him with a touch of resentment. The only one of his sons who didn’t regard him with bitterness had been Tiernan. Instead, his son’s grey eyes stared back with pity and that really steamed his nuts. He heard the click of heels on the stairs and turned to see Elizabeth walking down the steps. Gods, she was so damn beautiful. He wanted to wrap himself around her, get lost in her warmth and affection. He needed her to ease his suffering, but would she allow it? With a smile on her face, Ella walked up to Magnus and took his hands in hers. Raising them, she bestowed a kiss on each set of knuckles. While 350 Forever Mine maintaining his shocked gaze, she softly chuckled. “Silly, even when you say and do stupid things, I still love you.” Magnus pulled her into his embrace. “Thank the Goddess.” He nuzzled her hair and breathed in her scent. He loved her so much. “I want to talk to her. I need to say I’m sorry. I never meant…” Ella pulled back and searched Magnus’ tortured gaze. She cupped his face and bestowed another kiss on his lips, one of comfort and support. “You know, the one thing you gave all your children was your short Irish temper.” She smiled and Magnus returned her smile, his cheeks reddening slightly. “Like you, she just needs a little time and a lot of space.” Magnus sighed. “She’s still going to hate me.” “She could never hate you, baby.” Ella snuggled back into his embrace. “Let her enjoy the evening. Give her some room to breathe, then you can speak to her later and you can both clear the air. She loves you as much as you love her; she’s just hurt right now.” Magnus pulled back and peered into her green orbs. “You’re right, as usual.” He smiled tenderly. His finger lovingly stroked her cheek then he shook his head. “She shocked the hell out of me, Elle.” His mouth widened in a prideful grin as Ella softly chuckled. “I always knew she had a backbone, and I always wondered why she never showed it to me.” He became somber, thoughtful. “Her feelings for Richard are…very strong. They aren’t the feelings I was hoping for. I made a mistake, didn’t I?” Ella sighed. He knew how she felt about this so there was nothing left for her to say. She leaned up on her toes and drew his mouth down for a slow rapacious kiss. When she pulled back, his eyes were stormy with passion. “I have complete faith that you will do the right thing, baby.” His eyes twinkled with mirth. “Is that all the Ella Wisdom you’re going to give me?” Ella smirked then looped her hand through his arm and headed toward the door. “I’ve given you an earful already. You’re an intelligent man. You’ll figure it out.” Magnus grinned. “I don’t deserve you.” “No, you really don’t.” Magnus softly laughed as he steered them out the suite and headed down the stairs. As they walked, Magnus’ thoughts kept bringing him back to Richard. “I can’t believe he spoke to her when I specifically told him not to. I’m going to kill him.” Ella was pleasantly smiling, but kept silent. She saw the frown on his face and knew he was starting to question himself, wondering if he really knew what kind of man Richard was. Of course, his reaction was inevitable; you did not break your word to a man like Magnus and think you could walk away unscathed. When they reached the landing of the main staircase, Slade, Mati, Ruari, Devyn, and Richard were all standing there waiting for them. The moment Magnus saw Richard, his body tightened in anger. 351 Forever Mine “About time you two got here,” Slade sourly said as his finger inched its way under the collar of his silk shirt. “You know I hate wearing these clothes any longer then I have to.” Devyn playfully slapped him on the chest. “Stop complaining you look sexy as hell.” “I have to keep up with you, luv.” Slade winked. “Everything okay, guys?” The quietly asked question came from Mati, whose eyes reflected the hesitancy she was feeling with her question. Ella smiled. “Everything is fine, Mati.” Magnus’ fierce frown and stern tone said the complete opposite. “Richard, I want a word with you.” Richard had been around Magnus long enough to know the Overlord was mightily displeased with him. He could only assume it had to do with his earlier chat with Abaigeal. Richard stood tall. He would not cower in front of this man. Abaigeal was going to be his and he had every right to speak with her. It didn’t matter that the mating rite had not yet taken place; the contract signed by both Magnus and himself was as good as Richard’s fangs sinking into her throat. “Of course, milord.” Magnus harrumphed then turned and kissed Ella on the head, his face softening, his voice gentle and loving. “You go on, Ionuin, I’ll see you below.” Needing no reply, Magnus walked straight down the hallway and into the second floor parlor. Richard nodded to everyone and followed Magnus. Slade and Ruari watched both men go with wariness. When Slade turned back to the girls, he sighed. “By the look in your green, spitfire eyes,” he said to Ella, “I’m guessing you want us to go with him.” Ella smiled then grabbed both Devyn’s arm and Mati’s. “Try to keep him from killing Richard, okay?” Ruari’s eyebrow lifted in question. “So you can kill him yourself later?” Ella scowled. Ruari shrugged. “It’s a legitimate question.” “True, but no. It’s because he can’t get blood on his clothes. There isn’t time for him to go back and change. See you guys downstairs.” Ella happily replied. “She’s a lot chipper then I thought she would be,” Ruari quietly reflected as he watched the girls walk down the stairs. Slade snorted. “And why wouldn’t she be, she’s not the one who’s about to get a headache.” “Maybe it won’t be so bad,” Ruari optimistically replied. They walked side by side toward the parlor. Reaching the open doorway, they stopped and took a second to observe what was taking place inside. “Yeah,” Slade guffawed, “and maybe we’ll suddenly be able to sunbathe.” “You’re making me regret my decision, Richard.” 352 Forever Mine Magnus held Richard up against the wall by the throat. His demon was out and doing his best to intimidate the hell out of Richard as he snarled and growled into the younger vamp’s face. Much to Slade and Ruari’s surprise, the normally obedient and submissive Richard growled back and stood his ground. “I did nothing wrong, my lord.” Magnus’ eyes widened with disbelief as his grip dangerously tightened. “Nothing wrong? I specifically told you not to approach Abaigeal on the matter of the contract and yet you did!” Richard’s eyes flashed with anger. “I greeted my future mate and that was it. Again, I say, I did nothing wrong!” “Bloody hell.” Exasperated, Slade walked over to them both. He grabbed Magnus’ arm and pulled him off of Richard. “Calm down.” Keeping his eyes on Magnus, he addressed Richard in a stern tone that left no room for argument. “Go downstairs, lad.” Richard hesitated, his eyes going back and forth between Slade and a snarling Magnus. He knew he really shouldn’t press the Overlord, especially when his demon was out, but in this case he felt he was justified. He fixed his suit, his eyes never leaving Magnus’ golden orbs as he did. “I’m sorry, my lord, if my actions caused a problem for you, but I stand by them. Abaigeal is to be my mate. The law, the contract you signed, says I was in my right. I’m sorry if you don’t see it that way.” He nodded curtly then left the room, never knowing how near to death he came. “He picked a fine time to grow a backbone.” Ruari dryly commented. Slade closed the door behind Richard. He slowly pivoted and looked at Magnus, bracing for the explosive outburst he knew would be coming. “Why, that little ungrateful prick!” Magnus roared with astonished fury. His face was beet red from his fiery wrath and his hands were clenched into fists. Ruari and Slade waited to see what he would do next, or rather, what piece of Cinn’s luxurious furniture would meet its demise. But Magnus surprised them when, after five silent anxious filled moments, the tension left him, and instead of dropping the furniture, he dropped like dead weight into the chair behind him. Slade looked over at Ruari who had an expression of shock on his face, highly unusual for the normally never-show-them-what-you’re-thinking vamp. He should mark this day down on the calendar, Slade thought. After all, it wasn’t every day that two of the most predictable people in the Realm did unpredictable things. Magnus sat stiffly in the chair; his hands gripped the arms of the chair. The demon was gone and his face had returned to its normal color. He stared straight ahead with an almost blank look on his face. Slade could almost hear his mind running a million miles as he contemplated everything – the past, the present, and the future. He never would have thought Magnus would come to the conclusion that he voiced next. “I made a mistake.” Magnus spoke very softly, but the self-recrimination in his tone was hard to miss. 353 Forever Mine Slade laughed. “Really? What finally made you realize that? Was it the cold shoulder from Blonde or the cold shoulder from Abby?” Magnus growled fiercely while Ruari quietly admonished Slade with that famous impassive gaze. Slade held up his hands. “Sorry.” “There’s still time, Magnus. You can rip up the contract,” Ruari tactfully said. “And what would that say to the people of the Realm, that I can’t keep my word?” Magnus snorted. “What a great leader I am.” His caustic tone had Slade sighing. “You’re being too hard on yourself, mate. People would understand.” Ruari nodded. “I don’t think anyone would hold putting your daughter’s happiness first against you.” Magnus snorted. “Maybe.” “So, I guess this means you told her?” Slade asked. When Magnus stared back darkly, Slade amended his statement. “Okay, I guess this means Richard told her.” After a few seconds Magnus turned pensive. “Abaigeal and I, shared some words.” Slade devilishly grinned. “Gave you an earful, did she?” “Let’s just say she’s her mother’s daughter.” Slade laughed, which only had Magnus staring daggers at him. “What did she say?” Ruari quietly asked. Magnus leaned back against the chair. Resting his head against the cushion, he stared up at the ceiling. “She said a lot of things I never want to hear coming out of my daughter’s mouth, but the gist of it was that she wasn’t going to mate Richard, that I was ruining her life, and I didn’t care what she wanted. And if and when she met a man she wanted to mate, that it would be her decision and not mine.” Ruari smiled as Slade softly chuckled. “Well, not that I want to rub it into your face, mate, but I told you she wasn’t going to take this lightly.” The scathing retort they both expected did not come. Abby’s parting words were singing in Magnus’ head, which led his mind to other things. “I ran into Nikolai earlier in the hallway. Elizabeth and Abaigeal were with me.” Slade and Ruari shared a look before Ruari cautiously asked, “And is he still breathing?” A small grin appeared on Magnus’ face. “He’s… alive.” His eyes lowered suspiciously. “Very alive.” “I’m guessing you don’t mean that in the ‘I have a heartbeat and you don’t’ way.” Bypassing Ruari’s discreet, yet no less sardonic comment, Magnus looked up at him. “He flirted with Abaigeal.” Slade snickered. “That’s no surprise. Abby’s a beautiful young woman and in a hundred years you couldn’t have forgotten the bloke’s past time.” 354 Forever Mine “True, but it is odd he would do it in front of Magnus,” Ruari pointed out and Slade conceded with a nod. “He was smiling.” Magnus added that bit which had both Ruari and Slade’s eyes bulging. “Smiling?” Magnus looked at Slade, answering him with a nod of his head. “Laughing too.” Slade frowned. “Laughing? You’re full of shit, mate.” He sat back in his chair. “Most likely it was only indigestion.” Magnus looked at Ruari with a serious expression. “I don’t think it was the first time they’d met.” “Why do you say that?” Ruari asked. Magnus thought about that for a moment before he responded. When he did, Slade and Ruari could tell he didn’t think it; he was almost certain of it. “It was a few things, but mostly it was Abaigeal’s response, she just seemed…comfortable around him. She didn’t act like a woman who had never met Nikolai Kotova before.” “You mean there were no little droplets of spittle coming out from her mouth that was hanging open to the floor?” Slade sardonically said. Ruari softly chuckled, which drew Magnus’ annoyed gaze to him. He held up his hands. “I’m sorry, but that’s a pretty damn accurate description of what usually happens when a woman sees him for the first time. I mean, come on, man, how many times since you’ve known Nikolai have you seen that exact thing happen?” Magnus grunted. Leave it to his two best friends to mock him in a moment that was exceedingly discombobulating for him. “No,” Magnus scathingly replied. “There was no drool, no mouth agape in lustful shock. Not even one hitch of feminine appreciation.” He shook his head, almost in disbelief. “They’ve met before, I’d bet my life on it.” Ruari’s brow coolly lifted. “Interesting, but is it possible?” “I think… anything is possible when one has a headstrong mate.” “You think Ella knows something?” Ruari asked. Slade chortled. “If anyone does, it would be her.” Magnus agreed wholeheartedly. “There was something else, he seemed… different.” “Different how?” Slade asked. Magnus shook his head. “I don’t know, I can’t put my finger on it, but it felt familiar.” Slade frowned. “What the hell does that mean?” “I don’t know, it was weird.” “I saw Sasha earlier.” Magnus and Slade both looked over at Ruari, who was staring straight ahead. “She made a strange comment.” Slade snorted. “Well, that alone is strange. I can’t remember the last time Sasha said anything, least of all to one of us.” 355 Forever Mine “I know, but it wasn’t the fact that she spoke that was strange, it was what she said.” Ruari said. “Which was?” Magnus asked. “Znal by gde upast' - solomki b podstelil.” You never know what will happen next. 356 Forever Mine CHAPTER TWENTY-THREE Skye felt a profound sense of exhilaration as she stood in the threshold of the ballroom. It was a bit strange because it was the complete opposite of what she usually felt while at the Summit, which was either nausea or the urge to kill something. But as she stood there, her sharp grey eyes scanning all the occupants in the room, her fingers and toes tingled with excitement. It was going to be one helluva a Summit. There was nothing overtly different with this Summit from any that came before it. All the same people were here with all the same prejudices and hates, and they would be standing in the same spots they always occupied. An amused grin graced her lips as her gaze moved over to the right of the room. As expected, the Good Guys were all there. The Overlord, looking devilishly wicked in his formal attire, possessively stood with regal bearing and a healthy dose of lethalness to the right of his mate, who, Skye noted, seemed to have an extra sparkle of mayhem shining in her green eyes tonight. Mm, intriguing. To their left stood a gaggle of their allies, which consisted of delegates from all the communities in the Realm, mortals and immortals alike. Of course, mixed into that bunch were Ruari and Slade and their mates all dressed to kill in their fineries - and never to be left out of the loop, the ever stunning and scantily dressed Sabrina. A bit further down and standing in front of the balcony doors were Bryony, Abby and Liam, while the remaining Mac Branain brood were scattered about the room here and there along with the remaining O’Nuallain girls, and oh, there’s Taran - he’s so cute! - talking to Keegan. They looked up right at that moment. Skye met their gazes and blew them each a kiss. All the Good Guys were accounted for so she turned away from Taran and Keegan’s grinning faces and peered over to the far left of the room where the Bad Guys should be. Of course, she wasn’t disappointed. Moravec, the Kotova's, and their small group of evil cronies that ranged from leaders of the many different demon factions and one or two of the higher ups in the Soothsayer house, rigidly stood against the wall, talking to each other and then every so often, sending scathing glances across the room. Nothing of interest there to see so Skye looked beyond them and further into the ballroom where Mikkel Haraldsson and his sister, Liv, stood quietly talking to each other. Skye’s appreciative gaze settled on the large blonde Viking and a resounding purr left her lips. Talk about yum. She licked her lips in an instinctively feminine fashion as her eyes traced every well-defined muscle that Mikkel’s crisp dark blue jacket and slacks outlined on that delicious body. 357 Forever Mine Yes, she was openly ogling him, but what hot blooded girl wouldn’t? He was just so tempting. She’d love to sink her claws into that one. It was just such a shame she would never get the opportunity to do so. Ah well, a girl could dream. Sighing dejectedly, Skye’s gaze quickly moved on, expecting to see, well, the expectant, but she came to an abrupt stop when an unfamiliar body walked up to Liv. Her eyes crinkled as she studied the woman. She was rather tall, slender, and had very fair skin. Her long ebony hair reached her waist. It was thick and straight and parted perfectly down the middle of her round face. The woman turned to gaze at the couples dancing on the floor, giving Skye a clear and unobstructed view of her face, or more precisely, her brilliant blue eyes that were as striking as a cobalt sky. Well, well, well…what do we have here? One perfectly sculpted eyebrow lifted in curiosity. My, isn’t that just hells bells interesting. Either this new beauty stole someone’s eyes – mm, now there’s a tantalizing thought – or someone had more than one muffin cooking in the oven and she didn’t like to share. Pouting, Skye’s gaze darted back to the Kotova's, or more specifically, Sasha. As if sensing her gaze, Sasha’s blue gaze met hers. Skye frowned then wagged her finger at the other woman as if to scold her. Sasha’s lips curled up in the faintest of smiles. As Skye looked into her eyes, she saw lucidity as well as life and hope, and, knowledge. This didn’t surprise Skye. She always knew Sasha wasn’t empty. She was too smart of a female to let something as insignificant as a male turn her into mush. She saluted Sasha who grinned, inclined her head then turned her attention back to her mate Konstantin. Perplexed, intrigued, and practically drooling at the mouth for all the details, Skye’s gaze once more rapidly moved over every head in the crowd. Mm, maybe coming here hadn’t been such a bad idea, after all. Wasn’t that funny? She hadn’t planned on coming because, well, for several different reasons that really weren’t important, reasons like because it was the same ol’ boring thing and the same ol’ stupid people she really had no patience for – half of them she would love to sink her sword into then slowly dismember from the inside out. It would be so easy, almost like carving a turkey for dinner. A carve here, a slice there, just a flick of her wrist and bam asshole on a plate served! Yes she would really love to do that, there were, after all, so many deserving turkeys clucking about who were ripe for butchering. Oh how tempted she was. She really love turkey and she really loved butchering turkeys, maybe no one would notice if she plucked one or two out and…no, no, no…naughty, naughty thoughts. She wasn’t allowed to do that because that would be bad but… wait… where was she? Oh right, she was here for one reason only…Abby. 358 Forever Mine Skye quickly located Abby on the far right of the ballroom who was still standing with Bry and Liam, and just as quickly her breath hitched and her hand instinctively covered her eyes. Gods blood, that bright ass aura that almost blinded her when she saw Abby in her bedroom was still there – still glowing with ripples of love. Lowering her arm, adjusting her eyes to the light, Skye tilted her head and studied it again because, it was just so fascinating. Just like before, Skye was hit with a wave of wonderment. She thought she might have imagined it earlier, but it was still there, still breathing with all the things that were foreign to her, all the things that confounded her. From out of nowhere it pulsed, almost bursting with bright sparks of yellow. Skye gasped. Her eyes widened from the wonder of it; it was so surreal and so damn telling. A flippant snort left her lips. The idea that two souls could connect to each other in such a deep and profound way was pure poppycock to her, but strangely the beauty of it somehow still held her captive. It also reminded her that she had yet to locate the source of that aura. Returning to her search, it didn’t take long to find it, and when she did, it was like being hit by Thor’s hammer. Great Goddess above! Was she really seeing what she thought she was seeing? She had to wonder because sometimes her occasionally addle-witted mind played tricks on her so, she blinked…nope, still there. She blinked again…yep, still there. Mm… go figure. Well, I’ll be damned. Skye’s smile broadened and her soft chuckle turned into a hearty laugh that had the people around her staring at her as if she were crazy. She looked at them sharply then smiled as beautifully evil as Bile himself. “I like your eyes. Might I borrow them?” The people gasped as she gave them just a glimpse of one of her blades hiding in her dress sleeve. Her eyes twinkled with delight as she winked then blew each of them a kiss. “Boo!” They practically tripped over each other in their attempt to get away from her. Skye chuckled because, yay - fun! She loved tormenting her father’s party guests! She could do this all night long. They thought she was nuts but so what, she didn’t care, half the time she was nuts. She scanned the rest of the turkeys wondering who she could play with next but the bright light from the right of the room reminded her of what she was really here to do. Oh well, another day then perhaps. Ignoring the idiots, she focused on Nikolai then Abby. Abby, you lucky little bitch. Skye never dreamed Abby’s lover would be someone so…masculine, so powerful. Knowing her friend’s aversion to alpha males, Skye half expected Abby’s mystery man to be some flop with no balls, someone Abby could control and push around with ease. She was happy that wasn’t the case. 359 Forever Mine Wait a minute - happy? Skye frowned as she contemplated this unexpected sensation. Is that what she was feeling? Is that what this disgustingly warm and fuzzy feeling was? Is that why her chest suddenly felt tight? Why she felt… lighter? Her expression quickly turned to one of surprise. Gods blood, this was happiness! Actual true happiness! But then her frown turned to a look of utter confusion. She wasn’t sure how she felt about that. She didn’t know if she wanted to feel such debilitating emotions again, and yet she was curious. Maybe, for just one second, it wouldn’t hurt so much. In the back of her mind, she knew it was dangerous, but she couldn’t seem to stop herself. Skye closed her eyes, the noise of the room drowned out; she was held spellbound by an emotion she hadn’t truly experienced in a long, long time. As she opened her mind and soul to these foreign feelings the warmth quickly grew and she was hit by rapid fire flashbacks of a hard chiseled body glistening under the moonlight as he drove into her with unbridled strokes of love and furious lust. A sensually striking face hovered above, watching her every reaction then giving her everything she needed. A strong grip on her hip held her in place as commanding hips rotated then ruthlessly stroked her, filling her with an essence so potent she felt a scream being torn from her body. Great Goddess above! The flashback soared through her, sending her heart racing and her body pumping with a need and desire she hadn’t felt in years. Astounded by how quickly her body responded to it, she softly gasped in carnal delight and a blinding smile lit her face. Skye had no idea of the picture she presented to the male occupants of the room. She didn’t notice the men who normally admired her from a distance, either because of who she was or because of the coldhearted rep she had, openly stared at her with lust in their eyes and their mouths gaping. She didn’t hear the commotion that began when several of those men started pushing each other away to get closer to her. She was oblivious to it all. Unaware of the fact that, in that moment, with that smile lingering on her lips, her entire persona changed from a hard woman to a woman of vivid sensuality and intoxicating tenderness and warmth; a woman who was a bonfire of lust to all the hungry male eyes that coveted her. Still smiling, still feeling…affectionate, Skye took a preoccupied breath, opened her eyes and felt like she was just doused by a bucket of ice water. She stiffened; the dreaminess she felt instantly froze. Her smile promptly dropped. Her gaze, now flashing violet sparks across the room, was held immobile by hard cold orbs intently watching her from the other side of the ballroom. Her lips curled up in disgust. Goddess, he sickened her. He stood there, staring at her with cold empty eyes that spoke to her of his hatred and his arrogant disdain, standing there as if he were a God and she the shit 360 Forever Mine on his shoes. She would love nothing more than to take him down a notch and put him in his miserable low life place, and she hoped to the Goddess that her eyes reflected that thought. They must have because the bastard lifted one black eyebrow then had the fucking balls to smirk at her! That Gods blood aggravating half-smirk that made her want to wash the floor with his perfectly chiseled fucking face. Skye’s fingers clenched hard; her nails dug into her palms, denying herself that pleasure was always hard, especially at places like this when there was no avoiding running into the Pompous Ass. Her mind wheeled with all the ways she wanted to gut him like the pig he was; nasty, bloody, painfully long ways that brought a malevolent grin to her face. She should have stopped her mind from running rampant, she should have looked away the moment they made eye contact but she didn’t. Now it was too late. It was starting she could feel it. She flinched. Her eyes snapped shut. Her hand rose to her temples as excruciating pain bombarded her. Oh, fuck! It hurt… it hurt so bad! No damn it! She could not get one of those fucking episodes now! Not here, not when she was surrounded by assholes and most especially not while he watched! He might not give a fuck about her anymore but he was as curious as a cat. He would be compelled to find out what was going on and that would lead to no good whatsoever. What Skye didn’t realize was that the cat’s whiskers were already twitching. Far from emotionless, Tiernan viewed her with confusion and interest, but Skye didn’t see that, she was too busy panicking. Her breathing increased and her heart rate sped up to an ungodly speed but then she heard it, her salvation, her escape. Deep familiar laughter filled her ears and swam sweetly in her head. The pain eased and the tension disappeared. Relieved, Skye’s lips formed a sensual, heartbreaking smile that had the men close to her groaning in lust. But she didn’t hear them. Her eyes flared with purpose as she slowly started to walk, weaving her way through the dance crowd, swaying her hips seductively and drawing every male eye to her as she glided across the room. Regardless of what almost happened, Skye’s gaze never left His as she sashayed to where Abby, Bryony and Liam stood. Sliding up next to Liam, she ran her hand up his arm, gripping him close to her body. He turned, smiled down at her, lowering his head. She dutifully tilted hers to the side to receive his cool full lips as he kissed her cheek. Her smile faltered only slightly as Liam whispered in her ear, telling her how beautiful she looked. She squeezed his arm and thanked him quietly. Her nemesis forgotten Skye stared into Liam’s warm brown eyes and held on to his arm as if he were her lifeline to just being. Silently, she thanked the 361 Forever Mine Gods again for his strong presence and the comfort she received from being with him. She didn’t know where she would be if it weren’t for Liam but she wasn’t going to think about that, not anymore. Instead she focused all her attention on her prior preoccupation, which was Abby’s new status as the infamous Lord General’s S’airsul. Skye’s eyes gleamed. She was going to get all the juicy tidbits later. Until then she would enjoy herself and not let anything - or anyone - piss on her parade. He wasn’t sure if he was okay with this or not, Shane thought as he stood on the outskirts of the dance floor, his gaze going from one side of the ballroom to the other. On one side was Abby chatting with Bryony, Liam and Skye, she held a glass of champagne in her hand and wore a happy and relaxed smile on her face. Shane’s gaze drifted directly across from Abby to where Lord General Nikolai Kotova stood as he talked to his second-in-command, Mikkel Haraldsson, Mikkel’s sister, Liv, and a beautiful woman with ebony hair Shane had never seen before. Every so often, Kotova would look up and straight ahead at the same time Abby did. Abby’s smile would slightly drop. Kotova would grin. Abby would scowl then look away, resuming her conversation. Shane frowned. This had been going on since he walked in with Abby on his arm and then quickly deposited her next to Bryony. That was an hour ago and he was still standing here, completely baffled by what he heard, and still unsure of the entire thing. How had this happened? His lips pursed together in annoyance. There were lots of little things that had been bothering him since she returned from Germany. When she got back from Russia, those things seemed to stand out even more. So really, the question was, how could he have not seen this coming? “You’re thinking too hard on this, brother.” Tiernan suddenly appeared at Shane’s side, impeccably dressed as usual, his face revealing nothing of what he was thinking or feeling. Shane scowled. “Easy for you to say, you’ve had time to adjust to this.” He peered at Tiernan through the corner of his eye. “Shit, you’ve probably always known.” “Sorry to disappoint you, but I haven’t always known.” Shane looked at him like he was lying through his teeth. Tiernan sighed. “It’s true. I knew she met someone, but,” his gaze roamed over to Nikolai, “I only learned who it was today.” Shane’s gaze followed Tiernan’s as he studied Nikolai. The General had always made Shane feel small. The man was humongous. Not only in height and girth, but also in his presence which seemed bigger than 362 Forever Mine life. He’d always been in awe of the man who seemed meaner than a rattle snake and more astute than any one man should be. As he stood there, reflecting on Nikolai Kotova and his baby sister, Shane’s mind kept going back to one thing. “He’s so…big.” Tiernan chuckled. Shane glowered at him. “Don’t laugh. You know what I mean,” he whispered feverishly. “He’s older than her, a lot older. He couldn’t be more than a couple of hundred years younger than dad.” Straight-faced once again, Tiernan nodded as Shane continued, “He’s also a battle-hardened warrior, and I mean that in the sense that he’s not exactly known for being a happy-go-lucky kind of guy. He’s cold and heartless, and a hard-ass.” Realizing what he just said, Shane frowned. “Shit, that could have been a description of Liam! And you know how well Abby and Liam get along.” “Are you going to be one of those little people who believe everything you hear?” Tiernan asked with a sparkle in his eye. Shane’s lips pursed together. “Don’t make fun of me. I’m serious. Obviously I know rumors are not always true, but how can you not believe in these? He just seems so…different than Abby.” Tiernan sighed. Did he really have to explain this to his usually keen brother? “War changes everyone, Shane. Even the most noble can be tainted by death.” “Are you telling me you don’t think he’s those things?” “He’s good man. It’s the circumstances that aren’t.” Shane thought about that and he really couldn’t dispute what Tiernan said. After all, his brother had more dealings with Nikolai than he ever had. “Okay, fine, I’ll run with that, but even if that’s true, there is still the fact that the man has some very particular hobbies.” Shane looked so put out that Tiernan heartedly laughed. “You are the one brother I least expected to hear such priggish comments from. I thought Abby taking a lover would make you happy.” Shane’s frown darkened, “I am happy, I mean,” his face scrounged up confusingly, “no, I’m not happy, I mean…bloody hell, I don’t know what I mean!” Tiernan slapped him on the back. “I get it, Shane. You’re happy, but not happy. It makes perfect sense.” Tiernan’s amusement had Shane glowering harder. “Yes it does, damn it!” He leaned in closer. “Look, of course I want Iggy to be happy. I want her to meet a man of her own choosing; to experience sex with someone she wants to be with, it’s just,” his eyes wandered back over to Nikolai, “it’s hard for me to think of my baby sister sleeping with any man, but knowing it’s the Russian Ox,” he shook his head, “I don’t know if I can handle this.” Tiernan knew all his brothers were going to have a hard time accepting a man into Abby’s life that wasn’t one of them. Still, as well as this was not going 363 Forever Mine for Shane, it was nothing compared to how it was going to go for the rest of them, especially… Tiernan’s gaze wandered back to Abby and the group that surrounded her – specifically Liam, whose attention was completely riveted on Caoimhe as they stood side by side, their heads intimately close as they talked to each other. Liam was the one brother who would have the hardest time accepting Nikolai into the fold, there was no doubt about that. That brother was going to have an apoplexy. The thought made Tiernan absolutely giddy. “You know, they tell me there’s a party around here somewhere.” Nyle popped his brown head in between Tiernan and Shane. “You don’t suppose it could actually be going on here, in front of us, do you?” Nyle’s eyes were wide as his mouth took the shape of a surprised ‘O.’ Shane looked at him sideways and frowned. Tiernan simply rolled his eyes and turned his attention on to the buxom Bianca LaRoux, who was a short distance away from them. "You two look like Dobbs just kicked a woman out of your bed.” Nyle gave Shane a wicked grin then pushed them apart so he could stand in between them. “Tell me, brothers, what, or should I say who, are we conspiring about?” Nyle gazed back and forth between his brothers. Tiernan had his eyes on the French noblewoman Bianca LaRoux - like he was marking her as his sex slave for the evening - as she walked by and saucily winked at him. Nyle shook his head. T always gets the good ones. Then he looked at Shane who was staring at Nikolai Kotova with a bewildered expression on his face. Nyle grunted. “I wouldn’t suggest conspiring against that one. You enjoy having a dick too much, and he would ram it down your throat.” Ain’t that the truth, Shane thought right before Nyle’s words brought another explicit image to mind. Oh Gods! He didn’t want to think about that! Shane’s face paled. Nyle felt his brother’s heart rate frantically speed up. Something was disturbing him, violently so. Instantly intrigued and way too perceptive for his own good, Nyle said, “Okay, what’s going on? And before you tell me nothing, just remember I have a keen knack for finding things out that I’m not supposed to know.” Tiernan finally glanced his way. A sigh left his lips that had Nyle grinning from ear to ear; he loved exasperating his perfect brother. Tiernan eyeballed Nyle’s smartass grin with annoyance. Of course, he knew he was going to have to tell Nyle because once Shane knew something, it was only a matter of time before Nyle did; they were just too close. He had hoped it would have waited until after the ball but the gleam in Nyle’s eyes said otherwise. He was certain Nyle’s reaction wouldn’t be as thunderstruck as Liam’s was going to be but it wouldn’t be as nonchalant as Shane’s either. He would be somewhere in between true happiness for Abby and that protective drive to castrate Nikolai. Either way, Tiernan couldn’t avoid it and he most definitely could not do it here. 364 Forever Mine “Outside.” Tiernan headed for the set of open patio doors that led to the balcony on the left side of the castle. Shane followed him, and Nyle, rubbing his hands together in glee, followed him. Since the moment Abby walked into the room, Nikolai had been hyper aware of everything about her. Everything she felt ricocheted inside him like a warm blanket covering his soul. She made him feel strong and alive, she made him feel like a completely different person, and he was. Which made standing there, surrounded by his so-called allies, all the harder. He breathed out. This was the last time he would have to do this. This time tomorrow night, he wouldn’t have to pretend anymore. He could start his life over with Abby and his mother and sister. Speaking of his sister… Nikolai looked around the ballroom for Katya. When he didn’t see her, he started to panic. “Where’s Kat?” Mikkel rested a hand on Nikolai’s shoulder. “Relax, my friend, she’s with Liv. They went to freshen up. Don’t worry, I sent Boris with them.” Nikolai tha